summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/76077-h
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
Diffstat (limited to '76077-h')
-rw-r--r--76077-h/76077-h.htm20347
-rw-r--r--76077-h/images/a004_frontispiece.jpgbin0 -> 241334 bytes
-rw-r--r--76077-h/images/book_deco.jpgbin0 -> 1387 bytes
-rw-r--r--76077-h/images/cover.jpgbin0 -> 207883 bytes
-rw-r--r--76077-h/images/title_decor.jpgbin0 -> 14212 bytes
5 files changed, 20347 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/76077-h/76077-h.htm b/76077-h/76077-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..fc8e703
--- /dev/null
+++ b/76077-h/76077-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,20347 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html>
+<html lang="en">
+<head>
+ <meta charset="UTF-8">
+ <title>
+ Probation | Project Gutenberg
+ </title>
+ <link rel="icon" href="images/cover.jpg" type="image/x-cover">
+ <style>
+
+body {
+ margin-left: 10%;
+ margin-right: 10%;
+}
+
+ h1,h2,h3 {
+ text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
+ clear: both;
+}
+
+p {
+ margin-top: .51em;
+ text-align: justify;
+ margin-bottom: .49em;
+}
+
+
+hr {
+ width: 33%;
+ margin-top: 2em;
+ margin-bottom: 2em;
+ margin-left: 33.5%;
+ margin-right: 33.5%;
+ clear: both;
+}
+
+hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
+hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
+@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
+
+div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
+h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
+
+table {
+ margin-left: auto;
+ margin-right: auto;
+}
+table.autotable { border-collapse: collapse; }
+table.autotable td { padding: 0.25em; }
+
+.tdl {text-align: left;}
+
+.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
+ /* visibility: hidden; */
+ position: absolute;
+ left: 92%;
+ font-size: small;
+ text-align: right;
+ font-style: normal;
+ font-weight: normal;
+ font-variant: normal;
+ text-indent: 0;
+} /* page numbers */
+
+.blockquot {
+ margin-left: 5%;
+ margin-right: 10%;
+}
+
+
+.center {text-align: center;}
+
+.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
+
+.allsmcap {font-variant: small-caps; text-transform: lowercase;}
+
+figcaption {font-weight: bold;}
+
+/* Images */
+
+img {
+ max-width: 100%;
+ height: auto;
+}
+img.w100 {width: 100%;}
+
+
+.figcenter {
+ margin: auto;
+ text-align: center;
+ page-break-inside: avoid;
+ max-width: 100%;
+}
+
+
+/* Footnotes */
+.footnotes {border: 1px dashed;}
+
+.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;}
+
+.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
+
+.fnanchor {
+ vertical-align: super;
+ font-size: .8em;
+ text-decoration:
+ none;
+}
+
+/* Poetry */
+/* uncomment the next line for centered poetry */
+.poetry-container {display: flex; justify-content: center;}
+.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
+.poetry {text-align: left; margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%;}
+.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
+.poetry .verse {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;}
+
+
+.author {
+ text-align: right;
+ margin-right: 20%
+ }
+
+.x-ebookmaker body {margin: 0;}
+.x-ebookmaker-drop {color: inherit;}
+
+.ph2, .ph3, .ph4 { text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; }
+.ph2 { font-size: x-large; margin: .75em auto; }
+.ph3 { font-size: large; margin: .83em auto; }
+.ph4 { font-size: medium; margin: 1.12em auto; }
+
+.tnote {border: dashed 1px; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%;
+padding-bottom: .5em; padding-top: .5em; padding-left: .5em;
+padding-right: .5em;}
+
+
+/* Poetry indents */
+.poetry .indent0 {text-indent: -3.0em;}
+.poetry .indent2 {text-indent: -2.0em;}
+.poetry .indent4 {text-indent: -1.0em;}
+.poetry .indent6 {text-indent: 0.0em;}
+.poetry .indent8 {text-indent: 1.0em;}
+.poetry .indent32 {text-indent: 13.0em;}
+
+/* Illustration classes */
+.illowp100 {width: 100%;}
+
+.illowp54 {width: 54%;}
+.x-ebookmaker .illowp54 {width: 100%;}
+.illowp62 {width: 62%;}
+.x-ebookmaker .illowp62 {width: 100%;}
+
+ </style>
+</head>
+<body>
+<div style='text-align:center'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 76077 ***</div>
+
+
+<div class="chapter">
+<h1>PROBATION</h1>
+</div>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+
+
+<div class="chapter">
+<figure class="figcenter illowp54" id="a004_frontispiece" style="max-width: 62.5em;">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/a004_frontispiece.jpg" alt="logo">
+ <figcaption>J. Collier, px.&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; C. O. Murray. Sc.<br>
+
+ADRIENNE.</figcaption>
+</figure>
+</div>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+
+<div class="chapter">
+<p class="ph2">
+PROBATION</p>
+<p class="ph3">
+A Novel</p>
+<p class="ph4">
+BY</p>
+<p class="ph2">
+JESSIE FOTHERGILL</p>
+<p class="ph4">
+AUTHOR OF ‘THE FIRST VIOLIN,’ ‘KITH AND KIN,’ ETC.</p>
+
+<figure class="figcenter illowp62" id="title_decor" style="width: 12.5em;">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/title_decor.jpg" alt="">
+</figure>
+
+<p class="ph3">
+A NEW EDITION</p>
+<p class="ph3">
+LONDON<br>
+<br>
+RICHARD BENTLEY &amp; SON, NEW BURLINGTON ST.<br>
+<br>
+Publishers in Ordinary to Her Majesty the Queen<br>
+<br>
+1887</p>
+<p class="ph4">
+<i>All rights reserved</i><br>
+</p>
+</div>
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="BOOK_I">BOOK I.
+<br>
+PRIDE AND PLENTY.</h2></div>
+
+
+<figure class="figcenter illowp100" id="book_deco" style="width: 9.25em;">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/book_deco.jpg" alt="">
+</figure>
+
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_I">CHAPTER I.</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+OF AN ABSENTEE EMPLOYER.
+</p>
+<p class="ph4">
+‘The perfection of mechanism, human and metallic.’
+</p>
+
+
+<p>You, at any rate, Lancashire reader, know this place; the
+large somewhat low room; the long lines of looms; the
+wheels, straps, and beams; the rows of standing work-people,
+men, women, and children; the dimness of the dust-laden
+atmosphere. You know, too, the roar of noise—how deafening,
+stunning, and overwhelming it is to the stranger who
+may happen casually to encounter it, yet how easily those
+in the habit of working in it can make themselves intelligible
+to one another. You know all this, and your accustomed
+eye recognises at once one division of the ‘weaving shed’
+of a large cotton factory; which forms, with its perfect
+mechanism, the ‘metallic and the human,’ a most wonderful
+sight to any eyes but the too careless or the too accustomed.</p>
+
+<p>There is an air of calm, leisurely ease about the process
+which might be apt to lead the uninitiated astray, and
+make him suppose that not so much accuracy of eye,
+delicacy of manipulation, sensitiveness of touch, was required
+as is really the case. Which are the most alive—the
+girls in the cotton dresses, and the men in their fustian
+clothes, who move lightly to and fro, adjusting their work,
+keeping watch and ward over the flying shuttle; or that
+flying shuttle itself, which seems instinct with vitality,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_2">[Pg 2]</span>darting with vivid, almost oppressive, regularity of activity
+backwards and forwards—indulging sometimes in a malicious
+vagary, worthy of a human being, such as flying
+suddenly out from its groove, and perhaps striking its
+human fellow-worker a sharp blow on the forehead, or in
+the eye? It would be difficult to say—the definition at
+the head of the chapter forms also the best description of
+the whole—‘the perfection of mechanism, human and
+metallic.’</p>
+
+<p>It was during the afternoon hours of work; the day’s
+labour was drawing to a close; the great ceaseless roar and
+buzz and rush seemed to grow rhythmic, harmonious in its
+monotonous continuity; through the thick-ribbed panes of
+glass, distorted yellow sunbeams came streaming, golden,
+hazy, smoky, dusty, striking here and there upon the face
+of some laughing or languid girl; here into the eyes of
+some lad—an imp of mischief—or a youth of thoughtful
+and serious aspect.</p>
+
+<p>That was the head overlooker who came in, looked
+round, stopped the loom of one of the said laughing girls,
+fingered the cloth, remarked warningly, ‘Now, Sarah Alice!
+this won’t do! You must look out, or there’ll be some
+mischief;’ then passed on his round, stopping more looms;
+examining more cloth, and then went out of the room
+altogether.</p>
+
+<p>A steady progression, for a time, of the rhythmic toil, till
+the same door was again opened, and a young man, who
+also appeared to be a person of some authority, stepped in,
+and paused, note-book and pencil in hand. This was the
+second overlooker, a person who of necessity must possess
+considerable intelligence—being generally, as in this case, a
+working-man born and bred—some discrimination and tact
+also, since he fulfilled the duties, in some measure, both of
+a workman and a superior. In addition to his position as
+overlooker, he also performed the functions of what is
+known in factory parlance as ‘head cut-looker:’ and a
+cut-looker is a man who examines each piece or ‘cut’ of
+cloth after it leaves the loom; notes the flaws, and deducts
+from the wages of the weaver in compensation for the same.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">[Pg 3]</span>Perhaps this ‘cut-looking’ and over-looking may be like
+criticising—they may have a tendency to produce a turn of
+mind sceptical as to the merits of the work with which the
+cut-looker, or the critic, has to do. Incessant flaws,
+‘scamped’ work, broken threads, ill-joined ends, an uneven
+weft, a rough warp—the parallel is certainly a striking one;
+and a long career of cut-looking, to say nothing of criticising,
+may tend to make the temper quick, and the tone just a
+little imperious.</p>
+
+<p>The individual whose occupation was something like
+criticism was a tall young man, dressed in grey clothes,
+which looked in some way cleaner, or better, or different
+from the clothes of the others, and a white linen jacket,
+which gave a cool and airy look to the whole costume, and
+was far from unbecoming to the spare, yet very strong,
+well-built figure, and to the dark, handsome, sharply cut
+face belonging to it.</p>
+
+<p>A right workmanlike figure. There was power and
+capacity—skilled power and capacity, too, in the supple,
+lissome figure, in the brown hands, long and slim, yet
+strong and muscular, which looked as if they were well-accustomed
+to do fine work, and to do it well. The loose
+linen jacket was by no means new, though clean; it bore
+here and there traces of having been mended, and sat in
+the easy creases and folds of a much-worn old friend, from
+whose shape no washing and starching can quite banish the
+accustomed outline, given by the wearer’s form. Above
+the collar of this jacket was a narrow line of grey waistcoat;
+then a white collar, and a narrow black tie. The whole
+costume was as pleasant and as becoming to look at as it
+was practical, fit, and workmanlike.</p>
+
+<p>The face was rather thin and rather square; the complexion
+pale. The eyes were very dark and very steady—at
+the moment very quiet, though with a touch of defiance in
+them which was habitual; the forehead broad and thoughtful—the
+level eyebrows had a trick of contracting sharply,
+which took away from the calmness which might have
+seemed at first the dominant characteristic of the ample
+brow. The nose was rather long and sharp—the mouth
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">[Pg 4]</span>firm, and a little cross: the lips looked as if they would
+more readily tighten in irritation at the stupidity of others,
+than part in wonder or amaze at their cleverness—and their
+expression did not belie the truth. The whole face was
+more clearly cut, more decided in feature, more distinct in
+expression than the faces of many—nay, of most of his
+class in the same place. Perhaps it answered to a clearer
+mental outline—was the distinct objective side of a well-defined
+subjectivity. Be that as it may, the figure was a
+manly and a good one—the face no less so.</p>
+
+<p>This young man, holding his pencil suspended over his
+note-book, looked reflectively around the room, standing
+erect, though the wall was just behind him to lean upon.
+Walls to lean upon, moral or material, are irresistible to
+some people. His eyes fell upon the different workers as
+they moved hither and thither, adjusting their work, or
+stepping from one loom to another. Those eyes presently
+fell upon a young woman who was standing at the far end
+of the room, and whose face happened to be turned towards
+him. Her glance met his: they nodded and smiled to one
+another, and his smile flashed across his dark face with an
+effect which the smiles of fair faces and light eyes can
+never have.</p>
+
+<p>This young man’s name was Myles Heywood, and the
+scene of his labours was the factory of Sebastian Mallory,
+the largest mill and property owner but one in the town of
+Thanshope, in Lancashire. He was, then, clever, honest,
+proud to excess, and self-opinionated, though few people
+could help liking him, even when his opinions and prejudices,
+with both of which articles he was well provided,
+might rub against theirs. One thing deserves recording of
+him, which alone would have shown him to be somewhat
+aloof from his fellow-workmen—he had no nickname; and
+in that district, where often a man’s real name was quite
+hidden under a cloud of bynames and nicknames, this was
+at least peculiar.</p>
+
+<p>Myles Heywood, after spending a few moments looking
+down the shed, through the mist of cotton fluff which made
+the air dim and the lungs irritable, turned and went into a
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">[Pg 5]</span>neighbouring room, where they were twisting—a monotonous
+task—the rapid twisting together of the ends of cotton
+of two warps, paid for at the rate of threepence per thousand
+ends—a fact which had caused our critic in the linen jacket
+much thought at different times.</p>
+
+<p>Out of this twisting-room into a large square yard or
+court, with the engine-house and its neighbouring boilers
+on one side; offices on another, and the great wall of the
+mill on the third. On the fourth, a blank wall and huge
+gates, at present standing open, and affording a glimpse
+into the dingy street.</p>
+
+<p>The engineer, this warm August afternoon, was standing
+in the full glow of the furnace: his face was black, and
+shone as if recently it had been anointed with oil. His
+arms were bare and sinewy, and they were black too. His
+shirt, whatever its original hue, was black now, and his
+other garments, reduced to as scanty a quantity as was
+compatible with decency, were black also with oil, and
+grease, and coal-dust. He paused to mop away a swarthy
+perspiration with a dingy-looking handkerchief, as Myles
+went by, looking clean and cool, and aggravatingly comfortable.</p>
+
+<p>‘Hey, Miles, lad, what time dost make it? I’m too hot
+to get my watch.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ten to six,’ said Myles, looking at his watch.</p>
+
+<p>‘The Lord be praised!’ responded the engineer piously,
+‘and send us a speedy deliverance. It’s as hot as hell
+here of a summer afternoon, and no jokin’. Hast had thi’
+baggin?’<a id="FNanchor_1_1" href="#Footnote_1_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a></p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t take baggin,’ said Myles, a little contemptuously,
+as he took his way to the office, where he found a man and
+a boy behind a desk, on which was a heap of gold, silver,
+and copper coins, and a number of books and papers. It
+was Friday afternoon—pay-day.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, you’re there, Myles,’ said the man. ‘You may
+take your wages now, if you like.’</p>
+
+<p>‘All right!’ said Myles, picking up two sovereigns from
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">[Pg 6]</span>the heap of gold, and slipping them into his pocket. Then
+he twisted himself over the counter and seated himself on
+a high stool beside the desk.</p>
+
+<p>‘By your leave, I’ll just wait here till my lass comes, and
+then we’ll go home together.’</p>
+
+<p>Wilson, the head-overlooker and cashier, assented.
+Myles folded his arms before him, and began to whistle a
+tune to himself. It was the tune of the song, ‘Life let us
+cherish!’ and when Myles had nothing else to do, he
+generally did whistle it—unthinkingly, almost unconsciously.
+While he whistled he looked through the dingy panes of a
+small window upon a prospect as dingy as the panes.</p>
+
+<p>There was nothing but a short patch of grey-looking
+street, and over the way the multitudinous windows of a
+great foundry, from the back premises of which came loud
+sonorous clangs, as of metal striking against metal—a maddening
+and a deafening sound to ears unused to it, but
+which, from long habit, failed to disturb the workers in
+‘Mallory’s Factory.’ It had become not exactly inaudible
+to them, but part of the day’s features—as clouds, or wind,
+or rain. They would, to use a Hibernicism, only have
+noticed it if it had left off.</p>
+
+<p>It still wanted some eight or nine minutes to the time
+when the bell would ring for ‘knocking off’ work, and that
+interval was used by those present to discuss with their
+tongues that with which their heads happened to be concerned,
+for the truth is, that out of the emptiness of the
+head, much oftener than out of the fulness of the heart,
+does the mouth speak.</p>
+
+<p>‘Hast heerd news, Myles?’ inquired the lad.</p>
+
+<p>The whistle ceased for a moment.</p>
+
+<p>‘What news?’</p>
+
+<p>‘We have heard say,’ said the other man, ‘as how he’s
+coming home.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Who?’</p>
+
+<p>Wilson pointed northwards, over his shoulder, with his
+thumb.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, him!’ said Myles, with again the touch of contempt
+which came a little too often to his voice. And he
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">[Pg 7]</span>shrugged his shoulders—another gesture betraying his unlikeness
+in temper and temperament to those with whom he
+was surrounded.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, him!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is it true?’ inquired Heywood.</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t know. I’ve only heard say so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Who</i> said so?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, I believe it were one of the men from the stables
+at Mrs. Mallory’s.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Servants’ gossip!’ said Myles, trenchantly, unsuccessfully
+trying to turn up his nose. ‘Never believe what they say.
+Flunkeys by trade, and liars by nature, the whole lot of ’em,
+or they wouldn’t be where they are.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m none so keen about believing everything that any
+one says to me,’ said Wilson, with a slightly offended air,
+‘but this seems to me so uncommonly probable, with things
+in the state that they are. Why shouldn’t he come back?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, why shouldn’t he?’ echoed Ben, the office boy,
+feeling a dawning sense of coming pleasure in the idea of
+having given Myles a poser.</p>
+
+<p>‘Why shouldn’t he?’ began Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘That makes three times as it’s been said,’ observed
+Ben, with an intelligent smile. ‘Well?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Young one, keep your fingers out of the pie!’ said
+Myles, ‘and answer me this—why should he?’</p>
+
+<p>Crestfallen silence on the part of Wilson and Ben, till the
+former began rather feebly,</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, he’s been abroad for years and years, and when
+he’s a fine property like this awaiting for him to step into,
+as it were, and a fine house, and a fine mother——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ha, ha!’ said Myles, and his laugh was by no means
+one of unsophisticated enjoyment.</p>
+
+<p>‘And with things in the state that they are,’ Wilson again
+repeated, as if much impressed with that state. ‘With
+these Yankees and Southerners at it like cat and dog, and
+cotton going up, and no prospect of any end to it yet. Mr. Sutcliffe
+said to me, he says, ‘Wilson, we don’t know what’s
+before us yet. If I’m not much mistaken,’ he says, ‘there’ll
+be a famine in the land before this time next year.’ And I
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">[Pg 8]</span>say, if a master shouldn’t come home under those circumstances,
+when should he?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Should! Ought!’ repeated Heywood, in sarcastic
+tones; his scornful smile lighting his face and gleaming in
+his eyes. ‘What’s that to do with it? I’ll tell you why
+he couldn’t, and shouldn’t, and won’t come.’</p>
+
+<p>The others settled themselves more attentively in their
+positions to hear the riddle answered.</p>
+
+<p>‘Because he’s proud and lazy, and likes amusing himself
+better than working,’ said Myles, with a strong flavour of
+contempt and dislike in his voice. ‘Because the money’s
+there, and let who may have made it, choose how they’ve
+sweated for it, it’s got into his hands, whether he deserves
+it or not, and it’s his to do as he likes with—so he does
+what he likes with it. He’s got such a manager as there
+isn’t another like him in Lancashire. Mr. Sutcliffe can do
+anything; it’s he that has slaved and made this business
+what it is—the biggest in Thanshope, next to Spenceley’s.
+He’s got this manager, and if he chooses to think that he
+hasn’t got a duty in this mortal world, except to muddle his
+head with foreign politics, as I hear he does, and amuse
+himself by dancing attendance on a lot of fine ladies, and
+stroll about foreign countries, and stare himself blind up at
+pictures as big as the side of a house, and as black as my
+hat, and figures of men and women without any clothes
+on——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Lord!’ said Ben, awestruck and shocked.</p>
+
+<p>‘And go rambling about, admiring scenery, and wondering
+what to do with himself next—well, what is it to us?’</p>
+
+<p>As Wilson and Ben really did not see what it was to
+them, but had an uncomfortable sensation that their hitherto
+revered and honoured Mr. Sutcliffe was in some way a
+wronged and slighted individual, and that they ought to
+feel it all to be a great deal to them, and a subject of soreness
+and offence, they waited humbly for the keynote,
+nodding their heads, and trying to look wise.</p>
+
+<p>‘It’s true,’ went on Myles, more warmly—‘it’s true, he’s
+got this big business here, which makes his money, and
+hundreds of hands who work for him, and who are, so to
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">[Pg 9]</span>speak, under his care; and it’s true that some people—old-fashioned
+idiots, of course—might think that a big property
+has its duties as well as its pleasures, and that a capitalist
+has, or ought to have, something else to do than take and
+spend his money, and never inquire how he got it, nor what
+state the machine is in that made it for him; but what is
+that to us? If we’re going to have a famine in the land,
+it would be unpleasant for a person not accustomed to this
+kind of thing—all the more reason for him to keep away.
+My lord likes the company of lords and ladies, and he
+thinks Thanshope is only fit for tradespeople.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I bet he’s ne’er seen nowt finer nor the new town-hall,
+choose where he may have been!’ said Ben, aggressively.</p>
+
+<p>‘And,’ went on Myles, whose mouth had grown very
+cross indeed, and whose eyebrows met in a straight line
+across his frowning brow, ‘he’s a <i>Tory</i>—a Tory; if I’d
+said that at first, I shouldn’t have needed to say all the
+rest. A Tory, in these times, and in Thanshope!’</p>
+
+<p>Wilson and Ben laughed, but not quite a whole-hearted
+laugh. A Tory—every species of Conservative—was a
+poor thing, was the general Thanshope opinion, but they
+had always thought of Tories more as harmless old women,
+or vulgar ‘risen’ men, like Mr. Spenceley, than as anything
+so actively mischievous and to be eschewed as their
+absentee employer, Sebastian Mallory.</p>
+
+<p>‘He’s ashamed of the place, and the people, and the
+business that has made him what he is. And that’s why
+he won’t come back.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I say, Myles, who told you all this?’ inquired Wilson,
+deferentially.</p>
+
+<p>‘That I’m not at liberty to say; but not one of the men
+from the stables, old lad,’ said Myles. ‘But my authority
+is a good one, and it’s what I’ve suspected for years. I’ve
+heard of his doings. He goes about with parsons. He’s
+trying all he can to shake himself free of trade. He’ll try
+to do it by marrying a lord’s daughter—that’s what these
+shoddy Conservatives always do—she’ll spend his money
+for him, and if he says anything, she’ll tell him it smells of
+cotton, and she wants to get rid of it.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">[Pg 10]</span></p>
+<p>‘Nay, nay, now!’ interrupted Ben, with feeling.</p>
+
+<p>‘But she will,’ said Myles, looking as angry as if the fair
+and contemptuous aristocrat stood in person before them.
+‘I know. Don’t we all know what happened to Jack
+Brierley’s lad, and how——’</p>
+
+<p>Clang, clang, clang! went the great bell in the courtyard.
+It was two minutes past six. Wilson raised himself rapidly
+from his recumbent attitude, and began to turn over his
+papers, calling Ben to his side to help him. The discussion
+as to the merits or demerits of Sebastian Mallory,
+who certainly formed a striking instance of the theory
+that <i>les absents ont toujours tort</i>, was over; soon the office
+was filled with a pushing, elbowing crowd, waiting more
+or less impatiently to receive the hire of their week’s
+labour.</p>
+
+<p>Myles sat upon his high stool in the background, and
+watched, while Wilson and his assistant paid out the wages.
+It was rather a dingy-looking crowd that he saw, and was
+apparent to nose, as well as to eye, by the unmistakable
+odour of oil and fluff which emanated from it. Bare-armed
+girls with long, greasy pinafores, loud voices, and ungainly
+gestures, elbowing their way through the lads, and exchanging
+with them chaff of the roughest description.
+Small, pale, stunted-looking men; sometimes downright
+hideously ugly and mean-looking, or again, only sallow,
+pale, and subdued by a sedentary occupation, with here
+and there a tremendous massive brow; here and there a
+pair of eyes so deep and glowing as to cause a shock and
+thrill to one who encountered them; here a mouth of
+poetical delicacy and sensitiveness; there a jaw so strong
+and heavy, that, comparing it with the eyes, brows, and
+mouths before spoken of, one no longer felt cause for surprise
+in hearing such aphorisms as ‘Manchester rules
+England,’ ‘What Lancashire thinks to-day, England thinks
+to-morrow.’ It was, taken all in all, an ugly crowd, but in
+its way a commanding one. It might have moved the soul
+of a ‘Corn-Law Rhymer,’ a Gerald Massey, a ‘Lancashire
+Lad;’ it would probably have been repulsive to more refined
+bards and writers, and the poet of the brush and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">[Pg 11]</span>canvas would have found absolutely nothing here with
+which to gladden his eye.</p>
+
+<p>Myles, a striking exception to almost every one of the
+men in point of good looks and fine physical development,
+if not in point of intelligent expression, sat upon his stool;
+and his monotonous whistle continued as he scanned the
+faces, and returned a nod here and there. Many a girl
+looked at him, and smiled her brightest as she caught his
+grave eyes.</p>
+
+<p>He was not quite like the other workmen in more things
+than beauty, and a somewhat higher position, and none
+knew that better than the workwomen. The smiles and
+amiable looks provoked little answer. Myles was not rude
+to girls; he never chaffed them in the rough manner of
+some of his fellow-workmen; but, on the other hand, he
+very seldom took any notice of them at all, having very
+little to say to any young woman out of his own family.</p>
+
+<p>They passed before him in varied array; ugly, and pretty,
+and mediocre; fair girls and dark girls, stout girls and thin
+ones, tall and short, stupid and intelligent-looking. Here
+and there a pale, pensive face, with a head of flaxen hair,
+and long, delicate, Madonna-like features; now a brunette,
+with high complexion, and flashing black eyes, that showed
+the brighter under the thick white powdering of cotton
+fluff with which her head was covered; <i>piquante</i> and placid,
+merry and melancholy; but not for one in all the crowd
+did his cheek flush in the least, not once did the calm
+indifference in his eyes change, nor did his low, careless
+whistle cease for an instant. He stared over or between
+their heads, or—which was the most irritating of all—right
+at them, without once noticing them, until a girl, somewhat
+taller than the majority of her companions, came in, and
+stood waiting with a group of others near the door, until
+her turn should come to go up for her wages.</p>
+
+<p>Then Myles stopped whistling, and got off his stool,
+remarking, half to himself, ‘There’s Mary, at last!’ and applied
+to Wilson for the sum of eighteen shillings, that being
+the amount of his sister’s wages. He received the money,
+and made his way through the crowd towards the door.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">[Pg 12]</span></p>
+<p>‘Eh, Myles, art there?’ said the young woman. ‘Wait
+of me a minute, while I get my wages.’</p>
+
+<p>‘They’re here,’ said he, putting the money into her hand.
+‘So come along, lass! Let’s get out of this shop.’</p>
+
+<p>They passed out at the door, and walked together down
+the sloping street—a tall and well-looking pair. It was
+very seldom, indeed, that Myles Heywood and his sister
+Mary failed to walk home from their work together.</p>
+
+
+<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a id="Footnote_1_1" href="#FNanchor_1_1" class="label">[1]</a> ‘Baggin’ is not only lunch, but any accidental meal coming
+between two regular ones.</p></div></div>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II.</h2>
+</div>
+<p class="ph3">BEFORE THE STORM.
+</p>
+<p class="ph4">
+
+‘And I will say to my soul, Soul, thou hast much goods laid up for
+many years; take thine ease, eat, drink, and be merry.’
+</p>
+
+
+<p>It was August of the year 1861—the year succeeding that
+which might almost be called the apotheosis of the cotton
+trade. The goods of Lancashire were piled in every port;
+her merchants were a byword for riches and prosperity.
+‘Cotton lords’—the aristocracy of the land—that grimy,
+smutty, dingy, golden land, whose sceptre was swayed by
+King Cotton.</p>
+
+<p>Day after day the goodly ships had borne their load
+across the Atlantic, from New Orleans and the other cotton
+ports; day after day those Liverpool cotton lords had
+received that load upon their docks, and those Manchester
+cotton lords had bartered with them and bought it; and it
+had been borne slowly along, piled up on great lorries, or it
+had been whirled along the iron road, and unloaded, and
+carried to a thousand factories in Manchester, and Bolton,
+and Oldham—the giant consumers; in Rochdale, and
+Bury, and Burnley; Blackburn and Wigan, and Ashton
+and Stockport; to the great, young, growing towns; to
+strange moorland villages, younger sisters of the towns; and
+there thickset spikes had whirled it about, and combs had
+smoothed it out; revolving spindles had spun it into the
+thickest or the most fairy threads; rows and rows of shining
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[Pg 13]</span>looms had received it, and woven it into every conceivable
+variety of texture and colour, and breadth, and length, and
+pattern. Skilled workmen and workwomen, deft-handed,
+lissome, soft-fingered craftsmen and craftswomen had stood
+by their wooden and metal fellow-workers, and fed their
+untiring jaws; then it had gone to the white-looking warehouses,
+to be piled in great masses, like little mountains for
+height and solidity, and from thence removed to ships again,
+and borne over the seas to India, and China, and America,
+and to every town in Europe where men and women needed
+clothing and had money to buy it.</p>
+
+<p>The glory of King Cotton at this period of his reign, and
+the splendour of him, cannot be better summed up than
+in the graphic words of one who has thought and written
+on that great subject:—</p>
+
+<p>‘The dreary totals which Mr. Gladstone’s eloquence
+illuminates, and the rolling numerals of the National Debt,
+become almost insignificant beside the figures which this
+statement (the statistics of the cotton trade) involves.
+Arithmetic itself grows dizzy as it approaches the returns of
+the cotton trade for 1860. One hundred years back, and
+the cotton manufactures of England had been valued at
+£200,000 a year. Had not French, American, and Russian
+wars—had not railways and telegraphs, had their part and
+lot in this century, surely it would be known as the Cotton
+Age. This year, 1860, was the <i>annus mirabilis</i> of King
+Cotton. In this year his dependents were most numerous
+and his throne most wide. There was no Daniel at hand
+to interpret to him the handwriting on the wall, which
+within twelve months should be read by all who ran, in
+letters of blood. What cared he? An argosy of ships
+bore him across every sea and into every port. He listened
+to the humming of his spindles and to the rattle of his
+looms; he drank of the fulness of his power and was
+satisfied, for he was great—yes, very great.... The total
+value of their (the manufacturers’) exports for the year
+amounted to £52,012,380. If figures can ever be magnificent—if
+naked totals ever reach to the sublime—surely
+the British cotton trade for the year 1860 claims our admiration.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[Pg 14]</span>Its production for this single year equalled in
+value £76,012,380, or nearly six millions more than the
+gross revenue of the kingdom for the same period.’</p>
+
+<p>Surely the land which was the chief home of this monster
+trade deserved the title of ‘The Land of Plenty,’ and such
+it was—‘a goodly land,’ in fact, if not in outward show, ‘a
+land flowing with milk and honey,’ or at least their modern
+English equivalents—a land where wealth was profuse—where
+masters and men vied with each other in pride of
+bearing and dogged independence of spirit. Such was that
+rough, dark land at the end of 1860; such it was still at
+the end of August 1861; what it was in August 1862 only
+those know who dwelt in it, and saw its thousands of
+perishing children, and noted their stoic endurance of their
+sufferings.</p>
+
+<p>Even now, even in this month of August 1861, rumours
+were gaining ground that the war in America would not
+soon be over. The price of cotton was beginning to go
+up; the days were hastening towards that month of October
+when prices sprang up, mounting daily higher and
+higher, and factories began to close—not in ones and twos
+as heretofore, not to run short time, or half-time, or even
+quarter-time, but to close bodily, in dozens and scores,
+with no prospect of their opening again for an indefinite
+period of want and woe. It was a vast, dark, pitiless
+cloud, that which was even now rolling up from the West,
+bearing in its huge womb lamentation, and mourning, and
+woe.</p>
+
+<p>But still Lancashire was the land of plenty and of hospitality;
+still her generous fires burnt merrily upon her ample
+hearths, making the stranger forget her murky skies, and
+the smoke-dimmed countenance of her landscapes. Her
+work-people still got the largest wages, her masters still made
+the greatest fortunes of any masters and work-people, taken
+collectively, in England; and nothing was said about the
+over-production of the last plethoric year, nor of the piled-up
+goods in the overstocked warehouses.</p>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[Pg 15]</span></p>
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III.</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+RIFTS WITHIN THE LUTE.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>The brother and sister walked together down the sloping
+street already mentioned, and which was, as usual at that time,
+full of work-people, streaming out of the numberless factories
+which formed the staple of Thanshope buildings. Arms were
+swinging, and clogs were clattering; tongues were wagging
+furiously in the reaction of the release from work, and the
+inhalation of the air, which, though close and thunderous,
+was yet fresher than that in the great hot factories.</p>
+
+<p>Thanshope was built on a situation with considerable
+claims to natural beauty, and there were days, even now,
+when it looked beautiful. Its streets all climbed up and
+down steep hills. Whenever the day or the smoke was
+clear enough, hills might be seen surrounding it on all sides
+in the distance, except to the south, where Manchester lay.</p>
+
+<p>There was a river—the river Thanse—running through
+the town, which unfortunate stream formed a fertile source
+of bickering and heart-burning amongst the members of the
+town-council, the medical men, and the people who write
+to the newspapers: one party of them contended that there
+was nothing the matter with the river Thanse, it was a good
+and wholesome stream, which purified the town; while the
+other party said that it and its unspeakable uncleanness were
+at the root of all the ills that Thanshope flesh suffered from.</p>
+
+<p>Altogether, the verdict of a stranger would most likely
+have been that Thanshope was a dim, unlovely, smoky
+place, in which no one would choose to live whose business
+did not oblige him to do so—a place where substantial dirt
+was the co-operator of substantial prosperity, where grime
+and plenty went hand in hand.</p>
+
+<p>Yet there were people who loved this dirty town, and
+who lived contented lives in it—people not belonging to the
+great swarm of workers who were obliged to live there, and
+who, perhaps, thought more about the rate of wages than
+about the æsthetic condition of their surroundings.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[Pg 16]</span></p>
+<p>Myles and Mary Heywood, having come to the end of
+the sloping street, turned a corner to the left, and soon
+found themselves in another street, quieter, wider, with
+terraces of small houses on either side, whose monotony
+was diversified by various chapels, meeting-houses, and
+schools. Uphill for a short distance, till the street grew
+wider and the houses better, and Myles and Mary, turning
+down a side street to the right, emerged upon one side of
+a wide, open, square space, called Townfield, or the Townfield,
+and elevated so high that the rest of the town lay
+below them as in a basin. All along that side of the Townfield
+where they stood was a row of neat, small houses, each
+exactly like all the others; the only room for the individuality
+of the owners making itself apparent being in the arrangement
+of the little strip of garden spreading before each.</p>
+
+<p>Half the Townfield had been cut off, a couple of years
+ago, to furnish a small park or pleasure-ground; but looking
+across the open space to the north-west, they could see the
+old part of the town in its hollow; the old church of the
+parish on ground almost as high as the Townfield itself; the
+gilded spire of the town-hall rising ambitiously from the
+hollow (it chimed a quarter after six with mellow tone as
+they stood there), and all the other churches and chapels
+and public buildings strewn here and there about the town.
+A great cloud of smoke came up and dimmed the air; on
+every side was a fringe of long chimneys; different big
+factories were familiar features in the landscape, and formed
+landmarks to Mary and her brother—had formed landmarks
+to them from infancy.</p>
+
+<p>Away to the north-west were undulating lines of blue,
+lofty moors. They were part of Blackrigg—that mighty
+joint of England’s irregular spine. It was not exactly an
+enlivening prospect, but it had certain beauties of its own;
+and at least this town, full of rough, busy toilers, had a fitting
+and harmonious frame in that semicircle of bleak and
+treeless moors.</p>
+
+<p>Mary and Myles went up one of the strips of garden
+about the middle of the terrace, and opened the door of the
+house.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[Pg 17]</span></p>
+<p>‘Pah! how hot and close it feels!’ said Myles, as they
+closed themselves in. ‘Now I wonder how that lad is!’</p>
+
+<p>They went along a little passage, to the left of which was
+the ‘parlour,’ arranged in the approved style of such parlours,
+with a brilliant, large-patterned carpet in red, yellow, and
+blue; bright green merino curtains, a ‘drawing-room suite’
+in rosewood and crimson rep, a pink cloth upon the centre
+table, upon which were negligently arranged albums, Sunday
+books, paper mats, and a glass shade, under which reposed
+waxen apples and grapes of a corpulent description. On
+the mantelpiece, two green glass vases, and a china greyhound
+of an unknown variety, more frilled paper mats,
+and little piles of spar and crystal. On the walls, photographs
+and a rich collection of framed funeral cards, together
+with the <i>chef-d’œuvre</i> of the whole establishment—a work
+of art which Mary regarded with feelings little short of
+veneration—‘Joseph sold by his Brethren,’ executed in
+Berlin wools, the merchants all squinting frightfully, and
+Joseph with a salmon-coloured back and a decidedly ruddy
+countenance, though one not of such remarkable beauty as
+quite to account for his subsequent adventures.</p>
+
+<p>Past the door leading into this epitome of art and
+beauty went these young people, into the kitchen, which
+was, of course, the general living-room of the family.
+Upon a couch beneath the window, with the crinkling of
+the cinders and the ticking of the clock for his only companions,
+lay the failure of his family—a cripple lad of
+eighteen.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, Ned, lad, how dost find thyself?’ asked Myles,
+going in.</p>
+
+<p>‘I find myself as usual—wishing I was dead,’ was the
+encouraging reply, as the lad turned a pale and sallow face,
+not without considerable beauty of feature, but stamped
+with a look of ill-health, pain, and something deeper and
+more sorrowful than either, towards the strong, handsome
+brother who stooped over him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Nay, come! Not quite so bad as that,’ said Myles,
+smoothing Edmund’s hair from his hot forehead, and seating
+himself beside the couch. He looked into his cripple
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[Pg 18]</span>brother’s eyes with a glance so full of life, and hope, and
+strong, protecting kindness, and withal so contagious a
+smile, that an answering, if a reluctant one, was wrung
+from the lad’s dull eyes and down-drawn mouth.</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m that thirsty!’ he said. ‘Molly, do get the tea ready.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m shappin’’ (shaping) ‘to’t now, lad,’ she returned,
+hanging up her cotton kerchief and poking the fire to
+settle the kettle upon it.</p>
+
+<p>‘And you read a bit, Myles, wilta?’ pursued Edmund.
+‘Mother won’t be home for half an hour, and I could like
+to know how yon Lady Angiolina got on at the castle.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles took up a book from a table and began to read
+aloud:</p>
+
+<p>‘“As the groom of the chambers announced the Lady
+Angiolina Fitzmaurice, every eye turned towards her. She
+advanced with the step of a queen. Her trailing robe of
+black velvet set off her superb beauty to the utmost advantage,”’
+and so forth.</p>
+
+<p>Edmund listened with face intent and a pleased half-smile
+upon his lips. Mary moved noiselessly about, getting
+the tea-cups out of the cupboard and setting them on the
+tray with gingerly hand, so as not to disturb the literary party
+in the window.</p>
+
+<p>The reading was continued only for the space of some
+quarter of an hour. The story was a novel of ‘high life.’
+No agent in it was of lower rank than a baronet; no menial
+less distinguished than a groom of the chambers or a majordomo
+was permitted to appear in its truly select and exclusive
+pages; the action took place in Mayfair, in Belgravia,
+and in the ancestral halls of dukes and earls. Manchester
+was alluded to by the refined author much as if it had been
+of about equal importance with Timbuctoo; the whole a
+very tawdry tinsel, pasted together in a very poor, second-rate
+manner.</p>
+
+<p>Myles read on and Edmund listened. Perhaps he was
+aware that the story was rubbish, but it took him into a
+world which by contrast with his own was beautiful: it
+spoke of something else than the Townfield as a pleasure-ground,
+grey factories, smoke and chimneys by way of a
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[Pg 19]</span>prospect. It pointed out another sort of existence than
+that led by him and his.</p>
+
+<p>Edmund had an intensely poetic temperament. Poetry
+of some sort, in real life or in books, he must have or die.
+It was not forthcoming in real life: Myles never read novels
+for his own pleasure, therefore Edmund had no beneficent
+hand to point out to him the shining treasures of real poetry
+with which our English literature abounds, so he had to
+rely on the titles in the catalogue of the Thanshope Free
+Library, and often received a stone instead of bread, in the
+shape of such jingling nonsense as he was greedily listening
+to just now.</p>
+
+<p>Myles was a great reader of politics and science. The
+romantic and poetic side of his nature had been left to
+itself; the soil, whether sterile or fruitful, had never received
+the least touch of cultivation—yet. He had some strong
+convictions on the subject of ethics, which will be best left
+undescribed, to display their results in his actions as circumstances
+put his theories to the test.</p>
+
+<p>There was something striking and uncommon in the
+appearance of all three of this group of brothers and sister.
+Mary was comely—a tall, well-formed, well-grown young
+woman, with the pale but clear and healthy complexion,
+dark eyes and hair of her elder brother—a calm, sensible
+face, not destitute of a certain still, regular beauty, but
+lacking the impetuousness and intensity of Myles’s expression.
+She sat knitting a long grey woollen stocking, and
+looked with a large steady gaze now at Myles, now at
+Edmund, whose face was equally sharp cut as his brother’s,
+but worn and drawn with pain and ill-health.</p>
+
+<p>Edmund was nineteen; Mary, two-and-twenty; Myles,
+six-and-twenty; another, born between them, had died an
+infant.</p>
+
+<p>At this juncture the back door was heard to open. Some
+one entered, and in the pause made by Myles in his reading
+there was distinctly audible a heavy sigh—almost a groan.
+Glances were exchanged between Myles and Mary; both
+looked as if they braced themselves to meet some ordeal.
+Edmund’s face darkened visibly.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[Pg 20]</span></p>
+<p>‘Is that you, mother?’ called out Mary cheerfully.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, it’s me!’ replied a rather grating voice—a voice
+high, though not loud, and complaining in the midst of an
+ostentatious resignation.</p>
+
+<p>‘Go on, Myles!’ said Edmund, in an undertone.</p>
+
+<p>‘Can’t, my lad. You know mother can’t abide it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why am I never to have a bit o’ pleasure? It’s
+precious little as I get,’ grumbled the lad, as he turned
+away, and lay with his face concealed.</p>
+
+<p>‘See, lad! Tak’ the book, and read for thysel’,’ said
+Myles, who indulged in a tolerably broad dialect when in
+the bosom of his family.</p>
+
+<p>Edmund shrugged his shoulders irritably and made a
+gesture of aversion. Myles closed the book, rising from
+the side of the couch and going to the table, as a woman
+came in from the back kitchen—a small, sharp-featured
+woman, comely yet, with a bright cheek and a dark eye.
+She was the mother of all those tall children, though she
+was only five-and-forty, having been married, as too many
+of her class do marry, at eighteen. The great wonder was
+that she had remained a widow so long, for in addition to
+good looks, clever fingers, and a stirring disposition, she
+possessed property to the extent of thirty pounds per annum
+left by a rich relation to her years ago.</p>
+
+<p>An ignorant observer, looking at the family party just
+now, would have said what a good-looking, prosperous,
+well-to-do party they were. But Mrs. Heywood had
+scarcely spoken yet.</p>
+
+<p>‘Evenin’, mother,’ said her eldest son, civilly, but, it
+must be owned, hardly cordially.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good evenin’,’ she returned, in her high-pitched, dubious
+voice. ‘What! you’ve managed to get th’ tea ready, lass?
+But I know what that means. Just twice as much tea in the
+pot as we’ve any need for, or as I should ‘a put in mysel’.
+Waste, waste, on every side!’</p>
+
+<p>As this was Mrs. Heywood’s invariable remark when she
+came in from her occasional day’s sewing at one of the
+large houses of the neighbourhood and found the tea prepared,
+it excited neither comment nor indignation, and the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[Pg 21]</span>excellent woman, seating herself, cast a sharp, discontented
+look around, as if wishing that some one would give her an
+opportunity of saying something disagreeable.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, bi’ the mass! It is some and hot! If some folks
+had to walk as far as me, mayhap they’d understand what
+I feel at this moment.’</p>
+
+<p>Again no answer. Myles was buttering a piece of bread.
+His eyebrows were contracted again. The serpent in that
+Eden was the contentious woman. Myles never answered
+her complaints, on principle, for fear of saying something
+outrageous and unbecoming, but it was often with a sore
+struggle that he abstained: he did not want to become a
+household bully, or he knew—he had found it out by
+accident one day—that a certain look and tone of his could
+quell Mrs. Heywood’s temper in one minute. He was very
+much afraid of using it too frequently, though often sorely
+provoked. ‘Such people as Sebastian Mallory,’ he reflected
+(whose mother was said to live for him and his happiness),
+‘were not obliged to stay in one room, listening to maddening
+complaints, like the continual dropping of a rainy day, with
+no alternative but solitude, silence, or the taproom.’</p>
+
+<p>Edmund’s shoulders were drawn up to his ears, and his
+back expressed distinctly that he felt himself jarred and
+grated in every fibre of his being.</p>
+
+<p>‘Now, then, Edmund,’ said his mother, in her thin,
+penetrating voice; ‘art comin’ to the table, or mun thou
+have thy tea carried to thee, to drink on th’ sofa, like a
+lady, eh?’</p>
+
+<p>Answering to this appeal, he raised himself, his face
+darkened, his lips quivering with anger.</p>
+
+<p>‘That’s right!’ said he, bitterly. ‘Do insult me a little
+more! It’s so nice to be ill, and so pleasant to spend your
+days by yourself upon a sofa in a kitchen. I’m likely to
+keep it up as long as ever I can. So would you if once
+you knew how agreeable it was.’</p>
+
+<p>He had supported himself by means of a stick to the
+table; and as he limped along to the chair which Mary had
+placed for him, one could see how much deformed he was,
+and how clumsily he moved. No look of pity warmed the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[Pg 22]</span>woman’s face as she saw him. He was not, like many a
+weakly or deformed child, the object of the mother’s divinest
+love and tenderest care. He had been born three months
+after his father’s sudden death. Mrs. Heywood had never
+been noted for enthusiastic devotion to any of her children,
+or to her husband, or, indeed, to any one but herself and
+her own interest. Myles could influence her; but she
+seemed to have a positive aversion to Edmund, who used
+to say that his real mother was Mary.</p>
+
+<p>When the meal was over, there was a little movement.
+Edmund looked wistfully towards Myles and the book;
+but Myles did not offer to resume it. He had begun to
+think over that conversation in the office before pay-time,
+and was wondering whether it could be really true that
+Sebastian Mallory meant to return.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian Mallory was, and had been for years, his <i>bete
+noire</i>. He had seen him once, ten years ago, a handsome,
+fair-faced, ‘yellow-haired laddie’ of sixteen, who had come
+to look round his own works, with a somewhat listless gaze.
+Myles’s vigorous soul had been filled with contempt for him
+at that moment, and he had never seen fit to alter that
+feeling. All he heard of Sebastian Mallory was exactly
+contrary to his ideas of what a <i>man</i>—unless the man were
+some irresponsible person, with neither business nor estate
+in the background—ought to be and do. He had a very
+strong sense of duty himself, and never, so far as he knew,
+left a duty unperformed. He struggled hard, according to
+his light, to do what was right; consequently he felt himself
+in a position to be somewhat censorious upon those who, he
+considered, obviously did not fulfil their duties—duties to
+their property, their dependents, their privileges, to him—such
+persons as this very Sebastian Mallory. Therefore he
+smiled somewhat grimly to himself as he imagined that lily-handed,
+yellow-haired, delicate-looking young man coming
+to take his place at the head of affairs at such a crisis as
+was striding towards Lancashire—a storm which it would
+take the keenest heads, the strongest hands, the most
+practised eyes of the wariest business men who should
+succeed in weathering it. Probably Mr. Sebastian Mallory,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[Pg 23]</span>if he did come, would cut a sorry spectacle, and would
+soon be glad to retire again to more congenial scenes
+abroad.</p>
+
+<p>He did not feel it his duty to excite Mrs. Heywood’s
+disagreeable remarks by reading aloud what he justly considered
+‘balderdash’ to Edmund; he therefore suggested
+that they should go and take a turn on the Townfield.</p>
+
+<p>Edmund, who for some reason was in a more unhappy
+temper than usual, shrugged his shoulders, and said he did
+not feel inclined to go out.</p>
+
+<p>‘No? Then I must go by myself, I suppose,’ said Myles.</p>
+
+<p>But he made no immediate effort to leave the house.
+He seated himself at the table with a book, and might
+possibly have remained in the house, but for his mother,
+who having ascertained that his book was entitled ‘The
+History of Rationalism,’ announced that the bitterest grief
+of her declining years consisted in having to see a son of
+hers growing up an infidel, or worse. She hunted under
+the Family Bible, and produced a tract, which she offered
+him in lieu of the work he was reading. It bore the alluring
+title, ‘Thou also, Worm!’ And on his refusing this tit-bit
+of religious badinage, she put it aside with a bitter smile,
+and an audibly expressed hope that it might not in the
+future go too hardly with those who had spurned the means
+of grace proffered by a mother’s hand.</p>
+
+<p>Myles endured these, and a succession of similar remarks,
+for some little time, while he appeared to go on with his
+book without heeding them; but, as none knew better
+than she who made them, the contracted eyebrows and the
+impatient twisting of his moustache covered considerable
+inward irritation. He at last abruptly rose, and took his
+cap from the nail on which it hung.</p>
+
+<p>‘Out again!’ said Mrs. Heywood, in the same maddening
+voice; ‘and if a mother may ask, what pothouse are you
+going to now?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No thanks to you, mother, that I’ve not taken to the
+pothouse long ago,’ replied the young man curtly, slapping
+his hat upon his head and leaving the room.</p>
+
+<p>‘If he doesn’t break that door off its hinges some fine
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[Pg 24]</span>day, in one of his tempers, my name’s not Sarah Ann
+Heywood,’ remarked his mother. ‘It’s a grievous thing to
+have an ungovernable temper. His Bible, if he ever read
+it, would tell him that the tongue is a little member, but a
+consuming fire.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The Bible never said a truer word,’ retorted Edmund,
+witheringly; and Mrs. Heywood, returning to her knitting,
+with the pleasant sense of having driven out the strongest,
+sank into silence.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+ADRIENNE.</p>
+</div>
+<br>
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘I love my lady; she is very fair;</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Her brow is wan, and bound by simple hair:</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Her spirit sits aloof, and high,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">But glances from her tender eye,</div>
+<div class="verse indent4">In sweetness droopingly.’</div></div></div></div>
+
+
+
+<p>Myles left the house, and, traversing some sideways, found
+himself presently in a steep, hilly street, which he descended,
+arriving at last at a sort of square, through the middle of
+which ran the river Thanse, and on both sides of which
+were rows of shops. Then, walking on a hundred yards or
+so, he emerged in another still larger open space, opposite
+a large and beautiful building, which, in its delicate and
+multiform Gothic tracery, and noble dimensions, with the
+springing gilded spire leaping aloft at last, offered a startling
+contrast to its sordid surroundings—the shabby, low houses,
+narrow streets, and grimy factories which crowded round,
+as near as they dared. The river here made a bend, and
+passed the front of the town-hall. A kind of boulevard had
+been made, planted with trees, and immediately across the
+river, fronting the town-hall, was a house standing in a garden,
+divided by the river from the road. It was a fine old house
+of red brick, which had no doubt originally been ‘in the
+country.’ There was a look of stateliness and substance
+about it—the brick was relieved by handsome stone mullions,
+copings, and chimney-stacks.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[Pg 25]</span></p>
+<p>The trees had been stunted by smoke, but they lived
+yet. Much ivy, strong and tenacious from advanced age,
+clung about it. The grounds were thoroughly well kept.
+The parterres were blazing with the passionate, glowing
+colours of late summer flowers; the windows were glazed
+with sheets of plate-glass. Here and there a bow had been
+thrown out. Behind were extensive stables and outhouses.
+It was, though dingy, and miscellaneous in architecture, a
+fine, imposing old mansion; it instantly caught the stranger’s
+eye, and was known from infancy to every inhabitant of
+Thanshope as well as the old church on the hill behind the
+town-hall, or as the great co-operative stores on another hill
+at the other side of the town.</p>
+
+<p>To-night Myles looked more earnestly than usual at this
+old house. It was called ‘The Oakenrod,’ and was the
+property of Sebastian Mallory, tenanted during his absence
+by that stately dame, his mother.</p>
+
+<p>‘There it is!’ said Myles within himself. ‘Cumbering
+the ground—kept like a palace for a fellow who doesn’t
+care two straws for it!’</p>
+
+<p>Again he shrugged his shoulders, and turned somewhat
+abruptly to the left, making for one of the side doors of the
+town-hall. He went in, and ran up a great many flights of
+stone steps, past corridors and branching passages, till he
+could go no higher, for the excellent reason that he was at
+the top of the building. Pushing open the glass door,
+which swung to behind him, Myles found himself in the
+holy of holies—the library. A door to the right led into
+the reading-room, and thither he directed his steps. It was
+a large, lofty, handsome room, with many tables and chairs,
+and plenty of pens, ink, newspapers, and periodicals scattered
+about. When Myles entered, the room was almost
+empty. One or two men were reading newspapers, and at
+one table in a window sat a girl, who had a great book open
+before her, but whose eyes were at the moment intently
+fixed upon the old house, the Oakenrod, which lay directly
+beneath.</p>
+
+<p>Myles, searching about, found a number of the <i>Westminster
+Review</i>, and took it to his accustomed place, at the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[Pg 26]</span>table next to that where the girl sat. He noticed no one
+to right or to left of him—not even her who was almost
+the only lady visitor who ever entered the reading-room.</p>
+
+<p>She was already a familiar figure to his eyes. For some
+months past he had seen her nearly every evening, sitting
+at the same table, even at the same side of that table, with
+a book—generally some large and weighty volume—open
+before her, and a small thick note-book, in which she wrote
+extracts or abstracts of what she read.</p>
+
+<p>Myles knew quite well the tall, slim figure, the two dresses
+which she alternately wore—one a soft, flowing black one—another,
+soft and flowing too, of a blue so dark as to be
+nearly black. He knew that the lines of her dresses flowed
+gracefully, and were agreeable to the eye. He knew, too,
+the little black <i>fichu</i> which she usually wore—a sort of
+apology for a mantle, which she never discarded on the
+hottest days; the modestly shaped white straw hat, with its
+carefully preserved black lace scarf, and bunch of daisies at
+one side, which hat she always ended in taking off after she
+had sat there ten minutes or so. She had a pale, clear,
+fair complexion, bright, warm chestnut hair, and a face
+which, not conventionally beautiful in outline, was full to
+overflowing of the subtler, more bewitching charm of a
+beautiful spirit. It—her face—had a youthful softness of
+outline—not full, but not thin, with a charming rounded
+chin, melting into the full white throat; a mouth whose
+lines attracted irresistibly, so good, so spiritual were their
+curves; an insignificant but well-cut nose; a pair of large,
+luminous, expressive eyes, which in some favourable lights
+might appear grey, but which an impartial observer must
+inevitably have confessed had a shade of green in them.</p>
+
+<p>Myles and this young lady had sat at neighbouring tables
+in the public reading-room almost every evening throughout
+the spring and summer months of that year. Whenever
+Myles came into the room he had found the young lady
+there; he could not, of course, tell whether she came when
+he was not there.</p>
+
+<p>Conversation in the reading-room was against the rules;
+but ‘conversation’ is an abstract noun of considerable indefiniteness,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[Pg 27]</span>and one to which different minds may attach
+different meanings. A few words exchanged, of greeting or
+courtesy, could scarcely have come under the head of
+‘conversation,’ or if it did, the rules were infringed every
+day. A little remark, as one passed the paper to the other—fifty
+little things might have been said (and were said by
+some frequenters of the room) without in the least disturbing
+the peace of the studious.</p>
+
+<p>But between Myles and his neighbour those words had
+never been spoken. They had never exchanged a syllable—Myles
+because of a certain British-workmanlike shyness,
+and a general sense that she belonged, despite the simplicity
+of her appearance, manner, and attire, to the class of ‘fine
+ladies’ whom he disliked and distrusted—the class which
+was typified for him in the person of Mrs. Mallory of the
+Oakenrod—and of whom he had the idea that they were
+silly, pretty, useless, expensive things, good for nothing but
+to spend a man’s money, and make him miserable with their
+tricks and antics—and break his heart if he were fool enough
+to give it into their keeping—incapable of taking any part
+in the serious things of life. That was his opinion of ‘ladies.’
+For the women of his own class he had a hearty respect
+and admiration: they could earn wages; they could work;
+they did not meddle with things out of their sphere; they
+had a distinct use and purpose; he never uttered an ill
+word to or of any one of them.</p>
+
+<p>He had never spoken to his neighbour, because he was
+shy, and did not know how to begin a conversation; but he
+would have scorned to own it: he would have said,
+‘Speak to her? Why should I speak to her? I’ve
+nothing that I want to say to her.’</p>
+
+<p>Which would have been untrue; for there was such
+intelligence, such sympathy in her face, that he many a time
+caught himself, on reading any striking passage, wondering
+what she would think of it if she had read it.</p>
+
+<p>She had never spoken to him—because—why—because—well,
+what did it matter? possibly because she was a little
+more sensible than most girls, and felt no wish to speak unless
+she had something to say.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[Pg 28]</span></p>
+<p>They met without sign of recognition. He would take
+his place—she hers; she always had some book under her
+arm, for which she had stopped to ask the librarian on her
+way in, and they would often pass a couple of hours thus
+almost without a word or a look. She read earnestly and
+hard—not as if she read for pleasure, but for work—with a
+purpose. Privately, Myles was mighty puzzled to know what
+she could be reading, or rather, with what object she read
+what she did. Once he had been quite excited (silently) to
+see her poring over a musical score; reading it as if it were
+a book. One of the specialities of the Thanshope Free
+Library was its musical department, which was richly stocked
+both in scores and in treatises on music and musicians.</p>
+
+<p>During the summer the room was generally nearly empty.
+The people were otherwise employed, so that often not more
+than half a dozen readers were to be found in all the large,
+airy room—sometimes Myles and the studious, unknown
+‘reading girl’ were all alone there.</p>
+
+<p>Myles opened his Review, and his eye fell upon an article
+on the governing classes which instantly caught his attention.
+In the hope of finding some follies and weaknesses of the
+governing classes sharply castigated, he settled himself with
+pleased expectation to his book.</p>
+
+<p>Half an hour passed. One by one the other occupants
+of the room walked away. The workman and the young
+lady were left alone together. She looked every now and
+then out of the window. Her note-taking did not seem to
+flow so smoothly as usual. Spread open on the table before
+her, she had a fine edition of the ‘Fugues’ of Domenico
+Scarlatti, which she studied a little now and then, but oftener
+looked out through the window. Now, from that window
+she had a tolerably wide prospect; and immediately beneath
+her eyes was the handsome old red-brick house, with
+its flower-beds, and its lawns, smooth, and green, and
+well-watered—a rural fastness in the midst of the dusty
+town.</p>
+
+<p>There was silence that was almost solemn in the big room,
+which was growing dusk: it was so high and airy, and so
+isolated; raised far above the town and its troubles; the din
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[Pg 29]</span>hushed; the rolling vehicles and the passing throng dwarfed;
+books on every side, and silence like a garment over all.</p>
+
+<p>As chimes broke that silence, and eight o’clock struck,
+the girl, with a sigh, turned resolutely away from the outside
+prospect, and applied herself again to her score.</p>
+
+<p>Myles, half roused by the chiming, half pleased with a
+particularly hard hit at the governing classes, which especially
+took his fancy, raised his head at this moment, and his eyes,
+without any thought of his neighbour. It is a gesture
+which every one makes sometimes in reading. Smiling with
+satisfaction at what struck him as a masterly argument, Myles
+let his eyes fall upon her.</p>
+
+<p>She too was looking up—not at him, but past him. Her
+eyes were turned towards the door, and quick as thought
+there passed a subtle, inexplicable flash of dislike, tempered
+with alarm, across her face. She made a movement as if
+to rise—as if to escape; then sat down again, with a flush,
+more of annoyance than confusion, mantling in her cheeks.
+Then, bending to her book, she seemed to make some effort
+to keep her eyes firmly fixed upon it.</p>
+
+<p>This little bit of by-play roused Myles’s attention. He
+turned his head towards the door, which was behind him,
+and he saw how it was opened, and a man came into the
+room. A gentleman? he speculated, as he first saw the
+figure, in the obscure background. The visitor gradually
+approached, and Myles, staring unceremoniously at him,
+experienced a feeling of surprise, disgust, and sudden enlightenment
+as to the cause of the young lady’s disturbance.</p>
+
+<p>The new-comer was a young man with a somewhat high
+colour, dark hair and eyes, a full beardless face, and a coarse,
+animal mouth. He was well, even foppishly dressed, and
+bore the outward stamp of a person to whom money is not
+a subject of painful study or consideration. But, as Myles
+knew, he was not sterling coin. His manner, even of
+entering that room, was less than second-rate; confidence
+became a swagger; independence was metamorphosed into
+self-consciousness. The expression of his face was bold
+and vulgar. Perhaps no greater or more telling contrast
+could have been found, than that between the workman in
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[Pg 30]</span>his work-a-day dress, and the would-be dandy in his gloved,
+perfumed, over-dressed vulgarity.</p>
+
+<p>This person came forward; his eyes fell upon Myles; he
+removed them. A workman—a person not demanding his
+attention, one of the “fellahs” who came to the reading-room.</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, he seated himself at Myles’s table and drew
+a <i>Daily News</i> towards him, without speaking and without
+removing his hat. Myles glanced at the young lady without
+letting her see that he did so; her eyes were fastened upon
+the page before her, but he had studied her expressions,
+and knew that she was not reading.</p>
+
+<p>‘Now, I should like to know,’ speculated Myles inwardly,
+‘what you may want here, Mr. Frederick Spenceley?’</p>
+
+<p>He had recognised the man—the son of a rich manufacturer
+of Thanshope, who had earned his fortune as a
+Radical, and was living in state now as a Conservative and
+a supporter of the aristocracy, Church, State, and landed
+gentry interest. His son, as Myles was well aware, had
+assuredly not visited the reading-room for purposes of mental
+instruction.</p>
+
+<p>Myles apparently applied himself again to his book, but
+the argument had lost its charm for him. He had not
+known until now how lively was the interest he had taken
+in his graceful young neighbour. Placing his book so as
+to shield his face, but yet so that he could observe what
+was going on, he said to himself,</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m glad I didn’t go away ten minutes ago.’</p>
+
+<p>After bestowing a very short and scant need of attention
+upon the <i>Daily News</i>, Mr. Spenceley cast his eyes around
+him. Myles watched him, and saw the leisurely impudence
+of the stare with which he favoured the young lady, and
+his ears began to tingle. He—my poor Myles—was of a
+fiery temperament, could not endure to see even a ‘fine
+lady’ insulted without cause, and was dangerously ready to
+take up the cudgels for the unprotected or ill-used.</p>
+
+<p>‘I beg your pardon,’ said Mr. Frederick Spenceley, leaning
+towards the girl. ‘Do you want that paper?’</p>
+
+<p>He stretched his hand towards a newspaper which lay
+upon the table at which she sat, but he was looking at her
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[Pg 31]</span>with a stare, perhaps intended for one of gallant admiration,
+but which, from the unfortunate ‘nature of the beast,’ succeeded
+only in being impertinent.</p>
+
+<p>Without looking at him, she raised her elbow from the
+paper on which it had rested, and continued, or seemed to
+continue, her reading.</p>
+
+<p>‘You don’t want it?’ he said, with what may have been
+meant for a winning smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ came like a little icicle from her lips.</p>
+
+<p>Myles with difficulty sat still; but, making an effort, continued
+quiet, though watching the game with a deeper
+interest than before.</p>
+
+<p>The twilight had grown almost into darkness by this time.
+The attendant, perhaps not knowing that any one was in
+the room, had not yet lighted the gas.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Spenceley took the paper, but, without even pretending
+to look at it, said in a tone of under-bred badinage,</p>
+
+<p>‘Isn’t it rather dark to be reading, Miss—a——’</p>
+
+<p>She raised her eyes this time, and caught those of the
+speaker fixed full upon her. Her own were instantly
+averted, with an expression of cold contempt and disgust,
+and she made no reply.</p>
+
+<p>‘I assure you it’s very bad for the eyes to read by this half-light—very
+trying. Hadn’t I better tell the fellah to light the
+gas? I am sure you will spoil your eyes, and that would be
+a pity,’ with a winning simper, which made Myles’s fist clench
+with an intense desire to do him some horrible violence.
+‘Don’t you really think I had better?’ he pursued, evidently
+bent upon making her speak. At last he succeeded.</p>
+
+<p>‘Be good enough to mind your own business, without
+addressing me,’ said she, in a voice which, thought Myles,
+was sufficient to have rebuffed the veriest cur that ever
+called itself by the name of man.</p>
+
+<p>With that she quietly, by slightly altering the position of
+her chair, turned her back upon Mr. Spenceley, while her
+profile, with frowning brow and indignantly compressed lips,
+was plainly visible to Myles.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Spenceley laughed, not so musically as a lady-killer
+should be able to laugh, and remarked:</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[Pg 32]</span></p>
+<p>‘I feel it my business to prevent a young lady from
+spoiling her eyes, and——’</p>
+
+<p>Steadying his voice with some difficulty into something
+like indifference, Myles turned to him and said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t you know that talking is forbidden here?’</p>
+
+<p>The look which he received in answer made him smile,
+despite his inner indignation. Mr. Spenceley contemplated
+him with a stare, which was unfortunately not so regal as it
+might have been; then, raising a single eyeglass, he stuck
+it into one eye, and surveyed the audacious speaker anew,
+as if his wonder at what had occurred could never be
+sufficiently satisfied.</p>
+
+<p>‘Will yah mind yah own business, and leave gentlemen
+to mind they-aws?’ he at last drawled out, with magnificent
+disdain.</p>
+
+<p>‘When I see the gentleman I shall be quite ready to leave
+him to mind his own business,’ was the placid retort. ‘In
+the meantime, as the young lady wishes to read, and I wish
+to read, and you disturb us with your chatter, perhaps you
+will kindly hold your tongue.’</p>
+
+<p>Here Mr. Spenceley resolved upon a master-stroke. Turning
+his broadcloth-clad back upon Myles, he tilted his chair
+back so as to see the young lady better, and inquired,</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you know the fellah, Miss—a——?’</p>
+
+<p>Before she could reply (supposing that she had any intention
+of replying) Myles had leaned a little forward, and
+tapped Mr. Spenceley on the shoulder. With a great start,
+quite disproportionate to the circumstances, the latter
+brought his chair to its normal position again. Myles saw
+the start, and stifled a smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘Excuse me, my good sir, I don’t remember ever to have
+seen you here before, so perhaps you won’t mind showing
+me your ticket—I mean your member’s ticket—otherwise——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Will yah hold yah tongue?’ retorted the other, in a
+tone of scornful exasperation.</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ replied Myles. ‘If you’ve any right to be here,
+show me your ticket, and hold <i>your</i> tongue, according to
+rules; if you haven’t that right, walk out at once.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[Pg 33]</span></p>
+<p>‘I can tell yah, yah don’t seem to know who ya’h speaking
+to,’ observed Mr. Spenceley, apparently lost in astonishment.
+‘Are yah one of the authorities here?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh yes! I know you,’ said Myles, who saw that the
+young lady was now watching the dispute with undisguised
+interest. ‘And I’m that much of an authority that I can
+prevent you from disturbing and annoying people. Once
+for all, will you show me your card of admission?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, I won’t.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then you’ll excuse my going to the librarian and telling
+him you are here without right—unless you prefer to save
+that trouble to me, and ten shillings to yourself, by walking
+yourself off now, this moment,’ said Myles, who began to
+find a delicious piquancy in the sensation of dealing thus
+summarily with a person of the consideration of Frederick
+Spenceley. It was an ignoble feeling, and we all have
+ignoble feelings sometimes, or what is the meaning of the
+constant injunctions to bear and forbear which we receive
+from different sources?</p>
+
+<p>‘Haw! Wha—at?’</p>
+
+<p>‘The fine for using this room without belonging to it is
+ten shillings. There’s another fine for talking and disturbing
+people, too,’ said Myles, who had never lost his look of
+perfect ease and calmness, and who did not for a moment
+remove his eyes from the other’s face.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Spenceley did not appear to like the mention of fines.
+His face fell; his hand involuntarily sought his pocket.</p>
+
+<p>‘Tender in that direction, poor fellow!’ thought Myles
+to himself.</p>
+
+<p>‘Confounded radical place, this!’ observed Mr. Spenceley.
+‘Not fit for gentlemen to live in.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not when they have only been gentlemen since the last
+general election,’ said Myles, politely. ‘I quite agree with
+you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, I shall go and see what the librarian says to all
+this,’ said Mr. Spenceley, by way of covering his retreat;
+and then, after a prolonged stare at the girl in the window,
+he retired, not so jauntily as he had entered.</p>
+
+<p>Myles picked up his book again. The girl watched her
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[Pg 34]</span>tormentor, until the noiseless door had swung to behind
+him, and she had seen his shadow pass towards the stairs.
+Myles feigned to read, but he could not help seeing how
+she trembled as she sat there.</p>
+
+<p>He did not speak to her. Something—he knew not
+what—held him back. But he suddenly felt a light touch
+upon his arm, and, looking up, saw the young lady standing
+beside him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you think he is really gone?’ she asked, scarcely
+above her breath.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh yes! That sort of cur slinks off when you stoop
+for a stone, with his tail between his legs. It’s only when he
+has his kennel well behind him that he turns upon you and
+snaps,’ replied Myles, with homely if expressive metaphor.</p>
+
+<p>She drew a long breath, raised her head again, and said,
+with a mixture of dignity and gentleness which appealed
+intensely to his strongest feelings of admiration,</p>
+
+<p>‘I cannot tell you how much I am obliged to you!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t mention it, miss,’ said he; and it was odd that,
+while Mr. Spenceley’s ‘miss’ made every right-minded person
+pant to knock him down and pound him well, Myles’s
+‘miss’ was not in the faintest degree offensive.</p>
+
+<p>‘You spoke as if you knew who he is. Do you?’ she
+added.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh yes! He’s well enough known; he’s the only son
+of that Spenceley who has the big factories down at Lower
+Place—“Bargaining Jack” they call him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh! I know who you mean. Poor man! How I pity
+him for having such a son!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Had you ever seen him before?’ asked Myles, confirmed
+in his impression that she was not a native of Thanshope,
+and finding conversation easier than he had expected.</p>
+
+<p>‘I have seen him several times lately. I seem always to
+be meeting him. Once I thought he had followed me, and
+then I thought how absurd to imagine such a thing; but he
+must have done it all the same.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles had had inexplicable sensations while she spoke.
+He had known her so long without a voice, that now, when
+he heard it, she seemed to become a stranger again; and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[Pg 35]</span>yet not a stranger. She had a sweet, low voice, clear and
+penetrating, and she spoke with an accent that had something
+not quite English in it.</p>
+
+<p>It would have been difficult—to Myles in his ignorance,
+impossible—to say in what the foreign element lay; but it
+was assuredly there. When she spoke she looked at him
+with fleeting glances which had nothing insincere in them,
+and her face lighted up and became lovely—and more than
+that, distinguished, spiritual; the slender figure was balanced
+with such a graceful poise; the delicate hands were free
+from all nervous restlessness. Her chestnut hair was
+abundant, and its dressing so simple and beautiful as alone
+to make her remarkable. Myles realised that she was most
+distinctly a ‘lady,’ but he could not make himself feel her
+to be either trivial or stupid. There had been nothing
+trivial in her behaviour. Her treatment of him flattered
+his discrimination when he remembered her late treatment of
+Mr. Spenceley. At that time of his life he had very wrong
+ideas on the subject of gentlemen, having mistaken notions as
+to their power and character; but the best part of his nature
+was soothed and pleased when so perfect a piece of refinement
+as this young lady treated him entirely as a gentleman.</p>
+
+<p>‘And I thank you again, very much,’ she added, smiling,
+and holding out her hand.</p>
+
+<p>Myles forgot to be confused as he accepted the hand so
+frankly extended, and felt encouraged to do what he had
+thought would be right from the moment she had spoken
+to him.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am very glad to have been of service. May I ask
+how far you are going?’</p>
+
+<p>‘To Blake Street, if you know it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I know it well. It is too far for you to go alone, if you
+will excuse my saying so. It is quite possible that fellow
+may be hanging about yet. I’ll go with you, if you will
+allow me?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh! you are very kind,’ said she, with visible relief.
+‘I cannot refuse, though I am sorry to take you away.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not at all. I can’t fasten to it again,’ said Myles, sincerely.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[Pg 36]</span></p>
+<p>‘Then, if you would be so good, I should be very
+grateful,’ said she; and she looked so relieved and so
+pleased, that Myles felt himself rewarded an hundredfold
+for the act which had occurred to him as one of simple
+civility—nay, of almost obvious necessity.</p>
+
+<p>They left the town-hall when she had returned her book
+to the librarian, and passed out into the street turning to
+the right.</p>
+
+<p>‘This is the shortest way, miss,’ said Myles, distracted as
+to what he should call her, feeling ‘miss’ disagreeable, he
+hardly knew why, but, despite the wealth of the English
+language, having no other alternative than a bold ‘you.’</p>
+
+<p>She relieved his mind as if she had understood his thoughts.</p>
+
+<p>‘My name is Adrienne Blisset,’ said she. ‘I should like
+to know yours, if you will tell it me?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Myles Heywood.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I like it—it is so English, so Lancashire.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It’s not like yours, then,’ said he. ‘It sounds foreign.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Adrienne? Yes; that is French for Adriana; but I
+pronounce it in the German way—Adrien-ne. Don’t you
+see?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I never heard such a name—for an English young lady,’
+said Myles, simply.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am not altogether an Englishwoman. I am half
+German. I was never in England till eighteen months ago.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Never in England!’ echoed Myles, incredulously.
+‘Then you speak English amazingly well.’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne laughed, and Myles asked,</p>
+
+<p>‘How do you like England, now that you are in it?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I do not know England. I only know Thanshope,
+and I—cannot say—that I do like it much—if you will
+excuse me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, we don’t expect every one to like our town,’ said
+Myles, magnanimously. ‘It is a rough sort of a place, I
+fancy. And I should not think you would like it either.
+You are not like most of the ladies here.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No?’</p>
+
+<p>‘There isn’t another lady in the place who would come
+to the reading-room as you do.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[Pg 37]</span></p>
+<p>‘Indeed. Why?’</p>
+
+<p>‘They are too fine, I suppose,’ said he, contemptuously.</p>
+
+<p>‘Too fine?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay. We have a lot of fine ladies here. There’s Mrs.
+Spenceley, mother of that fellow who was annoying you
+this evening; but she’s not so fine, certainly, poor thing!
+But there’s her daughter!’ Myles shrugged his shoulders
+and turned his eyes to heaven.</p>
+
+<p>‘Is she very fine?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Whenever I see her she is as fine as fine can be; but
+perhaps she has some excuse for it, for she is very handsome,
+and she has a kind face too; one would wonder how
+she could be that fellow’s sister. Then there’s Mrs. Shuttleworth,
+that has the grand yellow carriage, but she is better
+than some of them; and she looks ill, poor thing! so
+perhaps her finery only gives her very little comfort.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It seems to me that you have an excuse for them all,’
+said Miss Blisset.</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps I have—for all but one—the proudest and the
+finest of the whole lot. I’d rather have any of them than
+her—and that’s Mrs. Mallory of the Oakenrod.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mrs. Mal——’ began Adrienne quickly, and then
+stopped abruptly. ‘Do you know her?’ she added.</p>
+
+<p>‘I know this much of her, that I work in their factory,
+and she comes looking round now and then, behaving as
+if she thought that I, and the factories, and the town, and
+the world in general were made for her pleasure and service.
+Oh, she’s a proud, insolent woman, Mrs. Mallory; all the
+Mallorys are proud and insolent. It would do them good
+to be humbled, and I hope they will be.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh! how can you be so bitter against them?’ said she,
+as if shocked.</p>
+
+<p>‘No, I’m not bitter; but I don’t like to see people like
+that giving themselves airs, looking as if the world’s prosperity
+depended upon their continuing to favour it by living
+in it, when any one knows that if they had their bread to
+earn they couldn’t do it. I like justice.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Justice, and a little generosity with it,’ said she, gently,
+smiling in what appeared to Myles a very attractive manner.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">[Pg 38]</span></p>
+<p>‘We are here in Blake Street,’ said he; ‘which way do
+we turn?’</p>
+
+<p>‘To the right, please. My uncle’s house is at the very
+end of the street.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The end—it must be lonely,’ observed Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, it is, rather. He lives at Stonegate.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Stonegate!’ echoed Myles. ‘I’ve often wondered who
+lived there, and never knew. Why, it is part of the
+Mallorys’ property,’ he said suddenly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; I believe it is,’ she replied composedly. ‘My
+uncle has lived there for ten years now.’</p>
+
+<p>There was a little pause, and then Myles said,</p>
+
+<p>‘You will excuse me, but I don’t really think it is fit
+for you to walk all that long way of an evening, especially
+now that it gets dark so soon, and after what has happened
+to-night.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose I shall have to give it up. Luckily I am
+nearly at the end of my task. So I shall try to finish it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Your reading?’ he said inquiringly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. References for my uncle’s book. He is writing
+a book about Art and the Development of Civilisation: he
+is too infirm to go to the library himself, and I like going
+there. I have been reading up music for him all summer.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, that’s it!’ said Myles, in a tone which betrayed ingenuously
+enough that he had thought often and deeply
+upon the subject.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, that is it. I must really try to go a few times
+more, because those books may not be removed from the
+library; and then I shall not need to go any more.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But you have not been here long, you said?’ said Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘No. Only eighteen months, since my father died
+abroad, and my uncle asked me to come and live here with
+him, else I should have had no home.’</p>
+
+<p>She spoke with a quietness amounting to sadness, and
+Myles felt sure that there was sadness in her life, though
+she spoke so cheerfully.</p>
+
+<p>‘Were you sorry or glad to come to England?’ he
+ventured to ask.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, sorry. Every association I had with it was unpleasant;
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[Pg 39]</span>whereas I had had many pleasures at different
+times abroad; and it is so cold, and dull, and <i>triste</i> here.’</p>
+
+<p>‘For any one that has no friends——’ he began.</p>
+
+<p>‘Like me,’ she said.</p>
+
+<p>‘It must be rather dull. Here is your place, I think.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Adrienne, pausing with her hand on the latch
+of the gate. ‘I would ask you to come in, only it would
+disturb my uncle so much. But I shall see you again, and
+another evening I hope you will come in—will you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are very kind,’ said Myles, secretly feeling immensely
+flattered at the invitation. ‘If it wouldn’t be
+intruding——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not at all. I should like to know what you think about
+one or two things. I know you think, by the books I have
+seen you reading, and I have a burning curiosity to know
+what you think.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles suggested that his subjects—work, wages, politics—might
+not be very interesting to a young lady.</p>
+
+<p>‘It depends so much upon the kind of young lady, I
+think,’ said she, smiling. ‘Well, good night; I am obliged
+for your kindness.’</p>
+
+<p>With a gracious inclination of her head she was gone—had
+passed swiftly up the walk, opened the door, and
+entered the house.</p>
+
+<p>Myles stood for some time on the spot where she had
+left him, staring at the house. He looked at it well.
+‘Stonegate. Blake Street.’ The whole of Blake Street was
+part of the Mallorys’ property—Sebastian Mallory’s property,
+to gain which he had toiled not, neither had he spun; but
+it had come to him, and was his to do as he would with.</p>
+
+<p>Blake Street was a long street, composed, for about half
+its length, of smallish houses, in which lived quiet, steady,
+proper people. Several of the door-plates bore the indications
+of dressmakers; there were two dentists, a veterinary
+surgeon, and an undertaker. The rest were quiet, dull,
+dingy-looking private residences.</p>
+
+<p>Beyond a certain point all this changed. Blake Street
+became a mere confusion of pasteboard terraces, half-finished
+houses, single strips of houses, and general disorder and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[Pg 40]</span>chaos—a brick and plaster abomination of desolation.
+And then came a lonely stretch of street, quite without
+houses, with an unfinished footpath on either side, skirting
+a waste of what really had been heath, and was now little
+else. Some tufts of heather might be found growing there
+in their season, and the air that blew over it was sharp and
+keen.</p>
+
+<p>Across this common one might see the lights of the town;
+dim outlines of factories and churches, and masses of buildings—the
+tortuous lines of light creeping up steep streets
+and lanes, and the indistinct outlines of the long range of
+the Blackrigg moors. On the left side of the road stood
+one solitary house, in a moderately sized garden—the Stonegate
+where Adrienne lived with her uncle. It was an old
+house of dark grey stone; square, solidly built, and of
+moderately large proportions. It was contemporary with
+the Oakenrod, and had been built by some far-back, dead
+and gone Mallory (they were lords of the manor of Thanshope)
+as a dower-house. In the garden the trees were
+shrivelled up, the flower-beds were adorned with nothing
+but a few evergreen bushes, and the grass was not kept as
+was the grass in the Oakenrod garden.</p>
+
+<p>Behind the house was the lonely-looking waste of heath
+or common which was out of Sebastian Mallory’s jurisdiction;
+and in front a low wall, with a wicket-gate in it, bounded
+the garden. From the wicket to the door was a flagged
+walk, raised a little above the grass border on either side of
+it. On each side the door two windows; on the second
+story five windows. The shutters of the lower windows
+were closed—the whole face of the house presented a blank,
+staring void, till at last Myles, looking intently upwards, saw
+a light appear in one of the upper windows, and a shadow
+pass the blind. That must be Adrienne’s room. Then he
+glanced at the surroundings of the house.</p>
+
+<p>‘A lonely place enough!’ he decided within himself.
+‘I’m glad I came home with her. If that blackguard had
+been at the trouble to follow her! I hope he doesn’t know
+where she lives: it hardly looks as if he did, or he wouldn’t
+have chosen the public library to molest her in. I don’t
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[Pg 41]</span>believe that if she called out, in this street, any one would
+hear her; and if they did, they’re a poor lot—tailors, and
+women, and ‘pothecaries: they wouldn’t know a woman’s
+screaming from a cat’s miauling.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is a nasty place!’ he muttered again to himself,
+lingering unaccountably, reluctant to go. ‘It looks as if
+there were a blight, or a curse, or something upon it.’</p>
+
+<p>At last he tore himself away, and took his homeward way.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V.</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+PHILOSOPHY AND FASCINATION.
+</p>
+</div>
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘A tenderness shows through her face,</div>
+<div class="verse indent6">And, like the morning’s glow,</div>
+<div class="verse indent6">Hints a full day below.’</div></div></div></div>
+
+
+
+<p>Myles walked home, not in the ‘kind of dream’ proper
+for a hero under the circumstances, but thinking very lucidly
+and very connectedly during his pretty long walk, from the
+end of Blake Street to his house on the Townfield, chiefly
+of what had happened that evening. He thought of
+Adrienne—of all those summer months of silence, and then
+of the sudden, quick acquaintance.</p>
+
+<p>‘She’s certainly different from other people,’ he said to
+himself: and in that matter he was right, if he meant that
+she was not like the ordinary Thanshope lady. But the
+ordinary Thanshope lady had not been brought up as
+Adrienne Blisset had been, and Myles did not know then
+what patient struggles with sorrow and poverty and adverse
+circumstances had made her what she was. At one-and-twenty
+she had lived in many lands, and her mind had
+come in contact with many other minds, often minds of a
+far from common order. Very few English girls in her
+class have had that experience at that age—nor would those
+who wish a girl to be innocent and happy desire such experience
+for her, if it had to be paid for with such a heavy guerdon
+of sorrow and suffering as Adrienne had paid for hers.</p>
+
+<p>Myles knew nothing of that, he only saw the difference.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[Pg 42]</span>He felt a curiosity about her, blended with some admiration.
+He admired her grace, her spirit, her sweet voice, her quick
+intelligence; and he thought a great deal about her as he
+walked home, and wondered if he should see her again to-morrow—if
+she would be as gracious as she had been
+to-night; he thought of Frederick Spenceley, and classed
+him in his mind with ‘Mallory and that lot,’ and was glad,
+quite revengefully glad, that he had been able to treat him
+as he had done, and that was all.</p>
+
+<p>Perfectly unexpectant, unconscious, unaware of the web
+which circumstances, past, present, and to come, were
+weaving about his head, he paced the well-known streets—a
+son of toil, the descendant of generations of sons of toil,
+but with a whole world dormant in him, or rather nascent—a
+whole realm of suffering: love, hope, grandeur, baseness,
+which this night had first stirred into a premonitory natal
+activity.</p>
+
+<p>Saturday morning came, and work, and the business of
+life; Saturday afternoon, and holiday. Myles and Mary
+walked home together about two o’clock; and his sister
+looked at him more than once, as his head and his eyes
+turned quickly from one side to the other, so often that at
+last she said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, Myles, dost expect to see some one thou knows?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Me—no!’ said he, hastily, and with a forced laugh. He
+had been half unconsciously looking for Adrienne, but in vain.</p>
+
+<p>In the evening he repaired to the reading-room as usual.
+He went straight to his seat in the window; but she was
+not there, so he picked up the <i>Westminster</i>, which no one
+had disturbed since last night, and resumed the article on
+the governing classes.</p>
+
+<p>But he could not, to use his own expression, ‘fasten to
+it,’ until he heard the soft opening and closing of the swing-door
+in the background, and the faint sound, almost imperceptible,
+of a girl’s light footfall and undulating dress,
+came nearer and nearer. Then, when he looked up, she
+was there, looking just the same as usual—which was
+surprising, after all his dreamy thoughts about her.</p>
+
+<p>She bowed to him, with the smile which lent such a
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[Pg 43]</span>charm to her fair face. For she was fair, Myles decided,
+as he saw that look of recognition; and he was right. She
+was one of those women who are not anything, neither ugly
+nor beautiful, until one knows them, and then they are
+lovely for ever.</p>
+
+<p>With the ‘Good evening’ and the smile they exchanged,
+he felt at rest, and could turn to his book again, and read,
+and understand. For not yet did he know that he had
+met his fate—good or evil as the case might be; there was
+a sweet, momentary pause before there came that fever of
+unrest which love must be to such men as he.</p>
+
+<p>Miss Blisset made her notes, and studied her music with
+diligence, until nine o’clock came chiming from the steeple
+above their heads, and there rang out after the chimes the
+music of the tune ‘Life let us cherish!’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne put her books together, and rose.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Heywood, I told my uncle about what happened
+last night, and he told me to ask you to come and see him
+this evening. Will you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall be very glad to do so,’ said Myles, looking up,
+pleased and somewhat surprised. He had thought Miss
+Blisset’s gratitude to him natural, under the circumstances,
+and had quite supposed that she would treat him with friendliness
+afterwards; but he had smiled at the idea of the uncle
+of whom she spoke troubling himself about him. If he let
+the girl take that disagreeable walk to the town-hall every
+evening, he was not likely to care much whether she were
+annoyed or not, so that his work was done. That was the
+conclusion Myles had come to; and it was a conclusion
+quite in harmony with his character.</p>
+
+<p>They left the hall together: it was Saturday night, and
+the streets were thronged with a rough-spoken, roughly
+mannered Lancashire crowd, pushing and talking, and, too
+many of them, reeling about, with the absence of ceremony
+peculiar to them. They soon left the thoroughfare, and
+found themselves first in the narrow cross-lane, and then in
+Blake Street.</p>
+
+<p>‘Only one more evening,’ said Adrienne, ‘and then my
+work will be done; and I shall not need to come any more.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[Pg 44]</span></p>
+<p>‘I’m glad to hear it,’ said Myles, abruptly.</p>
+
+<p>‘You like reading,’ said Adrienne. ‘Have you read
+much?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t think I have,’ he owned frankly.</p>
+
+<p>‘The Thanshope library is not a bad one in its way,’
+she remarked. ‘Rather behind the time though, in the
+matter of science and philosophy.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, you see, it’s like the gentlemen who have the
+managing of it, I suppose,’ said Myles, apologetically.
+‘They are a little behind the time, too.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Fortunately they have been allowed to exercise no control
+over my department, the music, since it was all bequeathed
+by a good and enlightened man to the town; and
+all those worthy committee people had to do, was to accept
+it gratefully, and find a room to put it in. And then, too, I
+don’t think they would know anything about the orthodox
+and heterodox in such matters.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is there orthodox and heterodox in music?’ asked Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘I should think so! The adherents of the different
+musical creeds are given to a “bear and forbearance” equal
+to that of adherents of different religious creeds.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles laughed a little at this and said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Then I’m sure ignorance is bliss in that case. We’re
+somewhat overrun with parsons in these parts. The women
+make so much of them that they seem quite to lose their
+understanding—what they have of it. But the vicar—Canon
+Ponsonby—he is quite different; and he keeps a
+pretty tight hand over his parsons. I’ve heard that he shows
+them their place sometimes as if they were schoolboys. He
+ought to have been a prime minister, ought Canon Ponsonby.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I know him,’ said Adrienne. ‘He and my uncle
+are great friends. He is a grand old gentleman.’</p>
+
+<p>Here they turned in at the wicket of Stonegate; Adrienne
+opened the door, and Myles for the first time—not for the
+last by any means—stood within that sad-looking, lonesome
+old house.</p>
+
+<p>It was a square, matted hall in which they stood; dimly
+lighted by a Japanese lantern, also square, hanging from the
+roof. On a great oaken table in the centre, stood a large,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[Pg 45]</span>beautiful vase of grey-green Vallouris ware. Over the
+carved mantelpiece hung an oil-painting—a fine copy of
+that beautiful likeness of Goethe—the one with the dark
+rings of curling hair, and the magnificent face; that likeness
+which always reminds one of the <i>herrlichen Jüngling</i>
+described by Bettina as the hero of a certain skating scene,
+when he stole his mother’s cloak—<i>der Kälte wegen</i>. Opposite
+to this picture stood, on a pedestal, a bust of Orfila.
+These were the only ornaments in the place: every other
+available corner was filled with book-shelves loaded with
+books. A dome-light gave light by day to this hall.</p>
+
+<p>‘This way,’ said Adrienne, opening a door to the left, and
+Myles followed her into the room. This room too was
+lighted with lamps and candles. There was a table in the
+centre—a writing-table in one of the windows, piled with
+books, and papers, and manuscripts. In an easy-chair,
+beside this writing-table, reading, was a man—presumably
+the ‘uncle’ of whom Adrienne had so often spoken.</p>
+
+<p>‘Uncle’ said she, going up to him, and touching his arm,
+‘here is Mr. Heywood, of whom I spoke to you.’</p>
+
+<p>He looked up, and Myles beheld a strange, long, pale
+face, with hollow eyes, and a large and, as it seemed to
+him, an expressionless mouth. It was a deathlike face; its
+expression neutral to impassiveness.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Heywood—oh, I am glad to see you. Take a
+seat.’</p>
+
+<p>Somewhat chilled by this unenthusiastic greeting Myles
+complied without a word, feeling remarkably small and insignificant,
+while Adrienne produced her papers, sat down
+at the desk, and began to arrange them. Mr. Blisset turned
+towards her, but did not move his chair. He merely observed
+to Myles,</p>
+
+<p>‘You will excuse us a moment, Mr. Heywood,’ and then
+gave his attention to the remarks which his niece, in a low
+tone, made to him. It was with a kind of shock that
+Myles soon perceived the man’s lower limbs must be paralysed.
+That was what Adrienne meant when she spoke of
+his being unable to come to the library. That was why he
+was so shy and reserved, that he must be prepared for the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[Pg 46]</span>visit of a stranger. Myles understood it all now, and, from
+his experience of Edmund, knew what it meant, only that
+this was far worse, far more of a living death than that in
+which Edmund lived.</p>
+
+<p>The writing and reporting over, Adrienne left the room.
+Myles and the strange-looking, corpse-like man were left
+alone; and now Mr. Blisset turned to him and said, still in
+the same cold, measured voice,</p>
+
+<p>‘You rendered a very kind service to my niece last night,
+and I am much obliged to you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Pray don’t mention it. No one could have sat still and
+seen a young lady annoyed by a fellow like Frederick
+Spenceley.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Spenceley—surely I have heard the name!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Very likely. His father is the richest man in Thanshope.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh—ah! Naturally I have heard of him then. So
+that was the name of the individual who insulted her?’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is his name,’ said Myles, concisely, ‘and it’s another
+name for a cad and a blackguard.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, is it? You know something about him?’</p>
+
+<p>‘There are few people in Thanshope who don’t. He is
+a born ruffian—Spenceley. Some day the ruffianism will
+come out through the veneering, and, once out, it will never
+be polished over again.’</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Blisset assented half-inquiringly, surveying Myles
+all the time from his impassive eyes, and then he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I am sorry my niece should have to go to the reading-room.
+She tells me that one evening more will finish what
+she has to do, otherwise I should not permit it. But I
+should think you have frightened the fellow away for a
+time?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh yes! He won’t trouble her again,’ said Myles, with
+contemptuous indifference, forgetting that beaten-off insects,
+with or without stings, have a habit of returning with blundering
+persistency to the attack. ‘But couldn’t she go in the
+daytime?’ he asked suddenly.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Blisset shrugged his shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>‘There is so much work to be done in the daytime,’ said
+he—‘correspondence, and reading, and manuscript to copy.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[Pg 47]</span>But I spare her as much as I can. I never ask or wish her
+to work after she returns in the evening. The rest of her
+time is her own.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I should hope so!—from nine o’clock!’ thought Myles,
+a little surprised. ‘She must be ready to go to bed at ten,
+after such a day as that. I wonder at what time it begins.
+Why, I am better off than that.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The rest of her time is her own,’ repeated Mr. Blisset,
+as if he clung to that concession with fondness and pride,
+feeling that it made up for all other privations which her
+day’s work might entail—which indeed was the case. His
+infirmity—his long confinement to one house and one spot—the
+absorbed concentration of his faculties upon one work—a
+work which he was determined should burst upon the
+world, and make him illustrious—all this, and above all,
+Adrienne’s own devotion to him and his pursuits, since she
+had come to live with him, had fostered his natural egotism;
+till now he verily believed that his yoke was easy and his
+burden light to the young creature who bore it, and that
+that hour ‘after she came in’ was an elastic period, in
+which any amount of private work and reading could be
+done, and pleasure enjoyed.</p>
+
+<p>Yet he was not a hard-hearted man, and if Adrienne had
+been by any cause removed from him, it would have been
+her gentle presence and the charm of her company that he
+would have lamented—not the loss of her services in reading,
+writing, and research.</p>
+
+<p>His intense and almost forbidding coldness of manner was
+soon understood by Myles, who discovered before long that
+it arose chiefly from physical weakness and languor—not
+from any want of interest in the questions of the day, or in
+the men and things about him.</p>
+
+<p>‘You are writing a great book, sir?’ inquired Myles,
+by way of something to say.</p>
+
+<p>‘A book,’ corrected Mr. Blisset—a slight but ineffable
+smile playing upon the marble of his face. ‘Let no men
+and no generation call any of their own achievements—whether
+in literature or legislation—great. That is for posterity
+to decide.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[Pg 48]</span></p>
+<p>(‘Humph!’ thought Myles. ‘That implies that posterity
+will take some notice of it, in which case—but the reflections
+opened up were too large to be fully followed out
+then.)</p>
+
+<p>‘One branch of knowledge, and one alone, can produce
+works which at the very time of their appearance may be
+safely pronounced great—and that is science, of course,’
+resumed Mr. Blisset half-closing his eyes.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then yours is not a scientific work,’ said Myles politely.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is chiefly historical and speculative, but based, I trust,
+on the truest and most profoundly scientific principles. It
+is an inquiry into the question whether highly advanced
+civilisation and an art-spirit living, original, and capable of
+producing new and great works, can exist together—whether
+they are ever likely to go hand in hand.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And what do you conclude?’ asked Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘I began in hope,’ said Mr. Blisset. ‘But the hope has
+died away. Music still remains—a wide, only partially
+trodden field, but for the rest——’ he shook his head.
+‘Of course it is a gigantic undertaking,’ he went on, ‘and
+I have been engaged upon it for twenty years. But I think
+when my work is complete, that I shall have pretty well exhausted
+the subject.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And your readers, too, perhaps,’ thought Myles, unwillingly
+forced to wonder whether there were much use in Mr.
+Blisset’s gigantic undertaking.</p>
+
+<p>At this juncture Adrienne came into the room again;
+and Myles, beholding her for the first time in indoor dress,
+was sensible of a warmer, deeper feeling of admiration than
+he had hitherto experienced. There was a nameless foreign
+charm about her, which worked like a spell upon him.
+She held some trifling work in her hand, and coming
+quietly in, seated herself, and lent her attention to her uncle as
+he went on discoursing in a monotone, which by degrees fascinated
+Myles, so that he listened intently, and <i>nolens volens</i>.</p>
+
+<p>It was only afterwards, in thinking it all over, that he
+remembered what a sad, dreary life it must be for the young
+girl, alone with this stupendous egotist, listening while he
+discoursed of—himself; helping him in his great work;
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[Pg 49]</span>writing letters relating to his vast undertaking; studying
+hard in order to supply him with facts. That was all true:
+but at the moment Myles did not think of it, for Mr. Blisset
+spoke upon subjects that the young man had thought about
+himself—subjects that made his heart burn—of governments
+and peoples, and the lessons which history may teach us.</p>
+
+<p>And when Myles heard the treasures of learning and research,
+which Mr. Blisset had undoubtedly accumulated,
+brought to bear upon his own view of the question, and
+found that the speaker too was one of those whose watchword
+is—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘The people, Lord! the people!</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Not crowns and thrones, but <i>men</i>!’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>his admiration speedily grew to enthusiasm, and he sat
+listening, his handsome face all flushed with eagerness, and
+was disposed, before the evening was over, to rank Mr.
+Blisset as a demigod.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Blisset was pleased, like other philosophers, with the
+admiration he excited, and surveyed the young man with a
+favouring eye.</p>
+
+<p>‘You must come and see me again,’ said he. ‘It is always
+a pleasure to me to know one who has thought and felt
+upon these subjects. But I have talked till I feel almost
+exhausted. Adrienne, my love, suppose you give us some
+music.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, uncle,’ said she; ‘I like you to talk in that way,’
+she added, touching his forehead with her lips. ‘Then you
+do yourself justice.’</p>
+
+<p>There was a piano in the room, and Adrienne’s playing
+for her uncle when the day’s work was quite over—a sort
+of requiem upon the toil they had passed through—was as
+regular a thing as the falling of night upon the earth.
+There, in the world of harmony, was her kingdom—there
+she ruled; from thence she could sway the hearts of men.</p>
+
+<p>The harmonies she made for them that evening were
+calm and grave—a pathetic <i>Tema</i> of Haydn’s; a solemn
+<i>Ciaconna</i> of Bach’s; a slow movement, the ‘singing together
+of the morning stars,’ of Beethoven’s.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[Pg 50]</span></p>
+<p>Mr. Blisset shaded his long pale face with his long pale
+hand, and sat, with closed eyes, listening. Myles was
+listening too, but ear, with him, was subservient to eye and
+to thought. His gaze never left Adrienne, and the longer
+he looked, the deeper became the charm. There had
+slumbered in his mind, throughout these years of toil and
+striving, a latent, dormant, ideal of loveliness, purity, and
+fitness for worship, and it was as though, when Adrienne’s
+fingers touched the keys, that the door of heaven was opened,
+and a ray, falling upon her fair head, proclaimed her his
+soul’s dearest wish.</p>
+
+<p>With a sigh, promptly repressed, he rose from his dream
+as she finished, and took his departure, after Mr. Blisset
+had made him promise to come again.</p>
+
+<p>It was Saturday night, and Myles found the din of the
+town not yet hushed. He saw sights which were familiar
+enough to his eyes, heard sounds to which his ears were
+accustomed—drunken men reeling out of the public-houses
+which must be closed, brawling songs shouted hoarsely up
+and down—all the ugliness of rude, coarse natures taking
+their pleasure. He had never in his life found pleasure himself
+in such things; but equally, he had grown accustomed
+to the fact that others—men with whom he was on good
+terms—did take pleasure in them. He thought of the
+scene he had just left, and there shot a sudden sense of
+chill doubt and discomfiture through his frame of musing,
+high-strung happiness, a desperate feeling that those whom
+he saw about him in the streets now, were his class, his
+companions; that, ever since he had begun to hope and
+think, he had hoped for their advancement, their good,
+and he must not be untrue to them.</p>
+
+<p>‘Pah!’ said he to himself, ‘as if she could ask a man to
+be false to what he ought to be true to. She’s like truth
+itself.’</p>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[Pg 51]</span></p>
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI.</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+FINE LADIES AND FOLLY.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Monday morning, with the business of this work-a-day world
+in full swing, or rather in preparation for the week’s swing
+of labour. In the freshness and rawness of a six o’clock
+morning air, Myles walked with his sister to his work. He
+and Mary were accustomed to do all their private conversation
+during these walks. They sometimes discussed their
+mother and her doings, and the discussion took away from
+the bitterness which silence would have left to rankle there.</p>
+
+<p>To-day Myles was exceedingly silent, but Mary, who
+knew him and loved him better than any other soul, felt
+that the silence was no sign of dejection.</p>
+
+<p>The brother and sister separated on arriving at the
+factory. Mary went to the weaving shed, and Myles to the
+warehouse. After breakfast the same arrangement took
+place; but the day was not destined to be one of pleasant
+memories for Myles.</p>
+
+<p>In the course of the forenoon he was in the outer office,
+with Wilson the overlooker, when the latter, glancing through
+the window, remarked,</p>
+
+<p>‘There’s Mrs. Mallory coming. I see her carriage.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles made no answer, for the information did not seem to
+him of any particular importance; but Wilson went on, in a
+voice which had grown by anticipation smooth and respectful,</p>
+
+<p>‘I expect she wants to see Mr. Sutcliffe, and he’s out.
+So she’ll have to put up with me.’</p>
+
+<p>With that he stepped up to a square of looking-glass,
+which he retained despite all Myles’s gibes and jeers, over
+the mantelpiece, and smoothed his hair.</p>
+
+<p>‘And Myles, lad, as Mrs. Mallory’s coming, and may
+have business to speak about, perhaps you’d better——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Go?’ said Myles, tranquilly, though the suggestion was
+highly irritating to him. ‘That I’m not going to do, old
+chap. I’ve got these figures to write down; and here I
+stay and write them, if fifty Mrs. Mallorys were coming.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[Pg 52]</span></p>
+<p>Wilson made no answer. Myles’s position was too near
+his own for him to be able to order him out of the office;
+but, not quite satisfied, he waited, snatching up bundles of
+papers and sample cops, shoving an empty skip aside, and
+endeavouring to make the rough office look a little tidier.</p>
+
+<p>‘What a pity,’ remarked Myles, sarcastically, ‘that you
+haven’t got a few evergreens and some paper roses. I’d
+invest in a few, if I were you, and keep them in the cupboard,
+ready for such an occasion as this.’</p>
+
+<p>With which he seated himself at the desk in the window,
+which commanded a view of the street, and began to write.</p>
+
+<p>Wilson walked up and down, watching the carriage as it
+drew nearer, and Myles felt contemptuous and superior.</p>
+
+<p>‘She’s got Miss Spenceley in the carriage with her,’
+observed Wilson, reconnoitring over Myles’s head. ‘They
+go a deal together, those two.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles looked up sharply as he heard this. The carriage
+had stopped; Wilson had rushed to open the door. Myles
+saw the open carriage standing at the gates, and how one
+lady sat waiting while the other got out. The face of the
+waiting lady was turned towards the office.</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Spenceley’—the sister of the man who had displayed
+his contemptible character to Adrienne Blisset the
+other night. It was not likely that Myles should glance at
+her with very amiable or respectful feelings. He saw a
+graceful figure leaning nonchalantly back in the carriage;
+he had a general impression of a brilliantly beautiful brunette
+face, large dark eyes, an extremely elegant costume, a hat,
+or bonnet, with a waving plume, a parasol covered with
+lace—and that was all. But he had long sight; he saw none
+of her brother’s expression on the girl’s countenance, which
+was frank and open, as well as beautiful.</p>
+
+<p>‘I’d bet something they don’t get on well together,’ he
+thought; and then he heard a silk dress rustle over the
+threshold, and a woman’s voice answering indifferently
+Wilson’s profuse salutations. Myles could not help looking
+up, though he tried not to do so. He had often seen Mrs.
+Mallory before; but she had never seen him. Now she
+was looking full at him.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[Pg 53]</span></p>
+<p>She was a handsome woman, of some forty-six years of
+age, but looking younger when one did not notice certain
+lines about her eyes and mouth—lines of meanness as well
+as of pride. She was very richly dressed in black; there
+was silk, and lace, and perfume about her. She was tall,
+fair, pale, and inclined towards <i>embonpoint</i>. She looked
+Myles over from head to foot; then, turning to Wilson,
+said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Is Mr. Sutcliffe in?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m very sorry, ’m; he isn’t. He has had to go to
+Bolton, and won’t be back till afternoon.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh!’ said she, pausing as if in thought; and then added,
+‘Give me the papers Mr. Sutcliffe was speaking about the
+other day; they are sure to have been left ready. I will
+take them home with me, and look them over.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles had turned again to his work, and was bending
+over a page of figures, wroth with himself that, instead of
+being able undisturbedly to add up the figures he had put
+down, he could not help listening to Mrs. Mallory’s voice.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, ’m; I’ll find the papers. They’ll be in Mr.
+Sutcliffe’s room. But won’t you sit down ’m, while I look
+for them?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No; make haste, please,’ was all she said, a little impatiently;
+for Mr. Wilson’s manner was, to put it mildly,
+fussy; and Myles, feeling the influence of that tone, despite
+all his efforts, began to count half aloud:</p>
+
+<p>‘Three and five, nine—eight, I mean; and seven fifteen,
+and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Here they are, ’m. Allow me to make them into a
+parcel, ’m: it will be more convenient.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No; you can take them to the carriage, and I will
+look them over when I have time.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Myles, lad, suppose you were to take the papers to the
+carriage,’ said Wilson, wishing to appear superior.</p>
+
+<p>Myles looked up, surprised; he could read the simple,
+fussy character of the faithful old cashier to its very depths,
+and knew his motives exactly. He had no wish to disoblige
+him, and, with an amused half-smile, took the papers and
+walked to Mrs. Mallory’s carriage.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[Pg 54]</span></p>
+<p>The young lady, Miss Spenceley, was looking somewhat
+impatiently towards the office.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh!’ said she, when she saw Myles, ‘is Mrs. Mallory in
+there? Has she nearly finished her business, do you think?’</p>
+
+<p>Myles had seen the girl many a time before; she was
+the beauty and the heiress, <i>par excellence</i>, of Thanshope;
+the only daughter, as her brother was the only son, of her
+parents. The young man, looking at her more attentively
+than ever before, could find no trace of likeness, or his
+scorn of her relative might have displayed itself in his voice.</p>
+
+<p>‘I really don’t know,’ said he, in answer to her question.
+‘She is talking to the cashier.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, thanks!’ said she, turning abruptly away, and
+looking impatiently up the street.</p>
+
+<p>Myles returned to the office, and as he re-entered it
+Mrs. Mallory was saying to Wilson,</p>
+
+<p>‘Because I expect my son—your master—will be at
+home again shortly, and of course he will wish to inquire
+into everything that is going on.’</p>
+
+<p>There was something in the tone in which this was said
+which rasped upon Myles’s feelings—a calm superiority
+which he felt to be extremely needless.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then we may expect Mr. Mallory to come and take
+possession some time soon?’ Wilson hailed the news as if
+it were a personal favour.</p>
+
+<p>‘I expect so. I do not know the exact time; but of
+course everything will be ready for him?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Will <i>he</i> be ready for everything?’ thought Myles, with
+strong contempt; his old spite—it deserves no nobler name—against
+the absent, unknown Sebastian Mallory rose
+angrily to the surface again. ‘Our <i>master</i>, indeed!’ he reflected
+angrily. ‘I wonder if he’s ever proved himself his
+own master yet?’</p>
+
+<p>Wilson, by an unlucky combination of circumstances,
+was at this moment inspired to turn pointedly to Myles
+and remark:</p>
+
+<p>‘Now, Myles, do you hear what Madam Mallory says?
+I told you the master was coming, and you wouldn’t
+believe me.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[Pg 55]</span></p>
+<p>‘It remains to be seen whether “master” is the right
+word to use,’ said Myles, with deliberation. ‘In this case
+I have my doubts about it.’</p>
+
+<p>He bent to his book once more, but not before he had
+seen the stony stare in the light blue eyes of Mrs. Mallory,
+and the gaze of haughty astonishment upon her pale, high-featured
+face—a stare which seemed to say, ‘I have seen
+human nature in many obtrusive and ill-bred aspects, but
+never in one which so much required putting into its proper
+place as this.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles smiled rather grimly to himself; he hated to exchange
+such civilities with any one, most of all with a
+woman, but his spirit could ill brook the unquestionably
+haughty and supercilious manner of Mrs. Mallory, and the
+profuse mouthing of the word ‘master’ by Wilson’s complaisant
+lips. Myles had, up to now, utterly refused to call
+any man master, and he was not going to begin it in the
+case of a man whom he had never seen; and to whom local
+report gave anything but a decided or master-like character.</p>
+
+<p>‘There’s no call for you to be so rude,’ said the cashier,
+shocked and reproachful.</p>
+
+<p>Myles turned to him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Will you understand,’ said he, with lips that had grown
+tight, ‘that a man can’t both do arithmetic and talk?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Who <i>is</i> the young man?’ inquired Mrs. Mallory of the
+discomfited Wilson.</p>
+
+<p>‘You must excuse him, ’m. He’s one of the foremen:
+he knows no better.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles made no sort of comment upon this apology, content
+that they should say what they liked about it, so long
+as they did not require him to acknowledge an unknown
+‘master.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory, after another and a prolonged stare of the
+said haughty astonishment, which stare wasted itself upon
+the back of the delinquent, swept away, leaving Myles with
+his lips twisted into a fine sneer—an expression to which
+they were wont too readily to bend.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb">
+
+<p>Myles’s temper had assuredly not been improved by the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[Pg 56]</span>occurrences of the morning. It was destined to be yet more
+severely tried before his return to work in the afternoon.</p>
+
+<p>On leaving the factory he parted from Mary, as he had
+an errand in the town, and told her he would be home in
+half an hour for dinner. He did his errand, and took his
+way home. And as he arrived at his own gate there came
+out from it a man whom Myles recognised as a person to
+whom he bore no friendly feelings. He was named James
+Hoyle, and was by trade a small shopkeeper, in the stationery
+and evangelical-religious-book line: occasionally he
+acted as a preacher of a denunciatory and inflammatory description;
+always he was a missionary—so, at least, he said.</p>
+
+<p>To him and to his style of preaching and piety Myles
+had a most thorough dislike; he believed him to be a
+hypocrite, and in this case his dislike was well grounded
+enough, and founded on facts.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good morning, Myles. The Lord bless you!’ observed
+Mr. Hoyle, holding out a dingy, fat hand. No lowest scum
+of the Levites, of whatever section, whatever persuasion,
+could have looked, thought Myles, sleeker, or more as if
+his sleekness were an ill-gotten gain.</p>
+
+<p>Out of tune as Myles was with all the world, this apparition
+and his tone of familiarity was not of a kind likely to
+restore harmony to the jarring notes of his life’s music.
+Drawing up his proud figure to its utmost height, and looking
+with his contemptuous eyes down upon the pudgy individual
+who addressed him, he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Good morning. I’ll thank you not to make so free with
+my name. Who gave you leave to call me “Myles”?’</p>
+
+<p>He ignored the outstretched hand, having an objection
+to touching what he considered to be both literally and
+metaphorically dirty fingers.</p>
+
+<p>Hoyle looked up at him, and his eyes twinkled.</p>
+
+<p>‘I’ve been taking spiritual counsel with your mother, my
+dear young friend. A sweet, precious soul! It is a privilege
+to converse with her; she teaches one so much.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Does she? It’s a pity but she could teach you to be
+sober and honest,’ said Myles, with distinct enunciation and
+scornful mien, holding himself somewhat aloof from Mr.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[Pg 57]</span>Hoyle. ‘Anyhow,’ he continued, ‘until you’ve managed it—the
+soberness and honesty, I mean (you needn’t look as if you
+didn’t know. I saw where you came out of at eleven o’clock
+on Saturday night)—till then, you’ll please give this house a
+clear berth, and my mother may take her spiritual counsel—if
+she wants it—with a different sort of person from you.’</p>
+
+<p>He was about to turn in at the gate, but, with his hand on
+the latch, was arrested by an expression on the face of the
+other.</p>
+
+<p>‘The day will come, young man, when you will wish you
+had treated me—me, of all people—with more respect,’
+said he with a smile, for he had a flexible face, which
+appeared to lend itself even more easily to smiles than to
+other expressions. Yet the smile was an evil one.</p>
+
+<p>He turned and walked away, and Myles, in some annoyance,
+went into the house. Usually Mrs. Heywood had
+the field to herself in the exercise of her tongue. Edmund
+occasionally indulged in a burst of temper, but always to
+his own disadvantage. Mary never answered at all. Myles
+alone, as has been before said, could, with a certain look
+and tone, show himself master of the fretful, repining
+embodiment of scolding and selfishness whom they had the
+misfortune to call mother. To-day he was in no mood to
+‘stand nonsense,’ and as he went into the kitchen he said,
+hanging up his cap, and taking Edmund’s hand, as he seated
+himself beside him,</p>
+
+<p>‘What does yon James Hoyle want always hanging about
+here? The chap is never out of the place, and I can’t
+abide him. If he doesn’t give us a little more of his room
+and less of his company I must speak to him. Mary, lass,
+I hope thou’rt not got agate of meeting-going.’</p>
+
+<p>He spoke with perfect good-nature and good temper, not
+suspecting anything but that all the rest of the company
+were equally averse with himself to Mr. Hoyle’s visits, and
+he smiled a little as he looked at Mary.</p>
+
+<p>‘Me!’ said his sister, laughing. ‘Nay, I’m not come to
+that. As long as I live I’st go to th’ parish church every
+Sunday, and sit in th’ old place——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Alongside o’ Harry Ashworth,’ put in Edmund, gravely,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[Pg 58]</span>at which Mary’s cheeks flushed, and she went on somewhat
+more rapidly.</p>
+
+<p>‘For I make nowt at o’ out o’ the meetin’-house.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps you’ll end by leaving th’ owd place for an older,
+and going clean over to Rome,’ said Mrs. Heywood, who
+had been bending over the fire, looking at a pan of potatoes,
+and who now raised rather a flushed face from that occupation;
+‘choose how, there’st nowt be said here against James
+Hoyle, the godly man! and it’s more than likely that you’ll
+see more of him than you have done yet.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How do you mean?’ asked her eldest son, turning
+towards her; ‘you mean that Jimmy Hoyle would come
+here a second time after I’d forbidden him the house?’</p>
+
+<p>He laughed, as if he thought it rather a good joke.</p>
+
+<p>‘You’d turn him out of the house? That’s like you!’
+said Mrs. Heywood, emptying the potatoes into a tureen.</p>
+
+<p>‘I really don’t know what you’re talking about,’ said
+Myles, in some surprise at her whole demeanour.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, you’ll get to know, then,’ she retorted, without
+meeting his eye. ‘A good man is like the salt of the earth.
+He can make even a sinful house holy, and bring a blessing
+on it. James Hoyle and me is going to be married. We’st
+be wed this day three week, and then I’d like to know
+how you’ll forbid him the house.’</p>
+
+<p>There was a momentary silence, during which Myles, who
+had risen, stared at his mother in an incredulous manner.
+Mary, after a moment, turned pale, and sat down upon a chair
+in the background. Edmund’s lips were curled into a sneer.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mother!’ said Myles, confronting her, and somewhat
+forcing her eyes to meet his. ‘Is this a joke that you’re
+playing upon us? Because, if so, it’s a very poor one.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Joke!’ she retorted, her voice rising to shrillness. ‘What
+should it be a joke for, I’d like to know? Have I such
+comfort in my children that I shouldn’t be glad of the help
+of a godly man—oh, and he is a godly man—like that?’</p>
+
+<p>‘That’s a poor answer, mother,’ said Myles, who had
+thrust his hand into his breast, as if to repress some anger
+or emotion. ‘Your children have never done anything to
+cause you uneasiness.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[Pg 59]</span></p>
+<p>‘Do go on blowing your own trumpet!’ Mrs. Heywood
+exhorted him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Nay, I’ve no more to say about it. But I want a better
+answer than that your children’s conduct drove you to
+marry that great, idle, greasy, sanctimonious, all-praying,
+no-doing brute—he isn’t a man. I can understand him
+wanting to marry you, you’ve thirty pounds a year of your
+own: but that you should look at him!’ He made an
+expressive gesture of contempt.</p>
+
+<p>‘So it’s my money he’s marrying me for,’ said Mrs.
+Heywood; and no girl of eighteen could have spoken with
+more anger at the suggestion. ‘That’s it, is it? Ay, ay!
+“Honour thy father and thy mother”—do!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Are you giving us an example of honouring our father?’
+he inquired, growing quieter in tone as his anger and disgust
+grew more intense, and her determination (he saw)
+more fixed. ‘Or is your present plan likely to lead us to
+honour you? No, mother; I can’t see what a woman like
+you wants with marrying again; though if it had been a
+decent man, let him be never so rough, I’d have put up
+with him, but that—why, I saw him on Saturday night
+coming out of the lowest public-house in Thanshope—half-drunk—as
+plain as I see you. But here’s the long and
+short of it. That man certainly never enters this house
+again. I’ll let him know that. And if you do marry him,
+he’ll please to find a home for you; for neither he nor you
+will share ours. Mark my words—if you go to him you
+leave us for ever.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mother, thou’ll ne’er be so wicked,’ said Mary, from her
+corner, in tears.</p>
+
+<p>‘Hold thy tongue, thou hussy! calling thy mother
+wicked,’ said Mrs. Heywood, sharply.</p>
+
+<p>‘I’ll not have Molly called by that name,’ said Myles,
+composedly. ‘Remember, it’s I that am master here, when
+all’s said and done. I’ll have no such nonsense carried on.
+So let us hear—do you intend to be a wise woman or a fool?’</p>
+
+<p>The words were not at all rudely spoken, but they were
+unfortunately chosen. They incensed Mrs. Heywood, and
+she replied sharply,</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[Pg 60]</span></p>
+<p>‘I intend to marry James Hoyle.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then,’ said he, slowly, as if giving her an opportunity
+to recant, ‘it’s settled that I intend to have no more to do
+with you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, Myles, don’t be so hard on her!’ implored Mary,
+coming forward and laying her hand upon his arm.</p>
+
+<p>‘My good lass,’ said he, ‘dry thy eyes, and be glad
+thou’rt not called upon to be hard, as thou calls it.’</p>
+
+<p>Mary did not expostulate. Under the gentleness of the
+words she read a decision which she did not attempt to
+combat.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mary’s our good angel,’ remarked Edmund from the
+couch; and his eyes, too, fell upon her with affection.</p>
+
+<p>‘A nice angel you’ll find her when I’m gone,’ grumbled
+Mrs. Heywood.</p>
+
+<p>‘Once more,’ broke in Myles’s voice, ‘I tell you, mother,
+I have spoken to you for the last time, unless I hear that
+this abominable thing is given up—for the last time.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Myles!’ implored his sister. But she might as well
+have tried to move one of the great boulders on Blackrigg
+as make him soften or yield one jot.</p>
+
+<p>‘Come, lass!’ he observed to her. ‘Those that must
+work must eat. The time’s gone by in this precious
+palaver, and we’ve only twenty minutes left.’</p>
+
+<p>He sat down and helped himself, and tried to look as if
+nothing had happened; soon, however, he laid down his
+knife and fork, and told Mary, who had not even pretended
+to eat, that it was time to go.</p>
+
+<p>She put her shawl over her head, and, saying good afternoon
+to Edmund, they went out.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII.</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+SANS FAÇON.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Six o’clock was the time at which the work-people ‘knocked
+off.’ Myles and Mary had not spoken as they went to
+their work, and of course not during the afternoon; and it
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[Pg 61]</span>was only as they were coming home again that they first
+named the subject which at that moment lay nearest their
+hearts. Mary was all for mildness and temperate measures.</p>
+
+<p>‘I think, Myles, that if we was to be kind to her, and
+talk to her, hoo’d likely give it up,’ said the girl, in her
+soft, broad, Lancashire dialect.</p>
+
+<p>‘Not she, Molly. She’s no intention of giving it up.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I never could abide yon Hoyle,’ went on Mary. ‘A
+false, sneakin’ fellow, he always seemed to me. I reckon
+he’s after mother’s bit o’ brass; but how hoo can gi’ so mich
+as a thought to him—nay, it fair passes me!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay! you may well blush! I don’t wonder!’ said Myles,
+grimly. ‘It looks as if some people’s minds were fair
+crooked, or set up on edge, or upside down, or something.’</p>
+
+<p>They went into the house, and found Edmund alone.</p>
+
+<p>‘She’s not coming back,’ said he, by way of salutation.
+‘She’s gone to some of his relations. She says she’s lived
+through a deal o’ trouble, and has found out at last what
+it was to be turned out of doors by her own children.’</p>
+
+<p>Neither Mary nor Myles made any answer to this announcement.
+Mary got tea ready, and they sat down.
+It was a silent painful meal. Myles rose from it with a
+sense of relief, and taking Edmund’s book to change, said
+he was going down to the reading-room.</p>
+
+<p>‘Would thou mind calling at th’ saddler’s in Bold Street
+for yon strap o’ mine?’ said Mary.</p>
+
+<p>‘What strap, Molly?’</p>
+
+<p>‘It’s a girder as I took to have a new un made like it.
+He’ll give you both th’ old and th’ new un. I could like
+to have it to take wi’ me to-morn. I’ve been using Sally
+Rogers’; but hoo’s comin’ back again to-morn, and hoo’ll
+want it hoo’rsel.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, I’ll get it,’ said Myles, putting on his cap and going
+out.</p>
+
+<p>He made a little détour from his usual route, in order
+to go to the saddler’s on his errand for Mary. Bold Street
+was one of the principal streets of Thanshope, and close to
+the very shop to which Myles was going was a place known
+to the vulgar as ‘th’ Club.’ This was a billiard and whist
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[Pg 62]</span>club, frequented by the golden youth of the promising
+town of Thanshope.</p>
+
+<p>It was a spot not exactly loved of the mammas of the
+said town, and much discussed by the young ladies of the
+same. Much iniquity was vaguely supposed to be perpetrated
+there: some of the piously disposed spoke of it as
+a ‘den’; others, who knew nothing, and wished to appear
+as if they knew a great deal, said it was ‘as bad as the
+worst of London clubs,’ which remark may serve as a specimen
+of the mighty self-consciousness of little provincial
+towns—and ‘den’ is a word which has about it a fine
+abstract flavour of awfulness.</p>
+
+<p>It is probable that, as a matter of fact, much bad whist
+was played there; billiard balls were knocked up and down,
+and bets made; too much spirits were probably consumed;
+as many dull, coarse, or vulgar tales were told, as much
+aimless scandal was talked, as many praise-worthy efforts
+were made to ape the manners and tone of metropolitan
+clubs, as in most provincial institutions of a similar kind.</p>
+
+<p>Myles went to the saddler’s, which was next door to this
+temple of hilarity, fashion, and fastness; got the straps
+which Mary had spoken of, and then came out to take his
+way to the town-hall. As he passed the portico of the
+club, he saw just within it a back which he remembered,
+clothed in broadcloth. Beside this figure was another, that
+of a mere lad, with a babyish face and no chin to speak of,
+who would have been better in the cricket-field, or even
+grinding at his Latin grammar. On his small-featured insignificant
+face was stamped an expression of foolish glee
+and admiration.</p>
+
+<p>The first individual was speaking; Myles, strolling
+leisurely past, heard the words, in the loud, strident voice:</p>
+
+<p>‘Such a chase, my boy! but I succeeded. I found out
+where she lives, and waylaid her; gave her my protection
+whether she liked it or not. Unless I’m much mistaken,
+we shall soon be very good friends. She’s a deep one—those
+little demure things always are. Ha, ha!’</p>
+
+<p>‘I say, Spenceley——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Doosid pretty, though. D—d good eyes she has, and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[Pg 63]</span>knows how to use them. Look here! do you want your
+revenge for Saturday night?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh yes! Come along!’</p>
+
+<p>They walked forward to the interior of the hall, and were
+lost to view.</p>
+
+<p>Never before had Myles felt the singular sensation which
+just then clutched him—a kind of tingling, half of rage,
+half of shame, from head to foot—a tempest of his whole
+mental being. He was in a white heat of fury, and only
+two ideas were distinct in his mind: to find Adrienne, and
+to punish her insulter.</p>
+
+<p>Almost unknowing how, he hurried to the town-hall, up
+the stairs, through the library, into the reading-room.
+Would she be there? Yes, she was there, in her usual
+place. He strode towards her. She was not even pretending
+to read or write. She was pale as ashes, and
+trembling, as he saw in his approach.</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Blisset!’ he almost whispered, as he went up to
+her, and bent over her, his face dark with suppressed indignation,
+his eyes aflame. If she too had not been moved
+out of all conventional calm, she must have started at the
+expression which flashed from his face upon hers.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, Mr. Heywood, will you be so very good as to go
+home with me now, at once? I have been so frightened
+and—insulted.’</p>
+
+<p>Her voice broke, though her eyes flashed. How proud
+a front soever she might have showed to her insulter, the
+reaction had set in: the remembrance was not to be borne
+unmoved.</p>
+
+<p>‘I know you have,’ said he in a low emphatic voice; and
+a tremor shook him too as he looked at her and saw how
+beautiful she was. He had admired her as she sat in repose,
+but now every fibre of his nature bowed to her, and he felt
+a passionate desire to do something, anything, which should
+set him apart in her eyes from others. Yet after his first
+swift glance, he scarcely looked at her, and said very little.
+Words appeared weak and trivial—he could not express in
+them his detestation of the conduct of that other man, or
+how profoundly he reverenced her.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[Pg 64]</span></p>
+<p>‘How was it?’ he asked, speaking composedly, but
+clenching his hands, and crushing together what he held in
+them.</p>
+
+<p>‘It was that man,’ said she, in a low breathless voice,
+‘that hideous man. I don’t know where he saw me. I
+think he must have followed me, but when I got to that
+little lane, he suddenly overtook me, and spoke to me. I
+could not turn back. It would have been much farther—and
+so lonely. I did not answer him; I went on very fast,
+but he detained me so long in that lane—he would not let
+me pass. I thought I should—bah! I thought, when we got
+into the town, that he would have left me, but he did not.
+He came to the very door of this place, and I dare not
+go out for fear he should be there yet. Oh, I am so glad
+to see you! I thought you were never coming.’</p>
+
+<p>She had leaned her head upon her hand, or she must have
+seen the light that flashed suddenly into his eyes—not the
+light that had been there at first. He drew a long breath,
+but succeeded in not betraying for a second his emotion, as
+she turned, pale and quivering with excitement, and put her
+two little slender hands upon his, saying earnestly,</p>
+
+<p>‘You have been very kind to me. What should I have
+done if you had not helped me?’</p>
+
+<p>‘It has been a pleasure to serve you,’ he said constrainedly.
+‘Do you feel fit to walk home now?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, quite!’ she answered, picking up her note-book;
+and they went away together.</p>
+
+<p>Myles walked with her to the gate of her uncle’s house,
+and said, as they paused there,</p>
+
+<p>‘Of course you will never come again, Miss Blisset?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Never. Of course not.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then—then—’ he faltered, unable to say what he wished.</p>
+
+<p>‘But I shall see you again, of course,’ said Adrienne,
+quickly. ‘You will come again. My uncle wishes you to
+come again. And you will—yes?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are sure it wouldn’t be an intrusion?’ said Myles,
+doubtfully.</p>
+
+<p>‘Very far from an intrusion,’ she answered. ‘You will
+be welcome—and you will be expected until you come.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[Pg 65]</span></p>
+<p>With which, and with a warm hand-shake she disappeared.</p>
+
+<p>Myles did not pause to-night to contemplate the street, or
+to look out for the light in the window. He took the
+shortest and straightest course into the town again, went
+direct to Bold Street, and stopped before the club.</p>
+
+<p>There was a light in the vestibule of that building, and a
+waiter stood at the door surveying the passers by, and feeling
+no doubt that he looked negatively fascinating.</p>
+
+<p>‘Is Mr. Frederick Spenceley here?’ inquired Myles,
+quietly and politely.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Frederick Spenceley?’ repeated the waiter, while an
+expression of ill-humour crossed his face. ‘I rather think
+he is, and in a deuce of a temper too. If Mr. Frederick
+Spenceley keeps on coming here, I shan’t stay. Well, do
+you want to see him?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I should like just to speak to him,’ said Myles, ever
+calmly and politely; his one object being to penetrate to
+Mr. Spenceley’s presence, content to pocket his burning fury
+until he was face to face with him.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Spenceley evidently enjoyed little favour in the eyes
+of the waiter, or the latter would hardly have allowed a
+working-man to penetrate into that <i>sanctum sanctorum</i>, the
+billiard-room. As it was, he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, if you go straight ahead upstairs, you’ll find him
+in the billiard-room, I expect. But perhaps you want to see
+him down here?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh no! I can go to him. Upstairs, you say?’</p>
+
+<p>The waiter nodded; and Myles obeying his direction,
+found himself on the first landing, opposite a door inscribed
+‘Billiards.’</p>
+
+<p>He knocked, but no reply was given, which was accounted
+for by the loud and overpowering voice of Frederick
+Spenceley, whose accents drowned all other sounds.</p>
+
+<p>Myles opened the door, and walked into the room, which
+was like most other billiard-rooms: four green-shaded lights
+above the table; the marker, standing in his place, looking
+sulky—he too having received his share of the compliments
+of Mr. Spenceley that evening.</p>
+
+<p>(It was a significant fact, that not one of Frederick
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[Pg 66]</span>Spenceley’s inferiors would have felt anything but pleasure
+in his degradation or humiliation.)</p>
+
+<p>There was Charlie Saunders, the insignificant-looking boy
+whose pretty pink-and-white face was now a good deal flushed,
+and who laughed foolishly now and then in high-pitched
+voice. Opposite, with his burly back towards the door,
+was Frederick Spenceley, shouting very loudly, and freely
+expressing his opinion that the cloth was a confounded bad
+one, and that the table was not level.</p>
+
+<p>‘It’s your eye that’s not level, Freddy, my boy,’ said his
+youthful opponent; ‘and your cue too. Look out what
+you’re doing.’</p>
+
+<p>‘D—n it! it isn’t. Where’s the cha-alk? It’s my beastly
+luck,’ roared Spenceley, against whom the balls had broken
+most unfavourably the whole evening.</p>
+
+<p>Had the fellow been in the least intoxicated, Myles
+would have retired; but he was merely noisy and ill-tempered,
+and accordingly the workman chose that moment
+to step forward and touch Mr. Spenceley on the shoulder.</p>
+
+<p>With a violent start, which contrasted somewhat curiously
+with his previous bluster, he turned; and when he saw
+Myles, his face assumed a deep hue of anger, and perhaps
+of some less noble feeling.</p>
+
+<p>‘I want a word with you,’ said Myles, curtly; and young
+Saunders paused to stare at the new-comer, while the
+marker turned and looked on too.</p>
+
+<p>Be it observed that neither of these men loved Frederick
+Spenceley. A billiard-marker, however, is not always in a
+position to resent affronts, and Charlie Saunders was a person
+of less importance than Spenceley, whatever might be
+his private opinion of him. Moreover, the whole proceeding
+took them by surprise, or—perhaps they might have
+interfered.</p>
+
+<p>‘If you like to come to another room, where we can be
+alone,’ pursued Myles, composedly, ‘lead the way. I don’t
+care where it is.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What the —— do you want, you ——?’ growled
+Spenceley, recovering his pluck, or what he was pleased to
+consider his pluck.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[Pg 67]</span></p>
+<p>‘I think you remember me. I don’t need to introduce
+myself,’ said Myles. ‘Now look here! You’ve been behaving
+like a blackguard again—perhaps you can’t help
+that—but, in any case, you’ll be pleased to take your
+attentions to some other quarter than that one. You know
+what I mean.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’ll be—’ (a volley of the dash dialect)—‘if I do, you
+fool! Be off, and don’t annoy gentlemen. Clear out, I
+say, or I’ll call the waiter, and have you kicked out.’</p>
+
+<p>There was that in Myles’s face, so far removed from
+brutal violence, which was conspicuous in every word and
+gesture of Spenceley, that the others were quiescent. How
+he had got there was a mystery to them; but being there,
+they were Englishmen enough to wish for fair play, and had
+sufficient sense to perceive that the workman was no blackguard,
+whatever his interlocutor might be.</p>
+
+<p>‘You were in Markham’s Lane, to-night,’ went on Myles
+composedly, though his face had become white, and his
+lips were set.</p>
+
+<p>‘What’s that to you? What business have you to come
+spying on gentlemen?’</p>
+
+<p>‘If I were you, I wouldn’t say too much about spying.
+You know what happened there—in Markham’s Lane I mean.
+If anything like it happens again—just once again——’</p>
+
+<p>He paused.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well?’ said Spenceley, with a sneer and a taunt, ‘what
+will be the consequences, my fine fellow?’</p>
+
+<p>‘They will be unpleasant to you, for I’ll thrash you
+within an inch of your life.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ha! ha! <i>ha</i>!’ roared Mr. Spenceley, but somehow
+there was a false note in the full chord: it failed of rounded
+complete harmony.</p>
+
+<p>‘Freddy, what have you been up to?’ cried Charlie
+Saunders, in amaze; but he did not ask what the other
+man had been ‘up to.’ It appeared to be taken for granted
+that he had good ground for his complaint.</p>
+
+<p>‘Look here, you beggar,’ observed Spenceley to Myles;
+‘just get out of this, before you are turned out, and don’t
+interfere in things you don’t understand.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[Pg 68]</span></p>
+<p>‘I go when I have your promise to behave yourself in
+future—not before.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Wha-at? Promises? I don’t make promises to cads.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then I suppose you’ve never promised yourself what
+you deserve. I’m waiting for a promise to me, not a cad,
+and I’ll stay till I get it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘D—n you! will you be off?’ shouted Spenceley, in a
+sudden passion, as he saw the cool, scornful face of Myles,
+and his eyes contemptuously measuring him from head to
+foot; and took in with a side-glance the scarcely concealed
+smile upon the faces of the others. ‘Will neither of you
+fellows ring the bell, and have this fool turned out?’</p>
+
+<p>The rules of the club not providing for such an emergency,
+they took no notice of what he blustered at them, while
+Myles replied coolly as ever,</p>
+
+<p>‘When I’ve got what I want, I’ll be off, as I said.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps you want to keep the little darling to yourself,’
+began Spenceley.</p>
+
+<p>‘Drop that!’ said Myles, sharply, for the first time losing
+his perfect self-command.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, that’s it! We don’t want to be disturbed in our
+little game. We are so very industrious and literary in our
+pursuits——’</p>
+
+<p>In clenching his hand, Myles felt something in it which
+he had forgotten—the parcel containing Mary’s straps.
+The paper which enwrapped them had got loose. One
+strap had fallen coiling upon the floor; one remained in his
+hand. He looked at it, and felt very strong to wield it.
+He turned once more to Spenceley, saying,</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you promise never to speak to, or molest the lady
+again?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Make promises to <i>you</i>, about that little jade ...’ began
+Spenceley, jeeringly, but he did not finish the sentence.</p>
+
+<p>Myles’s hand, like an iron vice, was at his throat, and
+during the paralysing astonishment and bewilderment of the
+other two, Frederick Spenceley received such a thrashing as
+he had many a time deserved, but which circumstances had
+hitherto denied to him. Myles’s hold, strengthened by a
+passion which lent him irresistible power, did not for one
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[Pg 69]</span>moment relax. At last Saunders turned and rang the bell;
+but not before the fine broadcloth coat was in ribbons upon its
+owner’s back, and the face above it purple and almost suffocating,
+did Myles fling him away from him, remarking coolly,</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps that will answer as well as a promise. If ever
+it’s necessary, there’s the same thing, and worse, ready for
+you a second time.’</p>
+
+<p>He turned to find the door open, and the waiter staring
+in, aghast.</p>
+
+<p>‘Kick him out! Fetch some water!’ cried young
+Saunders, bending over the prostrate figure of his friend.
+‘Kick him out, I say!’ he reiterated. He was remarkably
+small and slender in figure, and doubtless felt that it would
+be a mockery to attempt the deed himself.</p>
+
+<p>Myles turned towards the waiter, who still blocked up the
+doorway.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well,’ said he, tranquilly, ‘I am waiting; which are you
+going to do? Kick me out—or let me pass?’</p>
+
+<p>The billiard-marker had made no attempt to interfere. The
+insults received that very evening from Spenceley rankled in
+his mind; he was well pleased at the humiliation of the bully.
+The little waiter looked up for a moment at the tall, muscular,
+sinewy young man who towered above him, with a pale
+face, and a look of inflexible determination and power about
+his eyes and mouth, and a frown of anger, terrible in its intensity,
+on his brow. He stood aside silently. Myles
+turned and said,</p>
+
+<p>‘If I’m wanted again about this business, my name is
+Heywood, and I live on the Townfield. I can easily be found.’</p>
+
+<p>No answer was returned: he composedly picked up his
+second strap, and walked away.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+AFTER-THOUGHTS.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>‘What ails thee, Myles?’ asked his sister, as he came into
+the kitchen.</p>
+
+<p>‘Me? Nothing, lass. Here’s your straps. The new
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">[Pg 70]</span>one has had a kind of inauguration, but I reckon it will have
+done it good more likely than harm.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What dost mean?’ she asked, staring at him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, nothing!’ said he, with a slight laugh, as he leaned
+against the mantelpiece with his arms folded behind him, his
+favourite attitude.</p>
+
+<p>‘Hast changed my book, Myles?’ inquired Edmund.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, I clean forgot it,’ replied Myles, with a start. ‘I’m
+very sorry. Fact is, I was called off, and I never thought
+of the book again.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, it doesn’t matter,’ answered Edmund, who was in
+high good humour at his mother’s absence.</p>
+
+<p>Mary also seemed less constrained, though nothing would
+have induced her to own that she was glad her mother had
+left them. She moved about more freely, and as she passed
+to and fro, ‘putting things to rights,’ she was heard to sing
+snatches of no less a song of praise than the ‘Old Hundredth.’
+And when her household work was done (for Myles’s adventure
+had not taken long, and it was now barely eight
+o’clock) she brought her work, and sat down with her
+brothers; and though there were shadows brooding over
+them all—darker shadows, and deeper, than they imagined—they
+formed a very happy trio.</p>
+
+<p>Mary especially felt happy and contented. She was
+devoted to her brothers—loved Edmund with a mother’s
+and a sister’s love combined, while she looked upon Myles
+as her ideal of all that was good and manly. He had given
+her no cause to think otherwise. With regard to her own
+merits, she was humble; but let any one impeach in the
+slightest degree those of Myles or Edmund, and she became
+fierce, proud, and resentful. Something in Myles’s mien to-night
+disturbed her, she knew not why.</p>
+
+<p>‘Wilt have thi pipe, lad? It’s theer; I’st get it in a
+minute.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, thank you, Molly. I don’t care about smoking to-night.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Did iver ony one see sich a chap?’ said Mary, secretly
+filled with pride in him. ‘He ne’er drinks, and he ne’er
+hardly smokes, and he ne’er does nowt disagreeable.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">[Pg 71]</span></p>
+<p>‘He hasn’t a redeeming vice,’ said Myles, ironically,
+watching her fingers as she plied her needle, and forcing
+himself to speak, though he did it half mechanically. What
+was she making? he asked.</p>
+
+<p>‘A shirt.’</p>
+
+<p>‘For whom?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, for thee, lad!’ said Mary, with a laugh and a look
+at him; and Myles returned the look with a smile, and
+instantly became lost in a long train of reflection.</p>
+
+<p>Edmund and Mary loved him, and looked up to him as
+to a superior being, as the centre figure in their lives, and
+the person around whom clustered their hopes, fears, and
+loves. Beyond them, out of their circle, was Adrienne
+Blisset; was it in the nature of things that she could ever
+behold him with eyes like theirs? No, never; because she
+was instructed, and they were ignorant. Well, was adoration
+the best thing for a man? Was it not better to adore?
+Could there be any shame in the worship of a woman like
+Adrienne? He decided, no. It was not the giving up
+of independence—it was the bending to a superior being,
+which, when that attitude was self-elected, was the highest
+independence. Here all was secure, safe, assured. Nothing
+would ever change the love of these two for him: outside
+there, where Adrienne was, all was storm, cloudy, feverish,
+uncertain: he knew not what she thought of him—what
+feelings or no-feelings her gracious manner might cover.</p>
+
+<p>He had defended her—from the first moment of their
+intercourse his attitude had been made by circumstances
+a protecting one: he felt at once an inferiority and a superiority
+to her, which two things do surely form part of the
+primal basis of pure and holy love. He stood still, leaning
+against the chimney-piece, thinking of what he had this night
+done for her sake, and his face flushed at the remembrance.</p>
+
+<p>‘Can she ever be like another woman to me?’ he thought.
+‘It is impossible. If it were possible I should be a clod.’
+For what he had done counted for something with Myles:
+he was not one of those heroes who will thrash you half a
+dozen fellows, twice as big as themselves, and then require
+to be reminded of such a trifle.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[Pg 72]</span></p>
+<p>He was not quite sure, even now, that he felt unmixed
+satisfaction in the deed. To thrash a cowardly bully, who
+seemed unable to express himself without the assistance of
+copious volleys of oaths, was one thing, and Myles contemplated
+with some complacency the fact that he had done
+it. But if any evil consequences should ensue to Adrienne!</p>
+
+<p>After a moment he reassured himself. He did not believe
+that Spenceley knew her name. He had not mentioned it.
+Myles would have died rather than utter it himself in that
+company—that would indeed have been a casting of pearls
+before swine, of which he was naturally incapable.</p>
+
+<p>If Mr. Spenceley chose to prosecute him he would own
+himself guilty, and take his punishment—anything rather
+than drag her name into the discussion; but he doubted
+much whether Spenceley would wish to draw public attention
+so pointedly to the fact that he had been flogged by a
+workman in the billiard-room of his own club. That would
+have been to expose his own brutal insolence and violence,
+and to hint, moreover, at some discreditable deed in the
+background which had called forth the attack. Myles
+began to wonder how that beautiful sister of his, whom he
+had spoken to that morning—could it be that morning?—would
+receive her brother. Then his thoughts wandered
+off again to Adrienne.</p>
+
+<p>‘At any rate, I can’t face her yet. I must stay quiet
+awhile until it has blown over. Perhaps, as she’s so very
+quiet, and goes out so little, she’ll not hear about it; and
+then I could call, and not mention it, and it would all pass
+over.’</p>
+
+<p>A knock at the back door roused him.</p>
+
+<p>Mary lifted her head, and cried ‘Come in!’ but after a
+pause the knock was renewed.</p>
+
+<p>‘It’s Harry,’ observed Edmund. ‘Thou mun open to
+him, Myles, or he’ll go on knocking for half an hour.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, poor lad, I suppose he will,’ said Myles, going
+towards the door, while Mary maintained absolute silence,
+continuing her work.</p>
+
+<p>Myles soon returned, accompanied by a young man,
+slight and somewhat delicate-looking, pale-faced and fair-complexioned,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[Pg 73]</span>whose calm, open countenance was pleasant
+to look upon, despite a certain vagueness in its expression—not
+a want of intelligence, or anything approaching
+vacancy, but rather as if something escaped him and left
+him apart from other people.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good evenin’, Mary—evenin’, Ned,’ he said, in the very
+softest and gentlest of voices.</p>
+
+<p>‘Sit down, Harry, and have supper with us,’ said Myles;
+and when he spoke, Harry Ashworth’s infirmity became
+apparent.</p>
+
+<p>Myles had to go close up to him and speak, not very
+loudly, but very slowly and clearly. He was almost deaf,
+in consequence of a fever he had had when a boy of twelve.
+He was twenty-five now, and the weakness increased each
+year: it was probable that in a few more years he would
+be stone-deaf. He was a frequent visitor at the Heywoods’,
+and a great friend of Myles and Edmund; Mary and he
+had little to say to each other beyond the words of greeting
+and farewell.</p>
+
+<p>There was a certain constraint this evening immediately
+after his entrance, on account of what had happened in
+regard to Mrs. Heywood, but this constraint was dissipated
+by Harry himself.</p>
+
+<p>‘I hear your mother has gone,’ he remarked.</p>
+
+<p>Myles assented in a grave sort of way.</p>
+
+<p>Mary’s cheeks flushed, and she did not raise her eyes
+from her work.</p>
+
+<p>‘She thinks of being married soon, then?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I expect so,’ said Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah,’ said Harry; and then, without any embarrassment,
+changed the subject.</p>
+
+<p>‘We may expect changes soon, Myles, I reckon.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What changes?’ asked Myles, who had come close to
+Harry, while the latter had placed his chair beside Edmund’s
+sofa.</p>
+
+<p>‘The master’s coming back—so I hear.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, him!’ said Myles, again trying to turn up his nose,
+and again failing to do so.</p>
+
+<p>Harry laughed, and Mary remarked,</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[Pg 74]</span></p>
+<p>‘Eh, but I could like to seen yon chap. He mun be
+some and clever.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Molly thinks he must be clever,’ said Myles to Harry,
+who nodded.</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t see why he shouldn’t be, choose how. I think
+you’re a bit hard on him, Myles. We know no harm on him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, we do. We know he’s neglected his business and
+his property. He’s six-and-twenty if he’s a day, and he’s
+never looked in upon us since he came into possession.
+He’s a gawmless chap—he must be.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, we’st see that when he comes. Have you heard
+as Mr. Lippincott, his health’s failin’, and he’s ordered
+abroad? They say he can’t live.’</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Lippincott was the sitting member for Thanshope.</p>
+
+<p>‘Nay, I heard nothing of that,’ said Myles, reflectively.
+‘Then, suppose he dies, we shall have a fresh election.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay; and I have heard,’ pursued Harry, not without a
+twinkle of humour in his eyes, ‘as it’s possible Mr. Mallory
+may stand, if Mr. Lippincott resigns or dies.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What!’ ejaculated Myles. ‘And who is to oppose him?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Spenceley—Bargaining Jack.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, Myles, thou’d be hard set to know who to vote
+for,’ said Mary, innocently.</p>
+
+<p>Myles suddenly recovered his presence of mind, and
+shouted to Harry,</p>
+
+<p>‘You’ve heard wrong, lad. Mallorys are all Tories, and
+always have been—it’s bred in the bone; and Bargaining
+Jack reckons to be a Conservative too, so far as he’s anything.
+Conservatives manage better than us. They would
+never run two candidates in Thanshope—in fact, they only
+run one for the look of the thing. They can’t get the
+wedge in here.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, I have heard too,’ continued Harry, ‘as how
+Mallory is a Radical—a Liberal, choose how.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That I’ll never believe till I hear him say it himself,’
+said Myles, decidedly. ‘And from all I’ve heard, I think
+you’ve been misinformed, Harry.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, perhaps I have,’ said Harry, peaceably. ‘It doesn’t
+matter to me which way it is.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[Pg 75]</span></p>
+<p>Nor did the others appear to take much interest in the
+subject, for it dropped, and Mary began to get supper ready.</p>
+
+<p>At that meal the conversation was carried on almost
+entirely between Harry and Myles. Harry was a spinner,
+in receipt of a large wage. He was, as has been said, a
+pleasant, comely-looking young man, and if not very robust,
+did not look unhealthy. Many of his friends wondered
+why he did not marry; for he was turned twenty-five. He
+and Myles and Mary Heywood were beginning to be looked
+upon as drifting into the old maid and bachelor ranks.</p>
+
+<p>At all times, early—terribly early—marriages are the rule
+in Lancashire; but in those halcyon years of plenty and
+golden prosperity preceding the American Civil War, they
+had been more numerous than ever.</p>
+
+<p>After supper Edmund, stretching out his arms, said in a
+muffled kind of voice,</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, I say, it is some and hot here. I wonder what it’s
+like outside.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, the air’s pleasant enough on the Townfield,’ said
+Harry.</p>
+
+<p>‘I could like to feel it,’ remarked Edmund. ‘I’ve not
+been out these three days.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, come along and take a turn,’ said Myles, good-naturedly,
+well knowing that Edmund’s motive for suggesting
+such a thing at that time was that the dusk was rapidly
+gathering: there were fewer people about, and he was less
+likely to be observed.</p>
+
+<p>Edmund jumped at the offer, and Myles, giving him his
+cap, and taking his own, drew his brother’s arm through
+his, shouting to Harry,</p>
+
+<p>‘Wilt come with us, or wilt stay with Molly?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’st stay and have a pipe till you come in, if Mary’s no
+objection,’ said Harry; and Mary, by way of answer, pointed
+to a china basket on the mantelpiece, in which stood half
+a dozen neatly made ‘spills.’</p>
+
+<p>These spills were a mystery to the household. Mary
+gave it out that she liked to have them. They looked tidy
+like, and did for lighting the pipes; but it was a well-known
+fact that Edmund did not smoke at all, that Myles preferred
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[Pg 76]</span>to light his pipe with a coal or a match, and that the
+only visitor who enjoyed the privilege of smoking in that
+kitchen was Harry Ashworth. Yet no one ever suggested
+that the lighters were kept in stock for Harry’s benefit,
+though Edmund had been perilously near doing so once or
+twice. Had he or any one else uttered that theory, it is
+impossible to imagine what Mary would have said—possibly
+nothing at all, for she was, in practice at least, a strong
+upholder of the theory that ‘silence is golden.’</p>
+
+<p>The two brothers went out, leaving the door open, and a
+waft of the somewhat cooler outside air penetrated to the
+kitchen. The gas was not lighted; the fire had burnt low;
+the room was almost dark. Mary could no longer see to
+work, and sat, with her head thrown a little backwards, in
+the high-backed, red-cushioned rocking-chair. The clock
+ticked: everything was very still. It was Harry who spoke
+first, in his soft voice.</p>
+
+<p>‘Warm and close, this here weather, Mary.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay,’ said Mary, ‘’tis.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How does Ned get on?’ he asked; for though she did
+not speak very loudly, she spoke deliberately, and he appeared
+to hear her easily.</p>
+
+<p>‘He feels th’ heat aboon a bit,’ replied Mary.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay! I dare say.’</p>
+
+<p>A pause, while Harry puffed away at his pipe, and Mary
+offered no further observations on men or things.</p>
+
+<p>‘I took a long walk o’ Sunday—yesterday,’ observed
+Harry at last.</p>
+
+<p>‘Did you? Where to?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Reet o’er th’ moors to th’ top o’ Blackrigg.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It’s to’ far. Thou’rt none strong eno’ for sich like walks.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yea, but I am. I set me down on the heather, and
+listened wi’ all my might, and I thowt I heard a bird
+singing.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Happen a lark?’ said Mary, after a perceptible pause.</p>
+
+<p>‘Happen. I should ha’ gone to church in th’ evenin’,
+but I can’t hear—nowt distinct, that’s to say—and I’m
+a’most inclined to think that I didn’t <i>hear</i> yon lark, but
+only thowt I did, from memory, thou known.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[Pg 77]</span></p>
+<p>‘Ay,’ assented Mary.</p>
+
+<p>‘And when I go into church, and hear the organ buzzin’
+and th’ voices all mixed up wi’ it, and can’t make out what
+it is, it fair moithers me; same as when I look up, and see
+th’ parson speakin’, and don’t know what it’s about.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay,’ said Mary, laconically as ever, but this time there
+was the faintest possible vibration in her voice.</p>
+
+<p>And there was another long pause, while Mary’s eyelids
+drooped. He did not see that—it was too dark; and had
+he seen it, he could not have known that those eyelids were
+sore with repressed tears, which burnt them, and which she
+would not allow to flow.</p>
+
+<p>‘Sometimes,’ his voice broke in again, ‘I get discontented.
+I’m main fond o’ music, as you know, Mary.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, I know thou art.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And it troubles me above a bit sometimes as I should
+be deaf, for it just takes away my greatest pleasure. Sometimes
+I wish I’d been blind instead.’</p>
+
+<p>No answer from Mary, till Harry, in a hesitating voice,
+said,</p>
+
+<p>‘What dost think, Mary? Is it very wrong to have such
+thoughts?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, I dunnot,’ replied Mary. ’ I call it very nateral.
+If I was deaf, I reckon I should make more noise about it
+than you do. I wonder what them chaps is doin.’ It’s
+time they was comin’ in.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t thou go out. I’ll find ’em, and tell ’em, for I
+mun be goin’ too,’ said Harry, rising.</p>
+
+<p>Mary had begun to poke the fire violently, and now let
+the poker fall with a loud rattle, as Harry, without her
+knowing it, had advanced close to her, so that her elbow
+struck against his outstretched hand.</p>
+
+<p>‘Dule tak’ th’ fire-irons!’ said she, impatiently. ‘I conna
+think what ails ’em. Good neet to you, if you mun be
+going,’ she added, shaking hands with him, and, as soon as
+he was gone, lighting the gas.</p>
+
+<p>Presently her brothers came in. The house was locked
+up. Mary went to bed, followed by Edmund. Myles was
+left by the dying-out kitchen fire, with a book on the table,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[Pg 78]</span>which he never opened, but sat till far into the night, living
+through some of those strange hours of still, silent, yet vivid,
+rushing, mental life which come to all of us sometimes in our
+youth, and which are like no other hours in our experience.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+A TEA-PARTY.
+</p>
+
+<p class="ph4">
+‘Mir war’s so wohl, so weh!’
+</p></div>
+
+
+<p>After that evening Myles found himself in a position
+which he at least found full of difficulties. Two things
+happened, both of which he had looked upon as probable;
+the news of what had happened spread, and Frederick
+Spenceley did not prosecute. The waiter who had allowed
+Myles to go into the billiard-room was dismissed; the
+billiard-marker who had stood by shared the same fate.</p>
+
+<p>It would be difficult to guess what object, real or supposed,
+was gained by this measure; but it seemed to afford
+great satisfaction to many minds. Spenceley found it convenient
+to leave home for some weeks, and Myles heard
+no more of his share in the transaction.</p>
+
+<p>There were endless tales in circulation—the facts, the
+names, the causes of the affair, all got mixed up in the
+wildest and most inextricable confusion, as in such cases
+they always do. The principals maintained absolute silence,
+and let report work what wonders it would or could.</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Bear not false witness; let the lie</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Have time on its own wings to fly!’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>They adhered to the precept, and the result was that
+they and their grievances were soon completely obscured
+in the buzz of talk, conjecture, wrong guesses, and wild
+surmises which gathered about them like a thick cloud.
+One thing soon became apparent; and, once secure of that,
+Myles cared nothing for the rest. Adrienne’s name was
+not known. The cause of the <i>fracas</i> was generally supposed
+to be a woman; but the tale which gained the greatest
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">[Pg 79]</span>favour was one taking the side of the workman—that
+mysterious ‘workman’ whose name had somehow disappeared
+in the midst of contradictory reports, and whom
+no one could distinctly specify, because there were so many
+workmen in Thanshope. How was a genteel person to
+know one linen jacket, or its wearer, from another? This
+report, which preserved a kind of likeness amidst all its
+variations, was to the effect that Frederick Spenceley had
+deserved his thrashing; for that he had been taking undue
+liberties with the young man’s sweetheart—and her name was
+Sally Rogers, was Frances Alice Kershaw, and she was a dressmaker,
+was a mill hand, and lived in half a dozen places, and
+worked in as many factories, quite certainly and positively;
+she was very pretty, and he was very jealous; or, she was not
+a particularly good-looking girl, but Fred Spenceley had had
+words with the young man before, and had wished to insult
+him.</p>
+
+<p>Myles maintained a rigid silence upon the subject, even
+when Mary came in one day in a state of unusual excitement,
+exclaiming,</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh! Ned, Myles, have ye heerd tell o’ what’s happened?’</p>
+
+<p>‘What?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Jack Spenceley’s lad has had such a leathering,’ said
+Mary; and told the rest of it with much excitement and
+volubility, for her.</p>
+
+<p>Edmund manifested a lively interest in the story, and
+Myles admitted indifferently that he had heard something
+about it.</p>
+
+<p>They were, however, not much given to gossiping at
+that house, and the subject soon dropped.</p>
+
+<p>Then came Myles’s other difficulty. He did not know
+whether boldly to go and call at Mr. Blisset’s, as he longed
+and desired to do, or whether to remain away. He plagued
+himself with wondering what she thought about it, and then
+tried to believe that she had perhaps not even heard of it—her
+life was so very retired, she saw and heard so little of
+what was going on outside. Then he might go? But
+suppose she did know, and he appeared as if he came to
+be thanked and made a hero of? He contradicted himself
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[Pg 80]</span>ten times a day; decided to go—to stay—to go—and stayed
+because he absolutely could not decide which was best.</p>
+
+<p>So the days went on until Saturday, and he had not had
+a glimpse of her—only the remembrance of her grateful
+eyes and the pressure of her hand, as she bade him good-bye
+at her uncle’s gate before it had all happened. When
+Saturday afternoon came, his longing to see her was growing
+almost unbearable, and he had the sensation that if he
+went out of the house, his feet would turn mechanically
+towards Blake Street.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb">
+
+<p>It was Saturday afternoon; the clockhands pointed to
+five; Mary’s ‘cleaning’ was over, and the house was quiet.
+Edmund lay upon his sofa with a headache, and Myles was
+softly reading to him, glad of some monotonous occupation
+which should divert his thoughts somewhat from the topic
+which at present tyrannised over them.</p>
+
+<p>Edmund had been reading in a magazine about the works
+of the Brontë sisters, and Myles had procured him ‘Jane
+Eyre’ and ‘Wuthering Heights’ from the free library.
+‘Wuthering Heights’ lay as yet untouched; it had not
+yet laid its strong and dreadful spell on the boy’s spirit.
+They were deep in ‘Jane Eyre.’ It proved a spell which
+caused Edmund to forget his headache, and enchained
+the attention of Myles himself, with its passionate expression
+of the equality of soul and soul, and its eager conviction
+of the supremacy of mind over the differences of
+rank or place. Its burning radicalism went straight to
+Myles’s soul, while its deep poetry touched Edmund’s inmost
+heart.</p>
+
+<p>At this moment they were wandering with ‘Jane’ over
+the summer moors, homeless, friendless, foodless, penniless;
+and they had forgotten all outside things with her, as she
+reposed herself beneath the broad sky, on the friendly
+bosom of her mother—Nature.</p>
+
+<p>‘Hist!’ said Edmund, suddenly, ‘there’s a knock.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles paused. Some one knocked at the front door.
+Mary had heard it, and rose from her rocking-chair.</p>
+
+<p>‘Thee go on wi’ thi’ readin’,’ said she, going out; and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[Pg 81]</span>they heard her open the door, and a low voice—a woman’s
+voice—ask her some question.</p>
+
+<p>With an inarticulate exclamation, Myles half rose, the
+book open in his hand, and as Edmund was in the act of
+inquiring what was the matter, Mary came in again, looking
+rather bewildered, and saying, as she turned to some one
+who followed her,</p>
+
+<p>‘Myles, here’s a lady wants to speak to thee.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why did you not come?’ said Adrienne, going straight
+up to Myles. ‘Why have you never been to see me? I
+have waited and waited, until I could wait no longer.’</p>
+
+<p>He stood, crimson, unable to speak a word, but looking
+at her with eyes that must have told their tale—which must
+have warned her had she been less excited and earnest.</p>
+
+<p>‘How could you go and do a thing like that, and then
+never take any further notice of me?’ she continued. ‘I
+have thought of nothing else since I heard of it. It was
+most wonderfully foolish—oh, very foolish; but oh, I do
+thank you, and honour you for it, with all my heart. It is
+exactly what such <i>canaille</i> deserve, and it was nobly done—it
+was indeed!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Blisset ... you ... you—it was nothing. Any
+one would have done it. I couldn’t have rested or slept till
+I had punished him. I was obliged to do it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, that is how <i>you</i> put it, no doubt—but any one would
+not have felt so—only you would. I can never thank you—never.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, don’t then! I—it makes me ashamed of myself—it
+does indeed,’ said he, earnestly.</p>
+
+<p>‘But whativer is it o’ about, miss?’ said Mary, putting
+into words her own and Edmund’s boundless astonishment.</p>
+
+<p>‘Is it possible,’ said Adrienne, turning with wide-open
+eyes to Myles—‘is it possible that you have never told
+them? Did he not tell you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Nay, he’s ne’er told us nowt,’ said Mary.</p>
+
+<p>‘I never heard of anything so extraordinary,’ said Adrienne,
+with still a vibration in her voice, which showed
+how much she was moved. ‘You must have heard about
+that man—Spenceley—who insulted me, and ...’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[Pg 82]</span></p>
+<p>‘Thank heaven, your name has never been uttered,’
+interposed Myles, hastily.</p>
+
+<p>‘And your brother, who had once before sent him away
+when he tried to annoy me at the library, went to make
+him promise to behave himself, and he would not. Was
+not that it? So he flogged him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh—Myles!’ said Mary, with a long-drawn intonation,
+compounded of incredulity, pride, and pleasure. ‘Eh—h—Myles!
+I niver did—no niver!’</p>
+
+<p>‘So it were you, Myles,’ said Edmund. ‘Thou hast kept
+some and quiet about it. But I’m glad thou did it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And he has never come near my home—never given
+me a chance of thanking him,’ pursued Adrienne. ‘You
+must understand, now, why I have come.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, I can so,’ said Mary, regarding her with great favour
+and cordiality, for this praise of Myles touched her to the
+very heart. ‘Won’t you sit down?’ she added.</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t wish to disturb you,’ said Adrienne, hesitating.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, no sich thing. Sit you down,’ said Mary, drawing
+up the rocking-chair, in which Adrienne sat down, and
+Myles stood leaning against one end of the mantelpiece,
+feeling the need of a support of some kind; for he felt a
+sort of intoxication and a bewilderment, and a strange,
+subtle, new life in the very fact of Adrienne’s presence.</p>
+
+<p>‘I had to inquire where you lived,’ she said, looking up
+at him. ‘You did not even tell me that. You once mentioned
+that you lived on the Townfield, and I thought I
+should never find your house; but the first person I met
+told me where you lived. But would you never have
+come?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I—I hardly liked to come. I did not know whether
+you might have been—displeased, perhaps,’ he said, with
+some embarrassment.</p>
+
+<p>‘My uncle has often asked when you were coming. He
+wants to see you again. But now you will come soon—yes?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I—yes. I should like to,’ said he.</p>
+
+<p>‘I hope you don’t mind my coming here,’ said Adrienne
+to Mary.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, no! Lord, no!’ said Mary, earnestly. ‘I’m reet
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[Pg 83]</span>glad to see you. Yon chap would ne’er ha’ told us what
+he’d been doin’. He’s so—stupid.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes—so I should think,’ said Adrienne, meeting Mary’s
+eyes with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>And then, looking at Edmund, she said, ‘I’ve heard of
+you, too. You are not strong.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ said Mary, answering for him. ‘He’s ne’er one o’
+th’ strongest, and to-day he’s getten a headache.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t you do anything for your headaches?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Nay, I jist bide ’em out.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is a pity. I could do something for them—if I come
+again, I will bring you something that will do them good.’</p>
+
+<p>She went on talking to Mary and Edmund, who seemed
+to feel no embarrassment in the intercourse. Adrienne
+certainly possessed in a high degree the art of putting
+people at their ease in her company. Mary and Edmund
+were not usually communicative in first interviews with
+strangers; but this stranger appeared to take their hearts
+by storm, and quickly succeeded in making them forget
+that there was any difference in station between them. She
+apologised for her intrusion much more particularly than
+she would have done to a woman whose servant had opened
+the door, taken her card, and announced her with a flourish.
+This demeanour was not put on—it was her natural, spontaneous
+manner, springing from instinctive politeness and
+geniality of nature. Everything about her was true and
+pure—what Myles was accustomed to call in the vernacular
+‘jannock.’ Mary, also, was nothing if not jannock; and
+the two girls—the lady and the factory-worker—seemed
+instinctively to get on.</p>
+
+<p>‘I must not detain you any longer now,’ said Adrienne,
+at last. ‘I see you are going to have your tea. But I
+should like to know you. Would you mind if I came
+again, now and then?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, I’st be vary glad,’ said Mary, ‘if so be we’re not
+too simple and plain like for you. Yo’ seen we’re nobbut
+working folk ...’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, I am a working person too, and like seeks like,’
+said Adrienne.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[Pg 84]</span></p>
+<p>‘I reckon you’re a different mak’ o’ worker fro’ us,’ said
+Mary.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am sure I work as hard as you at least, and am as
+tired and as glad of rest as you, when my work is done.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You look tired now,’ said Mary, fixing her large, clear
+eyes upon Adrienne’s pale and somewhat weary face, from
+which the glow had faded. ‘Where do you live?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Up at Stonegate, in Blake Street.’</p>
+
+<p>‘My certy! But that’s a good step!’ said Mary, who,
+like many of her class, was nothing of a walker. ‘We’re
+just goin’ to have our tay—won’t you draw up and have a
+sup, and a bit o’ summat to eyt?’</p>
+
+<p>That homely, cordial Lancashire invitation, ‘Come and
+have a sup, and a bit o’ summat to eat’—what Lancashire ears
+are there that do not know it and love it for the kind thoughts
+it arouses? It went straight home to our lonely Adrienne:
+a mist rushed over her eyes; she said somewhat hesitatingly,</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, I should like it. You are very kind, but I fear——’
+she half turned to Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘Myles, coom out o’ yon corner, and behave thisel’, mon!
+Thou can when thou’s a mind to,’ said Mary, briskly.
+‘Now draw up,’ she added to Adrienne. ‘Tak’ off your
+hat, and I’st hang it up, so! And Myles’ll see you home.
+He’s got nowt to do to-neet.’</p>
+
+<p>Mary must have been inspired when she made this
+suggestion.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, I need not trouble him now,’ said Adrienne, with a
+radiant smile upon the approaching Myles—‘unless he has
+forgotten the way to my uncle’s house, as I begin to think.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It’s much better I should go with you. It’s Saturday
+evening,’ said Myles, seating himself beside her, and throwing
+a fleeting glance towards her face.</p>
+
+<p>She was content, pleased, even flattered at the friendly
+way in which she had been received. Her expression said
+that as plainly as words could do. Myles began to lose some
+of his bewilderment, and to gain somewhat more confidence.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, I’ve forgotten th’ mowffins!’ said Mary, suddenly,
+a shade crossing her face. ‘We mun really wait while I
+toast the mowffins.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[Pg 85]</span></p>
+<p>She jumped up and produced tea-cakes out of a cupboard,
+and Myles suggested that perhaps it did not matter about
+the muffins. Mary was, however, firm, and bade him cut
+some bread-and-butter while she toasted.</p>
+
+<p>‘And mind thou cuts it nice and thin, and not all i’
+lumps,’ she added in admonitory tones.</p>
+
+<p>Myles, much too simple-minded to see anything derogatory
+in cutting bread-and-butter, began, but in half a minute
+Adrienne had jumped up and laid hold of the knife.</p>
+
+<p>‘Stop! That is clearly not your sphere,’ said she, laughing
+into his embarrassed, yet ever-attractive face. ‘It is not
+stern enough—not commanding enough. Let me do it.’</p>
+
+<p>Unaware of the distinguished example set by the Wetzlar
+heroine in the bread-and-butter cutting line, Myles watched
+the deft fingers of his enchantress as if no woman had ever
+been known to cut bread-and-butter properly before.</p>
+
+<p>Mary, who grew visibly and every moment more satisfied
+with her guest, toasted the ‘mowffins,’ buttered them, and
+tea was proclaimed ready with acclamation.</p>
+
+<p>Then Edmund came to the table; they all sat there, and
+Mary made tea in state, apologising for not having the best
+tea-things because of the impromptu nature of the visit.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am sure these seem delightful tea-things,’ said Adrienne,
+smiling.</p>
+
+<p>The festivity was altogether successful as regarded
+Adrienne, Mary, and Edmund. But Miss Blisset cast
+every now and then fleeting glances at Myles, and was not
+quite at her ease about him, for he alone of all the party
+was silent and grave. It was the deep intensity of the
+delight within him that caused this, but Adrienne could not
+be supposed to know that—in very truth, as yet she
+honestly believed the greater admiration and liking to be
+on her side. That delusion was soon to be ended, but at
+present she was under its influence.</p>
+
+<p>The meal was not long over when she said she must go,
+and promising Mary to come again, she went away, accompanied
+by Myles.</p>
+
+<p>Their way lay through what was called ‘the Park.’ They
+turned in at the large iron gates of a town pleasure-ground,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[Pg 86]</span>laid out in gravel walks, grass plots, seats, and flower-beds.
+They were on a height. The town lay below, with the
+gilded spire of the town-hall cleaving the air, and the hazy-looking
+blue wall of Blackrigg to the north and north-west.</p>
+
+<p>As they walked slowly along a broad terrace, unoccupied
+save by themselves, Adrienne asked, in her quick foreign
+way,</p>
+
+<p>‘Say to me, Mr. Heywood—you are vexed that I came?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I—vexed—nay!’ was all that he could say.</p>
+
+<p>The current which for the last week had ever been hurrying
+more and more quickly forward had now arrived at the
+verge. It leapt over it in a bound, and carried everything
+before. He was madly in love, and all he could do was to
+say as little, be as brief as possible, for fear of showing her,
+startling her, perhaps repelling her; for he was intensely
+conscious of the difference; all his dearly loved, passionately
+cherished theories of equality could not blind him to the
+fact that they were not equals—that while he loved her with
+a strength that shook his nature with its power, yet the bare
+thought of touching her, holding her hand, speaking to her
+on easy and familiar terms, came to him with a sense of
+impropriety—brought him the conviction, <i>non sum dignus</i>.</p>
+
+<p>‘You were so quiet,’ said she. ‘You would hardly speak
+to me. I was afraid I had offended you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not at all,’ said poor Myles, unable to say more lest he
+should say too much.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am sure,’ pursued Adrienne, stopping in her walk and
+looking earnestly at him—‘I am sure you know that I did
+not mean to offend you; and you could not be so hard as
+to wish me to keep silence. You behaved splendidly. I
+felt that I must thank you for it.’</p>
+
+<p>It was growing too much for him to stand there quiescent,
+and hear that voice, which contained all melody for him,
+and to see that face, those eyes, looking at him so. The
+eagerness of desperate love came storming down upon
+prudence, and hurrying words of devotion to his lips.
+Mastering himself by a strong effort, and clasping, or rather
+clenching his hands behind him, he said, in what seemed
+to Adrienne a singularly calm, colourless voice,</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[Pg 87]</span></p>
+<p>‘You make too much of it. I would rather not be
+thanked for it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are hard upon me to say that. It gives me such
+pleasure to thank you, but you deserve at my hands that I
+should comply with your wishes—after what you have done
+for me. But you cannot guess what a delightful feeling it
+is to one so lonely as I, to suddenly discover that there is
+some one who has been not afraid to stand up for her—and
+to some purpose.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I should have thought you would have many friends,’
+remarked Myles, endeavouring to change the too-fascinating
+subject.</p>
+
+<p>‘I—no indeed. I don’t think any one with fewer friends
+ever lived.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But you may have left friends behind you on the
+Continent?’</p>
+
+<p>A momentary pause while he looked at her. It was as
+though some sudden blow had struck the words back from
+her lips to her heart—then she said steadily,</p>
+
+<p>‘Some few; but chiefly benefactors rather than friends—benefactors
+who befriended and helped me in my loneliness
+and destitution, for my father and I were sometimes almost
+destitute.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Destitute?’ echoed Myles, shocked.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh yes! I have not always lived in Lancashire, you
+know. No one seems to be poor here. I have known
+what it is to look at a piece of money worth sixpence, and
+know that if I spent that upon my supper I should not have
+a penny in the morning to buy breakfast with.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But not seriously?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I assure you it seemed very serious to me. I have
+sunk lower. I have known what it was to go supperless
+to bed, wondering what poor little trinket or book I could
+spare in order to get a breakfast next morning.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles was silent, and Adrienne continued,</p>
+
+<p>‘That, you know, is what is not considered respectable
+for a young lady.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Hang respectability!’ was all he said.</p>
+
+<p>‘Not at all! I like it. After all the fever and the turmoils,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[Pg 88]</span>and the ups and downs, and dreadful uncertainties of
+that life, my present one is like Paradise. Oh, rest is a
+very sweet thing—rest and security, and a strong arm to
+help you.’ (Myles turned to her with parted lips.) ‘Your
+home is beautiful. That sister of yours is so calm and good.
+I love her already. She must be very dear to you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, I love Mary dearly.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. Both she and you, and all of you, look as if you
+had had a home all your lives. Do you think I might go
+to see them again?’</p>
+
+<p>‘They’ll only be too glad. I never thought you could
+sympathise so much—with our sort,’ said Myles, constrainedly.</p>
+
+<p>‘To-morrow you will come to Stonegate, will you not? and
+then I will tell you my story, and you will perhaps understand
+how it is that I sympathise with “your sort,” as you
+call it, and why I think so much of what you have done
+for me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I will come with pleasure.’</p>
+
+<p>‘To-morrow afternoon, then, I shall expect you.’</p>
+
+<p>They walked the rest of the way in silence, and Myles
+left her at the gate.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+‘Deeper and deeper still.’</p></div>
+
+
+
+<p>It was a lovely Sunday afternoon on which Myles took his
+way to Stonegate. He found Adrienne alone. She said
+her uncle was taking his afternoon airing in his bath-chair
+in the garden, and did not wish to be disturbed; his old
+servant, Brandon, was with him.</p>
+
+<p>‘But sit down,’ she continued, ‘and we can have a talk.’</p>
+
+<p>With that she picked up her knitting and began to work.</p>
+
+<p>‘You will talk,’ said Myles, ‘if you keep your promise.
+You promised to tell me about yourself.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you really want to hear that?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I came on purpose.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[Pg 89]</span></p>
+<p>‘Well, I will tell it you, and I hope it will have the effect
+I intend.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What effect is that?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are determined to look upon me (I have seen it, so
+don’t be at the trouble of denying it) as something fine and
+delicate, and unused to roughness and hardship.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, one can see plainly enough that you are that.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Can one? Well, I’ll begin my story, and you shall learn
+how appearances may deceive.’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne related well. She did not exaggerate; there
+was nothing strained, no striving after effect; but there was
+colour, pathos, life, in her tale, and a subtle poetry thrown
+over all, by her way of looking at things.</p>
+
+<p>Myles, in listening, felt as if he were actually wandering
+with her on that nomadic life she spoke of; through the
+great foreign capitals, and the country villages, and the
+towns, big and little; to be sojourning with her in the gay,
+feverish watering-places; to survey the distant, rose-tinted
+Alps. He utterly forgot where he was, and knew only her
+and her life.</p>
+
+<p>There had been two brothers, she told him, of whom her
+father was the younger, and her uncle the elder. Kith
+and kin, they had none, and their patrimony was small.
+Both were gifted, but in different ways. Adrian, her father,
+was artist to the marrow of his bones. Richard, her uncle,
+had also some taste for art, but more of the analytical and
+critical than of the synthetic description; he had been,
+moreover, at one time, a practical man of business, and had
+made money—he was not rich, but thoroughly independent.
+Her father had had the gift of spending, not of making.
+The brothers had parted early. Adrian, as soon as he was his
+own master, had said farewell to home, and had gone, first to
+Germany, there to study the music which his soul loved, and
+which had beautified his otherwise weary, disappointed life.</p>
+
+<p>Some time was spent in Germany; then two or three
+years in miscellaneous and somewhat aimless travel; then
+back again to Germany, to music, and to love. The fair,
+clever, and penniless daughter of a poor professor and man
+of science won his heart, as he hers, and they married.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[Pg 90]</span></p>
+<p>With marriage came the feeling of an insufficiency of
+means, and the desire to augment them led him into business
+speculations of a nature which he did not in the least
+understand: the bubble burst, and Adrian Blisset found
+himself a ruined man in less than a year after his marriage.
+Adrienne’s mother died at her birth; the girl had never
+known that holy bond, however much she might have longed
+for it. Her father chose to lay part of the cause of his wife’s
+death to the anxiety induced by his extravagance and folly—moreover,
+he had adored her, and from the hour of her
+death he had been a changed man. He had his own living
+and that of his child to gain, but he settled nowhere. His
+life became nomadic. He and the little one did not sojourn
+long in the tents of any particular tribe. Scarce a city or a
+town of any importance in Europe, but had sheltered the
+unconscious head of the infant, or been trodden by the
+child’s uncertain feet, or by the sedate step of the maiden,
+careworn before her time, while she knew intimately many
+an out-of-the-way nook, unnamed by Murray, Bradshaw, or
+Baedeker, amongst Italian hills, deep in the sunny lands of
+France, Thüringian woods and slopes, or sleepy red-roofed
+Rhenish hamlets.</p>
+
+<p>A restless ghost drove the musician with his child and his
+violin hither and thither, never permitting him to stay long
+in any one place and gather substance; but ever, so soon as
+the novelty had worn off, seeming to drive him forth on a fresh
+search after—what? Adrienne had learnt at an early age to
+ask herself that question, and sorrowfully to give up the answer.</p>
+
+<p>Sometimes he was in funds, when he showered all kinds
+of presents upon her, and called her his dear child, his
+<i>Herzallerliebste</i>; but oftener they were plunged in poverty,
+sore, sordid, dreadful poverty. His moods varied distressingly,
+from kindness that had in it something fitful and
+sinister, up to the dark melancholy silence which was his
+most frequent humour. He was proud, and his pride was
+of a touchy and intractable kind; it offended men of business,
+and estranged friends and pupils.</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne had had many teachers and many strange lessons,
+and the whole had combined into a varied and truly most
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[Pg 91]</span>unconventional education. Her father had lavished musical
+training upon her. At Florence, where they stayed a whole
+year, longer than anywhere else, she had wandered about
+with a kind-hearted old artist, who led her about with him
+to the great galleries, and showed her the grandest pictures,
+and made her know the beautiful buildings, till she had
+imbibed the undying loveliness of such masterpieces as
+Giotto’s Campanile, or Michael Angelo’s Duomo, and had
+discovered that her favourite thing in Florence was the
+‘Pensiero’ Medici of the last-named artist.</p>
+
+<p>‘You remind me of him,’ she added, suddenly looking
+at Myles. And she had sat, at thirteen years of age, for a
+picture of ‘Gravity.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Was that what he called you?’ asked Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. Gravity, or Sedateness was his name for me—and
+it suited me.’</p>
+
+<p>She had had to part from her good old friend, and that had
+cost her the pain which parting brings to those who know
+they will not meet again.</p>
+
+<p>In Paris, Adrienne had had lessons in democracy from a
+young universal genius, whose talents were too vast to stoop
+to any ordinary walk of life. He lived in a garret, and
+planned schemes of a perfect republic. Adrienne had not
+felt much grief on parting from him.</p>
+
+<p>A monstrous learned professor, who lived at Bonn, in a
+<i>Schlafrock</i>, slippers, and spectacles, had taught her a little
+store of Greek and Latin. But her greatest teacher had
+been a strange, absent-looking professor, in Berlin—a man
+of literature and philosophy, who had been very fond of
+her, and had given her freely of his very best. Her uncle,
+Mr. Blisset, looked upon this as a providential circumstance,
+for he found when she came to him, that he had no tyro to
+deal with, but one already instructed in philosophy and its
+terminology.</p>
+
+<p>Two years ago her father had died; and just before his
+death she had learnt for the first time that they possessed
+any relation in the world. She had received a letter to give
+to her uncle. She fulfilled the behest, and that was how
+she first met Mr. Blisset.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[Pg 92]</span></p>
+<p>‘And what did he say? How did he receive you?’
+asked Myles, eagerly.</p>
+
+<p>‘I was chilled,’ said she, ‘as I sat opposite to him and saw
+his pale, impassive face, and watched how he raised his eyes
+now and then from that letter. He gave me no reply that
+night; told me nothing; did not intimate whether he were
+pleased or displeased to see me, but ordered a room to be
+prepared for me; and the next day he told me that my
+father had asked him in his letter to give me a shelter until
+I was able to find some employment by which I could support
+myself. My uncle said that if I could endure to live
+buried alive with an old man, and work hard at a sedentary
+employment, he would give me a home and pay me a certain
+sum every year. I accepted his proposal gratefully,
+and have never repented it; and I trust he never will,
+either.’</p>
+
+<p>There spoke the true Adrienne Blisset.</p>
+
+<p>‘And you are happy here?’</p>
+
+<p>‘As happy as I expect to be. It is a great thing not to
+be miserable.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That’s what our rulers appear to think we working-men
+ought to feel,’ said Myles, sardonically, his thoughts for the
+moment flying off at a tangent.</p>
+
+<p>‘Are you bitter against your rulers?’ asked Adrienne,
+tranquilly.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am bitter against some of them—a pampered set of
+rich men, who never had a care in their lives, but don’t
+mind how many other people have to bear. There are
+some, now—Bright, and Cobden, and the like—for them I’d
+die. There’s that in their faces which says they have not a
+mean thought, nor a desire but for our good; but the most
+of them’—he shrugged his shoulders—‘those lily-handed
+politicians who call themselves Radicals in these days, and
+plan how to prevent a working-man from getting his beer,
+but have half a dozen sorts of wine at their own tables, and
+go mincing about at public meetings, talking lightly of trials
+that would make them cringe if they had to face them;
+talking about “supply and demand” and how to improve
+the conditions of the lower orders—isn’t that the phrase?
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[Pg 93]</span>Much they know about the lower orders, and how to improve
+them! They don’t know what ails them yet.’</p>
+
+<p>He laughed sarcastically.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is true, they are a somewhat emasculate type,’ said she;
+‘but I don’t see what right you have to blame them much.
+It is the working-man’s own fault that they can do no more
+for him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘His own fault!’ he echoed incredulously.</p>
+
+<p>‘Now don’t eat me up, please! I wonder if you and I
+differ essentially in first principles on this subject. You
+have thought about it, haven’t you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, I have. I’ve plenty of reason to think about it,
+when I see such fellows as Frederick Spenceley and young
+Mallory living on the fat of the land, without having lifted
+a finger to get it, or proved by a single act that they merited
+it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory,’ said Adrienne, slowly, ‘you say you have
+seen him: has he come home?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No. I meant to speak figuratively. I don’t see him;
+but I know it is so. If I don’t know him, I know the likes
+of him——’</p>
+
+<p>‘But—but what about him?’ she asked, still with the
+same slowness and a kind of hesitation. ‘What has he
+done wrong?’</p>
+
+<p>‘He has done nothing; that’s what he has done wrong,’
+said Myles. ‘Well, he’s coming home soon; we shall see
+how he breasts the storm—for we are in for a storm, sooner
+or later. But don’t you think, Miss Blisset, it must make
+a man think to see these contrasts—a man who has the
+least bit of a power of thought?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No doubt. And what conclusion have you come to in
+the matter?’</p>
+
+<p>‘The conclusion that it’s a crying injustice.’</p>
+
+<p>‘To whom?’</p>
+
+<p>‘To—well, to put it broadly, we’ll say to the working-man—but
+I mean to those in general, who work very hard,
+and get very little.’</p>
+
+<p>‘In what way?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Blisset! Where is the justice of fellows like that
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[Pg 94]</span>having that money without either rhyme or reason; and of
+fellows like——’</p>
+
+<p>‘You,’ suggested Adrienne, demurely.</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t mean me in particular, but my class in general,
+earning from thirty to sixty shillings a week—the very best
+paid of us—in payment for hours and hours of close, hard
+work.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose it is not the work you object to?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No. I like work. I should be lost without my work.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The property which those young men enjoy has been
+earned with trouble as great, or probably, from an intellectual
+point of view, greater than your weekly wages.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But not by them.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Suppose it had been earned by you, and you wished
+to leave it to your only son, whom you had educated with
+a view to his inheriting it, and the law stepped in and said
+you should not, but should leave it amongst a number of
+working-people whom you had never seen or heard of—how
+would you like that?’</p>
+
+<p>‘But that is an exaggerated view of the case.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t see it. I don’t believe you have ever considered
+the subject fairly. And answer me this; suppose the
+average working-man became possessed of that money,
+or of part of it—<i>money which he had not earned</i>—money
+which had become his by a lucky chance: do you think
+his use of it would be worse, or as good as, or better, than
+the use made of it by those two of whom we are speaking?
+Do you think it would do him a real and permanent good:
+increase his self-respect, lessen his self-indulgence, make
+him steadier, soberer, more inwardly dignified, worthy, and
+honourable?’</p>
+
+<p>She was looking earnestly at him, and Myles frowned,
+the words driven back from his lips. Did he know one
+man amongst his fellow-workman on whom the possession
+of such money would have such an effect? Would it have
+such an effect upon himself? The generalities of the writers
+who cried up the working-man and his wrongs seemed suddenly
+to grow small, and to shrink into the background.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh,’ went on Adrienne, ‘I don’t think you working-men
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[Pg 95]</span>know in the least how noble your work intrinsically is.
+You only see that others are outwardly better off than you,
+and you clamorously demand a share of that wealth. You
+don’t see how disastrous to your best interests such an
+acquisition would be.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles had started up, feeling terribly humiliated.</p>
+
+<p>‘You think so ill of us!’ he exclaimed. ‘You could
+come and see us yesterday, and talk to my sister as if she
+had been your sister—and now you reproach us in this way.
+Good-bye!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Stop!’ said she, laying her hand upon his arm, and
+looking earnestly into his face. ‘How wild and impatient
+you are! Think a moment! It is not of <i>you</i> I am speaking.
+Do you know any other working-man to whom I
+could speak in this way?’</p>
+
+<p>She paused. It was true. Perhaps Harry Ashworth
+might hear those words and bear them—he knew of no
+other who would do so; and while he was stung and tortured
+by what she said, he felt a bitter consciousness that
+it was true. But he stood still, and waited to hear the end.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am speaking to you with a purpose,’ Adrienne went
+on in the same tone, low and quiet, but full of vehemence.
+‘Since that night when you stepped forward in my defence,
+I have thought much about you—very much. I have
+studied you, and you do not know how well-used I am to
+studying people. The more I have studied you, the more
+I have felt that you were both generous and high-minded—and
+terribly hot-tempered,’ she added, with a smile, which
+Myles thought must have charmed the temper of a ravening
+wolf. ‘Just think what you, a workman, might do by
+setting an example to your fellow-workmen. Take the right
+side. You are too good for the commonplace career of an
+ordinary “intelligent working-man,” for a blind submission
+to trade-union rules, and for an obstinate resistance to your
+masters, just because they are your masters, or because your
+union bids you resist them. Don’t be a tool; use your
+reason; consider the why and wherefore of things. Be
+answerable to your conscience alone for all you say and do.
+Help to show your fellows that all improvement in their
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[Pg 96]</span>condition must arise actively from within, not be received passively
+from without—you know that, and own it, don’t you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Myles, quickly, folding his arms and leaning
+against the mantelpiece, his eyes fixed upon her, as she
+stood before him, with her head a little thrown back; her
+eyes alight, looking beautiful in her energy and excitement.</p>
+
+<p>‘I wish,’ she said, ‘I often wish that I were a working-woman,
+like your sister. I would show you what I meant;
+how toil could be ennobled.’</p>
+
+<p>She paused. Myles’s heart was beating wildly. Something,
+whether God or devil he had no time to think,
+hurried quick words from his lips; in a voice as low, as
+vehement as her own had been, he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you? And suppose it ever came to the point?
+Suppose some day some working-man came to you, and
+told you he loved you; that he could see how toil might
+be ennobled, if you would help him to do it—there would
+be an end of your philosophy. You would think of the
+cottage to live in, the floors to scrub, the rough neighbours,
+the coarse common life, the children to tend, and make,
+and mend, and sew for; and if you could get over that, there
+would be the man himself—a great rough fellow—a workman,
+not a gentleman, a man of rough speech, like—like
+our sort. You would have to work for him, too; to cook,
+and sew, and wash for him; to obey him—<i>you</i>. When he
+said, “Do this,” you must do it, and when he called, “Come
+here!” you must go to him. That’s the way amongst us
+working-people. What about the ennobling of toil <i>then</i>?’</p>
+
+<p>He spoke jeeringly, and hated himself for doing so; and
+listened for her answer in a state of wild, if silent, excitement.</p>
+
+<p>Her hands had dropped, her eyes had sunk, her face was
+burning; she turned away. If he could have trusted himself
+to move or speak, he would have fallen upon his knees
+and begged her pardon.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, Myles!’ said she, at last, in a very low voice. He
+bit his lip till the blood came, at that sound; the most
+maddening in its mingled sweetness and bitterness, he had
+ever heard. ‘I suppose I gave you the right to say that,’
+she said, ‘and to demand an answer too. You put it
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[Pg 97]</span>tersely, certainly. As you speak, I can see the very life
+rising before me that you picture.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And yourself in it!’ said he, still with a sneer, though
+he would have given the world to ask her to forgive him.</p>
+
+<p>‘No. You forget something,’ she replied, walking to the
+window, while he still leaned against the mantelpiece.
+‘You made it all hard and sordid. You forgot the very
+“ennobling” that began the discussion. I <i>could</i> fancy myself
+in such a home—a working-man’s wife—but to become
+that, I must love that man; and in the life you described
+there was no love. The man I loved, be he workman or
+prince, must be a gentleman—not a brute.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! and supposing you met this working-man—or whoever
+he might be?’ suggested Myles, in a calm, restrained
+kind of voice.</p>
+
+<p>‘If I met him, and if I loved him, and he loved me, and
+asked me to marry him, I would say “yes;” and I would
+love him, and serve him faithfully to the end of my life.’</p>
+
+<p>The words fell softly and gently, almost timorously, as if
+she hesitated to speak of such a thing; and yet with a
+certain gentle firmness which said that they were no sentimental
+verbiage, but expressed the steadfast feeling of a
+steadfast heart. But each word was like a drop of liquid
+fire in the young man’s veins. She seemed suddenly to be
+close beside him—a possibility, a thing he might dream of—and
+fifty thousand times higher and farther off, and more
+impossible to him than ever. How could <i>he</i> ever hope to
+bend that heart to love him? The very thought was insanity.</p>
+
+<p>He mastered his emotion, and walked up to her. She
+turned, but did not look at him.</p>
+
+<p>‘I beg your pardon, most humbly,’ said he.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is granted freely. I dare say it has been good for
+me; it has reduced my vague theories to the language of
+common sense. I had no right to reproach you with the
+faults of your class, and expect nothing but milk and honey
+from your lips in return. We understand each other. Oh,
+but yours is a biting tongue! It cuts like a knife.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It forgot itself when it turned against <i>you</i>. But, remember,
+your words had roused me. You made me blush for
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[Pg 98]</span>my own “vague theories,” as you call them. If you could
+not have said what you did, to any other workman, do you
+suppose I could have spoken so to any other young lady?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, no. I suppose not,’ said she, but her face was still
+downcast. The glance which he at last received wavered
+almost timidly. She resumed her seat and her work, saying,
+‘And you will think of what I have said?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I will—seriously. I believe you are right, but the thing
+was too wonderful for me. I could not attain unto it—all
+at once.’</p>
+
+<p>The conversation was turned, as if by one consent, to
+books. Adrienne’s heart was beating unwontedly fast; her
+knight had not only surprised, but somewhat subdued her;
+delighting her at the same time. He was no tool; he could
+turn upon her, and he had the front of a ruler. That glance
+and that voice were not to be forgotten. She thrilled as
+she remembered them. She was glad he had not gone;
+the sensation that he was still there was pleasurable, with a
+strange potency of strength.</p>
+
+<p>The door opened, and Mr. Blisset was wheeled in, and
+a servant brought afternoon tea. Then Mr. Blisset began
+to talk, and Myles to listen. Mr. Blisset had some of his
+niece’s conversational power. The time flew insensibly,
+till supper was announced. Myles rose, fearing he had intruded
+too long.</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ said Mr. Blisset. ‘Stay, unless you are tired, and
+my niece will give us some music.’</p>
+
+<p>He looked at her, and she said, ‘Yes, do stay!’ And
+Myles stayed.</p>
+
+<p>That evening Adrienne sang some songs. She finished
+with ‘<i>Neue Liebe neues Leben</i>,’ and Myles went home with
+its last passionate words ringing in his ears:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘<i>Liebe, Liebe, lass’ mich los!</i>’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Would it ever ‘let him loose,’ that love which had sprung
+up so suddenly and strongly, making every other feeling
+weak in the glow of its might and strength?</p>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[Pg 99]</span></p>
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+PROMISES.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>That visit was but the first of a long series. Mr. Blisset
+was pleased to see the young man who listened so patiently
+and so deferentially to him, and Myles had an ever-growing
+conviction that Mr. Blisset’s views of men and things, of
+right and wrong, were deeper and sounder than his own;
+riper, truer, and most justly balanced. Myles learnt much
+in these visits and conversations.</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne had been many times to the cottage on the
+Townfield, and had completely won the hearts of Mary and
+Edmund. She had opened up a new field of delight and
+wonder to the boy, by putting him in the way of studying
+botany, and his enthusiasm knew no bounds. She lent
+him books and specimens, and Harry Ashworth, who was
+a great walker, brought him all kinds of plants, and ferns,
+and mosses, from the moors on which he was wont to spend
+his Saturday afternoons and Sunday mornings.</p>
+
+<p>When Myles and Adrienne were in his house at the same
+time, they seemed to have little to say to each other; which
+was, perhaps, not surprising, for their subjects were not
+those discussed by Mary and Edmund. Harry Ashworth
+had a great deal to ask Miss Blisset about music; she comforted
+him, too, for she helped him to some scientific
+understanding of the mighty harmonies of which he was
+fast losing the outward apprehension. Harry had not read
+much about music or musicians; he had, while his hearing
+had been pretty good, contented himself with drinking in
+the sounds themselves. Adrienne soon discovered that the
+sorrow of his life was his failing hearing, and one evening
+it occurred to her to tell him the story of Beethoven. Mary
+and Harry and she happened to be alone. Adrienne began,
+and related that saddest of stories. It had the effect she
+intended.</p>
+
+<p>Harry sat with one hand shading his face, in an attitude
+which he had assumed soon after she began the story, when
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[Pg 100]</span>she said, ‘And at last he wrote to one of his friends and
+confessed that he was growing quite deaf—that if he went
+to the opera, he must sit close to the orchestra, and even
+then, even leaning over towards it, he could scarcely hear.’</p>
+
+<p>Mary went on knitting. Adrienne’s voice, somewhat
+raised, slow, distinct, and clear, told the tale of that mighty
+genius—Christlike in the immensity of his woe and the
+utterness of his separation from those around him. She
+went through it all. She told him about the great symphonies,
+about Beethoven’s one or two sad, luckless love-episodes;
+his poverty; his love for the thankless young
+profligate, his nephew; the performance of the Choral
+Symphony—of that great adagio ‘in which we discern the
+slowly stalking movement of a god!’</p>
+
+<p>‘When it was over,’ Adrienne went on, ‘the audience
+were almost mad with rapture and delight, and the applause
+was deafening—thundering—it resounded through and
+through the great room! the master still stood with his
+baton in his hand, his back to the audience, till one of the
+vocalists gently turned him round, and he saw them all—how
+they were wild with pleasure and emotion; <i>he</i> had
+thus moved them by his heavenly music to ‘joy,’ and he had
+heard no sound of it all.’</p>
+
+<p>She paused. It was the life which she most loved in all
+truth or poetry; to her Beethoven’s sufferings were as actual
+as his genius or his grandeur.</p>
+
+<p>She saw Harry look at her with an expression which told
+her that he too understood, and she went on to the end—told
+of the bitter loneliness of those last years, that death
+in harmony with the life—that passing away of the Titan
+soul in the sublime music of the spring thunderstorm, and
+then she was silent.</p>
+
+<p>Harry looked at her for a moment, started up, and took
+her hand.</p>
+
+<p>‘Thank you, miss,’ said he, and left the house.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, Miss Blisset,’ said Mary, wiping her eyes, ‘you’re
+like no one else as ivver I heerd tell on afore. You’ve
+done a kindness to yon poor lad, such as he never had yet.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m very glad if you think so.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[Pg 101]</span></p>
+<p>‘Yo’ve gi’en him summat to console him. He’ll go
+about now, thinking he may bear his deafness quite easy
+like, seein’ yon man as yo’ towd us on were so great and
+patient. His mind is fair beautiful—Harry’s mind is,’ said
+Mary, moved out of all reticence.</p>
+
+<p>‘I like him very much,’ said Adrienne; ‘very much indeed.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay! He’s good—good to th’ marrow of his bones, he is.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Like you, Mary. You and he are well matched.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, nay! Eh, don’t think o’ that! He’s ne’er said
+nowt about it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘He will some time!’</p>
+
+<p>Mary was silent, with a downcast face, till at last she said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I know you’ll ne’er say a word to no one about it. I
+can trust you to tell you this, as whether he ever says owt
+about it or not, the vary thowt of ony other mon than him
+fair gives me a turn.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Adrienne. ‘And you do deserve to be happy,
+Mary. I wonder how it is that you and all yours are so
+different from other people. I always feel well, and happy,
+and right with the world, when I am with you.’</p>
+
+<p>Later, as Myles walked with her up Blake Street, Adrienne
+remarked that the end of September was approaching
+and the evenings darkened earlier.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Myles, ‘soon winter will be here. And
+then ... now then, you,’ he added to a passer-by, who
+gave Adrienne a very close berth; ‘mind your manners
+when you’re passing a lady.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I didn’t know you had lady-friends, Myles Heywood,’
+replied a smooth voice, as the offender paused, and looked
+at them.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, it’s you!’ said Myles, with trenchant contempt.
+‘If I’d known, I wouldn’t have troubled to speak to you.’
+And he passed on.</p>
+
+<p>‘Who is the man?’ asked Adrienne.</p>
+
+<p>‘He’s my—step-father,’ said Myles, in a peculiar voice.
+Adrienne had heard the whole story from Mary; Myles
+had never been able to speak of it.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, forgive me for saying it, but I wish you had not
+spoken to him in that way.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[Pg 102]</span></p>
+<p>‘Why? How?’ he stammered.</p>
+
+<p>‘Has he ever done you any harm?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not directly; but I can’t abide the very looks of him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘There!’ said she, with a somewhat nervous smile; ‘you
+are too contemptuous. Reverence is better than contempt;
+it is indeed.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Reverence! Would you have me reverence <i>him</i>?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. You ought to reverence human nature—your
+own nature—in him. If you could have heard yourself
+speak! Do you know what you would do, if any one
+spoke to you in that way?’</p>
+
+<p>‘What?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, you would—I think you would shake him. I can
+just see you make one stride towards him, and fasten upon
+him—poor fellow!—to teach him manners.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You mean that I have none myself. Well, you may be
+right.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Are you offended?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Blisset—you could not offend me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think I could. But do think of what I have said;
+and try not to be so contemptuous. Will you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘The next time I meet Jim Hoyle, I’ll take off my hat
+to him politely—since you wish it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You will drive me to despair! How different you are
+from your reasonable sister, who sees the right bearings of
+things at once; and from your sensitive brother, who....’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, Ned is like a girl for delicacy,’ said Myles, a sarcastic
+flavour in his voice. ‘Well, Miss Blisset, I will try
+hard to please you. Next week there’s a fellow coming
+that I <i>have</i> a contempt for, if I ever had for any one.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Who may that be?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Sebastian Mallory, our so-called <i>master</i>.’</p>
+
+<p>A pause. Then a hesitating, ‘In-deed!’ from her, the
+intonation of which Myles did not remark.</p>
+
+<p>‘So I’ll try to be polite to him, if our paths cross—which
+I hope they won’t.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps they may not. But now do try,’ said she.
+‘You may find it easier than you think.’</p>
+
+<p>They parted at the wicket, and Myles went home, to find
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[Pg 103]</span>Edmund gone to bed, and to sit up himself, reading ‘My
+Beautiful Lady,’ which Adrienne had lent to Edmund,
+never supposing that Myles would look at it, or that he
+would take any interest in it if he did. But he pored over
+it, and his heart-strings trembled to the poet’s notes: it
+was he himself, his own thoughts put into poetry as the
+lover waited his lady’s coming. And as for the end, Myles
+read it differently; to please himself, he allowed common
+sense to step in—Adrienne was not consumptive.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+MR. MALLORY’S POLITICS.
+</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘<i>Philinte.</i>—Mais on entend les gens au moins sans se fâcher.</div></div>
+
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0"><i>Alceste.</i>—Moi, je veux me fâcher, et ne veux point entendre.’</div></div></div>
+</div>
+
+<p class="author">
+<i>Le Misanthrope.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+
+<p>During the following forenoon Myles sat alone in the outer
+office, employed exactly as he had been on the day of Mrs.
+Mallory’s visit, weeks before. Wilson was going his usual
+round in the works, and Mr. Sutcliffe, the manager, was out.</p>
+
+<p>Pausing at the end of a column of figures, he raised his
+eyes and saw coming down the street something which
+caused him to open his eyes in surprise, though surprise
+was not his usual expression.</p>
+
+<p>It was a very high and very swell phaeton, with a pair of
+magnificent bays, which danced along the street, as if its
+shabby, clog-worn stones caused much distress to their
+aristocratic hoofs. The driver of this (in Thanshope) unique
+conveyance was a young man in light grey clothes and a
+round cloth cap—no English cap: indeed there was, at
+least to the uninitiated Thanshope eye, something un-English
+in his whole appearance. He was, however, master of his
+cattle, as even Myles could see. Beside him sat a slight,
+dark boy, with a plain, queer, but attractive face; and
+behind was a very correct-looking groom.</p>
+
+<p>‘Who on earth is that chap?’ was Myles’s first very
+natural thought, as he forgot his work, and gazed in the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[Pg 104]</span>blissfulness of ignorance at the vision. The next moment
+he could have bitten off his tongue could he have had the
+feeling that he had not bestowed a second glance upon
+the whole affair, for the dancing bays came sidling down
+the street, and the driver pulled them up before that very
+office door; moreover, he had caught sight of Myles staring
+at him, and had given him in return a lazy look from a pair
+of rather sleepy eyes.</p>
+
+<p>Now Myles knew it was the ‘so-called master’—it was
+Sebastian Mallory: a second glance at the fair though
+bronzed face, the yellow hair and moustache, the proudly
+cut features, and the indifferent expression, displayed sufficient
+likeness to his mother to make the first intuitive conviction
+a certainty.</p>
+
+<p>Furious with himself at having been caught staring openly
+and wonderingly, Myles forgot his voluntary promise to
+Adrienne, and, in order to prove that, whatever his open
+eyes might at first have seemed to intimate, yet that he was
+not really at all struck by anything he had seen, he turned
+his back to the door, and was apparently bending with
+the deepest attention over his work, when that door was
+opened; he heard a voice conclude some injunctions to the
+groom, and the answer which followed:</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Jawohl, mein Herr.</i>’</p>
+
+<p>‘Foreign servants, even!’ murmured Myles, shrugging
+his shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good morning, my good man,’ was the next thing he
+heard, in an accent as different from that of the Thanshope
+‘gentleman’ as Adrienne’s was different from that of the
+Thanshope lady.</p>
+
+<p>He turned round and looked up; he was forced to do so
+now, and, without noticing the lad who stood in the background,
+he faced Mallory. The two young men confronted
+each other for the first time.</p>
+
+<p>So far as expression and complexion went, they were as
+great a contrast as could be imagined. Both were tall,
+spare, and well-built, and there the resemblance ended.
+Myles was, as has been said, quick, passionate, lithe, alert,
+with a temper that sprang into action on every possible
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[Pg 105]</span>occasion, with eyes that flashed, brows that contracted, very
+often in the course of the day. Sebastian Mallory was
+graceful, but there was some languor, real or assumed, in
+the grace. He was handsome, but the good looks were
+certainly marred by the bored expression on his pale, fine
+features. His eyes moved slowly; they were very good
+eyes, luminous, and hazel in colour, but they did not look
+as if they would easily flash. He spoke, looked, moved, as
+if he found life rather troublesome, and scarcely worth the
+trouble when it had been taken. He had taken off his
+cap when he entered the office—foreign fashion, and Myles
+saw that his face, all save the forehead, was somewhat
+bronzed; but it was with the bronze of a hot sun—not
+nature, naturally he was pale. His hair, too, seemed to
+have caught the sun at the ends, elsewhere it was just yellow
+hair. Every gesture and movement was full of the polished
+ease of high cultivation.</p>
+
+<p>Myles, looking straight at him, said to himself, ‘One of
+your languid, heavy swells, are we? I’m afraid we shall
+ruffle his fine feathers in this horrid democratic place.’</p>
+
+<p>He had Mrs. Mallory in his mind’s eye as he surveyed
+her son; her principles were well known—the divine right
+of kings—the Conservative side through thick and thin,
+good report and evil report; Church and Constitution
+intact through every storm; our greatest Premier, the late
+lamented Duke of Wellington; <i>the working-man in his
+proper place</i> (wherever that may be); rich and poor, gentle
+and simple, a providential arrangement which it would be
+sinful and impious to think of disturbing.</p>
+
+<p>Thinking of all this, Myles surveyed Sebastian Mallory,
+and as he found him entirely different from any young man
+he had ever seen before, and as most of the Thanshope
+people, great and small, were of the Radical persuasion, he
+immediately concluded that he was right—what had been
+bred in the bone must come out in the flesh, and it was
+quite clear that Mr. Mallory was a Conservative of the
+bluest dye.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile Sebastian had been looking at Myles, too,
+surprised at receiving no answer to his remark, and still
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[Pg 106]</span>more surprised to observe that the eyes of the ‘good man’
+were fixed intently, criticisingly, and with unabashed steadfastness
+upon himself, and appeared to measure him over
+from head to foot, in a manner which was, to say the least,
+singular. The cap of the young man remained on his head;
+he did not rise; he did not ask what he could do, nor the
+visitor’s business; he simply looked at him with a pair of
+remarkably keen, piercing, dark eyes, and Sebastian returned
+the look, until at last a gleam of amusement appeared in
+his sleepy eyes.</p>
+
+<p>That look of amusement was not lost upon Myles; it
+irritated and angered him. He was so terribly in earnest
+about all he did, thought, or believed, as not readily to see
+the comic side of a question, while it was Mallory’s chief
+foible to take everything in this world that came to him as
+rather amusing—if not too troublesome.</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Ma foi!</i>’ he observed, with a quaint look, but very good-naturedly;
+‘they told me in the train that I should be
+surprised at the Thanshope people, and so I am!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps they’ll be equally surprised with you,’ said
+Myles, concisely.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, they may,’ replied Sebastian, coolly. ‘Do you
+know who I am?’</p>
+
+<p>Myles hesitated a moment, much wishing to say, ‘No, I
+don’t,’ but integrity got the upper hand; he only put the
+fact as disagreeably as he could.</p>
+
+<p>‘I should suppose you are Mrs. Mallory’s son.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian turned to the brown-faced, dark-eyed boy who
+stood behind, and remarked smilingly,</p>
+
+<p>‘You see, <i>I</i> am nobody, Hugo; only my mother’s son;
+and yet here I am upon my own property.’</p>
+
+<p>The youth nodded, and glanced thoughtfully at Myles,
+who could not resist going on with the rather perilous game
+he was playing, and who remarked drily,</p>
+
+<p>‘You’ll find that we count a good deal by residence and
+relationship here.’</p>
+
+<p>‘So!’ said Sebastian, with the amused half-smile still
+playing about his lips and in his eyes, to the intense exasperation
+of Myles, who naturally saw nothing at all to laugh
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[Pg 107]</span>at in the situation. There was something, too, about Mallory,
+which struck a subtle blow at his pride and self-esteem—something
+which in his innermost heart he knew to be
+superior to himself, though he passionately refused to admit
+the idea.</p>
+
+<p>‘Your guess is correct,’ went on Sebastian. ‘I am Mrs.
+Mallory’s son. And now I should be glad to know who
+and what you are—one of my work-people, perhaps?’</p>
+
+<p>The young man did not seem to be at all annoyed at
+what was taking place; indeed, there was that in his manner
+which said that he was mildly amused with the whole
+affair. He looked around as he spoke, with a lazy, criticising
+glance, but it was the glance, as Myles keenly felt, of
+a master, and of one who was accustomed to be a master.
+He was surveying his property, and questioning one of his
+servants. All the revolutionary element in that servant
+was in perturbation.</p>
+
+<p>‘What am I?’ he began, when Sebastian, who had taken
+off his cap on entering the office, said suggestively,
+‘Hadn’t you better take your cap off?’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is a matter of opinion,’ said Myles, the blood
+rushing to his face. ‘It is not the fashion here. As for
+me, I doff to no man, and but few women.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! well, we won’t quarrel about it. As you say, it is a
+matter of opinion,’ said Sebastian, politely; but there was
+something in the tone which made Myles feel small, and as
+if he had been behaving childishly—not a comforting feeling.</p>
+
+<p>‘But I interrupted you,’ continued Mallory, who seemed
+to be acquiring gradually a sort of interest in the conversation;
+‘you were going to tell me who you are?’</p>
+
+<p>‘My name is Myles Heywood, and my business is cut-looking
+and part of the over-looking in this factory,’ said
+Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘Heywood,’ repeated Sebastian, his eyes losing their lazy
+look, ‘Heywood, where have I—ah, yes! A cut-looker—I
+don’t know what that is.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Likely enough not,’ said Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘But it is quite certain that I must learn it,’ pursued
+Sebastian; ‘what is it, if I may ask?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[Pg 108]</span></p>
+<p>An uncomfortable sense began to steal over Myles, that
+Mr. Mallory was courtesy itself, and that too under considerable
+provocation. He gave a short sketch of his business.</p>
+
+<p>‘Thanks,’ said Sebastian. ‘And now—by-the-by, I am
+absolutely forgetting my business—is Mr. Sutcliffe in?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not now: he will be in about an hour.’</p>
+
+<p>‘In an hour? Then I must go over the works without
+him. Is there any one here who knows all about it—you,
+perhaps?’ he added quickly, as if struck by a happy thought.</p>
+
+<p>The idea of leading Mr. Mallory round the works excited
+the liveliest aversion in Myles’s mind.</p>
+
+<p>‘Wilson, the head-overlooker, is above me. He generally
+does that,’ said he.</p>
+
+<p>‘Wilson—I ought to remember Wilson. He has been
+here a long time, hasn’t he?’</p>
+
+<p>‘He has,’ said Myles, rather emphatically.</p>
+
+<p>‘I thought so. Well, where is he?’</p>
+
+<p>Myles, despite himself, very much despite himself, felt the
+influence of Sebastian’s manner. He would have been glad
+could he reasonably have classed him with Frederick
+Spenceley, but no such classification was for a moment
+possible. He wished he had not made that difficulty about
+going through the works. He suddenly remembered his
+voluntary promise to Adrienne, and felt that he could not
+tell her he had kept his word. But too proud, or perhaps
+too shy, to suddenly change his manner, he said, in the
+same curt tone,</p>
+
+<p>‘He’s going round the works. If you’ll wait a minute
+I’ll send him to you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Thank you,’ said Mr. Mallory.</p>
+
+<p>Myles went out of the office, and across the yard to the
+factory; and Mallory, putting his hand upon Hugo’s
+shoulder, silently pointed to the workman’s figure, and they
+watched him until he had gone into the mill.</p>
+
+<p>‘Hugo, you have not a good ear for English names yet,
+but I have. I have heard that man’s name just lately—yesterday,
+in fact, in the train as we came from Manchester.
+He is a fellow I must know something more about. Did
+you notice him? He has a splendid face.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[Pg 109]</span></p>
+<p>‘Splendid manners too, I think,’ said the boy sarcastically.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ replied Sebastian meditatively. ‘Heywood! If
+he had not mentioned his name when he did, I think I
+should have lost my temper. As it is, I shall try another
+plan. There he goes! What a row comes from behind
+that door!’</p>
+
+<p>Then they looked through the window.</p>
+
+<p>‘What a prospect!’ said Sebastian, glancing over the
+head of his companion, who leaned with both arms on the
+window-sill. ‘This time last week, do you remember? we
+were with—ah, what was their name—those girls and their
+brother?’</p>
+
+<p>‘On the Luzern steamer, going to Fluelen,’ said Hugo,
+his eyes fixed upon the dead wall opposite.</p>
+
+<p>‘Just so! Do you remember the sunset, and Mount
+Pilatus, as we came back? Well, Pilatus is there now—and
+we are here.’</p>
+
+<p>Hugo made no answer, but Sebastian saw a smile curve
+his cheek.</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, you might be pleased rather than not,’ said he.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am not displeased,’ replied the lad, with the same little
+smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘Not displeased that I took a notion about duty into my
+head, and whirled you away from Switzerland, and snow-peaks,
+and Alpine colouring, to Thanshope, Hugo?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Suppose you had obeyed the call of duty without whirling
+me away—had left me behind somewhere?’ said Hugo,
+tranquilly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, so! That is at the root of it,’ said Sebastian,
+laughing. ‘What an odd—ah, here comes the overlooker!
+Now, Hugo, observe me doing the merchant-prince, and
+prepare your artist-eye for some shocks during the progress
+we are going to make.’</p>
+
+<p>Wilson entered in a state of high excitement.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory, sir, this <i>is</i> a hunexpected pleasure! I
+couldn’t believe it. ‘Ow are you, sir? Well, I ’ope.
+We’ve looked forward long to this event.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Very well, thank you. I found myself at home sooner
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[Pg 110]</span>than I had expected—a week earlier. I remember you
+very well,’ he added. ‘How are you and your family?’</p>
+
+<p>‘As well as possible, sir, thank you,’ said Wilson, pressing
+the hand which Sebastian had held out to him. ‘Do I see
+a friend of yours, sir?’ he added, looking at Hugo, who was
+watching the man with the preternatural solemnity which was
+one of his ways of showing that he was amused.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; a very great friend—Mr. Von Birkenau,’ was all
+Sebastian said, and added, ‘I want to go through the works.
+I asked that young fellow who was here, who——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I hope he wasn’t rude, sir. I trust he didn’t make him
+self unpleasant,’ said Wilson, fervently.</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, is he insubordinate usually, or rude to his superiors?’
+asked Sebastian, with a sudden keenness of look, in strong
+contrast with his soft voice, and gentle manner.</p>
+
+<p>‘Insubordinate! no, sir. A better workman or an
+honester young fellow never lived; only he’s got the idea
+that he hasn’t got no superiors—and it will bring him into
+trouble. I often tell him so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But he is clever and honest, you say?’ said Sebastian,
+pausing to ask the question.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, sir,’ said Wilson, who was fond of Myles, and had
+been fond of him for years. ‘He’s got the brains of half a
+dozen of the usual run, and you might trust him with untold
+gold; ay, and more dangerous things than that. But he is
+apt to give a little too much of his sauce.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! Well, we will go on now, if you please; and when
+Mr. Sutcliffe comes in, I’ll get him to go on and lunch with
+me. I should like to say a few words to the—“hands,” is
+it you call them?—if there is any place where they could
+come and listen to me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Surely, sir. The big yard will hold them all, and more
+than them.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then be good enough to lead the way,’ said Sebastian,
+looking at his watch suggestively.</p>
+
+<p>Wilson was a proud and a happy man that morning, as
+he led the newly arrived lord of that place through the maze
+of great rooms and machinery, and pointed out all the improvements,
+the wonderful contrivances for making wood
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[Pg 111]</span>and steel and iron do the work of hands and feet; all the
+‘perfection of mechanism, human and metallic,’ of which
+the factory and its contents formed an example.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian followed him: his eyes had lost their sleepy
+look; he asked many questions, acute enough, for all the
+indifferent tone of them. He seemed to have much of the
+gift which is said to be royal—the eye which took in with
+incredible rapidity both details and generalities. Very little
+that was to be seen escaped him, including the curious glances
+and the loud comments and surmises relative to himself.</p>
+
+<p>It took an hour to go even quickly through the different
+rooms, and then Wilson, saying, ‘This is the last, sir, the
+warehouse,’ took them into a large, well-lighted room, in
+which were some half-dozen men at work, Myles Heywood
+in the centre. Sebastian stooped to Hugo, whispering,</p>
+
+<p>‘I want to speak to that young fellow alone a few minutes.’</p>
+
+<p>Hugo stepped up to a large pile of cloth, seemingly interested
+in some mystic marks and figures upon it, which he
+requested Wilson to explain; while Sebastian, going on,
+stopped at Myles’s side, and, looking at his work said,</p>
+
+<p>‘That is cut-looking is it?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, I’ve learnt something. Listen to me a moment,
+will you?’</p>
+
+<p>Myles looked up inquiringly.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am going to say something to all these people directly,
+and I want you to promise to come and listen to it; will you?’</p>
+
+<p>Half vexed, half flattered, Myles looked into Mallory’s face.
+He had not given up his notion that the young man was a
+‘jackanapes:’ but if so, the ‘jackanapes’ had a manner that
+it was not easy for even a superior person to resist. Myles
+replied,</p>
+
+<p>‘Certainly I will come.’</p>
+
+<p>He looked as if he were going to add something—in
+fact it was on the tip of his tongue to say, ‘I don’t promise
+to like what I shall hear;’ but he refrained. He
+remembered Adrienne and his promise. Yet he had the
+conviction that he would dislike what Sebastian had to say.
+A Conservative—Southern sympathies, no doubt. What
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[Pg 112]</span>could such an one have to say that he would like? But he
+would go, if only to watch till the cloven foot showed itself.</p>
+
+<p>At that moment Wilson came up again.</p>
+
+<p>‘You’ve seen the last of the rooms, sir. If you’re ready,
+I’ll have the bell rung, and then we can go out into the yard.’</p>
+
+<p>In a few minutes the great bell had clanged out, the
+engines had been stopped, the hands were streaming out
+into the yard.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian and Wilson stood upon a huge empty lorrie that
+was close by one of the warehouse doors, so that they had
+nothing to do but step on to it, which they did, while Myles
+and his comrades swung themselves on to the ground, and
+took their stand in a knot, not far away from this impromptu
+platform.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian looked keenly at all the upturned faces, while
+Wilson made a few brief yet remarkably entangled and
+involved introductory remarks.</p>
+
+<p>The overlooker’s voice ceased. He swung himself from
+the lorrie, and went and stood with the crowd.</p>
+
+<p>‘My friends,’ began Sebastian, ‘circumstances have kept
+me for ten years away from Lancashire. Perhaps I might
+still not have made the necessary effort to return, but for this
+great struggle which is going on in America, and whose
+direct effects will first be felt in Lancashire. When that
+began, I felt I had no right to remain any longer away. I
+have heard, and one or two little things which I have seen,
+even during the few hours I have been in Thanshope, lead
+me to feel that the saying is a true one, that you Lancashire
+men are inclined to despise an employer who does not know
+his business, much as you would despise a workman who
+did not know his work. The principle is a right and honest
+one; and I don’t say that I may not have come under the
+head of those who deserve some contempt as being ignorant,
+and “absentee owners.” Even since I came here, I have
+discovered that I never knew what work was before; I see
+that my task will be no easy one, to master the principles
+of my business, and to try and provide in some degree against
+the dark days which, I fear, are almost inevitable. But, hard
+or easy, it is a task I mean to learn. The time is coming,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[Pg 113]</span>as I think all thoughtful men must see—coming rapidly,
+when Lancashire will have to exert every effort to meet that
+distress which will rush upon her; that cloud that is hastening
+across the Atlantic is a very black cloud, and will make
+the days very dark. Let us try manfully, hand in hand,
+to breast the storm together.</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose that you all, or nearly all, will agree with me
+upon at least one point—sympathy with the Federal side
+in this struggle. (A murmur, deep and strong, of profound
+approbation arose—a murmur in which men’s and women’s
+voices alike joined.) ‘That noble man, Abraham Lincoln,
+against whose honour the Southern press has lifted its impotent
+voice—not to mention some journals in this country,
+which Englishmen ought to be ashamed to read—that noble
+man, should he live and be fortunate in his grand crusade,
+will benefit all the world by his intrepidity. He cannot give
+you cheap and abundant supplies of cotton now, but by his
+courage and wisdom he is securing your future supplies upon
+a firm basis, very different from the slippery vantage-ground
+of slave-labour upon which they have hitherto depended.
+(Another murmur indicative of that approval which, to their
+honour, Lancashire working-men and women, throughout
+those bitter years, gave to the Federal side, greeted the
+speaker.)</p>
+
+<p>‘I understand that you Lancashire men, especially you
+Thanshope men, think a great deal of politics and principles.
+So you ought, considering who is your member, and that
+other great name which is connected with Thanshope. I
+also know that in spite of the strong Conservative element
+amongst your gentry, and, they tell me, amongst the workmen
+too’ (a voice: ‘Conservative working-man—there’s no
+such thing!’)—‘in spite of this alleged Conservative element,
+you have always, since you first returned a representative
+to Parliament, returned a Radical.</p>
+
+<p>‘I was not aware of the strength of the feeling upon this
+point in Thanshope. I have always myself held politics to
+be secondary to some other subjects, but, since I find so
+much interest centred round the point here, and moreover,
+since persons whom I have met and spoken to have treated
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">[Pg 114]</span>me on the tacit assumption that I was a Conservative, I
+judge it as well to tell you, face to face, that whatever I
+may be on other matters, in politics I am no Conservative,
+but a Radical. Of course there are almost as many kinds
+of Radicals as there are of Dissenters. The details of my
+radicalism and those of your radicalism are, I dare say,
+somewhat different; but I hope we shall both be able to
+respect the principle and never mind the form.</p>
+
+<p>‘Now I will not keep you longer—only let me say, finally,
+I am here to learn my business, and to try to guide my ship
+through the storm that is coming. Thanshope, as you
+know, is one of the places where the pinch of distress will
+be soonest felt, since the counts of yarns used here are precisely
+those the supply of which will soonest fall off. I ask
+a promise from you, and I make one to you. In that time
+that is coming I ask you to trust me—my feelings and intentions
+towards you, and on my part I promise to strain
+every nerve to do my duty by you. We will work on as
+long as there is cotton to be had, and then—I trust, for
+your sakes, and mine, and that of humanity at large, that
+it will not be long that I shall have to help you in your
+fight to keep the wolf from the door.’</p>
+
+<p>He stopped, bowed, and was turning away, when they
+gave him a hearty cheer; and one or two voices informed
+him laconically that they ‘reckoned he was one o’ th’ reet
+sort,’ and that ‘he’d suit.’</p>
+
+<p>He jumped down from the lorrie, joined Wilson and his
+friend Hugo, and went with them towards the office. The
+engineer returned to his post; soon the busy machinery was
+in full roar again, as if there had been no such thing as war—no
+such parties as Federals and Confederates. The interruption
+to the morning’s work was already a thing of the
+past—an incident to be talked about.</p>
+
+<p>Myles Heywood maintained entire silence upon the
+subject, nor could any one of all who inquired of him get
+him to say what he thought of the new master. He might
+have deep thoughts about it—at least they were unexpressed.
+The rest of the hands talked the event over with lively
+excitement. The general impression was a favourable one.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">[Pg 115]</span>The men liked what he had said, though he was generally
+pronounced to be a ‘bit too much of a swell,’ and it was
+agreed that he ‘spoke rather fine,’ and, they said, minced
+his words too much; was, in short, rather too much of a
+fine gentleman. Otherwise he was considered sound, and
+they were pleased to find him on the right side in politics.</p>
+
+<p>The women, too, liked him, for reasons apparently similar
+to those alleged by Peter van den Bosch, as their grounds
+for liking Philip van Artevelde,</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘And wenches who were there, said Artevelde</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Was a sweet name, and musical to hear.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Mary Heywood, at least, said she ‘liked the chap: he had
+siccan a soft voice, and a nice, smooth-soundin’ name, like.’</p>
+
+<p>The general conclusion was a very Lancashire one; that the
+young man had spoken well and reasonably; sensibly enough
+for a person who knew nothing about his business, but that
+‘fair words butter no parsnips;’ and the conjecture may
+reasonably be hazarded whether Sebastian’s speech had induced
+any one of his hearers to form a decided opinion,
+good or bad, of him. They waited to see, and indeed the
+time was striding forward with fearful rapidity, nearer and
+nearer, when the sincerity of his profession should be put to
+the proof.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+INITIATION.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Sebastian and Hugo drove away from the factory, accompanied
+by Mr. Sutcliffe, the manager and head man of the
+business. Arrived at the Oakenrod, Mallory and his
+manager retired to the library, and there plunged straight
+into business.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Sutcliffe was a small, mild-looking man, with eyes
+that were keen despite his nervous, almost timid expression,
+a bald head, spectacles, a gentle smile, and a large bundle
+of what he called ‘documents.’</p>
+
+<p>Over these documents he and Sebastian remained absorbed
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[Pg 116]</span>until luncheon was announced. They tarried not
+long over that meal. Hugo von Birkenau appeared to be
+a very familiar friend, for Sebastian made no excuse for
+leaving him, and with a slight apology to his mother he and
+Mr. Sutcliffe returned to the library.</p>
+
+<p>An hour, two, three hours passed, chiefly occupied in
+expositions from Mr. Sutcliffe on the nature of the business,
+its principles, and the method of carrying it on. Sebastian’s
+part consisted chiefly in listening, naturally; but every now
+and then he interposed with a question—questions so much
+to the point, and showing such discernment and discrimination,
+that Mr. Sutcliffe, who had at first begun his task with
+some constraint and great dryness of manner and tone,
+brightened visibly every minute; his tone grew warmer,
+his manner more animated, his eyes flashed now and then.
+Thus the interview went on, until Mr. Sutcliffe, laying down
+a bundle of papers, whose import he had just explained,
+took up another bundle, and was beginning—</p>
+
+<p>‘These refer to the——’</p>
+
+<p>But Sebastian interrupted him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Excuse me, Mr. Sutcliffe. Suppose we lay aside business
+for to-day. I want to ask you some other questions.
+With such a manager as you, I have no fear of things going
+wrong.’</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Sutcliffe smiled.</p>
+
+<p>‘Judging from what I have heard and seen of you, Mr.
+Mallory, you will soon be in a position to manage your own
+business. You must not feel offended when I say that I
+have been most agreeably disappointed—surprised is perhaps
+rather the word.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian smiled a little.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am a fearfully indolent fellow, I believe,’ said he. ‘I
+take a lot of rousing; but once set me to plod at a thing,
+and I continue until I understand it—at least, I think so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is a very modest way of describing your ready
+comprehension of details which must be as strange to you
+as those we have just been discussing. But that’s neither
+here nor there; you wanted some other information?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose you are pretty well acquainted with the different
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[Pg 117]</span>parties, social and political, in the town, and with the
+characters, at any rate, of the leading people?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I may say that I certainly am.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, to begin with, I wish you would tell me candidly
+what character is borne by my own concern and the management
+of it?’</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Sutcliffe looked up quickly, an almost startled
+expression upon his face.</p>
+
+<p>‘That is rather a delicate matter,’ he began.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I suppose it is. But I am sure you will be frank
+with me. I drew my own conclusions from what I saw and
+heard this morning, and I want to find out if your account
+agrees with them. Never mind how disagreeable it may be.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Your works, then, bear a very high reputation in many
+respects. Your hands are as decent and as steady a lot as
+any in the town, take them all in all. Things are generally
+peaceable. It is looked upon, and with justice, as an
+increasing, thoroughly prosperous concern. Our goods,
+both yarns and cloth, have got a name. I like the men
+who are under me, and I think they like me—Wilson, and
+Heywood, and the others. I think I have succeeded in
+keeping things right; but——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well?’</p>
+
+<p>‘There are some misunderstandings about yourself—some
+prejudices. They don’t like absentee owners here, and
+that’s a fact. But I’m sure that impression will soon be
+effaced, now that you are here yourself. If you show them
+that you don’t mean play——’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian shrugged his shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Mon Dieu!</i> There does not seem to be much question
+of play. I never saw anything so oppressively in earnest as
+every one here seems to be. It is stamped upon almost
+every face you meet. Certainly I am not in play.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then they will soon find that out, and respect you
+accordingly.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But that is not all you were going to say?’</p>
+
+<p>‘It may seem a small kind of complaint to make; but
+it’s better to let you know the truth at once. There certainly
+is a feeling against Mrs. Mallory.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[Pg 118]</span></p>
+<p>Sebastian looked up in surprise.</p>
+
+<p>‘Against my mother? What has she to do with it?’</p>
+
+<p>‘A feeling that she is not sufficiently liberal in her ideas,
+and that she would, if she could get the authority, interfere
+unduly in matters which, with the utmost respect to her,
+she does not understand, never having had occasion to
+study them. I am bound to say that, though I have never
+had anything like a dispute with Mrs. Mallory, yet that is
+my own impression too, and that is one reason why I rejoice
+at your return. You are now the final authority.’</p>
+
+<p>The murder was out, and Mr. Sutcliffe’s shrewd eyes
+watched the young man’s face attentively. He did not
+look angry, did not look even annoyed, but rather thoughtful
+for a moment. Then he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad you mentioned it. Of course that is not a
+topic for discussion. As you said, my presence will make
+all the difference. Is that all about my own works?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. I don’t think there is anything else.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Who are the leading men here?’</p>
+
+<p>‘So far as money goes, there are a good many big men
+here. Mr. Spenceley is reported to be the richest, and I
+believe report is right.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Spenceley! Ah! What about him?’</p>
+
+<p>‘He is a spinner; does an enormous trade. They say
+he has been speculating rather too much lately. He has a
+certain influence in some quarters, but it is an influence
+that will die with him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How so?’</p>
+
+<p>‘He has only a son and a daughter, and the son is probably
+the biggest blackguard in the place; he will never
+have any influence. The daughter, I hear, is rather an
+eccentric young lady.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh!’ was all Sebastian said.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Sutcliffe went on,</p>
+
+<p>‘The son I believe, is a very black sheep. It was only
+a week or two ago that he insulted some young woman—in a
+small place, you see, these things make a good deal of noise—in
+a most abominable manner; but he was punished for that,
+for the girl’s sweetheart—at least that is one of the tales, I
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[Pg 119]</span>don’t believe it myself; but one thing is quite certain, a
+young working-man followed him to his club that very night,
+and gave him a good hiding in the billiard-room. No
+one, I don’t think one soul, was sorry for him. The feeling
+was so dead against him that he did not even prosecute.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I have heard some account of it. But don’t you know
+who the young man was who did it?’</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Sutcliffe smiled a little as he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘In my own mind, I believe I could lay my finger upon
+the man; but as I thoroughly respect him for what he did,
+and should be sorry to get him into trouble, I shall keep
+quiet about it.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian looked inquiringly at him.</p>
+
+<p>‘I believe the man was one of your own work-people—Heywood,
+a fellow I have known from the time when he
+first came as a half-timer.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I have seen the man. You think it was he. Why?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Partly because I was passing the club-door at the very
+time of the row, and saw him come out of it, looking rather
+dangerous, with a couple of straps in his hand; and,
+secondly, because when it has been discussed, which you
+will easily believe has been pretty actively, he has looked
+embarrassed, and kept perfect silence upon the subject.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian nodded.</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Spenceley is a great friend of Mrs. Mallory,’ went
+on the manager. ‘But that’s neither here nor there; only
+they are about the biggest people, in a money point of view,
+in the place. There are several other families something
+like them. Then there’s Canon Ponsonby, the radical
+parson, our vicar, a very fine old gentleman; you will like
+him. He is respected by all who are themselves worthy of
+respect, be they Churchmen or dissenters.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Naturally the feeling here is radical?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Tremendous; and North, almost to a man. Lots of
+these working-men know what’s coming; and it <i>is</i> coming
+upon them too, like the very devil. They’ll tell you they
+know the cotton must run out soon, or run up to such a
+price that we can hardly get it. But if they have to do
+without it, or with Surats——’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[Pg 120]</span></p>
+<p>‘What on earth is “Surats”?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Indian cotton; abominable stuff to work. Haven’t you—but
+of course you haven’t—heard of the weaver who put
+up the prayer, “O Lord! send us cotton; <i>but not Surats</i>!”
+But if they have to work Surats, they’ll stick to it that North
+is right, and South wrong; and they’ll clem rather than
+have anything to say to Jeff Davis.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How soon do you think distress will begin?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think we shall have to shut up shop by Christmas.
+It’s of no use talking much about it beforehand. All I can
+say is, there’s a time coming which will prove Lancashire
+once for all, her rich and her poor alike; and show them up
+to the world in a light as fierce as that of the midday sun.
+We shall get to see the stuff we’re made of. And there’s
+half-past five; I must go.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Won’t you stay and dine with us?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I have another engagement, thank you. To-morrow, at
+the same time, Mr. Mallory, we will resume the discussion,
+if you feel so inclined.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Certainly. I shall expect you. Good evening.’</p>
+
+<p>He was left, leaning against the mantelpiece, to reflect
+upon what had passed.</p>
+
+<p>A tap at the door was followed by the entrance of his
+mother.</p>
+
+<p>‘Have you finished at last, Sebastian? I have had no
+opportunity to tell you that I am expecting a friend to dine
+with us to-night.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, are you? Who may he be?’</p>
+
+<p>‘She is Helena Spenceley, a very great favourite of mine.
+If my son will spend all his time away from home, I am
+obliged to find some kind of a substitute, you know. She
+has been almost like a daughter to me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Any relative of the young man who recently distinguished
+himself by earning a thrashing?’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory looked annoyed.</p>
+
+<p>‘He is her brother,’ said she coldly. ‘He is away from
+home now. You must not judge Helena by him. Poor girl!
+She has a sad, unhappy home. I believe I really have been
+a friend to her. And I like to see young people about me.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[Pg 121]</span></p>
+<p>‘Yes, of course.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I hope you have no engagement?’</p>
+
+<p>‘None at all. I shall be delighted to make Miss
+Spenceley’s acquaintance.’</p>
+
+<p>She retired, after casting a comprehensive glance around
+at the papers which strewed the table.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+THE TWO RADICALS.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory came into her drawing-room twenty minutes
+before the dinner-hour, and found her son already there,
+alone, already dressed, and stretched, in an attitude of
+extreme laziness, in an arm-chair by the fire.</p>
+
+<p>There was likeness between the mother and son—strong
+likeness; and there was also, what most people forget in
+comparing relations with one another, strong unlikeness.
+Mrs. Mallory was an elegant-looking and a young-looking
+woman. She had an impassive, pale face, with thin lips
+and a high nose; pale, flaxen hair, without a grey streak
+in its glossy abundance; and the elegant trifle of lace and
+feathers which she wore upon it made her look still younger
+and handsomer. She was dressed in pale lavender silk and
+white lace, and she looked a very handsome, prosperous
+person, as she came in, casting a glance at Sebastian—a
+sharp, keen, calculating glance. Mrs. Mallory loved power,
+and had long exercised it; she did not realise that her son
+had grown from a boy into a man since she had known
+him. She had the lowest possible opinion of the natural
+penetration of men; and circumstances had fostered that
+impression. There is a great deal in having once lived for
+a term of years in close intercourse with a person very
+decidedly one’s inferior in intellect, as in the case of Mrs.
+Mallory and her late husband. There is nothing like it for
+giving one an overweening idea of one’s own capacities, and
+for fostering an attitude of contemptuous tolerance towards
+the opinions of every one else. Mrs. Mallory’s experience
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[Pg 122]</span>of her husband had entailed, as one of its indirect sequences,
+that she was completely deceived now by the lazy, languid
+manner of her son. In this most agreeable of convictions,
+that of mental supremacy over the rest of the company, let
+her tranquilly abide, until her hour of disillusion arrives.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mother, it is too absurd that I should have to go about
+representing myself as your son! Couldn’t you pass as my
+sister?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Nonsense! Where is your friend?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Dressing, I suppose. He was greatly excited at hearing
+that a young lady was expected to dine with us.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory had some remarks to make <i>à propos</i> of the
+young lady, but she deferred them for a moment in order
+to inquire,</p>
+
+<p>‘What have you been doing all day?’</p>
+
+<p>And she placed herself in an easy-chair opposite to his,
+and held a feathery screen between her face and the fire.</p>
+
+<p>‘I have been, like a good little boy, attending to my
+lessons,’ said her son, lazily.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, don’t speak in parables! I have forgotten how.
+In this dreadful place every one says the most disagreeable
+things they can think of, in the most disagreeable way they
+can think of, and then call it being honest and candid.
+And if you can contrive to drop a few h’s, and speak in a
+broad Lancashire dialect at the same time, you are thought
+very honest and candid indeed. I detest the place!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you really, mother? I wonder you have remained
+here so long.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I have tried to do my duty, Sebastian, to you and your
+property. A woman must make up her mind to sacrifice
+herself—a mother above all others.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am infinitely obliged to you, mother, but I trust that
+now you will have a long and complete rest. I am going
+to learn my business——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Very proper, but I think it will take you some time.
+With your habits, I am afraid you will find it a frightful bore.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you know my habits, mother?’ he inquired in the
+very quietest of voices.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory looked at him in some surprise. As a
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[Pg 123]</span>matter of fact, she did not know his habits in the very least.
+But, looking at him as he lounged in his easy-chair, with
+the newspaper across his knees, she said within herself, and
+prided herself upon her discernment,</p>
+
+<p>‘His father all over: weak and idle, though he has more
+surface quickness. I don’t think I shall have much trouble
+with him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘At least I know, dear, that your habits have not been
+those of Thanshope business men. But I suppose your
+first object will be to go over the works and see your people?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I have been over the works, and have seen my people,
+and spoken to them.’</p>
+
+<p>‘When—why did you not tell me?’ she asked vivaciously,
+and with no little vexation. ‘You should not be so impetuous,
+Sebastian.’</p>
+
+<p>He laughed.</p>
+
+<p>‘The first time I was ever accused of impetuousness.
+It shows indeed that you don’t know my habits.’</p>
+
+<p>This was annoying, though it was impossible to complain
+about it.</p>
+
+<p>‘These people will not bear to be treated unceremoniously,
+though they are such bears themselves.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am not aware that I did treat them unceremoniously.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What did you say to them?’ she asked, curiosity getting
+the better of vexation. ‘I wish you had not been so hasty.
+A speech of that kind requires both consideration and
+careful management I hope you did not commit yourself.
+They are such frightful people for taking up one’s most
+innocent remarks and construing them into something quite
+different from what one intended.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory spoke feelingly, as if from experience.</p>
+
+<p>‘Are they? Well, I don’t know that I committed myself
+to anything from which I should wish to back out later.
+Indeed, I am not a fellow who is given to backing out of
+his promises—but then I make so few,’ he added, thoughtfully.
+‘I simply told them I was afraid there were bad
+times coming, and that we must stand by each other in
+them. And I said a few words on politics.’</p>
+
+<p>‘My dear boy! how foolish! Excuse me, but it was.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[Pg 124]</span>They are rabid Radicals, and have a prejudice against
+you already—one of their horrid, narrow-minded prejudices,
+and to mention that you were a Conservative would certainly
+not improve your situation.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian looked a little surprised.</p>
+
+<p>‘How odd it is! Why should I tell them I was a Conservative
+when I am a Radical? I spoke the truth of course.’</p>
+
+<p>Not Mrs. Transome herself could have been more horrified
+at Harold’s declaration of his views than was Mrs. Mallory
+at this avowal by her son. She forgot to shade that
+complexion, which was not as the complexions of other
+women of six-and-forty. She laid her screen down, sat bolt
+upright, without the pretence of any amiability in her expression,
+and said sharply,</p>
+
+<p>‘You ought to be ashamed of yourself!’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am truly sorry that I cannot oblige you by feeling so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You have no respect for your father, or your grandfather—for
+any of your forefathers,’ said she, sullenly. ‘Every
+man here who can boast of a grandfather, much more a man
+of good old family like yours, ought to be a Conservative
+out of pure self-respect. No! You have no respect for
+your ancestors or for yourself.’</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Mon Dieu!</i> I think I have as much respect for them as
+they deserve. Do you think ancestors are really of much
+use? But at least I have more respect for their memories
+than to imagine that they would wish me simply to sit down
+and hobnob with the first opinions that happened to be
+offered to me. Since I have inherited my name and my
+tendencies of mind from them, I must also have inherited
+my brains and my reasoning powers from them. I have an
+inquiring mind, a thing, my dear mother, which is not
+spontaneously generated, but developed.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is wicked nonsense, Sebastian. I won’t allow it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But you will allow me to explain my opinions to you,
+I am sure. That is always better, and saves so many misunderstandings.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I see without explanation that you are a renegade to
+your fathers, and have degraded yourself to the level of
+these horrid, insolent Radicals; yes, to the level of these
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[Pg 125]</span>grasping, dirty, presuming work-people. I hate them,
+Sebastian; I cannot tell you how I hate all Radicals. How
+can you refuse any of the demands of these odious people
+now, professing, as you do, their own opinions?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t know what their opinions may be, I am sure.
+Probably not at all the same as mine. But I was going to
+mention that, in my quite early youth, I once read a little
+sentence which made a deep impression upon my mind.
+It ran thus: “Those who believe that heaven is what earth
+has been—a monopoly in the hands of a favoured few,
+would do well to reconsider their opinion; if they find that
+it came from their priest or their grandmother, they could
+not do better than reject it.”’</p>
+
+<p>‘I call that impiety,’ said she, her lips tightening.</p>
+
+<p>‘Allow me to finish,’ said he, courteously. ‘I read between
+the lines of that little remark, and applied the principle
+contained in it to a great many other things beside those
+mentioned in the text; and the result of my continued use
+of that principle, as a test of institutions, opinions, and
+customs, has been that I am a Radical.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is an odious and an impious principle,’ said Mrs.
+Mallory, with cold and bitter anger in her voice, ‘and it is a
+principle to which I will never give my countenance.’</p>
+
+<p>The shock had been not a small one of finding that
+Sebastian called himself by the name she hated, as the
+formula of the sum of the opinions of Thanshope—Radical.
+But a yet greater shock was that of finding, that though he
+seemed so soft and pliable, spoke so indifferently, smiled so
+languidly, yet that she could no more bend him, nor apparently
+impress him, than she could stem the incoming
+tide of the ocean.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian had risen, and was standing by the mantelpiece.
+Mrs. Mallory glanced at him once, sideways, and caught his
+eye. That was annoying in itself: it vexed and angered
+her because he was smiling.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am sorry you don’t like it, mother,’ he said quite pleasantly
+and cheerfully, but not in the least apologetically;
+‘and yet, do you know, considering the letters you have had
+from me, and my perfect frankness as to the society I have
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[Pg 126]</span>most sought and enjoyed, I think you might have been prepared
+for it, even if I never explicitly stated my convictions.’</p>
+
+<p>This was also true. He had a most annoying way of
+being in the right.</p>
+
+<p>‘Convictions? Oh, I dislike that talk about convictions.
+When people want to annoy their best friends, they call
+their conduct the result of convictions.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The impertinence of circumstances is certainly very
+great sometimes,’ assented Sebastian, leaning against the
+mantelpiece, and she, as she tapped her foot impatiently
+upon the floor, would hardly have been flattered to find that
+he was thinking:</p>
+
+<p>‘I must let her rail against it until it begins to be tiresome—perhaps
+she may see the wisdom of stopping before
+then. I suppose one must make allowances for the disappointment
+of a woman whose prejudices (or convictions?)
+have been offended; but it would be wasting words to
+reason with her about it, and soon, I suppose, she will learn
+to accept the circumstances and make the best of it.’</p>
+
+<p>He had no wish or intention of being disrespectful.
+Simply, he had ‘beaten his music out’ with more difficulty
+than any one knew, save himself, and was mildly surprised
+to find that the resulting harmony, which sounded not ill in
+his own ears, should cause his mother such shuddering,
+should fall so discordantly upon her perceptions. He had
+no more idea of interrupting the flow of that harmony than
+he had of sharing his ample estate with all the paupers in
+Thanshope.</p>
+
+<p>Fortunately, at this juncture, Hugo came into the room, his
+odd, original young face looking still more peculiar in contrast
+with his careful evening dress, and before many words had
+been exchanged ‘Miss Spenceley’ was announced.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian turned, with the story of Frederick Spenceley
+and his already conceived contempt for him strong in his
+mind, to confront Frederick Spenceley’s sister. His glance
+softened as it fell upon the girl advancing towards his mother.</p>
+
+<p>Had he wandered through all the cities of Europe and
+seen their lovely women, in order to come home and find
+in a provincial manufacturing town a daughter of the people
+more beautiful than any of them?</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[Pg 127]</span></p>
+<p>‘Helena, my love, let me introduce my son, who has
+arrived sooner than I expected. Sebastian, Miss Spenceley.’</p>
+
+<p>A profound bow on his part, and a rather careless, not
+very sophisticated inclination of her beautiful head on hers,
+was the result of these phrases of politeness.</p>
+
+<p>‘My son’s friend, Mr. von Birkenau,’ was then introduced,
+and received the same notice exactly, a notice graceful and
+even dignified, because she could not help all her movements
+being graceful and dignified.</p>
+
+<p>‘Like my daughter,’ Mrs. Mallory had said, and as she
+spoke to Helena Spenceley her voice assuredly took a
+tender accent; she glanced over the young lady’s costly
+dress, and smoothed down a lace ruffle with the affectionate
+familiarity of a very intimate friend or much-loved
+relative.</p>
+
+<p>Miss Spenceley remained standing on the hearthrug,
+talking to Mrs. Mallory—a lovely, noble figure, tall, slim,
+and shapely, with the exquisite elasticity of perfect health
+in every line.</p>
+
+<p>‘Splendid!’ said Sebastian, in his own mind; and splendid
+expressed her appearance and her character both. From
+her great dark, soft eyes, her dusky hair, in its delicate
+unruly little rings and tendrils, her ripe red lips, set in a
+delicious curve of mirth, frankness, and wilfulness, down to
+her rich dress and sparkling rings, she was all splendid,
+without being in the least vulgar.</p>
+
+<p>‘Dear child, what a long time it is since I saw you!’ said
+Mrs. Mallory.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. I have been busy. How nice this fire is, Mrs.
+Mallory. I do believe we have not had one at our house
+yet. Perhaps it is lighted on your behalf?’ she added,
+turning to Sebastian with a somewhat malicious smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mine? Not so far as I am aware. What makes you
+think so?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You have been living in warm countries lately, and
+Thanshope is not a warm place, but one of those towns
+where we have to use a lot of coals to make up for the
+want of sunshine!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, indeed!’ said Mrs. Mallory, shivering.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[Pg 128]</span></p>
+<p>‘I have not had time to miss the sunshine, or to enjoy
+it, if there had been any, since I came,’ said Sebastian, his
+glance dwelling almost involuntarily upon her as she stood
+there, her eyes flashing back the firelight, and looking herself
+(he thought) like some bright living flame, or some
+tropical flower.</p>
+
+<p>He could not understand her. There was nothing vulgar
+about her; her voice was pleasant and, though distinctly
+northern in its clear accent, was not in the least uneducated
+in its pronunciation of words; she had ease, grace, self-possession
+of carriage; apparently she was devoid altogether
+of self-consciousness; all of which things were surely signs
+of good breeding; and yet she was not in the least like the
+many well-bred girls whom he had met in society up and
+down the world—in Paris, Vienna, Berlin, and other places.
+He wondered what she could talk about, and whether she
+talked well.</p>
+
+<p>Dinner was announced, and he led her into the dining-room.
+Hugo von Birkenau was talking with much animation
+to Mrs. Mallory, as was his wont, though she did not
+appear to find him a very interesting companion.</p>
+
+<p>Helena Spenceley, suddenly turning to Sebastian, said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I know quite well where you have been. I have
+followed your course with the greatest interest Mrs.
+Mallory used always to tell me where you went, and sometimes
+read me bits of your letters.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Did she? I wish I had known.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you? Why?’ she asked, looking at him with a
+certain bright attentiveness, and waiting with evident interest
+for his answer.</p>
+
+<p>Certainly she was not like other girls. Another girl
+would have known directly that he meant a kind of vague
+compliment by his aimless phrase; but she said ‘Why?’</p>
+
+<p>‘If I had known, perhaps I might have written rather
+more carefully considered epistles to my mother,’ he said,
+and felt that it was, and sounded, a lame reply.</p>
+
+<p>‘That would have been a pity, for the sake of a person
+you had never seen and did not know,’ she said, the smile
+fading from her face.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[Pg 129]</span></p>
+<p>Sebastian felt he had made a bad beginning. It began
+to be rather dreadful, when she went on quite seriously,</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you mean that if you had thought your letters were
+read aloud you would have made them into set compositions
+to please an audience?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think it is a matter of no importance whatever.
+Letter-writing is not my <i>forte</i>. I am too lazy.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, they were very interesting letters,’ said Helena,
+naïvely. ‘But how can you talk about being lazy! If
+only I had had such chances!’ She shook her head.</p>
+
+<p>‘I should think you had the chance of doing whatever
+you pleased,’ he said, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>Helena did not respond to the smile. Her face, intensely
+expressive, darkened visibly. Her eyes sank.</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ said she, coldly. ‘You are quite mistaken. Whatever
+pleasures and enjoyments I have had in my life have
+been procured for me by the kindness of Mrs. Mallory.
+She has been so good to me!’ She looked at him with
+eyes tragic in the earnestness of their expression.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian, glancing down the table, saw that Hugo’s eyes
+were fixed upon her in a perfect trance of admiration.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then you have never been abroad?’ said he.</p>
+
+<p>‘I—no! I have been nowhere except to London once
+or twice—oh, and to Brighton with Mrs. Mallory. I don’t
+want to go anywhere.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are such a home-bird?’</p>
+
+<p>He saw immediately that he had asked an unfortunate
+question. The blood rushed over her face as she replied,
+again coldly,</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh no! I think all that stuff about “home, sweet
+home,” and that, is the most wearisome nonsense imaginable.
+I hate it.... Did you study the position of women at all
+when you were abroad?’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian looked at her. She was perfectly grave,
+serious, and judicial. The ‘Woman Question’ had not
+been forced so far to the front in 1861 as in 1878, and
+Sebastian was proportionately surprised to hear that question
+from so young, rich, and beautiful a woman as Helena
+Spenceley.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[Pg 130]</span></p>
+<p>‘I’m afraid I was rather remiss in that respect. But one
+sees their position without studying it, I think.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And what do you think about it? Is it what it ought
+to be? But that is a foolish question. It is not what it
+ought to be, anywhere. It never will be what it ought to
+be, until women themselves rise and refuse any longer to
+submit to their own degradation. Don’t you think so?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Really I am afraid I have not thought much at all upon
+the question.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose the idea has not yet penetrated to France and
+Germany. It will have to come, though, sooner or later.
+The German woman, for instance—is she in bonds, or
+emancipated?’</p>
+
+<p>‘As how?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is the German woman the slave of the German man, or
+has she a position of her own?’</p>
+
+<p>A malign spirit took possession of Sebastian. Mrs.
+Mallory and Hugo were both listening to the discussion, Mrs.
+Mallory with a shade of anxiety on her face. Sebastian,
+after a pause, as if he were profoundly considering the
+question, said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I should say that she combined both those conditions—that
+she was very decidedly the slave of the German man,
+and at the same time had a distinct position of her own.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Really! I wish I had brought my note-book. Pray explain!’</p>
+
+<p>‘The German woman’s thoughts are, if I may use such
+an expression, directed manwards, <i>Mann</i> being, you know,
+her word for husband. Her thoughts, then, are directed
+<i>Mann</i>-wards from her earliest youth—from the time when
+she begins to go to school....’</p>
+
+<p>‘Horrible!’ said Helena, her eyes fixed in grave earnest
+upon his face, so that his gravity was sorely tried. ‘Horrible!
+Well?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t know how much or how little true the report maybe
+about her beginning in early youth to prepare her trousseau.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Disgusting!’</p>
+
+<p>‘But she hears all around her and all her life long conversations
+on the subject of matrimony.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[Pg 131]</span></p>
+<p>‘The end and aim of her existence, poor thing!’ said
+Helena, with a pitying smile. ‘Go on! you have studied the
+subject almost unconsciously, as every thinking man must.’</p>
+
+<p>‘If she reaches the age of one-and-twenty, unmarried, she
+begins to wonder what the reason can be of such a thing,
+and her friends, too, begin to speculate about it....’</p>
+
+<p>‘Naturally!’ said Helena, her eyes flashing and her colour
+rising, while Hugo looked preternaturally solemn, except for
+a gleam in the depths of his eyes, and Mrs. Mallory’s face
+wore a puzzled expression. ‘Naturally—she is sold, disposed
+of before her reasoning powers are developed. It is very
+deplorable. Well?’</p>
+
+<p>‘But very generally she is married at or before that age,
+and then——’</p>
+
+<p>‘And <i>then</i>?’ echoed Helena, waving away the butler’s
+offer of wine and leaning eagerly towards Sebastian. ‘And
+then—what is her life afterwards, Mr. Mallory? Tell me
+that!’</p>
+
+<p>‘A long course of bondage to husband, children, domestic
+affairs, and social exactions.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Hideous!’ murmured Helena. ‘What a sad, sad fate!
+Did you not burn with indignation every time you witnessed
+it?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I—I——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! you did, I know, or you could not have described
+it so graphically. And now you will consider the subject, I
+don’t doubt, and you will see it in its true light. But you
+said the German women had also a distinct position of their
+own. How do you account for that?’</p>
+
+<p>‘They have. The very fact of their bondage gives them
+a sort of distinguishing rank. They have been accustomed
+to it for so long, that now they glory in it. If you were to
+attempt to inspire them with your enlightened notions, they
+would probably scoff at you; you would appear as dark to
+them as they to you.’</p>
+
+<p>Helena looked at him with such intense earnestness and
+expressiveness, that Sebastian began to feel somewhat embarrassed.</p>
+
+<p>‘What an odd girl she is!’ he thought. ‘And how, in
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[Pg 132]</span>Heaven’s name, shall I get out of this mess that I have got
+into? I can’t let her go without offering some explanation.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You grieve me,’ said Helena, in a sorrowful voice. ‘I
+had no idea it was so bad as that.’</p>
+
+<p>Here Mrs. Mallory rose in a dignified though perplexed
+silence, and they all went into the drawing-room.</p>
+
+<p>Arrived there, Sebastian, as in duty bound, asked Helena
+to play.</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t play at all,’ said she. ‘I can’t waste my time
+upon practising.’</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Waste</i> your time upon music?’ he asked, wondering
+whether that were one of the strong-minded female ideas too.</p>
+
+<p>‘I have not the power of interpreting music; it would be
+vanity and vexation. So I never try. I can just accompany
+myself in one or two little songs; that is all.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then you will gratify us by singing one of the said little
+songs, I am sure.’</p>
+
+<p>Helena went to the piano, sat down, and began to play an
+introduction. Sebastian looked at Hugo, with ever so slight
+a shrug, and they waited. It was ‘Kathleen Mavourneen.’
+But the faces of the two critics changed gradually from an
+expression of painful doubt and suspense, to pleased surprise,
+pleasure, and a broad smile of delight. A pure, strong, fresh,
+sweet soprano voice rang out. There was no attempt at airs
+and graces; the severest simplicity and the most unaffected
+tenderness sounded in every one of the true, clear notes.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory watched her son covertly, but intently, and
+saw that Helena’s music had power to move him. The
+languor disappeared from his expression; his head was
+raised, and his lips parted. Song and songstress engrossed
+his attention.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory’s countenance gradually cleared.</p>
+
+<p>As Helena finished, both Hugo and Sebastian sprang
+forward, with thanks and entreaties for something else.</p>
+
+<p>She paused a moment, and then sang:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Since first I saw your face, I resolved</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">To honour and renown ye;</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">If now I be disdained, I wish</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">My heart had never known ye!</div></div>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[Pg 133]</span></p>
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘What! I that loved, and you that liked,</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">Shall <i>we</i> begin to wrangle?</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">No, no, no, my heart is fast,</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">And cannot disentangle.</div></div>
+
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘The sun, whose beams most glorious are,</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">Rejecteth no beholder;</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">And your sweet beauty, past compare,</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">Makes my poor eyes the bolder.</div></div>
+
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Where beauty moves, and wit delights,</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">And ties of kindness bind me,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">There, oh! there, where’er I go,</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">I leave my heart behind me.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>It is a sweet, tender, quaint old song, and Helena sang
+it almost perfectly. She rose when she had finished, and,
+looking at Hugo, asked him if he did not play.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said the boy, flushing; ‘but after your voice——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t refuse, Hugo,’ put in Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>And Hugo seated himself and began to play German
+music—deep, strange, and expressive, <i>con amore</i>.</p>
+
+<p>‘But he is a musician—he must be!’ said Helena, turning,
+with wide-open eyes, to Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘Most certainly he is. I believe he has it in him to
+make a great name as a composer.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How delightful to have a talent, a genius, that gives
+pleasure to yourself and every one else! Is he a very great
+friend of yours?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; he is my ward. I have been his guardian now
+for four years.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! if he can compose, he has a life before him—a
+career!’ sighed Helena; and her eyes looked dreamingly
+and longingly before her.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian felt strangely attracted to the girl, but as yet
+he felt he knew her too little to know whether he should
+even like her. The explanation he had to make would serve
+to bring out some fresh point in her character.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory was knitting fleecy-white wool by the fireside,
+and seemed able to give up Helena’s society on this
+occasion. Hugo’s fingers wandered on in one melody after
+another—melodies like those which Adrienne Blisset’s
+fingers most readily wove.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[Pg 134]</span></p>
+<p>Helena herself gave Sebastian the opportunity he wished
+for.</p>
+
+<p>‘About the German women and their position?’ she began.</p>
+
+<p>He laughed a little.</p>
+
+<p>‘I had no idea you were so much in earnest,’ said he.
+‘It was a joke.’</p>
+
+<p>‘A joke!’</p>
+
+<p>She turned to him in amaze.</p>
+
+<p>‘In this way. What I said was quite true—that <i>is</i> the
+the position of the German women; but—but—I thought
+you would see it—isn’t it the position of all civilised women?
+Are not Englishwomen in the same case? I am sure I
+think so. I don’t see how any woman who marries can
+expect anything else.’</p>
+
+<p>The colour rushed in an angry flood over her cheek, and
+brow, and throat, as she realised that he had been politely
+making merriment of the subject, and that the very point
+of the joke lay in her having taken it all as solemn, thoughtful
+earnest.</p>
+
+<p>‘You were making fun of me and of the cause: that was
+very polite of you!’ she said, her eyes flashing upon him in
+anger.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am very sorry,’ he said, with a provoking smile. ‘I
+was only describing the position of women in general in a
+picturesque manner. It depends upon the feelings of the
+speaker as to the colouring he gives to his descriptions.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I see,’ said Helena, ‘you are just like any other selfish,
+unthinking man—not in earnest. But I am! I think that
+cause is worthy the devotion of a woman’s life; and it is
+what I intend to devote my life to.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t!’ said Sebastian, involuntarily.</p>
+
+<p>But Helena had been roused to real anger.</p>
+
+<p>‘Compliments and pretty phrases are all we ever get
+from men on that subject,’ she said. ‘All my life I have
+been sure it was women alone who must work their own
+emancipation; and after what you have said to-night, I am
+doubly sure of it. Oh! it is horrible to think that a woman
+is not even allowed to have a serious thought upon her own
+condition; or if she says she has to a man, he laughs at
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[Pg 135]</span>her! There is one consolation—the laugh dishonours him,
+not her.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But, my dear Miss Spenceley, do let me explain. Do
+you think you really have had any experience in such things?
+Many most accomplished women think quite differently;
+the nicest girl I ever knew—I mean the cleverest and best-informed
+young lady I ever knew—thought very differently.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps that was one reason why you thought her so
+nice. I am sure she had not been brought up in the school
+of adversity and experience.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Pardon me! She had been brought up in that school
+alone, and in no other. I fancy she had attended more of
+its classes than you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t see how you can know what school I have attended,’
+said Helena, the same sudden, cold, sharp look
+coming into her eyes and over her face. ‘And I do not think
+much of any woman who is indifferent upon that subject.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I did not say she was indifferent,’ said Sebastian; and
+Helena, looking at him, saw that he was, in imagination, in
+some very different place from his mother’s drawing-room:
+perhaps thinking of ‘the nicest girl I ever knew.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t you think,’ said he, breaking the angry silence
+which on her part had supervened, ‘that the best way of
+securing your ends would be for men and women to work
+together, and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t believe in men’s help in that matter. They are
+too thoroughly and naturally selfish ever to give real help in
+such a cause.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Without help you can do nothing,’ he said composedly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Can we not?’ she replied, setting her lips.</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t think that any number of women agitating, and
+making speeches, will answer the purpose. The sort of
+help I mean is such as would be given by, for instance,
+husband and wife practically showing how much they had
+the subject at heart, by working together and giving in their
+lives a specimen of their doctrines. It is not a question
+that will ever be settled by public meetings and petitions.
+It must grow and evolve, as other social conditions evolve—gradually!’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[Pg 136]</span></p>
+<p>‘Husband and wife!’ said Helena, with a sneer—a sneer
+so bitter and unmistakable as to startle him. ‘That is a
+relation I have put entirely out of my calculations in this
+matter. I don’t believe in the existence of husbands who
+will give up, and help their wives. I have been able to
+study the subject remarkably well....’</p>
+
+<p>(‘Mr. Spenceley sits upon Mrs. Spenceley, and the redoubtable
+Frederick sits upon them all,’ thought Sebastian.)</p>
+
+<p>‘And the women who wish to improve their condition
+must put all such foolish ideas aside, and feel, as I do, that
+they can never be tempted into accepting any such delusory
+fancies.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You feel that?’ he said, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I do—to the bottom of my heart.’</p>
+
+<p>Helena spoke with emphasis; her eyes flashing, her
+cheek flushing. She was very handsome; she was more,
+splendidly beautiful; ‘but how untrained, how unreasonable,’
+thought Sebastian. ‘How different this heat and
+prejudice from the calm, well-balanced judgment, the clear,
+philosophical mind, of that other girl, scarcely older than
+herself. This raging against the weakness and selfishness
+of men was very short-sighted, and rather vulgar, was it
+not?’ All he said, however, was,</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad you feel so independent. It must give you
+a sense of superiority.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I never think about such things. I call it vanity to be
+always wondering whether you are superior to other people.’</p>
+
+<p>She rose and went across the room to talk to Mrs. Mallory.
+Very soon she was discussing the merits of a new knitting-pattern,
+just as if no such thing as women’s rights had ever
+been heard of.</p>
+
+<p>When she had gone, and Hugo had retired, after fervently
+expressing his opinion that she was the loveliest, most fascinating,
+<i>schönste, herrlichste</i> person he had ever seen, Mrs.
+Mallory introduced her intended remarks upon her favourite.
+Did not Sebastian think her very lovely? Yes; she certainly
+was an exquisitely beautiful girl. And intelligent, too?
+Undoubtedly; but there was a certain sameness about her
+animation. She seemed to rave a good deal upon one subject.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[Pg 137]</span></p>
+<p>‘If you knew her surroundings, Sebastian, you would not
+be surprised, I assure you. Such a brother! With her
+high spirit, and rather strained ideas as to what is honourable
+and gentlemanly, it must be a bitter cross to her to
+have that brother constantly disgracing himself in one way
+or another.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, that is true.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And her father and mother too——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ha! what about them?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Her mother is a mere cipher—a handsome, helpless,
+vulgar woman; kind-hearted, but absolutely weak in intellect,
+and the father is a hard, coarse man, who bullies that unfortunate
+woman in a disgraceful manner. He is proud of
+his daughter, but in a tyrannical, despotic way. Fortunately
+for her (I may say it without boasting), he thinks me the
+best friend she could have, and places no restraint on her
+visits to me. Otherwise, she has not a congenial companion.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The benefit must have been immense to her,’ he said.
+‘I wondered, after all I had heard of her family, how she
+came to be even so—well-behaved.’</p>
+
+<p>‘She ought to marry soon. She would soon calm down
+if she had a kind husband, whom she loved.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian remarked drily that she had forcibly expressed
+her determination to eschew any such relationship.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory shook her head, smiling with gentle pity.</p>
+
+<p>‘So she may say, but her father has very different views
+for her. She would be very helpless, cast upon the world,
+with her beauty, her hasty disposition, and her large fortune.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Has she a fortune, then?’ he asked, with provoking
+indifference.</p>
+
+<p>‘Sebastian, that young, warm-hearted girl, with all her enthusiasms
+and crotchets, ready to fall into the hands of any
+adventurer, will have at least a hundred thousand pounds.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory spoke with solemn, impressive manner and
+tones. She was watching her son, who seemed to view the
+matter with a seriousness that promised well, for he stood,
+his hands folded behind him, his eyes fixed upon the carpet,
+profoundly silent and profoundly grave, till, looking up
+with a sudden, humorous smile, he said,</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[Pg 138]</span></p>
+<p>‘<i>Ma foi!</i> The adventurer who won her, and her hundred
+thousand pounds, and her frantic ideas on women’s
+rights, and the execrations of all the other adventurers who
+had tried, and failed to win her—and her family, who
+must be most delightful people, I am sure—that adventurer
+would have driven the very hardest bargain that could well
+be imagined. I pity him, whoever he may be.... Good
+night, mother. You must excuse me; I have several things
+to do to-night. I have my business to learn, you know.’</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph4">
+‘“Do so,” said Socrates; “here is room by me.”
+<br>
+‘“Oh, Jupiter!” exclaimed Alcibiades, “what I endure from that
+man! He thinks to subdue every way.”’
+</p>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>In a week from that time the master’s face was beginning
+to be familiar to his work-people; and his business and its
+details were beginning to be a little less strange to him.
+Whatever Sebastian thought, felt, or endured, in the change
+so complete and entire, of habits, customs, and surroundings—and
+the contrast, and the effort to grow accustomed
+to it must have been pretty severe at times—he said nothing—made
+absolutely no remark, but quietly ‘went at it,’ with
+a cool, calm, comprehensive energy which amazed Wilson
+and the other secondary officials, and delighted little Mr.
+Sutcliffe.</p>
+
+<p>It seemed as if, from the moment in which the young
+man had entered the place, work had walked up to him,
+ready to his hand, and that hand had grappled with it, and
+that head had bent itself to the understanding of it, without
+thought or intention of ever turning back, until the task
+were accomplished. His place was ready for him, and he
+stepped into it. He had a tenacious memory; he was
+rather fond of saying that it was the only mental advantage
+he possessed. He was a very quiet, undemonstrative
+person—never paraded any likes or dislikes: at the end of
+a week, his mother was amazed and angry to find, that
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[Pg 139]</span>though he had so completely worsted her on that eventful
+night when Helena Spenceley had dined with them, yet
+that she did not discover any pronounced points of character
+in him—no particular weaknesses or predilections on which
+she could lay hold, as handles by which to manage him.
+This annoyed her excessively: she puzzled over it, and
+tried to find a way out of it, and was, almost unknowingly
+to herself, nourishing towards her son an attitude which
+was beginning to be one of opposition.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian’s retentive memory held, amongst the other
+figures with which it was peopled, that of Myles Heywood
+in a conspicuous and prominent place. A most distinct
+impression remained in his mind of the workman’s defiant
+attitude and words. What Sebastian felt towards the
+young man would make too long a tale, and involve too
+much dry psychological analysis, to be here recorded.
+Mrs. Mallory had most truly told her son that whether she
+knew his habits or not, she was sure they were not the
+habits of Thanshope business men. Something happened
+just about this time—and Sebastian’s method of treating
+the matter would probably have made the hair of a Thanshope
+business man stand on end, or called forth from his
+tongue emphatically Doric epithets as to the young mill-owner’s
+sanity, and mental capacity in general.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian never beheld Myles’s firmly set lips and sharply
+contracting eyebrows without wondering whether those
+strongly marked features were merely signs of an absolutely
+crabbed disposition and bad temper, or whether they were
+only traits of a hot temper and quick disposition. He
+tried in half a dozen ways to find out, but in vain. Myles
+put on a silent dignity and reserve equal to Sebastian’s own,
+until at last pure accident put the matter to the test.</p>
+
+<p>Some irregularity or insubordination had occurred in one
+of the rooms, which Sebastian had been discussing with
+Mr. Sutcliffe, and the latter had said that some one must
+be told off on the following day to superintend that room—some
+one in authority. The following morning Sebastian,
+coming down to the works, entered the outer office, and
+found Wilson and Myles there.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[Pg 140]</span></p>
+<p>‘Has Mr. Sutcliffe come?’ he inquired.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, sir,’ said Wilson. ‘He’s in his room.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Did he give any orders about the beaming-room?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, sir. He hasn’t mentioned it to me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh! Well, Heywood, you had better go there and
+look over them this morning. I can’t have them idling
+about as they have been doing. You had better go at once.’</p>
+
+<p>With that, and without waiting for any answer, he stepped
+forward into the inner office, and closed the door after him.</p>
+
+<p>Myles went on with his work for some minutes, and then
+rose.</p>
+
+<p>‘If you go to the beaming-room,’ observed Wilson, ‘I
+must take your place in the warehouse myself, I suppose.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m not going to the beaming-room,’ was the tranquil
+reply.</p>
+
+<p>‘Not going! But the master——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m not a Jack-of-all-trades. I know what my business
+is, and how long it will take me to do it. It is not my
+business to overlook the beaming-room.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But Mr. Mallory didn’t know that.’</p>
+
+<p>‘So it appears,’ said Myles, with a disagreeable smile.
+‘He’ll know it for the future. It’s all in the way of learning.
+You can find some one else to overlook the beamers.
+I’m off to the warehouse.’</p>
+
+<p>With which he departed, leaving Wilson aghast.</p>
+
+<p>It was through a mere casual question to Wilson that
+Sebastian found out, later, what had happened. Wilson’s
+evident confusion aroused his suspicions. Dropping his
+careless tone, he promptly bade the overlooker tell him all
+that had passed.</p>
+
+<p>Wilson stammered out the whole story, even to Myles’s
+remark about it ‘all being in the way of learning,’ and then
+stood, looking miserable, and feeling no less so, listening
+for the command, ‘Send Heywood to me.’</p>
+
+<p>But the command did not come, and Wilson concluded
+that the dismissal would perhaps be given through Mr.
+Sutcliffe. That it would be given, and that promptly, he
+did not doubt, nor was he reassured by the perfect calm
+and good temper of Mr. Mallory’s expression.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[Pg 141]</span></p>
+<p>Several days passed, and still Myles Heywood, without
+let or hindrance, pursued his usual avocations undisturbed;
+and still Mr. Mallory, calm and good-tempered as ever, continued
+to learn away at his business; and still he made no
+remark upon the act of flagrant insubordination which had
+taken place.</p>
+
+<p>Saturday came some three days after the occurrence just
+described. It was late in the afternoon, and work had been
+over for an hour and a half, but the mill was not yet closed,
+for Mr. Mallory and Mr. Sutcliffe were in the inner office,
+in consultation, and Ben, the office boy, stood lounging outside,
+wishing that his superiors would bring their parley to
+an end and let him lock up and get home to his holiday.</p>
+
+<p>Within, at that moment, there ensued a little pause, and
+Sebastian rose, looking thoughtful, and leaning against the
+mantelpiece. Presently he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, I suppose there is nothing else for it; we had
+better put up the half-time notice this afternoon.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. There is nothing else for it,’ echoed Mr. Sutcliffe.
+‘It will be no time at all in a few weeks. We can’t hold
+out much longer.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah!’ said Sebastian, and again seemed to fall into a
+train of thought, until he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I wonder how it will all end? What is there in this life
+of yours, Mr. Sutcliffe, that gives it its interest? I feel
+more as if I was really living now than I ever did before.
+The cotton trade is on its last legs, for a time; and a young
+man who dislikes me has behaved with insubordination and
+impertinence; and yet, though there is nothing intrinsically
+interesting in those facts, and no connection between them,
+I feel intensely interested in both.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You will excuse my saying it, Mr. Mallory, but it is not
+discipline to have allowed Heywood to remain a single day
+in your employment after his openly disobeying an order of
+yours. It goes very much against my judgment.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I know it is neither business nor discipline,’ said Sebastian,
+apologetically; ‘but you must allow me a little tether
+now and then, till I am more used to run in harness in this
+way. I am trying an experiment in regard to that young
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[Pg 142]</span>man. It is a delightful diversion from business. How long
+has he been here, did you say?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Fifteen years, and his sister eleven. Except in the
+strike, four years ago, they have never missed a day.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Exactly, it would decidedly displease me—it would
+humiliate me to think that a man who had amicably worked
+fifteen years during my absence should have to—hook it
+within a fortnight after my arrival. Besides, he is unusually
+intelligent, and an admirable workman.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, he is. He could direct and manage if ever he got
+a rise in life. He has a head on his shoulders as good as
+any one else’s, but that temper of his will be the ruin of him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t know about that,’ said Sebastian, reflectively, as
+if discoursing with himself. ‘That temper of his—I should
+dearly like to subdue it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I beg your pardon?’ said Mr. Sutcliffe, to whom this
+was as so much Sanscrit.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian looked up with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘Leave me my own way in this matter, Mr. Sutcliffe. I
+promise that, if things do not turn out as I expect, I will
+dismiss Heywood on Monday.’</p>
+
+<p>At this moment Ben put his head in at the door, and
+remarked,</p>
+
+<p>‘Please, sir, there’s your carriage, and the young gentleman
+in it, a-come for you; and Heywood, he wants to know
+if he can speak to you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Show him in here, and tell the gentleman I will join
+him in a few minutes.’</p>
+
+<p>Ben disappeared. Mr. Sutcliffe rose.</p>
+
+<p>‘I’ll leave you alone with your rebel, Mr. Mallory. I
+shall be curious to know whether he has come to beg pardon,
+or to give notice.’</p>
+
+<p>‘For my part,’ said Sebastian, ‘I have no more idea
+which he will do than an owl in the parish church tower.’</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Sutcliffe laughed and went away, and a moment
+afterwards Myles Heywood entered the office. Sebastian,
+still leaning up against the mantelpiece, looked at him, and
+could read nothing from his expression. He felt that he
+did not know the man, and he also felt an inexplicable
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[Pg 143]</span>anxiety that the man should not say he was going to leave
+his service.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good afternoon,’ said he, courteously; ‘you wish to
+speak to me?’</p>
+
+<p>Myles had taken off his cap, a sign which Sebastian
+noted instantly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said he, slowly, but not ungraciously. ‘You gave
+me an order the other day, which I took no notice of, and
+I spoke of you as I ought not to have done. I am sorry
+that I did so, and I beg your pardon.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian had watched him intently, and with keen interest.
+He saw that Myles had strung himself up to say the
+words from a sheer sense of what was right and fitting, and
+from honest conviction that he had done wrong; not from
+any sudden leaning towards him, Sebastian. And he saw
+that the anxiety and the uneasiness followed, not preceded,
+the words. He saw that Myles laid great importance upon
+the manner in which his words were taken.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is granted freely,’ said Mallory. ‘I felt sure that you
+were too manly not to do this. You have felt that I had
+no wish to be capricious, or put you to work that was not
+yours, when I gave you that order?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; I have thought it over, and felt that that was the
+case.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You have worked here fifteen years, and it would have
+troubled me very much if you had, from any reason, been
+obliged to leave me as soon as I got here.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles looked up, surprised, but, as Sebastian plainly
+saw, with a flush of self-reproach. It had not entered into
+his calculations that Sebastian could possibly take any
+interest in him or his. The latter went on,</p>
+
+<p>‘I am new to my work; you must remember that.
+Another time, don’t let a mistake go so near costing you
+your place, and me my best workman.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles’s face flushed.</p>
+
+<p>‘I will certainly bear it in mind,’ said he. ‘I have a
+hasty temper, and it leads me astray often, I know.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And you do not like me,’ said Sebastian, looking
+steadily at him.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[Pg 144]</span></p>
+<p>Myles’s eyes were also fixed upon his.</p>
+
+<p>‘I have not liked you,’ he said; ‘I should tell a lie if I
+said even now that I liked you; but I respect you. I shall
+respect you from this day, and I don’t think you will ever
+have to complain either of disrespect or disobedience from
+me again.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You have relieved my mind very much. I am glad we
+have had this explanation. It does you credit.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The credit is not all with me,’ said Myles, hastily, with
+a rising colour and a conscious look, which Sebastian remarked.
+‘I had some advice from some one, that finished
+it off. I must go now. Good afternoon.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Good afternoon,’ said Sebastian, who would have prolonged
+the conversation if he could; but Myles departed,
+and Sebastian followed him out of the office.</p>
+
+<p>Standing just without was Sebastian’s phaeton, with Hugo
+holding the reins, and carrying on a conversation with Ben
+at the same time. Sebastian heard the words:</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, and his mother never got o’er it, hoo didn’t. It
+were main stupid o’ Sally Whittaker to say what hoo did——’</p>
+
+<p>Ben stopped abruptly and grew very red in the face, as
+Sebastian tapped him on the shoulder, inquiring, as he
+climbed into his place,</p>
+
+<p>‘What was so stupid?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Go on!’ said Hugo to the boy. ‘He’s telling me about
+a boy that he knew, who was killed at a factory. Go on!
+What did Sally Whittaker say?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, it were i’ this way, yo’ seen. It were at Ormerod’s
+works as th’ lad were killed, and Ormerod come round just
+as they was takin’ th’ body away on a shutter; and he says,
+“Now then, where are you boun’?” he says. And they
+told him they were for takkin’ him to his mother, and they
+doubted it would kill her too, for hoo were main fond on
+him. “Eh, what?” he says. “Yo munnot do so. Yo
+mun one on yo go afore, and warn her—prepare her like a
+bit,” he says. “Let one o’ these ’ere wenches go on afore.”
+So Sally Whittaker, hoo knew his mother, and hoo said
+hoo’d go and tell her, and hoo went on afore. Eh, bi’ th’
+mass! but hoo is a gradely foo’, is Sally Whittaker! and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[Pg 145]</span>hoo walks into Emma’s kitchen, and hoo says, straight out,
+hoo says, “Eh, Emmer, but troubles is never to seech,” hoo
+says. “Your Johnny’s killed as dead as a stoan!”’</p>
+
+<p>‘What did the poor woman do?’ asked Sebastian, with
+interest.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, hoo just dropped the fryin’-pan, and hoo gave a
+screech yo’ mowt a yeard down to the town-hall, and then
+hoo begun to cry, and then they browt him whoam. Mun
+I lock up, sir, now? Have you finished?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, quite,’ said Sebastian, with a good-natured nod.
+‘Lock up, and go home. You’ve not had much of a holiday
+this afternoon’</p>
+
+<p>‘Bless you, sir, it’s no soart o’ consequence,’ said Ben,
+with a gratified look at this mark of attention; and he retired
+to lock up again.</p>
+
+<p>‘Will you drive?’ asked Hugo, when they were alone.</p>
+
+<p>‘No; I’ll let you drive on, if you will. And, stay!
+What do you say to a drive in the country before dinner?
+It will be daylight for a long time yet. If there is any
+country about here?’ he added, with a disparaging look around.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, lots! While you have been so industriously grubbing
+away at those figures, and showing me quite a new phase
+in your character, I have been exploring the interior. I
+know of four separate and distinct routes to the country.
+Certainly it is rather stony when one does get there; but
+it is country all the same. Will you go north, south, east,
+or west?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Hurrah for the North!’ said Sebastian, drily. ‘Turn
+the horses’ heads towards Yorkshire, <i>mein Hugo</i>!’</p>
+
+<p>Hugo complied. Very soon they were rattling through
+the main street. Hugo’s attention was taken up with the
+guiding of his cattle. Sebastian leaned back, a little wearily,
+and was long silent, until they had left the town behind
+them—left the dirty straggling suburb called Bridgehouse,
+and passed through the neighbouring manufacturing village
+of Hamerton, with its stately houses of gentry and rich mill-owners,
+and were put out upon a wide, open road, driving
+past a solemn old house called Stanlaw, deeply sunk in trees.
+Beyond that, the purple moors spread before them, rising
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[Pg 146]</span>every moment higher and nearer. The sky was pure, the
+air sweet. As if with a sudden impulse, they both turned
+and looked behind them. A heavy cloud of smoke showed
+where Thanshope lay below, in the distance.</p>
+
+<p>Hugo shrugged his shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>‘Comfort yourself,’ said Sebastian. ‘It won’t be there
+long. Soon we shall see what Thanshope looks like without
+smoke.’</p>
+
+<p>They drove quickly on in the sharp, delicious October
+afternoon air, along the upland road. The heather sprang
+from the very roadside, and rich, mellow purple, brown,
+and crimson, the moors spread themselves around, under
+the pale, chill blue of the cloudless sky. The peculiar
+scent of the ling and heather rose like a pastoral incense
+around them; far away glittered the sinuous line of a canal,
+and a silvery pond or two. The crack of a gun broke the
+stillness once or twice.</p>
+
+<p>‘Did I not tell you I would bring you into the country?’
+said Hugo.</p>
+
+<p>‘You always manage to keep your promises, somehow’
+(they were speaking German now). ‘How goes the music
+under these changed conditions, Hugo?’</p>
+
+<p>The lad smiled his odd smile, and said,</p>
+
+<p>‘The more prosaic the surroundings, the more need one
+has of something like music to brighten them. Don’t you
+think so?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Just so. I only asked because I have not noticed you
+practising, and as for sitting down and listening to you—why,
+the last time I did that was when Miss Spenceley was
+at the Oakenrod.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You have been so busy. I have practised hard enough,
+only your mind was taken up with other things.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, with things less artistic than the Sonatas of
+Beethoven.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But not more earnest and workmanlike. Do you know,
+I like this Thanshope. There is something real in the life
+these people lead.’</p>
+
+<p>‘There is so! And in the things they say, and the way
+in which they remind you of your duties. There is a fellow
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[Pg 147]</span>I am very curious to know something more about. Do you
+remember that brusque individual who confronted us the
+first time we drove to the office?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perfectly well. Do you never see him?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, daily. I have just had another shindy with him.
+He piques me excessively. Every time I see the fellow,
+with his handsome face and defiant eyes—he <i>has</i> a pair of
+eyes—I feel as if I must stop and question him upon his
+thoughts and feelings. It is a most insane idea, and I know
+it makes him exceedingly angry; but it is so, all the same.
+What is that air you are humming, Hugo?’</p>
+
+<p>Hugo held the reins loosely between his fingers, while the
+horses climbed slowly up the hill: he hummed to himself the
+half-melancholy air of the German <i>Volkslied</i>—<i>Der Verschmähete</i>;
+and Sebastian listened attentively with a half-smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘Aren’t you tired, Hugo? Let me take the reins.’</p>
+
+<p>‘As you will!’ said Hugo, changing places with him, and
+they turned homewards again.</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you remember when we last heard <i>Der Verschmähete</i>?’
+asked Hugo, smiling to himself.</p>
+
+<p>‘Perfectly,’ said Sebastian, concisely. ‘Corona Müller
+sang it, and....’</p>
+
+<p>‘There was instrumental music, too,’ put in Hugo; ‘one
+of Liszt’s Hungarian Rhapsodies—ay, ay! And it was a
+Rhapsody too! How splendidly she played it! It would
+have delighted Liszt himself. Do you remember the end?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, yes! <i>Un poco pesante!</i>’ said Sebastian, who listened
+attentively to the reminiscences, but volunteered no remark
+upon the subject.</p>
+
+<p>They were now again in Thanshope, and the dusk was
+beginning to fall, though it was still far from dark. There
+had been a silence. Now as they turned into the main
+street, Hugo, suddenly taking courage, looked up into his
+companion’s face, and said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Sebastian, do you know where she went with her father,
+from Wetzlar?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No I have seen nothing, and heard nothing of her, since
+then.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But you have inquired?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[Pg 148]</span></p>
+<p>‘Inquired—naturally. But—ah, there’s my handsome
+young democrat. Just take a good look at him, Hugo—quick!
+before he turns off—do you hear? What? <i>Impossible!</i>’</p>
+
+<p>Hugo had touched his arm, so that his attention was
+diverted from the figure of Myles Heywood, who was in the
+act of turning off down a side street, and directed towards
+that of a young lady going straight down the main street,
+and whom they were now in the act of passing.</p>
+
+<p>It was nothing remarkable for an expression of lively excitement,
+pleasurable or otherwise, to be seen upon Hugo’s
+face, but such a look upon Sebastian Mallory’s countenance
+was a rare visitor; and it painted itself there at this moment,
+as his eye fastened upon the slight figure of the girl, who was
+pursuing her way, looking neither to right nor left of her.
+Would she see them? Would she turn? No—yes—no!
+The phaeton had just passed her, when she casually
+raised her eyes, and glanced towards the road; and then
+into her face, too, leapt the same startled look—the same
+surprise and vivid emotion of some kind, as that which
+already brightened Sebastian’s. She made a visible pause,
+as her eyes fell upon the occupants of the carriage.
+Both hats were lifted, two deep bows were made at the
+same moment; four earnest eyes looked eagerly into her
+face. With a sudden, quick, warm flush, she returned the
+bow of the young men, and then they had driven on, and left
+her behind them.</p>
+
+<p>They were almost at home now, close to the Oakenrod.
+No word was spoken, until, as they sprang out of the carriage,
+their eyes met, Hugo’s full of inquiry, Sebastian’s of a
+trouble and excitement strange to them.</p>
+
+<p>‘Are you glad?’ asked the boy, in a low voice, as they
+hung up their hats in the vestibule.</p>
+
+<p>‘Nay, <i>mein Bester</i>—time alone can tell me that. I know
+no more than you. But here—how did she come here?’</p>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[Pg 149]</span></p>
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph4">
+‘Mais pourquoi pour ces gens un intérêt si grand?’
+</p>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>One evening—it was Sunday, the day after that drive into
+the country—Sebastian Mallory strolled into the drawing-room
+where his mother sat, and, glancing round, seated himself,
+without speaking at the piano, on which he struck some
+aimless chords, which presently developed into a coherent
+harmony, in a style <i>un poco pesante</i>. He played the first bars
+of Liszt’s second <i>Rhapsodie Hongroise</i>, and then paused.</p>
+
+<p>‘What is that thumping thing?’ inquired Mrs. Mallory,
+whose many mental superiorities did not include an understanding
+of the art of music.</p>
+
+<p>‘This “thumping thing,” as you so justly term it, is a
+“Hungarian Rhapsody,” by that Thor the Hammerer of
+pianoforte music, Franz Liszt.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am as wise as I was before.’</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>N’importe!</i> Where is Hugo, I wonder?’</p>
+
+<p>No reply.</p>
+
+<p>‘You have not seen him?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I saw him leave the garden about an hour ago.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Gone out for a walk, I suppose. I am glad he can
+find anywhere to go to.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Sebastian, may I ask how long a visit that boy is to pay
+here?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Visit!’ said Sebastian, turning round on the music stool,
+in some surprise; ‘why, Hugo lives with me. I thought
+you knew.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory lowered her favourite weapon, the feathery
+screen.</p>
+
+<p>‘Lives with you? What will you say?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I can but repeat my previous statement. He is my
+ward—you do know that, mother—but then we drop that
+connection as much as possible. I suppose we are more
+like brothers than anything else.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are the guardian of his property, then? He is a
+<i>von</i>—is he of noble family?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[Pg 150]</span></p>
+<p>‘Two questions. He is of noble family. Von Birkenau
+is a good old name, and he is the last of his race. As for
+property, he has none—not a scrap.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How came you to be his guardian? It was very extraordinary—so
+young a man as you. Had his family, or
+whoever left him to you, any claims upon you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘It was his mother who left him to me, because I asked
+her to. She had no claims upon me in the legal sense of
+the word; only the claim of having been my great friend,
+and the source of inestimable benefit to me. Paula von
+Birkenau was a woman in a thousand, beautiful, good, and
+gifted; and, I am sorry to say, very unhappy.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory, watching her son’s face, thought how odd
+it was that he should have such queer, out-of-the-way ideas
+and tastes. What could there be in this memory of an
+impecunious German countess to bring that smile to his
+lips, and that light of subdued enthusiasm to his eyes?</p>
+
+<p>‘If her son has no property, how did she manage to live?’</p>
+
+<p>‘She was penniless when she married, and her husband’s
+family had been a declining one for generations. When he
+died, she was left without a stick or stone of land or house,
+and without a penny of fortune. She retired into a <i>Stift</i>—an
+institution, you know, for poor ladies of noble family.
+There are many like it in Germany. She procured admittance
+for her son into a place of the same kind—a school,
+where he was hard-worked and ill-fed, and quite unable to
+pursue the real bent of his talent for music. I made the
+acquaintance of Frau von Birkenau six years ago. I could
+not describe her; she was a beautiful soul; she did more
+for me than any one I have ever known. She talked to me
+a great deal about her boy, and I went to see him. I liked
+him, and told her so. She asked me if I would think of
+him sometimes, and perhaps pay him an occasional visit,
+when she should be dead; she suffered from a painful
+complaint, and bore her sufferings like a heroine. I said
+the best and shortest way would be for her to make a will,
+appointing me her son’s guardian, when I should have full
+authority over him. This she did, about four years ago,
+and very shortly afterwards she died. On my signing a
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[Pg 151]</span>document to the purport that henceforth I undertook the
+duties of a parent to him, the authorities of the school permitted
+me to remove Hugo, to his and my great satisfaction.
+Since then he has been my companion in all my ramblings,
+and though I don’t wish to sound my own praises, I must
+say he looks a different fellow altogether from the white-faced,
+pinched-looking lad whom I took away with me
+overwhelmed with grief at his mother’s death.’</p>
+
+<p>‘In-deed!’ observed Mrs. Mallory, in cold tones of intense,
+though repressed, exasperation. ‘It sounds like a
+page from a romance. If my opinion were asked, I should
+say I could hardly tell whether he or you stood most in
+need of a guardian—of some one to control you. You
+have encumbered yourself with his entire maintenance. He
+is a pensioner on your bounty?’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian shook his head. Leaning his elbow upon the
+top of the piano, he remarked,</p>
+
+<p>‘There is no question of “incumbrance.” I love the
+lad. I delight to see him growing happier every day, and
+to know that his powers are expanding in the direction best
+suited to them. It is not every one who can secure the
+pleasure of enabling an artist nature to grow and develop
+in a congenial soil. As to his being “a pensioner on my
+bounty,” excuse me, mother, I mean no disrespect when
+I say that I dislike that expression intensely. If you had
+not used those words, I should not have mentioned that
+Hugo knows nothing at all of this. All he knows is that I
+am his guardian. I let him live under the impression that
+I guard not only himself, but his property. And that impression
+must not be disturbed. I will not have his
+happiness embittered just when he should be able to throw
+aside all care for everything except his studies. He is intensely
+sensitive. I never approach the subject with him—you
+understand?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose I do. But I consider it the most amazing
+piece of folly I ever heard of. How do you know what
+he may turn out?’</p>
+
+<p>‘How, indeed? At least he will have had every inducement
+to turn out well; and, unless I am much mistaken,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[Pg 152]</span>he will do so. It is not only his name and lineage that is
+noble.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I thought you were a <i>Radical</i>’ observed Mrs. Mallory.</p>
+
+<p>‘My dear mother!’</p>
+
+<p>‘That Frau von Birkenau must have been a clever woman—too
+clever for you, at any rate.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Please don’t say anything against her. I would as soon
+say anything against you as against her,’ said Sebastian,
+calmly; and his mother, meeting his eyes, found herself
+blushing for her own meanness. Such signs of sensibility
+are often reckoned hopeful.</p>
+
+<p>‘Is he to be always here?’ she asked quickly, to cover
+her confusion.</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t know. He will please himself. At present
+England is new to him. He may enjoy it, or study it, until
+he gets tired of it; and then, I expect, he will go to some
+German musical <i>Conservatoire</i> to study, just as he pleases.
+I shall give him his choice.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Humph!’ said Mrs. Mallory, with indescribable significance
+of tone.</p>
+
+<p>‘But I repeat, he is never to be told of his position. I
+shall explain it all to him myself, when circumstances make
+it desirable. And I think you will get to like him, mother.
+He is the best-hearted fellow, and absolutely adores those
+who are kind to him. He is a perfect child in some ways.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t like young men who are like children.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, I like Hugo. It would pain me exceedingly to
+have any misunderstanding with him,’ said he, with an
+emphasis unusual to him, as he turned again to the piano,
+and solaced himself with a waltz of Schubert.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory sat puzzling angrily over the character which
+daily baffled her more completely; its traits becoming more
+involved, enigmatical—nay, to her, insane. She considered
+this freak of his to display an eccentricity not short of
+insanity, but strangely enough she did not dare to tell him
+so. Did he care for any one? Was he so devoted to this
+lad, whom she disliked for his fantastic, unconventional
+habits and speech, and whom she would regard with contemptuous
+pity, as he sat, the morning long, at the piano,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[Pg 153]</span>absorbed, with strange tossings of the head, and quaint,
+absent-minded wavings of the hands, and contortions of the
+body? Or was he only obstinate to have his own way, and
+provoke her, his mother?</p>
+
+<p>At this moment the door was opened, and Hugo entered,
+followed by the butler, with tea.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory was too much annoyed to linger over that
+refreshment. She drank it quickly, and went to her writing-table,
+where she turned over the papers, listening vexedly
+the while to the talk between Sebastian and Hugo—talk in
+which she had no sort of share—about music, and foreign
+friends, and foreign countries; and she heard Hugo express
+his rejoicing that at last he could have an hour of Sebastian’s
+company, and she heard Sebastian answer, that he
+was glad too, for that he missed his companion. And she
+knew that the tone was one of genuine affection; that Mr.
+Mallory of the Oakenrod was perverse enough to pin his
+affections rather upon an eccentric, penniless German lad,
+than to make acquaintances which would be to his advantage;
+that her chance remark about the cleverness of the
+late Frau von Birkenau had been, in vulgar parlance, ‘a bad
+shot’—a very bad one indeed, and that she had not increased
+her own influence by making it.</p>
+
+<p>The laughs and chaff of Hugo and Sebastian became intolerable,
+as forming a running accompaniment to reflections
+of this nature. She made another shot, this time unconsciously;
+and this time she hit her mark, also unconsciously.
+Picking up a note which lay upon her table, she suddenly
+interrupted the conversation.</p>
+
+<p>‘Sebastian, here is a note—it must go to you now, I suppose.
+I have nothing more to do with these affairs.’</p>
+
+<p>He looked up; rose and came to fetch it; smiled as he
+took it; but she would not see either smile or look.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is from Mr. Blisset,’ she remarked, apparently busily
+arranging her papers. ‘Something about repairs. I cannot
+imagine what he wants doing, I am sure.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian and Hugo exchanged glances.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Blisset—who may he be!’ inquired Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘Your tenant. He lives at Stonegate, that place up at
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[Pg 154]</span>other end of the town, which your great-grandfather built, and
+which has always been a great deal more trouble than profit.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How long has this Mr. Blisset been its tenant?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m sure I don’t know. Eight or nine years, I think.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you know anything about him—who he is, or where
+he comes from?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No. He is an invalid—paralysed—a most crotchety,
+tiresome person.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! Let me see what he says.’</p>
+
+<p>He opened the note, and his face changed as he saw the
+handwriting. It had been addressed to Mrs. Mallory, as
+had probably all other communications on the subject. The
+hand was small, compact, and characteristic—the matter
+was business-like.</p>
+
+<div class="blockquot">
+<p>‘Mr. Blisset presents his compliments to Mrs. Mallory,
+and begs to inform her that the outside of his house stands
+in need of some repairs before the winter sets in. If Mrs.
+Mallory will have the kindness to send her agent, or the
+work-people she usually employs, to inspect the house, Mr.
+Blisset will feel extremely obliged to her.’</p>
+</div>
+
+<p>Sebastian, without comment, handed the note to Hugo,
+who read it with a smile, and an excited expression, which
+caused Mrs. Mallory to set him down in her own mind as
+a lunatic.</p>
+
+<p>‘I will have it seen to!’ was all Sebastian said, carefully
+putting the document into a small letter-case.</p>
+
+<p>‘I should send Mitchell to make an estimate: he will do
+it as cheaply as any one,’ observed Mrs. Mallory.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, it shall be attended to,’ repeated her son. ‘Now,
+Hugo, sit down to that piano, and play something—something
+right lively and soul-stirring, you will understand.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think I do,’ said Hugo, smiling in an uncanny manner,
+as he placed himself at the piano, and straightway burst into
+a triumphal march.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb">
+
+<p>Later, when Hugo and Sebastian were alone, the former
+said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Now you can go and call, Sebastian.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[Pg 155]</span></p>
+<p>‘Heaven forbid! I have not the least right to do so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But you would like to. Make a way. Make that note
+about the repairs an excuse. Call upon Mr. Blisset, and
+find out what sort of an old party he is.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian said nothing, and the subject dropped.</p>
+
+<p>The next day, as they sat in Sebastian’s study, and he
+cut the leaves of a Review, he remarked,</p>
+
+<p>‘I had a conversation with Myles Heywood to-day.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The revolutionary weaver?’</p>
+
+<p>‘He is no weaver, ignoramus. He is a sort of head man,
+but they call him a cut-looker.’</p>
+
+<p>‘A how much?’</p>
+
+<p>‘A cut-looker. Your education, like mine, has been
+neglected. But I know now what a cut-looker is. Myles
+Heywood is one. He earns forty shillings a week. It
+exercises the brains and the observation, and they have time
+for reading and thinking, too. Myles Heywood reads.
+He has read Buckle’s <i>History of Civilisation</i>.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Indeed!’ said Hugo, sitting with his head on one side,
+looking like an intelligent dog. ‘That does not raise my
+opinion of him. It is a book I hate.’</p>
+
+<p>‘He has read most of the works of John Stuart Mill.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m glad I don’t know him so well as you do.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Impertinent!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Can he play Beethoven’s Sonatas, and paint in oils; and
+does he sing tenor, baritone, or bass?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Tsh! I tell you I take the greatest interest in the fellow.
+He knows a lot of German, too. Where he learnt it I can’t
+tell. When I asked him who taught him he flushed up,
+looked me straight in the face, and said, “A friend.” So I
+had to beg his pardon.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian had thrown himself into an easy-chair, and was
+lighting a cigar.</p>
+
+<p>‘Beg his pardon—why?’</p>
+
+<p>‘My dear child, you wouldn’t say to your equal, “<i>You</i>
+learn German—who teaches you?” and why should you say
+it to a cut-looker?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well?’ said Hugo, seeing the expression upon Sebastian’s
+face, and knowing it to be no careless one.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">[Pg 156]</span></p>
+<p>‘I did beg his pardon, and he said, “Don’t mention it.”
+Then I asked him what he meant to do with himself while
+we were working half-time. He said he had no doubt he
+could manage to dispose of his own time, and I incautiously
+persisted, “But how?” He said he really had not thought
+much about it—might he ask why I wanted to know? So
+I had to beg his pardon again.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian was puffing away, with raised eyebrows. Hugo
+burst out laughing.</p>
+
+<p>‘I never heard of anything so preposterous. Why did
+you go on talking to him, if you got so vexed?’</p>
+
+<p>‘But I didn’t. I got interested. Why should the fellow
+dislike me so intensely? What can be his object?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Sebastian! I thought you did not care a straw what any
+one thought of you. You have said so often enough.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, and it was generally true—<i>generally</i>, mind you. I
+am interested against my will—personally interested. One
+thing I’ve found out—he hates me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Nonsense!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Hold your froward tongue! You know how to play
+Beethoven’s Sonatas, and I know what I am talking about.
+He hates me, and I have made up my mind that he shall,
+so to speak, eat his words—that is, change his opinion. It
+will gave me endless trouble, I know,’ added Sebastian,
+knocking the ash from his cigar; ‘endless trouble, but I
+will do it. I must know whether that man is master, or I.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, if it comes to that,’ said Hugo, shrugging his
+shoulders, and laughing a little; ‘if he has excited your
+obstinate combative instincts, you will never let the poor
+beggar alone till he at any rate <i>says</i> that he gives in. Bless
+you, I know you!’</p>
+
+<p>‘He will never say he gives in unless he actually does
+so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Ja, ja!</i>’ said Hugo, nodding significantly, ‘I know.
+May you find the game worth the candle, is the sincere wish
+of one who succumbed long ago to your masterful disposition!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Thanks!’ laughed Sebastian. ‘And as I can’t begin
+this laudable campaign on the instant, I shall carry my investigations
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">[Pg 157]</span>into another direction, that, namely of Stonegate.
+I am going to call upon Mr. Blisset.’</p>
+
+<p>‘At Stonegate—also with a view to conquest?’ inquired
+Hugo, politely, rising and walking quickly to the door, and
+closing it after him just in time for it, instead of his own
+person, to receive the large bundle of tape-tied ‘documents’
+which Sebastian wrathfully sent flying after him.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+DISCORD.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>The scene once again the drawing-room of Mr. Blisset’s
+house; its occupants, Myles and Adrienne: he just arrived;
+she smiling to receive him, and he smiling in answer, as one
+might smile on suddenly finding a flower peeping up through
+the snow.</p>
+
+<p>‘I rather hoped you would come to-night, to do some
+German,’ said she, ‘but I did not think you would come so
+early.’</p>
+
+<p>‘We are working half-time. We began to-day,’ said
+Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘Half-time already? I thought there was such an
+enormous supply of cotton somewhere in the country.’</p>
+
+<p>‘So there is, somewhere; but it will have to be bought
+with a price before it can be got at. Lots of other places
+have begun half-time to-day. And it’s not only that cotton
+is dear; there must have come a reaction after last year’s
+over-production. It was tremendous. There is a bad time
+coming for the workers; but those who can afford to wait,
+and who know how to use their chances, will make some
+big fortunes.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Some others will lose them, I think.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Naturally. The one goes with the other.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But how will you all manage when the hard time comes?’</p>
+
+<p>‘We shall pull through,’ said poor short-sighted Myles,
+little dreaming of the depths of misery, and what he, and
+such as he—proud, honest, self-dependent men—considered
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">[Pg 158]</span>deepest degradation, which lay in the not far-distant future.
+‘We shall pull through. If it is only half-wage we get, we
+shall have to do with half-doings; pinch a bit, and clem a
+bit, and put on a good face.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But,’ said she gravely, ‘my uncle and Canon Ponsonby
+were saying the other night that the time must most likely
+come when there would be no work and no wages.’</p>
+
+<p>‘If the war lasts a long time, or the ports are very well
+blockaded, it may come to that,’ said Myles, calmly. ‘But
+we, and a good many others besides us, have money laid by.
+We must live on that till better times come.’</p>
+
+<p>In six months from that time, thousands of working homes
+were stripped of every stick of furniture that could possibly
+be done without. Many a savings bank had collapsed.
+Many a stout-hearted toiler had to bend his proud, unwilling
+feet towards the relief committee, or the guardians, and, with
+burning face, and bursting heart and down-drooped head,
+tell his tale, and ask for ‘charity.’ Not yet had the ‘Lancashire
+Lad’ sent to the <i>Times</i> that pathetic account of the
+shame-faced girls who stopped him to ask him, ‘Con yo help
+us a bit?’ that appeal which brought the tears to thousands
+of eyes of readers in every end of the earth. None of this
+had happened yet. The great ‘panic’ had not come swooping
+down upon the land; but it was not long before the cry
+of the distressed must go up.</p>
+
+<p>Myles Heywood, after this his first half-day’s enforced
+idleness, perhaps not ill-pleased to be freed for a few hours,
+on a fine afternoon, from his toil, said he had no fears for
+the future. He felt himself strong: felt that a little pinching
+and ‘clemming’ would do him no material harm, and smiled
+at the storm-cloud hurrying across the Atlantic.</p>
+
+<p>They went on talking upon different topics; but while
+she questioned or answered, his jealous eyes detected some
+change in her. She was not cold to him; there was the
+same genial grace and cordiality, and yet there was a
+change. In a pause which presently ensued, a footstep
+passed on the flags outside. She raised her head
+quickly and looked up, with parted lips and a startled expression.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">[Pg 159]</span></p>
+<p>‘Do you expect some one?’ asked Myles; and so much
+were the words a part of the thought, that he scarcely knew
+he had spoken them, until she answered,</p>
+
+<p>‘I—oh no! Why should I? But shall we not read
+some more of “Iphigenia”? Here is the book.’</p>
+
+<p>She did not look at him. There was a sudden constrained
+expression upon her face as she opened the book, and he as
+suddenly felt his heart sink with a reasonless, aimless, lover’s
+pang. He said nothing, however, but obediently began to
+read. But neither his heart nor her’s was in the work, as
+usual. She had told him that he was an apt scholar; his
+intelligence was ready, and his ear quick, and attuned to
+the Lancashire gutturals, and its broad ‘a’s’ and ‘u’s’ found
+little difficulty with the corresponding German sounds.
+Myles, for his part, had treasured up that hour that she devoted
+to him once or twice a week, as if it had been some
+precious coin or gem. Then she was all attention to him;
+then she was thinking of nothing else but him and his lesson,
+and the idea was heavenly. But this very evening, for the
+first time, he was obliged to let himself understand that her
+attention wandered, that she sometimes scarcely heard what
+he said, and his anxiety and foreboding increased every
+moment. He was no favoured lover; he had striven
+assiduously to conceal every sign of his devotion, for fear it
+should annoy her, or repel her. He had no right to ask
+her why her attention strayed, what made her absent and
+<i>distraite</i>, and that very fact made him the more sensitive to
+the change in her manner.</p>
+
+<p>He read on, and translated, mechanically, dreamily, till
+he came to the words:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Und künft’ge Thaten drangen wie die Sterne,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Rings um uns her, unzählbar aus der Nacht.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>‘“And future deeds,”’ he slowly translated, while the
+sense of discord and oppression grew every moment stronger;
+‘“and future deeds pressed about us, out of the night,
+countless as the stars.”’</p>
+
+<p>She had not heard a word. He looked at her, with eyes
+that dared not be reproachful, and said nothing. There was
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">[Pg 160]</span>pain, there was embarrassment, in her expression. Then
+she suddenly said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I want to speak to you. Let us put away this book. I
+want to tell you something that I ought to have told you
+before.’</p>
+
+<p>At once his face changed; the cloud fled; he turned to
+her with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘Something you ought to have told me——’ he began.</p>
+
+<p>The door was opened. Just outside they heard the
+voice of Brandon, Mr. Blisset’s old servant, saying,</p>
+
+<p>‘I will see whether Mr. Blisset is at liberty, sir, if you
+will step in here.’</p>
+
+<p>Then he threw the door wide open and announced,</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian came into the room, and Adrienne rose, feeling
+like one in a dream, looking like a person who has received
+overwhelming news of some kind. She saw Sebastian: she
+felt that Myles was there—felt it in every fibre of her being,
+and while Sebastian spoke to her, she was only intensely
+conscious that Myles was gazing at them both; and she
+wondered, with an intensity that amounted to pain, what he
+was thinking of her.</p>
+
+<p>She gazed at Sebastian, as he came up to her, looking as
+if he saw no one but her, with extended hand, and she
+heard him as he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Blisset, I little thought before Saturday, that I
+should have the happiness of meeting you again—in Thanshope!’</p>
+
+<p>With that their hands closed, and her voice said (with a
+vibration),</p>
+
+<p>‘It is certainly long since we met. I am glad to see
+you again.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles had risen with a swift, almost unconscious impulse,
+and was now in the window, leaning against it, and looking
+into the night, which was now falling fast. He closed his
+eyes. He felt his own emotion to be almost grotesque in
+its intensity, but it was so—he could not help it. The
+devil jealousy had seized his very heart-strings on the instant,
+and clutched them relentlessly. There was one
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">[Pg 161]</span>thing, and one only, that he could do—having no right to
+call her to account, he could suffer in silence, and speak
+gently to her—after all, he reminded himself, she had been
+exquisitely kind to him, and he had no sort of claim upon
+such kindness.</p>
+
+<p>While Myles fought this silent, desperate battle with the
+feelings which urged him to rush out of the room, and
+leave those two together, Sebastian was saying,</p>
+
+<p>‘I came to see Mr. Blisset on some business, and his
+servant asked me to come in here. I fear I disturb you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not at all. May I introduce—but Mr. Heywood tells
+me he knows you already.’</p>
+
+<p>She turned to Myles, who also turned. His very
+emotion made him rise to the occasion. Pride and self-esteem,
+respect and regard for Adrienne, modesty as to his
+own merits, all urged him to put on an outwardly calm demeanour;
+and Sebastian, whatever astonishment he might
+feel, was of course far too civilised to betray it.</p>
+
+<p>‘We have met already to-day, earlier,’ remarked Mr.
+Mallory, courteously bowing towards the young man, who,
+on his part, bowed his head gravely and proudly, and wished
+his employer good evening. If Adrienne had not flushed
+up, and looked with such startled, conscious eyes, and such
+a half-excited smile, around her, he could have done even
+more—he might have been able to force a smile too, but
+under the circumstances it was physically impossible.</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne, turning aside, as if to push forward a chair,
+looked at him, but in his then state of mind he could not
+understand the glance; all he could do was to answer it
+with another, of bitter, clouded, miserable feeling; sorrow,
+pain, and a sort of premonitory despair.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian did not see Adrienne’s look, but he did see this
+one of Myles’s, and it made him feel suddenly grave and
+doubtful. In an instant he understood how things were
+with Myles: as to Adrienne’s feelings he was utterly in the
+dark. He remembered one morning, when she, relieved
+through his efforts of great anxiety, had clasped his hand,
+and, looking up at him with brimming eyes, had said,
+‘There is nothing I would not do for you.’ They had been
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">[Pg 162]</span>almost the last words she had said to him. The day afterwards
+he had lost her. He knew nothing of what she
+thought of him now, but he realised immediately that the
+stiff-necked young workman, whose pride and reserve resisted
+all his efforts to break through them, was over head and ears
+in love with the woman of whom he had been thinking,
+when he spoke to Helena Spenceley of ‘the nicest girl I
+ever knew.’ It might be preposterous: it might be that
+young, handsome, and more than ordinarily high-spirited
+and ambitious young workman had no business to fall in
+love with young ladies in a superior position in life; but all
+that did not prevent the fact that such an occurrence had
+taken place before, and would take place again. Sebastian
+knew it, and, reasoning from the interest he himself took
+in Myles, did not underrate the importance of the discovery
+he had made.</p>
+
+<p>‘Have you seen the evening edition of the Manchester
+paper?’ he asked Myles, as he seated himself.</p>
+
+<p>‘To-night? No.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The war news seems rather important. I hope our neutrality
+won’t be put in peril. It would be an everlasting
+disgrace to us if it were to be interrupted for a moment.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, it would,’ assented Myles, dimly conscious that it
+was a superior sophistication which was able to converse
+thus easily upon foreign affairs—under the circumstances.</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose you take a great interest in the war too?’ said
+Sebastian, turning to Adrienne.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ she replied. ‘Mr. Heywood and I have the
+audacity to dispute even with my uncle sometimes.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Blisset is your uncle?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. Oh! I forgot you could not know; I live with
+him here. Have you known him before?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Never. But I find he is my tenant I came to see
+him on a matter of business and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Will you step into the other room, sir?’ interrupted
+Brandon, coming in.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian rose.</p>
+
+<p>‘Shall I see you again?’ he asked, stooping a little towards
+Adrienne, who looked up to him with the same distinct,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">[Pg 163]</span>though well-repressed, agitation or excitement of some kind
+in her face.</p>
+
+<p>‘It will depend upon how long you stay; I do not know,’
+said she; and her voice was not calm and deliberate as
+usual.</p>
+
+<p>Myles sat still, his face composed, watching those two;
+realising her grace and beauty, and his charm of manner,
+and all those advantages in the background. No girl—he
+felt it keenly—need be ashamed of the fact that she had
+fallen captive to the wooing of Sebastian Mallory. His
+heart grew heavier and colder.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then I will say good evening, in case I do not see you
+again,’ said Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>They shook hands, and Mallory followed the waiting
+Brandon.</p>
+
+<p>Then they were left alone. Adrienne’s face had changed;
+the excitement had gone from it; it was pale; the glow had
+faded; her voice sounded tired when she spoke.</p>
+
+<p>‘When Mr. Mallory came,’ she said, forcing a smile, ‘I was
+just going to explain to you that I knew him—or rather,
+had known him a few years ago. It was curious that he
+should call at that very moment.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Myles, in a voice colourless as her own.</p>
+
+<p>‘Once he was very kind,’ she pursued, ‘when my father
+was in trouble. He saved me a great deal of anxiety and
+distress.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ again assented Myles. ‘I am sure he is very considerate,
+and means to do right.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You think so! Then your opinion has changed?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, very much. He is not at all the kind of man I
+supposed him to be.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad you have discovered that. I am sure you and
+he will get on, now that the misunderstanding is cleared up.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles rose, smiling rather a faint, miserable smile. He
+felt it impossible not to give one little thrust in the midst of
+the agony he was himself enduring.</p>
+
+<p>‘You know I am hot-tempered, and, I am afraid, prejudiced,’
+said he quietly; ‘but if you had mentioned to me
+that you knew Mr. Mallory, and that he was not the kind
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">[Pg 164]</span>of man I supposed, I should—perhaps I might have behaved
+more rationally.’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne stood speechless. She made neither apology
+nor excuse. When he said good night, she put out her hand
+silently, and did not meet his eyes. His own manner was
+quite to coldness. Thus they parted. Myles, as he walked
+home, could not forget the verse from ‘Iphigenia,’ which he
+had laboriously translated:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Und künft’ge Thaten drangen wie die Sterne,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Rings um uns her, unzahlbar aus der Nacht.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>In that moment he doubted bitterly whether any deeds,
+whether anything but woes, lay for him in the future.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile Adrienne was left alone to reflect upon the
+situation, to think of Sebastian’s smile, and of Myles Heywood’s
+pale face and glowing eyes; and, after due reflection,
+either to congratulate or commiserate herself, as she thought
+most appropriate.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+‘MAY MY MOTHER CALL UPON YOU?’</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Mallory contrived to make his visit so delightful to
+Mr. Blisset that that gentleman pressed him, with an eagerness
+unwonted to him, to remain a little longer; and Sebastian,
+hoping each moment to see Adrienne appear, continued in
+his place.</p>
+
+<p>At last she came into the room; but she had brought her
+work with her, and after a few sentences of courtesy, amiable
+but meaningless, she took a chair a little apart, and sat in
+almost entire silence, while the two men discussed, first
+politics, and then, when each had taken the length of the
+other’s foot on that topic, science and philosophy.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian, whether intentionally or not, showed himself in
+his best mood, and putting aside both cynicism and indifference,
+discussed the subjects earnestly, and incidentally
+displayed how much thought and attention he had really
+given to them.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">[Pg 165]</span></p>
+<p>Mr. Blisset, greatly delighted at finding so cultivated a
+listener, was also in a happier and more hopeful mood than
+usual. Adrienne’s eyes were fixed upon that monotonous
+embroidery. It is to be presumed that she did not see the
+repeated glances, half of inquiry, half of surprise, with which
+Sebastian’s eyes continually sought her face. He knew that
+she could talk on such subjects. Mr. Blisset’s reiterated appeal
+to her—‘Eh, Adrienne?’ ‘Don’t you think so, my dear?’—showed
+Sebastian that she was not accustomed to sit in
+silence at the feet of even so great a philosopher as her uncle;
+and yet she was silent now, merely answering when spoken
+to, as briefly as possible.</p>
+
+<p>At length came a pause, and Sebastian hastened to make
+use of it.</p>
+
+<p>‘How do you like England, Miss Blisset?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I can hardly say, seeing that I only know Thanshope.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Thanshope, then, as compared with the Continent in
+general?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I like it,’ said Adrienne, ‘because I have found a home
+in it, and because I am useful to some one—am I not,
+uncle?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Necessary, my dear, necessary.’</p>
+
+<p>‘There, you see! necessary!’ said Adrienne.</p>
+
+<p>‘But you used to rejoice so intensely in the sunshine, and
+the poetry, and the beauty of those foreign lands.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I did.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Wetzlar, for instance. Do you remember how delighted
+you were? how you sat dreaming by Goethe’s Brunnen, and
+how you seated yourself in Lotte Buff’s parlour, and looked
+round, and could scarcely speak?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, yes!’ said Adrienne, her eyes lighting up at the
+remembrance, and a smile stealing over her face; ‘but that
+was very enchanted ground, you know.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And you struck a few chords on that piano; that “old,
+tuneless instrument,” on which Goethe had played to Lotte,
+and then drew back, quite ashamed of your own audacity—you
+must remember?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Did I ever say I did not remember?’ said Adrienne, a
+tremor in her voice as she looked up and found Sebastian
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">[Pg 166]</span>leaning forward, his chin in his hand, and his eyes fixed upon
+her face.</p>
+
+<p>Something in the expression of those eyes seemed to
+cause Adrienne some emotion. Her colour rose. Mr.
+Blisset had opened a newspaper which his servant had
+brought in, and was apparently buried behind it. Sebastian,
+his eyes still fixed upon the young lady’s troubled face, said
+softly,</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t you think Wetzlar was the most sunshiny place
+you were ever in?’</p>
+
+<p>‘At least the sun began to shine for me there,’ she said
+quickly, and looking towards him with a sudden, deeper
+glance than before.</p>
+
+<p>He smiled.</p>
+
+<p>‘I think, for me too.’ Then, seeing that she looked still
+more downcast, he added, ‘But we shall meet again, I hope,
+and then we can discuss those old days. I was going to
+ask, have you many friends here?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Scarcely any. My uncle does not visit. We know
+Canon Ponsonby, and Mrs. Ponsonby called upon me, and
+was very kind. Then I have a few friends of my own peculiar
+kind, you know.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I know. Old apple-women at street-corners; working-people;
+unhappy youths who want a few lessons in this and
+that—eh?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Adrienne, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then Myles Heywood is not counted amongst your
+friends?’ said Sebastian, composedly, glancing aside at Mr.
+Blisset, to assure himself that that gentleman was absorbed
+in his newspaper.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, he is,’ said Adrienne, raising her head. ‘He is
+a friend both of my uncle’s and mine.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is it allowable to ask how you made his acquaintance?’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne suddenly crimsoned, while Sebastian unkindly
+continued steadfastly to watch her. He had been piecing
+different facts and inferences together in his mind, and was
+rather anxiously awaiting her answer.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is not allowable?’ he said. ‘I beg your pardon.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, it is, quite,’ retorted she, somewhat recovering herself.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">[Pg 167]</span>‘I met Myles Heywood a few weeks ago, not more.
+I used to have some work that I did at the public reading-room,
+and he used to read there too. He rendered me a
+very kind service on one occasion, and has been a friend
+and a visitor here ever since.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian bowed politely.</p>
+
+<p>‘He interested me,’ said he, with a rather ambiguous
+smile. ‘I wished to know more of him; but he declines
+every advance I make to him.’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne was silent. Sebastian, with a laudable thirst
+for information, went on, in the same calm, matter-of-fact
+voice,</p>
+
+<p>‘I begin to think that in his case appearances deceive
+me’ (Adrienne looked rapidly up and down again). ‘There
+is something wonderfully attractive about his face and
+manner. He appears so very superior to his class, and yet
+I begin to fancy there must be some fatal defect of temper—some
+moral want.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are mistaken,’ said she, in a voice which, though
+low, was so clear and decided as to startle Sebastian. The
+information he wished for appeared to be readily forthcoming—whether
+it were of a pleasant nature or not, he
+could hardly yet say.</p>
+
+<p>‘You think so? You think it is not mere churlishness?’
+he said, purposely using a strong word.</p>
+
+<p>‘He has not a grain of the churl in him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Indeed! Then he must have well-developed imitative
+faculties,’ said Sebastian, with a politely sceptical accent,
+which he had often found useful as a conversational weapon.
+It was successful upon this occasion. Adrienne answered
+quickly,</p>
+
+<p>‘You must not think him churlish. It would be a
+grievous mistake to make. He has a most generous disposition.
+You should see him at home with his sister and his
+cripple brother—they are friends of mine too, and his deaf
+friend, Harry Ashworth. You would not misjudge him then.
+Those people know his heart, as it is—and they all adore
+him. Churlish—no!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, does he behave in such an extraordinary way to
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">[Pg 168]</span>Mr. Blisset? Does he look at him as if he would say,
+“Thus far, and no farther. Keep your distance if you
+please”?’</p>
+
+<p>‘To my uncle—oh no! He is very fond of him, and
+very respectful to him,’ said Adrienne, demurely, a curious
+little smile quivering about the corners of her mouth.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then why does he select myself as the object of his
+hatred—for I am sure he does hate me?’</p>
+
+<p>‘He—because——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Because?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I cannot explain. Only he does not hate you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am convinced you could tell me all about it if you
+would, so, as you will not, I must find it out in my own way.
+I am determined I will learn the reason of his aversion to
+me—and will overcome it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, don’t! Pray let him alone. He is best let alone.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian smiled.</p>
+
+<p>‘You seem to be well acquainted with what is best for
+him—though you have only known him a few weeks. If
+you have succeeded in making a friend of him, why should
+not I?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I would not go too far. Remember, he, as well as you,
+has a right to choose his own friends, and if he does not
+choose you for one of them, you have no right to——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Importune him? No. You are quite right,’ he said,
+rising. ‘But there is society of a different stamp from Myles
+Heywood, even in Thanshope. Would you have any objection
+to my mother calling upon you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mrs. Mallory—objection? Not the least. I should be
+delighted. But don’t you think, if she had wished for my
+acquaintance, she would have called before?’</p>
+
+<p>‘She was ignorant that you lived here. She thought Mr.
+Blisset’s household was quite without ladies. I expect she
+will call upon you within the next few days.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall be happy to see her,’ said Adrienne, politely,
+but not enthusiastically; and he could read nothing from
+her eyes, as they answered his inquiring gaze. She roused
+her uncle from his abstraction, and Sebastian dropped her
+hand with a smile. After all, he told himself, it was absurd
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">[Pg 169]</span>to think seriously of Myles Heywood as a rival—quite
+absurd. A high cultivation like Adrienne’s—and how
+different she was from that little dark-eyed Helena, with
+her vehemence and her disorganised ideas as to women’s
+rights and man’s selfishness—could surely never feel any real
+affinity with that untamed, untutored specimen of humanity,
+Myles Heywood. There might be plenty of force about
+him, but force without culture is apt to get uncomfortable.</p>
+
+<p>Amidst earnest requests from Mr. Blisset that he would
+speedily renew his visit, and equally earnest assurances on
+his part that he would do so, Sebastian departed.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb">
+
+<p>In the Oakenrod drawing-room, Mrs. Mallory by the
+fire, with a novel and the feathery screen; Hugo gloating
+over a copy of the original edition of Bewick’s ‘Birds,’ the
+like of which treasure, he considered, he had never seen
+before: for the rest silence.</p>
+
+<p>‘You have been out all the evening?’ inquired Mrs.
+Mallory, languidly, as she looked up.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I have been at Mr. Blisset’s.’</p>
+
+<p>Hugo looked up.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mother, do you ever call at Mr. Blisset’s house?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No. Soon after he came, I called; but his man-servant
+told me that he was a great invalid, and saw no one.’</p>
+
+<p>‘He is certainly a great invalid. But there is a Miss
+Blisset.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is he a widower?’ asked Mrs. Mallory, struck by something
+in her son’s tone, dimly conscious of some impending
+unpleasantness in store for herself.</p>
+
+<p>‘She is his niece. She came to live with him some two
+years or eighteen months ago. I was delighted to renew
+my acquaintance with her.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then you had met her before?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, at Coblentz, and at Wetzlar, on the Lahn.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian was at the present moment leaning on the top
+of his mother’s chair, which was a deep, roomy easy-chair
+of a bygone day. As he spoke he took the feathery screen
+out of her hand and fanned her with it a little. She wished
+he would not do so. It might not make it more really
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">[Pg 170]</span>difficult to resist him, but it made her look very ungracious;
+it must look ungracious in a mother to deny favours to a
+son who asked them in so seductive a manner.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory thought there were certain points upon
+which she would never give in; but even while she thought
+it, and Sebastian’s hand waved the screen to and fro, and
+his voice gently continued to speak—even then, she had
+an indefinable sensation of being managed—that power was
+slipping from her hands into his. But she could say nothing
+until he had in some way committed himself; and he had
+a most provoking habit of not committing himself.</p>
+
+<p>‘She is as clever and accomplished in her way as her
+uncle is in his,’ Sebastian went on: ‘and she is, in addition,
+a most charming young lady. She has no friends here—and
+she is so different from the Thanshope people—much
+more in your style than that vehement little Miss Spenceley,’
+he added, while Hugo looked on from afar and laughed in
+his sleeve. ‘I am sure you would like her if you knew
+her, and I want you to be so kind as to call upon her.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Call upon her! Call upon a person I know nothing
+about! Really, Sebastian, I wonder at you!’</p>
+
+<p>‘My dear mother, she is not in the least what you would
+describe as a “person.” Even your critical taste will pronounce
+her a thorough lady when you see her.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How is it nobody else has called upon her?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Some one else has. Mrs. Ponsonby has called upon
+her. But I want you to call upon her. You really would
+oblige me exceedingly, mother, if you would.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And therefore I must, I suppose. That appears to be
+the rule by which the young judge the old in the present
+day,’ said Mrs. Mallory, a little acidly.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian had come round to the other side, and was
+leaning against the mantelpiece, and as Mrs. Mallory concluded
+her remark she looked at her son, and her son
+looked at her. If he had only been talking about Helena
+Spenceley! But it was merely some Miss Blisset. She
+thought she would refuse. But at that moment the idea
+struck her that she might even serve her own aims by
+consenting conditionally.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">[Pg 171]</span></p>
+<p>Scarcely two days before, Sebastian had treated, first with
+levity and contempt, and then with downright repugnance,
+the prospect of dining at the Spenceleys’ house, or cultivating
+their further acquaintance. Mrs. Mallory had at that
+moment in her pocket a note, in Helena’s handwriting,
+requesting the pleasure of the company of Mrs. and Mr.
+Mallory, and that of Mr. von Birkenau, to dinner ten days
+hence.</p>
+
+<p>‘If I go out of my way to make new acquaintances, about
+whom I care nothing in the world, it is only fair that you
+should put yourself a little out of the way too, Sebastian.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perfectly fair. As how?’</p>
+
+<p>‘We are invited to dine at the Spenceleys on the —th.
+If you don’t go there, and behave civilly to my friends, I
+really don’t see how I can encourage yours, about whom I
+know nothing, to come here, or go to see them myself.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I quite grasp the importance of the situation,’ said
+Sebastian, with that placid politeness which exasperated
+Mrs. Mallory beyond bounds, because she did not know
+into what language to translate it. ‘If you will call upon
+Miss Blisset within the next day or two—I mean a proper
+call, you know, with an intimation that you would like her
+to return it, and so on—I will go to any amount of
+Spenceley spreads, be they never so gorgeous, and will
+listen to Miss Spenceley’s diatribes with the utmost resignation.
+There will be the contrast to think of.’</p>
+
+<p>This was not very encouraging behaviour; but it was the
+best to be extracted from her very ‘trying’ son, and Mrs.
+Mallory had to accept it, merely remarking,</p>
+
+<p>‘If your friend, Miss Blisset, has anything like the good
+qualities of Helena, I shall be surprised.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, she has not,’ said Sebastian. ‘Miss Spenceley has
+one hundred thousand golden virtues—not to mention
+others of a less tangible character—of a kind that Adrienne
+Blisset knows nothing about.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory made a note of the ‘Adrienne Blisset,’ and
+began to feel an intense dislike to that young lady.</p>
+
+<p>But the bargain had been struck. On the third day after
+the treaty had been, so to speak, signed, Mrs. Mallory called
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">[Pg 172]</span>out her horses and called out her men, and drove in state
+to see and overwhelm Miss Blisset.</p>
+
+<p>She saw her; but the overwhelming remained still a
+dream of the future. Adrienne’s utter freedom from embarrassment
+in the presence of Mrs. Mallory, of the Oakenrod,
+might be in bad taste, but it could not very well be commented
+upon. She parried all her visitor’s hidden thrusts
+upon the subject of Sebastian with a cool adroitness which
+called forth her visitor’s reluctant admiration, and behaved
+altogether with an ease and an address which was the more
+reprehensible in that it seemed so perfectly natural.</p>
+
+<p>‘But it could not have been natural,’ reflected Mrs.
+Mallory, as she drove away. ‘The attention, after Sebastian’s
+calling there and finding her, was so marked. I think
+she is the most consummate little actress I ever met
+anywhere.’</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+‘I DREAMT I DWELT IN MARBLE HALLS.’</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Castle Hill, the Spenceley mansion, was a large, new,
+imposing residence of red brick, with massive stone facings.
+It had been the dwelling of Mr. Spenceley and his family
+for some six or seven years, and it was within these walls
+that Helena sat in captivity, and groaned alternately over
+the selfishness of men and the mean-spiritedness of women.</p>
+
+<p>On the appointed evening, Mrs. Mallory, her son, and
+Hugo, were driven to this mansion, and ushered into the
+drawing-room. It was an apartment vast in dimensions,
+lofty, dazzling, perfectly square, perfectly gorgeous, and
+more than perfectly uncomfortable.</p>
+
+<p>Some ten or twelve persons were collected somewhere
+amidst the mass of gorgeous carpet, hangings, furniture, and
+dazzling crystal drops which seemed to blend and combine
+in a determined and successful effort to crush and annihilate
+the human portion of the scene. Sebastian and Hugo saw
+Mrs. Mallory sail up to a massive-looking lady in purple
+satin, and white lace, and unlimited jewellery of florid design
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">[Pg 173]</span>and great brilliance. This lady she greeted almost affectionately.
+Was she not Helena’s mother? and did not Mrs.
+Mallory herself regard Helena almost as a daughter?
+Having introduced Sebastian and Hugo, Mrs. Mallory
+turned to Mr. Spenceley, while the young men bowed themselves
+before the mistress of the house.</p>
+
+<p>She said she was very glad to see them. Then she told
+Sebastian that she had heard a great deal about him, and
+then she looked hurriedly around for ‘Mr. Spenceley.’</p>
+
+<p>That gentleman, who had been exchanging courtesies in
+a loud and blatant voice with Mrs. Mallory, now began to
+welcome Sebastian to his native place, also in a loud and
+blatant manner.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, sir, I’m glad to see you. Come home just in the
+nick of time, you have. You’ve a grand opportunity for
+making your fortune now. Gad! But it’s providential,
+this American business! We shall get rid of some of our
+surplus stock now. It’ll give us a pull over our work-people
+too, at last; and not before we need it. The fellows were
+getting beyond everything, eh!’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian, his calm and serious eyes quietly scanning the
+strong, if coarse, under-bred face of the man before him,
+merely said that he was quite new to this kind of thing.
+He had not considered the subject in that light at all.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, I should advise you to do so as soon as possible
+then, or you’ll lose your chance,’ shouted Mr. Spenceley,
+whose voice was elevated so as to drown entirely those of
+the rest of the company, while his wife timidly looked on,
+her florid face set gravely, and her eyes round and staring
+with a sort of anxious attentiveness.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian foresaw that he would have to take her in to
+dinner, and he glanced at her now and then, wondering
+what he should say to her—how keep up some kind of a
+conversation. She was a tall, stout, matronly woman; once
+she must have been an extremely handsome lass. Her
+black hair was still abundant, and had something of the
+waviness of Helena’s: her eyes, too, were dark. She was
+as tall as her daughter, but more lymphatic in temperament.</p>
+
+<p>Helena probably inherited her beauty from her mother,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">[Pg 174]</span>and her vehemence from her father. Mrs. Spenceley was
+accustomed to roll in her carriage through Bridgehouse and
+Lower Place, suburbs of Thanshope, and to look from her
+elevation upon the extensive matrons who stood at their
+cottage doors, exchanged gossip, and scolded their ingenuous
+offspring, sporting in the road before them; but her nature
+was the same as theirs. Denude her of her silks and satins,
+attire her in a cotton or linsey gown, with bare arms and a
+large apron, her hair twisted up into a knot behind, and her
+head capless; a cottage full of cares and unruly children, a
+rough ‘measter’ to make and mend and ‘do’ for, and she
+would have been indistinguishable from those other matrons.
+She would have fallen back into the old ways quite genially
+and naturally; she would have been what she certainly was
+not under existing arrangements—happy.</p>
+
+<p>For Mrs. Spenceley was unhappy in her riches and greatness;
+she could remember quite distinctly the days when
+Spenceley had been overlooker at one of the great Thanshope
+factories, and she had done the work of the house, and brought
+up the children single-handed, and been happy—and not
+genteel. She remembered the sudden leap into prosperity,
+the gradually increasing establishment, Helena dismissed to
+a fashionable boarding-school, and Fred to a private and
+select academy, where he was to learn how to become a
+gentleman—that short, easy, and every-day process, where,
+as a matter of fact, he had drunk in one lesson, and one only,
+namely, that a fellow whose father has money, and who will
+one day have money himself, need not know, or do, or be
+anything—except rich. Mrs. Spenceley remembered how
+servants, of whom she stood in awe, had accumulated around
+her; how she had had to leave her kitchen to their tender
+mercies; how she had found that she must not handle a
+duster, or have an opinion as to the merits of the heave-shoulder
+or the wave-breast any longer; until she had got a
+magnificent housekeeper, in black silk and a lace cap, who
+was fully conscious of the primordial fact that large and
+wealthy establishments only existed in order that she might
+domineer over one of them. How Helena was returned
+upon her hands, a ‘finished’ young lady, ignorant, as it
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">[Pg 175]</span>seemed to Mrs. Spenceley in her own ignorance, of the very
+elements of a womanly education—unable to keep house, to
+cook, to sew, even to distinguish ribs of beef from sirloin.
+She had ventured, mildly, to utter some of her woe to the
+father, who had said, ‘Pooh! Let the lass alone. She’ll
+never need to know such things. She shall marry a lord!
+Only don’t let her cross me and she’ll do.’ And Helena had
+been suffered to trample upon the domestic arts, and to
+throw herself, with all the energy of one who has nothing
+to do with herself, into all sorts of questions about which
+her active brain made her curious, while her unfinished
+education left her profoundly ignorant of their practical
+bearings. She had no female friends except Mrs. Mallory
+and Miss Mereweather, a conspicuous friend and upholder
+of ‘the cause.’ She loved Mrs. Mallory, because that lady
+was kind to her, and was by no means a nonentity; and she
+adored Miss Mereweather because of her talents, or what
+seemed to Helena her talents.</p>
+
+<p>Friends at home the girl had none. Fred had one of
+those hopelessly dense natures which may be called the
+complacently brutal—nothing in the way of friendship or
+sympathy was to be had from him. Her father—Helena, in
+her intercourse at school with girls of good family and social
+surroundings, had learnt to know that her father’s manners
+and language were to be abhorred, while, had he been a Sir
+Charles Grandison in the matter of deportment, his coarse
+bullying and ferocious bantering of her mother would alone
+have made the hot-spirited girl almost hate him.</p>
+
+<p>And Fred—his mother stood in profound awe of him; his
+talk, his slang, his ways in general; and she was the one
+soul on earth, except himself, who was firmly convinced of
+the fact that Frederick Spenceley was at once a finished
+gentleman and a consummate man of the world.</p>
+
+<p>As Sebastian sat watching his hostess, and partly divining
+some of these facts, a voice at his elbow roused him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good evening, Mr. Mallory. You look as if you were
+dreaming.’</p>
+
+<p>Looking quickly round, he saw Helena standing close
+beside him, smiling as frankly as if no misunderstanding
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">[Pg 176]</span>had ever existed between them, as if they had not quarrelled
+violently within two hours of first seeing each other. How
+lovely she was! None but a very lovely woman could have
+stood the dull ivory satin dress she wore, fitting tight in the
+waist, without a fold or a crease; and, in an age of voluminous,
+portentous crinolines, trailing straight and long behind
+her. She wore a black lace fichu, and elbow sleeves with
+black lace ruffles falling from them. The fichu was fastened
+with a golden brooch; beyond that was not a ribbon, not a
+frill, not a jewel or a flower about her. And her beauty
+came triumphant through the ordeal.</p>
+
+<p>They had parted on decidedly evil terms, and he was
+surprised now to find that she welcomed him cordially, and
+smiled as she took the chair beside him.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am afraid I was very cross the other night,’ said she, with
+a sunny smile. ‘But I thought you had treated me badly,
+and I am going to have my revenge to-night, and show you
+that I am in earnest. My greatest friend, Laura Mereweather,
+has most fortunately been able to come just when I invited
+her. Wasn’t that wonderful?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am prepared to say that it was; but I don’t yet know
+why.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You know Miss Mereweather; by name, at least?’</p>
+
+<p>‘To my shame I must confess that I never even heard
+of her before.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What an extraordinary thing! She has a European
+reputation.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You astonish me! For what?’</p>
+
+<p>‘As being the most advanced female thinker, and the
+greatest benefactor to her sex, of her time.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian’s face fell, as he looked round the room.</p>
+
+<p>‘These very intellectual women have often nothing remarkable
+in their personal appearance,’ said he. ‘Would
+you believe that, of the several young ladies I see seated
+about the room, I could not say which I should suppose to
+be Miss Mereweather.</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>That</i>,’ said Helena impressively, ‘that slight girl, all
+intellect, and mind, and spirit, talking to my brother—that
+is Laura!’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">[Pg 177]</span></p>
+<p>‘Is it really?’ he said, his eyes falling upon the ethereal-looking
+being described by Helena.</p>
+
+<p>He saw a thin, nervous-looking girl—a girl with not a
+bad face, if it could not be called absolutely handsome.
+She too was dressed, like Helena, in a tightly fitting robe
+with undistended skirts, but her dress was black. She
+wore an eyeglass, looked restlessly around, and had a deep
+contralto voice. There was nothing alarming in her appearance;
+she looked, thought Sebastian, as if she would have
+made an excellent head-mistress of a large school, the
+matron of an hospital, or some authority of that description.</p>
+
+<p>‘She is a woman of powerful individuality, I should say,’
+he remarked.</p>
+
+<p>‘Is she not? After dinner she shall talk to you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, you are very kind! I wouldn’t trouble her for the
+world.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is no trouble. Nothing done for the cause would be
+a trouble to Laura; and then you must be enlightened.
+You must learn that ours is not a cause to be treated with
+levity. You must be punished for what you did and said
+the other night,’ said Helena.</p>
+
+<p>‘I submit; but—I am sure you could talk just as well,’
+said Sebastian, resignedly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, if I could!’ said Helena, gazing with admiring
+devotion towards her friend.</p>
+
+<p>‘Is there not an immensity of power and force about
+her?’ she said enthusiastically. ‘Laura has several times
+been mistaken for a man—by persons who have heard her
+voice, and her remarks, without seeing her.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Has she? How excessively annoying for her!’ said
+Sebastian, with feeling.</p>
+
+<p>‘Annoying! It pleases her, as a testimony to her power,
+and as a proof that there is no real disparity in the respective
+capacities of men and women. Of course, when it is
+known that books or pictures have been written or painted
+by women, all hope of fair and impartial criticism is over.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is it?—Well, I was looking at the question from another
+point of view. I thought that if Miss Mereweather disapproves
+so strongly of men in general, it would annoy her
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">[Pg 178]</span>to be mistaken for one of that odious and inferior sex; and,
+moreover, would only be a sign of how very different she
+must be from most women.’</p>
+
+<p>‘She is very superior to most women; if that is what you
+mean, I concede the point willingly.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, if such a superior woman is often mistaken for a
+man, is not that a piece of negative evidence of the inferiority
+of women in general?’ he asked politely.</p>
+
+<p>Helena’s face had flushed again.</p>
+
+<p>‘As I said, Laura shall talk to you. She will argue much
+better than I can. I do not pretend to her abilities. And
+there is Parsons announcing dinner,’ added Helena hastily,
+her colour mounting still higher as she caught Sebastian’s
+eyes fixed with a grave yet not unkindly expression upon
+her face.</p>
+
+<p>He rose to offer Mrs. Spenceley his arm, and stood with
+her, watching the couples as they filed out of the room.
+Yes, Helena was lovely, and not all her wild talk, not even
+her enthusiastic admiration for Miss Mereweather, could
+make her otherwise.</p>
+
+<p>He looked absently on, as first his mother and Mr.
+Spenceley went by; next a gorgeous dowager, whose tribal
+name and standing were unknown to him, but whom he
+distinctly heard saying something about ‘the ’oist at the
+Lang’um ’otel,’ as she swept past on the arm of a flaccid-faced,
+red-haired, meek-looking man, pertaining to the
+goodly company of cotton-spinners. The wife of the said
+cotton-spinner followed next, with a gentle-looking incumbent—he
+who ministered to the spiritual needs of Mr.
+Spenceley and his family. More couples followed. Fred
+Spenceley with Miss Mereweather—more gorgeous dowagers
+and resplendent spinsters, and more of the native young
+men, leading the same to the banquet, and, at last, Helena,
+in her creamy robes, with Hugo.</p>
+
+<p>‘The lucky young dog!’ thought Sebastian, resignedly,
+as Hugo’s eyes met his, and the lad smiled rather triumphantly,
+in the full consciousness that he was leading out the
+prettiest woman in the room.</p>
+
+<p>Was she talking women’s rights now? Sebastian wondered,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">[Pg 179]</span>as he silently brought up the rear with the equally silent
+Mrs. Spenceley. No! She was laughing with Hugo, like
+any other pleasant, well-conditioned girl, and asking him
+to tell her exactly how he spelt his name, and if it had any
+particular meaning.</p>
+
+<p>‘For I know nothing about German, you know, except a
+translation of the “Sorrows of Werther,” which I thought
+very funny.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And I do not know much about English,’ said Hugo,
+much delighted with his own good fortune, ‘but I can understand
+yours, <i>sehr gut</i>, I mean, very well. You speak so
+clearly—it is different from the London people.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not bad for a first attempt, old boy!’ thought Sebastian,
+smiling as they entered the celebrated dining-room of Castle
+Hill, with its pictures and bronzes, and statuary, all of the
+very best, and ‘bought by people who understood such
+things,’ as Mr. Spenceley was wont modestly to say, when
+any one praised any of his artistic treasures.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Spenceley did not look like a person who would
+have exactly a discriminating taste in the matter of genre-paintings,
+or landscape, but Sebastian broke the silence between
+them by remarking on a little picture hanging opposite
+to him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; it’s by a person called Ansdell, I believe,’ said
+Mrs. Spenceley. ‘They say it’s very good; but for my part
+I’m no judge of such things.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian bowed, and then, thinking that perhaps local
+topics might prove more successful than artistic ones, said
+he feared that distress was already beginning amongst the
+work-people.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Spenceley turned with some vivacity to her guest.</p>
+
+<p>‘You’re right, Mr. Mallory. If it goes on as it is doing,
+it’ll break some ’earts before all’s over.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you visit much amongst them?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not so much as I could wish. There’s some of the
+poor creatures will soon be fair clemming—starving, I
+mean.’ Mrs. Spenceley sank her voice, and every now and
+then her eye turned with a little nervous, wavering glance
+towards her lord at the other end of the table. ‘You see
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">[Pg 180]</span>I shouldn’t like to go amongst them so much without I
+could keep them a bit. I <i>should</i> like to have a soup-kitchen!’
+she added with feeling; ‘but Spenceley doesn’t quite approve
+of it. He says that many of them have money laid
+by, and he’s of opinion that we must let them help themselves
+a bit before we begin to help them.’</p>
+
+<p>‘From a politico-economical point of view Mr. Spenceley
+is perhaps right,’ said Sebastian, glancing down the table at
+the red-faced, coarse-featured man, with a heavy jaw not
+devoid of cruelty; and noting that same jaw reproduced
+even more obtrusively and unpleasantly in the son; scarcely
+at all in the daughter, or at least only in a manner which
+gave an expression of decision to the charming mouth.</p>
+
+<p>‘I know nothing about politics,’ said Mrs. Spenceley;
+‘and you may mark my words—those that’s starving will
+want bread—not politics.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Certainly they will. Unfortunately you often cannot
+give them the one without a good deal of the other.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I dare say. But if the war doesn’t stop soon we shall
+have to do something, if it was only to try and teach the
+poor women to make the most of their bits of stuff. Most
+of them are no housekeepers to speak of. They can spin
+and weave, but they can’t make home comfortable, and
+after all, that’s the chief thing. But,’ she added, suddenly
+remembering different reports she had heard of Sebastian,
+and Helena’s contemptuous announcement that he was a fop,
+who thought the world was made for his amusement, and
+that there was nothing in life worth the trouble of being
+earnest about, ‘you won’t be much interested in these kind
+of things, Mr. Mallory.’</p>
+
+<p>‘On the contrary, I am much interested in it. Your
+idea makes me wonder if something could not be done. If
+some schools, or something of that kind, could be established,<a id="FNanchor_2_2" href="#Footnote_2_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a>
+if some of the ladies of the town would take it up—my
+mother and you, for example, Mrs. Spenceley—and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">[Pg 181]</span>make it unnecessary for those poor girls to be wandering
+about, laughing and making fun of people in the streets as I
+saw them the other day. And your daughter—I should
+think Miss Spenceley would find the work congenial.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena!’ echoed the mother, shaking her head. ‘It’s of
+no use talking about her, Mr. Mallory. She has always some
+fresh craze in her head, and never a useful one. That
+horrid Miss Mereweather has been the ruin of her.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian repressed a smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘If she only would turn to something useful!’ lamented
+Mrs. Spenceley, ‘but with these ridiculous ideas about women
+being better than men, and all that—and she can’t even
+make a shirt for her father or a pudding for her brother.
+Oh, but I beg your pardon—only I do often tell her that
+she would never make a good wife with these ideas—not if
+she had millions of pounds and was the prettiest girl in
+England.’</p>
+
+<p>Though Mrs. Spenceley threw back her head and spoke
+in a tone of annoyance, yet Sebastian clearly distinguished
+an accent of pride in her voice. The homely mother then
+was not altogether displeased with her wilful, brilliant girl.</p>
+
+<p>‘And what does she say to that?’ he asked, looking at
+Hugo and Helena, who seemed to be greatly enjoying some
+remarkably good joke; and he thought: ‘The prettiest girl
+in England! At least she might hold her own amongst a
+dozen of the prettiest.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, she says she never will be married, and that nonsense.
+I tell her to wait until Mr. Right comes, and then
+we shall hear a different song. I wish he would, I’m sure,’
+she added fervently, ‘before she gets spoiled. She has a
+right good heart, has Helena, if only a giddy head.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian did not answer. He was still looking towards
+Hugo and Helena, and felt intensely conscious of the ripple
+of laughter which scarcely ceased between them. It was
+impossible that women’s rights, or any such bristly, hateful
+topic could be causing that delighted look on Hugo’s dark,
+artist face; could call that gracious curve to Helena’s red
+lips. Hugo threw himself with passion into the joy of the
+moment, as Sebastian knew; Helena seemed to have something
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">[Pg 182]</span>of his eager, inflammable temperament. At least
+they appeared to be very happy together.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb">
+
+<p>Dinner over; a group of four congregated in a corner.
+Helena on a sofa, with Hugo beside her; Sebastian and
+Miss Mereweather facing one another in chairs, and the
+cross-examination about to begin. Helena had wished to
+leave Sebastian and Miss Mereweather to fight it out alone,
+but he had meekly suggested that it was not fair to make
+him confront the most remarkable woman of her age entirely
+without support; and Hugo adding his petition, Helena had
+consented to be present at the discussion.</p>
+
+<p>Helena seated herself, opened her fan, and said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Now, Laura dear, Mr. Mallory would like to know your
+views on the Woman Question.’</p>
+
+<p>She avoided meeting the look of sorrowful amazement
+and reproach with which Sebastian heard this decidedly
+exaggerated announcement, and Laura replied,</p>
+
+<p>‘I should first wish to know Mr. Mallory’s own views
+upon that subject—<i>the</i> subject, I may say, of the present age.’</p>
+
+<p>‘They are soon stated,’ said Sebastian. ‘I have none.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then there is some hope for you,’ said Miss Mereweather,
+with rather a pitying smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad of that. At the same time, I should like to
+know in which direction the hope shows itself.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Your frank acknowledgment of your utter ignorance of
+the question is a great point in your favour. As you have
+no views at all upon it, you are the more likely to be able
+to receive just ones when they are offered to you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I have some preconceived ideas upon the matter of logic
+and reasonableness, common sense, and all that kind of
+thing. Will that be against me in this case, do you think?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I dislike flippancy,’ said Laura.</p>
+
+<p>‘I did not mean to be flippant. I merely wished for
+information.’</p>
+
+<p>‘We will take the suffrage first,’ said Miss Mereweather,
+raising her voice somewhat, as if to scatter such irrelevant
+remarks to the winds. ‘Are you in favour of extending
+the franchise to women—I mean women-householders and
+ratepayers?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">[Pg 183]</span></p>
+<p>‘On what grounds?’</p>
+
+<p>‘On the only grounds on which they can claim it; on
+the grounds that they are mentally, morally, and, in the
+practical affairs of the world, the equal of man; and that,
+as they bear equal burdens for the State, so they should
+have equal privileges.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I could never grant them the suffrage on those grounds.’</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>What!</i>’ exclaimed both ladies, while Helena started
+forward, and dropped her fan, her eyes flashing, and her
+face flushing.</p>
+
+<p>‘Because it would take too long to prove your case.
+What is more, if you fight the question on that ground, I
+doubt whether you will ever win it. You cannot be said to
+have proved a case to your opponent until you have got him
+to agree with you, and you will never, in your lifetime at
+least, get more than a number to agree with you on that
+point; it may be an influential number, and a select one,
+but it will not be at all a majority.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Your argument is not logical, it is a quibble,’ said Miss
+Mereweather disdainfully. ‘Your real opinion is that women
+ought not to have the franchise.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I never said so. If they think it a privilege, and if they
+would be pleased to have it, why not?’</p>
+
+<p>Miss Mereweather, unaccustomed to this style, neither
+agreement nor opposition, was silent a moment. Then a
+shade of pique crossed her brow.</p>
+
+<p>‘You do not think women worth discussing anything
+seriously with?’ said she.</p>
+
+<p>‘Excuse my saying that you are quite mistaken.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then why don’t you discuss this question seriously?’ was
+the decidedly feeble reply of the most remarkable woman
+of her time.</p>
+
+<p>‘But I do. I say, why not give them the franchise if
+they would like to have it? I suppose that by degrees they
+would get educated up to it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory! you are absolutely insulting,’ cried Helena,
+angrily, and Sebastian merely answered with a grave look,
+and the remark,</p>
+
+<p>‘I am sorry if I have offended you.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">[Pg 184]</span></p>
+<p>Helena’s lips, opened to utter further reproach, suddenly
+closed; with a look of embarrassment she became silent,
+and Miss Mereweather, in a business-like tone, said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory is not so dark as he seems to you, my dear,
+I have good hopes for him. We will turn to another branch
+of the subject. What is your opinion, Mr. Mallory, of the
+relative status before the law of husband and wife? What
+do you think of the laws about married women’s property?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think they are bad,’ said Sebastian, stifling a yawn,
+and glancing at Hugo, who was fanning himself with Helena’s
+fan, while she leaned eagerly forward.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah!’ said Laura, ‘an opinion at last! You agree with
+us that there, in that most important of all relations, the
+woman is a slave.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t think I said so. I suppose the woman might be
+a slave if every husband were as bad as the law would allow
+him to be. Men are not all tyrants, nor women all slaves!
+so I suppose that is why the law has not been changed.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is sophistry,’ said Laura.</p>
+
+<p>‘Will you deny that it is fact?’ he inquired politely.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then you would allow the law to be altered?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Certainly.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is an important subject for you, my dear child,’ said
+Miss Mereweather to Helena. ‘I only hope your resolution
+will remain firm, and that you will resist temptation and specious
+promises. In your case you will have plenty of both.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Of course I shall resist,’ said Helena, a little crossly.
+‘I am not quite imbecile, Laura, and know how to take
+care of myself. My mind is quite made up on that subject.’</p>
+
+<p>‘In what direction?’ inquired Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘I have told you already. I know I shall have property,’
+said Helena, trying to speak with lofty indifference, but all
+the same, not unaware that the young man’s eyes were fixed
+upon her face, and with her own wavering as she went on
+with the speech which she had uttered many a time before,
+and which now struck her for the first time as falling somewhat
+flat, and not being quite equal to the occasion. Other
+young men had looked at her, and said they were sure she
+didn’t mean it, and it was too cruel of her, and other ‘vacant
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">[Pg 185]</span>chaff’ of the same description. Sebastian only looked at
+her gravely, calmly, as it seemed to her, almost pityingly,
+and in perfect silence.</p>
+
+<p>The glance stung and galled her. She would not be
+deterred by that look. What was Sebastian Mallory but a
+man—a thoughtless young man, who had dared to laugh at
+her views?</p>
+
+<p>‘And property entails responsibilities,’ she continued.</p>
+
+<p>‘It certainly does.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall therefore never marry,’ said Helena, courageously,
+though her face burned, and she wished intensely that she
+had never insisted upon the discussion. ‘I shall look after
+my own affairs, and arrange them according to my own
+judgment. I will be free, and nobody’s servant.’</p>
+
+<p>‘A very wise resolution; provided, first, that you keep
+it; and second, that you feel equal to disposing judiciously
+of a large property.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I have no doubt about <i>that</i>,’ said she, with a lofty smile,
+still not raising her eyes, and very angry with herself for not
+being able to do so.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian smiled, and the smile made Helena feel hot
+and uncomfortable.</p>
+
+<p>‘I hope,’ said he, with extreme politeness, ‘that you will
+feel the satisfaction which should be the reward of such
+high motives.’</p>
+
+<p>Helena flushed again. She had argued the point more
+than once with different people, and without this feeling of
+embarrassment. Why was she embarrassed now? What
+would that ‘nicest girl’ he ever knew think, if she were
+here? Had she money? He had said she had been
+brought up in the school of adversity. That reminded
+Helena of another point in the argument, which she ought
+to have advanced long ago. She was dimly conscious of a
+kind of bathos as she said, ‘I don’t believe in useless fine
+ladies, you know, all the same. I think women ought to
+be able to earn their own living, if necessary. They ought
+to be able to be quite independent of men, if they choose.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you think they ever would choose?’ he asked with
+a suppressed smile.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">[Pg 186]</span></p>
+<p>‘I know this, that I would rather earn fourpence a day as
+a needle-woman, than depend upon any man!’ said Helena,
+hotly and indignantly. ‘And I could always do that.’</p>
+
+<p>‘In that case I congratulate you,’ he retorted ironically.
+‘You are superior to all calamities and misfortunes. I wish
+I could feel myself equally secure.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You have not argued a single point,’ said Helena with
+passion. ‘I shall never be at the trouble to talk seriously
+to you again.’</p>
+
+<p>‘If you will only talk to me at all, I shall be delighted.’</p>
+
+<p>She had risen, and whirled herself away to the other end
+of the room, where she busied herself in setting two young
+ladies to screech duets, while she conversed (seriously or
+otherwise) with the clergyman.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian turned with a half-smile to Miss Mereweather.
+He found an unaccountable pleasure in goading Helena
+into a passion. He had a dim, vague idea that if he tried,
+he could not only irritate her into fury, but soothe her back
+into calmness; but he was quite sure he never would try.
+Rages, he thought, were not in his line. He liked better,
+as a permanency, the perfect temper and calm self-possession
+of another character. No one would want to tease Adrienne.</p>
+
+<p>His mind half given to such thoughts, he conversed with
+Miss Mereweather, and his opinion of Helena’s discrimination
+was gradually raised. Miss Mereweather was not at
+all bitter about her defeat—if defeat it were. She was
+clever, sensible, accomplished. She owned that she did
+think a great deal about the advancement of women and their
+improvement, and she was an ardent advocate for giving
+them the franchise; but, she added, she could not go to
+the lengths Helena did, and very soon they left that subject
+and turned to others. Their conversation was perfectly
+amicable and agreeable, and Helena watched them from
+afar, with a darkling, somewhat resentful glance. Dear
+Laura’s one fault, she thought, was that she was too facile—that
+she compromised too easily.</p>
+
+<p>As the Mallorys drove home, Mrs. Mallory, completely
+deceived by the long conversation which had taken place,
+was in a disastrously, unsuspiciously amiable frame of mind,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">[Pg 187]</span>and was correspondingly dejected when Sebastian, summing
+up his description of the evening’s entertainment, said that
+Miss Spenceley had adopted the strictly feminine line of
+argument, ‘Agree with all I say, or I will quarrel with
+you!’</p>
+
+<p>‘As I did not agree with all she said, she quarrelled with
+me. <i>Violà tout!</i> Did she talk women’s rights to you,
+Hugo?’</p>
+
+<p>‘To me—no!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why <i>I</i> should be selected as the victim, I can’t imagine,’
+pursued Sebastian. ‘It is a pity she does it, for she could
+be nice, I am sure; and as it is, she makes herself simply
+a bore.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory was silent, mentally heaping opprobrium
+upon Helena’s crazes.</p>
+
+
+<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a id="Footnote_2_2" href="#FNanchor_2_2" class="label">[2]</a> An apology is herewith offered to the Manchester Central Committee,
+for thus putting into the mouth of a fictitious individual their excellent
+proposals for the schools which were of so much benefit in most
+of the distressed districts.</p></div></div>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">[Pg 188]</span></p>
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="BOOK_II">BOOK II.
+<br>
+THE STORM.</h2></div>
+
+<figure class="figcenter illowp100" id="book_deco_4" style="width: 9.25em;">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/book_deco.jpg" alt="">
+</figure>
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+THE FIRST OF THE STORM</p></div>
+
+
+<p>The year 1861 had closed in thick clouds and a great
+darkness, with the mutter of war in the far west, and with
+the threatening of famine at home. The year 1862 dawned,
+but with a dawn so dark as scarce to be distinguishable
+from profoundest midnight.</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Earth turned in her sleep for pain.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>January, February, dragged slowly by, and times only
+grew worse. Few chimneys smoked, no workers tramped
+through the streets; faces were pinched, fires burnt low and
+meagre in the bitter weather; money was not forthcoming,
+clothes were few, pleasures were at an end. Men paused
+and waited, as it were, while the thunder growled and the
+first heavy drops of the storm began to fall, slowly and
+deliberately, and then faster and ever faster, till none could
+escape the universal drenching.</p>
+
+<p>One bitter morning, in the beginning of March, Myles
+and Mary Heywood turned out to their daily work. A
+furious, stinging wind, and a driving, scourging rain, saluted
+them as they entered the long sloping street leading to the
+factory. Myles pulled his collar up about his ears, and
+Mary folded her shawl more tightly round her, pulling it
+also farther over her face. They walked in silence, and
+did not look at each other. In truth, both their hearts
+were sad as sad could be. They were entirely changed
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">[Pg 189]</span>from the well-to-do, untroubled, noble-looking brother and
+sister who, six or seven months ago, had walked home together
+in the heat of the August afternoon. What a hot,
+plentiful blaze of sunlight then! what cold, what wet, what
+inclemency of elements now! The contrast was pointed
+and searching, and went home to both.</p>
+
+<p>For months now, Myles’s heart had been growing bitterer
+and harder, and more rebellious; ever since that evening
+on which Sebastian Mallory had come and interrupted his
+talk with Adrienne. He had not seen her often since then,
+or rather had not visited her often since then; but on the
+few occasions when he had done so, she was changed. He
+had seen the change distinctly, had seen how her eye wavered
+and her colour changed under his piercing glance, for he
+could look at her steadily enough now, without bashfulness,
+and with a gaze of desperate, hopeless inquiry, which, he
+thought, must burn her secret from her heart. With each
+visit, each conversation with her, he had grown more hopeless,
+more despairingly certain that what little part or lot he
+had ever had in her life, had now vanished—was done with
+for ever more. Once, strolling aimlessly along, he had seen
+her come out of a shop, and had been going to speak to
+her, when Sebastian Mallory had come up, smiling, and
+lifting his hat, and fixing his eyes upon her face.</p>
+
+<p>The sight had been quite enough for Myles, who had
+plunged his hands into his pockets, and turned away with
+bitterness in his heart. Once or twice—he did not know
+how often—he had purposely and pointedly spoken to her
+of Sebastian, and had even asked her a question or two
+about her former acquaintance with him, and had watched
+cruelly and unflinchingly to see how she took it. And she
+had taken it just as he had expected, with downcast eyes,
+a heightened colour, and a sudden confused silence. He
+had been satisfied with his experiment; now he had given
+over going to Mr. Blisset’s house, saying to himself,</p>
+
+<p>‘If she cares for us, and is worth anything, she will come—she
+will come, if it is only to see Mary. By this I shall
+know her. If she comes I’ll keep quiet, and try to be
+satisfied with her—friendship. And if she does not come—I’ll
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">[Pg 190]</span>hate her; no, I’ll think no more of her—I’ll forget
+her, and rid myself of this plague that has been with me
+ever since I knew her.’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne did not come; days and weeks went by, and
+she came not, and Myles did not hate her; he did not
+cease to think of her. His ‘plague’ tormented him more
+grievously than ever, and his life was miserable. His days
+were long; there was only half the usual work to fill them.
+The weary afternoons and evenings were unutterably long.
+He sat at home with his books open before him, or he took
+his way to the reading-room, and sat with more books open
+before him, and stared at them, and knew nothing about
+what was in them, while the chimes played ‘Life let us
+cherish!’ and Myles thought of the hundreds, now daily
+augmenting, dwelling in the houses beneath those chimes,
+to whom, in their destitution, the tune must have seemed
+a sort of melodious mockery. ‘Life let us cherish!’ while
+the men across the Atlantic were locked in the deadly grip
+of war, and the cotton manufacture in England was coming
+steadily, surely to a stand-still. A few more throbs of its
+mighty pulse—a few more desperate struggles to break
+through the paralysis that was creeping over it, and then the
+iron lungs, the great throbbing heart of it, its huge limbs,
+its vast arteries, would be quiescent—for who should venture
+to say how long? It was a deadly prospect.</p>
+
+<p>With these various causes of distress gnawing perseveringly
+at his heart, the young man might well be silent, as
+he set his teeth against the wind, and stooped his head to
+shield his face from the rain.</p>
+
+<p>While Mary, on her side, had cause enough and to spare
+of unhappiness. The poor girl’s heart was full to bursting
+of a dread fear that she had had for many weeks now, and
+concerning which she had not breathed a word to any one.</p>
+
+<p>‘That it should ha’ begun just now!’ she thought to herself;
+‘just when times is hard, and work is short, and I can
+none get him all he should have.’</p>
+
+<p>She kept up a brave face; worked out her daily task at
+her looms, and her much harder, heart-breaking task at
+home; had caresses, and smiles, and tender words for
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">[Pg 191]</span>Edmund, and a good face to turn to poor Myles, in his
+gloom, which oppressed her faithful heart like a chill hand
+laid upon it. She had her meed of consolation for Harry
+Ashworth, who said he was growing deafer and deafer. She
+had her own private astonishment at Adrienne’s long absence,
+but no thought that Adrienne meant any slight or
+ill-will to her or hers.</p>
+
+<p>Still, her secret cares had thinned her cheeks, and taught
+her lips to assume a sadder curve; had placed a line or two
+upon her frank, calm brow, and lent a quiet pensiveness to
+her dark-brown eyes. It had always been a good face—now
+it had the dignity and pathos of well-borne sorrow.</p>
+
+<p>They entered the great gas-lighted room. Myles went
+off to his part of the mill and Mary to hers. How hot and
+overpowering it felt, after the bitter rawness of the outside
+air! She cast aside her shawl, and set her looms going,
+and in a few minutes the old accustomed roar of the
+machinery had somewhat soothed her; and her monotonous,
+weary pondering over ways and means, and sharp, stinging
+fears as to some dread event hovering in the near future,
+had been somewhat dissipated by attention to her work
+and the chat of a fellow factory-worker.</p>
+
+<p>‘I reckon we’st soon have to shut up shop here, Mary,’
+said the latter. ‘I yeard Wilson say as how we couldn’t
+hold out mich longer.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, what?’ said Mary, with a start—‘eh, I hope not,
+lass. What mun we do, if we’ve no work?’</p>
+
+<p>The other girl shrugged her shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>‘I’ve yeard say, too, as if we do have any work, it’ll be
+wi’ Surats, and I mun say I’d rayther have none at all. I
+conno’ work yon stuff.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I care nowt at all, whether it’s Surats, or what it is, so
+as I’ve summat to do, and summat to earn,’ said Mary.</p>
+
+<p>‘Thou may work twelve hours a day at Surats, and not
+earn above six shillin’ a week,’ said her companion cynically;
+and then the conversation ceased, and Mary was left to her
+reflections.</p>
+
+<p>At eight they went home to breakfast, and at half-past
+they were at their work again, and continued at it until half-past
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">[Pg 192]</span>twelve, when Wilson put his head into the room, and
+called out,</p>
+
+<p>‘All the hands in this here room will please wait a few
+minutes in the big yard. I’ve got something to say to
+you.’</p>
+
+<p>The same announcement had been made in the different
+rooms, and the result was, all the hands were assembled
+and waiting, some curiously, some apathetically, for the
+communication that was coming.</p>
+
+<p>Wilson jumped upon a lorrie which stood in the yard, and
+in a clear, distinct voice, read out from a paper he held in
+his hand this announcement:—</p>
+
+<div class="blockquot">
+<p>‘I hereby give notice that on and after Friday, March
+the —th, this factory will be closed, owing to the present
+condition of the cotton trade, in consequence of the
+American war. At the same time, as I am anxious to
+keep my hands together, and to save them as much as
+possible from distress, I undertake, for the present at least,
+and until other circumstances should make a change desirable,
+to furnish them with the means of subsistence, and
+such of them as are my tenants will not be pressed for rent
+until the times improve. Each head of a family is requested
+to attend in the warehouse of this mill on the afternoon of
+Monday next, at three o’clock, when the conditions of relief
+will be made known, and the names and addresses of all
+in receipt thereof taken down. I request you earnestly, and
+with perfect confidence, to try, all of you, during this present
+trouble, to act together, and assist me in the preservation
+of order and the relief of distress.</p>
+
+<p class="author">
+‘<span class="smcap">Sebastian Mallory.</span>’<br>
+</p>
+</div>
+
+<p>There was a short silence; then murmurs; then, from
+some lips, an attempt at a cheer. Some girls and women
+were wiping their eyes with their aprons, and one or two
+men waved their hats: exclamations and murmurs arose all
+around. ‘Eh, but that’s reet-down kind, that is!’ ‘Th’
+chap is a good sort!’ ‘Well, we needna fear to clem just
+yet!’ and so on. The gratitude was very real, if expressed
+with true Lancashire reticence and absence of effusion.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">[Pg 193]</span>But almost greater than the gratitude was the gloom—the
+sense of shame and degradation—the feeling that this was a
+draught too bitter for any amount of sugaring to sweeten, and
+that they had done nothing to deserve to have to swallow it.
+Sebastian had done wisely in committing to Wilson the
+delivery of the message. Wilson seemed to the work-people
+almost as one of themselves; he, too, must suffer somewhat
+from this calamity. The humiliation would have been too
+intense had Sebastian read the announcement himself. He,
+like hundreds of other masters, was making money—netting
+large profits at this stage of the crisis. His piled-up warehouses
+would be emptied at profitable prices of the accumulated
+results of last year’s over-production, while the
+impossibility of getting at the stores of cotton which were
+undoubtedly reposing in large quantities in Manchester and
+Liverpool warehouses, relieved him from the immediate
+expense of working, and of paying wages. That part of the
+‘panic,’ as it was and is always called by the work-people,
+was one of unmitigated severity for the poor man—for the
+worker—capital added hugely to her stores. Yet every
+employer of any foresight was troubled to know what was
+to become of his work-people during the great distress—such
+skilful, practised, deft-handed, soft-fingered work-people
+as no other corner of the world could supply to him—work-people
+who, if they once got scattered, or emigrated, or
+separated from their labour, could not be replaced—the
+choicest of craftsmen and craftswomen. This was a hard
+subject during all the years of the cotton famine—how keep
+the operatives together, provide for them, prevent them from
+becoming demoralised by the enforced idleness, combined
+with the living on money not earned by themselves? It
+was a problem which, all must confess, was nobly solved.</p>
+
+<p>At this precise time, though the distress was daily augmenting
+in an appalling manner, though each week saw a
+greater number of factories closed entirely, yet the organised
+system of relief—that gigantic machinery whose equal the
+world had never before seen—was not yet in existence.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian, after long consultations with Mr. Sutcliffe, had
+come to the conclusion, for the present at least, to support
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">[Pg 194]</span>his own work-people, and the result of that resolution was
+the paper just now read out by Wilson.</p>
+
+<p>Slowly the hands dispersed. Mary Heywood, seeing her
+brother near the big gate, joined him there, and glanced
+rather doubtfully up into his face. Doubt rapidly changed
+to dismay: he was white as death; his lips tight-set; his
+great dark eyes absolutely scintillating with passion. The
+words she had been about to speak to him died upon her lips.</p>
+
+<p>‘Thou go home, lass! I’ve a little business to do before
+I come after thee, but I’ll not be long,’ said he, so quietly
+and calmly that her heart beat a little less rapidly, and without
+a word she obeyed, leaving him there in the yard, he
+conscious only of one purpose, and of a burning restlessness
+until that purpose should be accomplished.</p>
+
+<p>He waited by the gates, looking at no one, speaking to no
+one, until he saw that all the hands had filed out, and that
+Wilson was left alone in the office, locking things up. A
+few swift, striding steps brought him inside the little room.
+Wilson looked up.</p>
+
+<p>‘Hey, Myles! Is that you? Do you want something?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. I just want to tell you to take my name—and my
+sister’s too—off the books. We shall not work here any more.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh! but you will. This here is only a temporary stoppage,
+you know. Times must mend, though they look bad
+enough now, and Mallory’s won’t go to smash so easily.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall never work here again, I tell you, nor Mary either.
+Take our names off the books, if you please; and look you,
+Wilson, if anybody comes round to my house offering me
+relief in’—a spasm twitched his pain-set lips—‘the master’s
+name, I’ll kick him out—so you’re warned.’</p>
+
+<p>‘My certy, Myles! You’re mad to talk i’ that way.
+You’ve ne’er thought about it. How are you to live without
+relief? And when such a handsome arrangement has
+been made——’</p>
+
+<p>‘That’s nothing to the point. Please to do as I ask, and
+remember, I’ll keep my word.’</p>
+
+<p>He turned on his heel and left the yard. Wilson looked
+after him, watching the proud, elastic figure, haunted by the
+remembrance of the deadly paleness of the face, and the
+sombre, despairing gloom of the eyes.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">[Pg 195]</span></p>
+<p>Wilson acted as became a wary man, who did not choose
+to commit himself—shook his head, and murmured,</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, ay, my good chap, but you’ll have to eat humble-pie
+sooner or later—and why not sooner?’</p>
+
+<p>Evidently, the characters of Myles and his easy-going old
+friend were fundamentally unlike.</p>
+
+<p>Meantime Myles, breathing rather more freely, and with
+a faint return of colour to his cheek, took his way home,
+feeling that now, if he met Sebastian Mallory, he could look
+him in the face as defiantly as he chose. There was something
+almost exquisite in the sense that, though only a few
+pounds stood between him and destitution, yet he was no
+longer in any way dependent upon Mallory.</p>
+
+<p>Arrived at home, he found the kitchen empty; the dinner
+half ready (not such an abundant dinner, even now, as it
+once had been), the table spread. He sat down moodily,
+and waited; and presently Mary came down looking very
+sad indeed. She had not been crying, but there was something
+in her eyes speaking of a grief and fear beyond tears.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, my lass, where’s Edmund?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Edmund’s in bed, Myles.’</p>
+
+<p>‘In bed!’ he echoed, looking up in some surprise;
+‘why, what ails him?’</p>
+
+<p>‘The same thing as has been ailin’ him this six-week. I
+dunnot know what it may be. Th’ doctor calls it low fever.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The doctor!’ he echoed again, more astonished still.
+‘What’s the meaning of this, Molly?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, Myles, if thou’d none been so wrapped up in summat
+all this time, thou might ha’ seen as the lad were fair pinin’
+away.’</p>
+
+<p>She could hardly finish her words, but sat down upon
+the rocking-chair, and covered her face with her hands for
+a moment, while he looked at her with a haggard gaze. A
+hundred trifles came into his mind now, crowding quickly
+forward—Mary’s pre-occupation—Edmund’s passive silence
+and flushed face—and he had never seen it. Brute that
+he was!</p>
+
+<p>‘And to-day he’s that weak, he can’t sit up no longer,’
+continued Mary, raising her face from her hands and looking
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">[Pg 196]</span>sadly before her; ‘and I’m sore fleyed he’ll ne’er be
+strong again, that I am.’</p>
+
+<p>Then she rose, and began to finish the few preparations
+for dinner, though, sooth to say, no two people ever made
+ready for a meal with less appetite. She began to talk, as
+she thought cheerfully.</p>
+
+<p>‘When I heard Wilson read out as factory would stop
+o’ Friday, my heart fair sank within me, when I thowt o’
+yon lad, and us wi’out a penny to earn, but, eh! I could
+ha’ cried wi’ joy afore he’d done. Yon Mr. Mallory mun be a
+reet good-hearted chap, and our Edmund winnot clem now.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mary!’ he exclaimed, starting up, and speaking in so
+strange a voice that she looked at him involuntarily, and
+saw again the look—the pale face, the scintillating eyes—which
+had so terrified her an hour before, at the mill-gate.
+He stepped across the room to her, and grasped her arm.
+‘Never thou name such a thing again. I told Wilson to
+take my name, and thy name, off the books, and to send
+anybody round here, poking into my affairs, if he dared.
+I’d die like a dog before I’d take bit or sup from <i>him</i>, or
+let any of those that belonged to me do it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, whatever——’ she began, but he went on, forcibly
+moderating his voice,</p>
+
+<p>‘Molly, I never could have thought to hear such a word
+from thee. Hast thought what it means? It means that
+we—seven hundred and more of us—shall go like beggars
+every day, and take that man’s money, and eat his bread,
+and do nothing for it. Thou’rt mazed with thy trouble,’ he
+added soothingly, ‘or thou’d never have dreamt of it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But how mun we live?’ she asked, seeing only that they
+were Mr. Mallory’s work-people, and that he prized their
+services, and like a generous master desired to help them
+until better times came round again. ‘Thou wert always
+so set against th’ master, lad; but when we’re like to starve,
+what mun we do?’</p>
+
+<p>Neither Mary nor Myles, it may have been observed,
+made any mention of their mother, or spoke as if she could
+relieve them. Later in the distress Mary went to her
+mother, and represented their situation. Mrs. Hoyle replied
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">[Pg 197]</span>sententiously that her money was sunk in her husband’s
+business, and she had no longer any control over it, which
+was indeed true: she had put it entirely in his power
+immediately after marrying him, and it remained there, for
+towards the close of 1863 Mrs. Hoyle, who had believed
+that she was doing well for herself in her marriage, died of
+a rapid, sudden illness, and her money passed away from
+her children, and into her husband’s hands, for ever.</p>
+
+<p>‘We’re not like to starve yet,’ replied Myles, to his
+sister’s last remark. ‘I’ve got over ten pounds put by—it
+ought to have been more, but I wasn’t as careful as I should
+have been; and you’ve something of your own, I know.
+It’s true, we’d meant to keep it, but in these times we’ll
+most of us have to use up what we put by.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, lad!’ answered Mary, with sorrowful embarrassment,
+‘mine were such a bit! And I’ve drawn it all out, for to
+buy yon lad his bits of things as he must have. Doctor
+ordered them, and I saw as thou were moithered wi’ summat,
+so I didn’t ax thee, but just used up my own bit o’ brass.
+It’s all gone—all but a few shillin’s.’</p>
+
+<p>He dropped her arm, and turned aside. This then was
+the prospect—a sick brother to cherish, himself and his
+sister to support; the rent to pay; and a little over ten
+pounds between them and destitution. Undaunted though
+his spirit was, it was fain to stand appalled before these facts,
+until at last, turning round, he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I’ll think about what can be done, Mary. Ten pounds
+will last a good while, and thou’rt so clever at managing,
+and all that.’</p>
+
+<p>Mary was silent. She knew how quickly ten pounds
+would vanish, where there was an invalid to be cared for;
+and the regular weekly sum which Myles had haughtily
+refused, seemed, now that it was out of her reach, to assume
+the proportions of absolute wealth.</p>
+
+<p>‘Myles,’ she said, ‘I know thou mun have some reason
+for what thou’rt doing, but <i>I’ve</i> no grudge against the master.
+I don’t see why I shouldn’t take the relief and help Ned a
+bit ... thou needna know nowt about it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mary!’ He paused, choked back some passionate
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">[Pg 198]</span>emotion, and looked at her. There rushed over his mind,
+as by an inspiration, the conviction that what he had said,
+what he had proposed to do, was a mean, tyrannical way of
+making others suffer for his own private grudge. Mary’s
+mind was to be kept on the rack as to ways and means;
+Edmund’s comforts were to be stinted, or stopped, because
+he, Myles, hated Sebastian Mallory, and, knowing his sister
+would obey him, despotically said, ‘You will take no help
+from him.’</p>
+
+<p>Certainly, to know that Mary and Edmund were subsisting
+upon Mr. Mallory’s bounty, while he was idle, would be
+anguish almost as keen as to sit down and subsist upon that
+bounty himself; but anguish, it seemed, prevailed a good
+deal in the world. It had to be borne by some people—what
+right had he to shift his portion upon the shoulders of
+a loving woman and a cripple boy? He cried shame upon
+himself. His cheek flushed, and he hesitated no longer.
+He had begun to speak passionately; he finished calmly.</p>
+
+<p>‘I had not thought of that. You are right, Molly.
+You’d better do so. It will be bad for me to bear’ (how
+bad, his pale face and drawn lips foretold), ‘but it’s best
+so. This is a great trouble that has come upon us, and we
+must be as great as we can to meet it, I suppose. I shall
+look out and see if I can find anything to do—perhaps
+away from here. I’m sure it’s the best thing I could do.
+It’s a great mistake my being here at all.’</p>
+
+<p>This speech, with the misery and bitterness underlying
+its acquiescence in her wish, seemed to freeze Mary’s heart
+within her. She could not understand it, yet it seemed to
+forebode evil and misery and woe to her. She looked at
+Myles, in whose whole attitude was something alien and
+strange. For a moment a fearful weight and foreboding
+oppressed her; then, breaking suddenly loose from it, she
+ran up to him with a cry of love, flung her arms around his
+neck, and kissed him eagerly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, Myles, hush, hush! Thou munnot talk like that.
+I’d clem sooner nor take a penny from any one thou didn’t
+like. It were only that I were quite disheartened, like, wi’
+wondering what I were to do in these hard times, now yon
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">[Pg 199]</span>lad is so poorly. But for thee to go away and leave us—the
+best brother’—a hug—‘ay, the vary best, ever a lass
+had—my certy, don’t say nowt about it again.’</p>
+
+<p>She was half laughing, half crying. As for Myles, the
+clasp of her warm arms about his neck seemed to unstiffen
+it; the pressure of her face upon his breast appeared to
+loosen a load of pent-up feeling. He put his arm round
+her waist, and kissed her soft brown hair again and again,
+and once more the feeling rushed over him that this was
+true hearty love, and that he was a fool to distress himself
+for that other love, which would never be his.</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t take on so, there’s a dear lass. Do just as you
+like about the relief. Say nothing to me about it, and I
+shall know nothing about it. There’s a reason why I can
+take neither bit nor sup from young Mallory—a reason I
+can’t tell you, and that will never be removed. A crumb
+of his bread would choke me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, has he done thee any wrong?’</p>
+
+<p>‘None at all, and means me no wrong; it’s what they call
+circumstances, Molly. They come rather hard upon a
+fellow sometimes, that’s all. Come! the dinner must be
+well-nigh cold. Let’s have it, and then I’ll go up and sit
+wi’ poor Ned a bit.’</p>
+
+<p>It was a dark prospect which opened before them; yet,
+after this conversation, they both felt lighter of heart, and
+better prepared to meet it.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_II">CHAPTER II.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+‘RATHE SCHLAGEN.’</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Sebastian Mallory, Mr. Sutcliffe, and Wilson, holding a
+council of war together, late in the afternoon of that eventful
+day, discussed the means to be taken for the preservation
+of order, and the best distribution of relief.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian, in the course of the debate, asked how many
+exactly there were to be relieved.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">[Pg 200]</span></p>
+<p>Wilson ran his eye over some long lists of names and addresses.</p>
+
+<p>‘The number of hands is seven hundred and thirty, sir,
+all in all; but it’s with the heads of families we shall have
+to deal. About a dozen won’t require relief, and four have
+taken their names off the books altogether.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Which are they?’ asked Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘Frank Mitchell, weaver; he’s got a brother in Canada,
+who offered to pay his passage out if he’ll go and help him
+on his farm; so, as soon as he heard work was stopped, he
+decided to go. That’s one. Myles and Mary Heywood——’</p>
+
+<p>‘What! Any reasons given for their leaving?’ asked
+Sebastian, quickly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, sir, relief would be a hard nut for Myles Heywood
+to crack, at the best of times. He’s uncommon proud,
+and he came up to me, after I’d read your notice, and told me
+very stiff indeed to take his name and his sister’s off the books.
+I did hexpostulate with him, but he were quite determined.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Did he give any reasons?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, sir. He doesn’t generally give his reasons for what
+he does, leastways not to me; but I’m not his master.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is he one of my tenants?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, sir. He lives on the Townfield, at Number 16.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, very well!’ said Sebastian, and the business went
+on for some time uninterruptedly.</p>
+
+<p>In the evening Sebastian, calling at Stonegate, and
+asking if Miss Blisset could see him, was admitted, and
+taken to the drawing-room, where he found Adrienne alone,
+seated at her piano. She rose, coming forward to greet
+him, and he saw that her face was pale, and her eyes sad
+and heavy.</p>
+
+<p>‘I hope you are in a good-natured and self-sacrificing
+mood,’ said he, ‘for I am come to ask a very great favour.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall be delighted if I can help you in any way.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Did you know we cease to work at all after Friday?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Cease to work at all! What will become—oh, I am
+very sorry—what will the work-people do?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I thought,’ began Sebastian, and bit his lips.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">[Pg 201]</span></p>
+<p>He was afraid of appearing to parade his intentions
+before her, and altered the form of his announcement.</p>
+
+<p>‘I have consulted with Sutcliffe, my manager, you know,
+and we have come to the conclusion that it will be the best
+and wisest plan for me to relieve my work-people myself,
+for the present at any rate, and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘All of them! To keep them, do you mean?’ asked
+Adrienne, quickly.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is really the best, and it will be the cheapest way in
+the end,’ said he, half apologetically; ‘and what I wished
+to ask you was——’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is right—it is a generous thing to do. I am glad
+you are going to do it,’ she interrupted him, her eyes beaming,
+and suppressed warmth in her tone.</p>
+
+<p>And she looked at him more fully and steadily than she
+had done for many weeks past. Yet there was something
+not perfectly pleased in her expression.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian, a young man who was not usually given to
+losing his self-possession or presence of mind, coloured,
+half with embarrassment, half with pleasure.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad you approve,’ was all he could find to say.</p>
+
+<p>‘I do. It will be such an excellent example.’</p>
+
+<p>‘An example—ah, yes! But now to ask my favour.
+Sutcliffe thinks it will not do to let them be idle all the
+time, so we have decided to open some schools—one for
+the men and boys, and another for the women and girls.
+Both of them will require some one with brains and a head
+on their shoulders to look after them. I want to know if
+you will take the management of the women’s school?’</p>
+
+<p>‘But Mrs. Mallory—will she not wish to——’</p>
+
+<p>‘No. She will have nothing to do with it beyond giving
+me a subscription. I believe she does not altogether approve
+of the course I have taken, and has decided to hold herself
+aloof. You can do it, if you will, and if Mr. Blisset will
+spare you. I know you are not afraid of yourself, and that
+is why I asked you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘If my uncle can spare me, I will undertake it,’ said
+Adrienne, speaking as she now usually did speak to him—rather
+briefly and drily.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">[Pg 202]</span></p>
+<p>Sebastian could wring no sign from her—nothing but a
+rapid, guarded glance, and a brief, unemotional speech. It
+was unsatisfactory, he felt. He was not making way. She
+tormented his thoughts sometimes in a way that was harassing;
+he carried in his mind almost incessantly the calm,
+sweet face, pale and clear; the rapid glance which was, he
+felt, not so much destitute of expression as full of something
+veiled—something which she would not allow to beam fully
+out upon him.</p>
+
+<p>‘It will not be play,’ he proceeded, after a silent pause,
+during which his eyes interrogated hers, which made no
+answer. ‘It will be downright hard, arduous work. If it
+should prove to be too much for you....’</p>
+
+<p>‘It will not be too much for me,’ she said quickly, and
+then her eyes did suddenly fill with some expression—what
+he could not tell. ‘I want some work like that—work
+which will be hard and absorbing,’ said Adrienne, clasping
+her hands with an involuntary movement. ‘What must I do?
+Have you got a room for the school, and some teachers?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think of dividing part of my warehouse, and filling it
+with benches. It can soon be done. As for teachers, I
+thought some of the better-educated amongst the young
+women themselves, or I could find a mistress, and—do you
+know Miss Spenceley?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, I do not,’ said Adrienne, steadily, her colour rising.</p>
+
+<p>‘She is a young lady who professes to need active work
+and to love it, and I really think, if she had the opportunity,
+she would throw herself heart and soul into such a scheme.
+But perhaps you would rather not make her acquaintance?’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne paused again. Was she to extend the scorn
+and contempt she felt for Frederick Spenceley to his whole
+connections, and to make difficulties and quibbles about
+her co-workers in a scheme in which it was essential chiefly
+to have workers as soon as possible?</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ said she; ‘if you think Miss Spenceley would
+help, I shall be very happy to work with her.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Of course you will be the head,’ said Sebastian. ‘I
+will take care that is understood, and then there will be no
+difficulty.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">[Pg 203]</span></p>
+<p>‘If you will send me a list of names and addresses,’ said
+Adrienne, ‘I will go myself and see after them. I dare
+say Mary Heywood could tell me something about a good
+many of them.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That reminds me that Myles Heywood, for some reason
+or other, has seen fit to decline all assistance. He has
+ordered his own name and his sister’s to be taken off my
+books, and withdraws in dignified silence.’</p>
+
+<p>He looked intently at Adrienne as he spoke. She was
+silent, crimsoned for a moment as she met his glance; then
+she started from her chair and walked to the fireplace,
+stooped over the fire-irons, and began to mend the fire.</p>
+
+<p>‘Allow me!’ said Sebastian, politely, coming to her
+assistance in time to see her disturbed face. ‘Is it not
+foolish of him?’ he added, remorselessly. ‘He is too young
+to have been able to save anything almost, and there is not
+the least prospect of work at present.’</p>
+
+<p>‘He was quite right,’ said Adrienne, clearly, as she fixed
+her eyes upon Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘Quite right?’ he echoed, holding the poker suspended
+in his hand, and looking at her in his turn.</p>
+
+<p>‘Perfectly right. I am thankful to hear it. If he had
+stooped tamely to accept charity from you—I mean from
+any one—as soon as it was offered, I—I would never have
+forgiven him.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian gently replaced the poker in the fender.</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps he knew that,’ he remarked in his softest tone.</p>
+
+<p>‘He could not,’ was Adrienne’s quick retort. ‘I have
+not spoken to him for weeks. And if I had—if he had
+known it....’</p>
+
+<p>‘He might know it perfectly well, all the same,’ insisted
+Sebastian. ‘Have you thought seriously about it, Miss
+Blisset? I know Heywood is a friend of yours....’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, he is—a great friend of mine,’ she answered firmly,
+and not one sign was lost upon Sebastian’s cool, observant
+eyes; the head a little thrown back, eyes bright, the pale
+cheek flushed, as if she braced herself to meet some peril.
+He saw and noted it all.</p>
+
+<p>‘You should be cautious how you influence him,’ said he.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">[Pg 204]</span></p>
+<p>‘I do not influence him. He is far too strong and decided
+to be influenced by—by a girl like me.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian smiled politely but derisively.</p>
+
+<p>‘Pardon me, but I don’t think you are quite right there.
+I am convinced you do influence him, and if so, don’t you
+think it is unkind to prejudice him against his real interests?’</p>
+
+<p>‘His real interest is not to take charity. Mr. Mallory,
+the bare idea of Myles Heywood coming up to receive
+charity is dreadful. It makes me miserable to think of it—only
+I can’t imagine his doing such a thing. He never
+will. Poor fellow! I am sorry for him!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Sooner or later it will come to that—it must,’ said
+Sebastian. ‘And I—you speak as if I had tried to thrust
+alms upon him ostentatiously, like a rich man relieving a
+beggar, and then appealing to every one to notice his generosity.
+Can you suppose I intended anything so revolting?’</p>
+
+<p>The usually placid and unruffled Sebastian spoke in a
+tone of deep vexation and chagrin.</p>
+
+<p>‘No, of course I did not suppose any such thing,’ replied
+Adrienne, her face still flushed. ‘I did not do you so much
+injustice. But I’m glad he refused—so glad. I hope he
+will find something else. I even hope that this present
+trouble may turn out to be a means of improving his
+position, for I think he may turn his thoughts to some
+higher employment than mere drudgery in a factory—even
+though it is your factory,’ she added, with a slight smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘He is certainly fit for a higher post. You would be
+glad to know him in such a situation, would you not?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Indeed I should.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Even though it took him away from his friends and
+native town?’ went on Sebastian, somewhat ironically.</p>
+
+<p>‘Y—yes. Even in that case.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well—who knows! It may turn out to be as you say.’</p>
+
+<p>The conversation had been a far from satisfactory one to
+Sebastian. He had had no idea, a month ago, that Myles
+Heywood’s image would take such an important place in
+his concerns. He turned the subject, and made arrangements
+with Adrienne about the school; but it seemed to
+him that since their passage of arms—for it had been a
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">[Pg 205]</span>passage of arms—her eyes had brightened, and her voice
+had been more full and decided. He left her at last,
+firmly convinced that Myles was his formidable rival, and
+the conviction gave him a strange sensation, such as he had
+never known before. All his life he had been accustomed
+to quietly make up his mind, and then as quietly carry out
+his decision. Now, to his own astonishment, he found himself
+strangely wavering between certainty and uncertainty;
+and as he walked from Mr. Blisset’s house to his own, he
+pondered over the history of his own love for Adrienne,
+and, almost for the first time, began to wonder what would
+be the end of that history.</p>
+
+<p>It was three years now since he had first met her. There
+had been a chamber concert, in Coblenz, of classical music.
+Adrian Blisset had played violin and his daughter piano,
+and Sebastian had been one of the not very numerous
+audience; for the taste of the Coblenzers for music was not
+of the severe sort. Perhaps the small audience was the
+more appreciative—at least Sebastian Mallory sat a long
+two hours and a half, without a thought of being weary or
+any wish to go. When the music was over he had penetrated
+to the little room whither Adrian and his daughter
+had retired; and knocked, and been bidden <i>herein</i>.</p>
+
+<p>Apologising for the intrusion, he had introduced himself,
+and said he imagined that certain pieces that had been
+played that evening, and which stood on the programme
+without any composer’s name, were the production of the
+musician himself. He was right, and as these compositions
+had appeared to him to possess a certain wild, weird beauty
+of their own, there had ensued a long conversation upon
+the subject, during which Sebastian’s discrimination and
+real, earnest love for the art he professed had won over
+even Mr. Blisset’s reserved and moody disposition.</p>
+
+<p>Thus the acquaintance began. The musician had been
+kinder and more open than he usually was, not only to
+strangers, but to any one at all. Sebastian had been
+allowed to visit him and his daughter. Adrienne had
+played for him; she had talked with him, and he had
+found her charming.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">[Pg 206]</span></p>
+<p>From Coblenz they had gone to Wetzlar, in the vain
+and illusory hope that there they might find an audience,
+and receive remuneration. The projected concert never
+took place, but certain other things did. They spent
+altogether a week in the sleepy old town. They floated
+in a little boat up the river, between the rows of poplars
+and the level meads; they sat under the shadow of the
+grim old <i>Heidenthurm</i> of the cathedral, and looked over all
+the landscape below. Adrienne sat upon the wall above
+Goethe’s <i>Brunnen</i>, and looked at the girls coming to
+fill their pitchers, and said to Sebastian, who was standing
+beside her, and looking earnestly down at her,</p>
+
+<p>‘I wonder if it was to such a well that Hermann came
+and helped Dorothea? I could almost fancy so. Could
+not you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think I could,’ Sebastian had answered, looking, not
+at the well, but at her.</p>
+
+<p>With each day that he saw her, his admiration for her
+grew greater. She was a fair jewel in a poor setting. Her
+gentleness, her dignity under trouble and sorrow, her</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Festen Muth in schweren Leiden,’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>impressed him, delighted him. Her flashes of quaint
+humour, which showed him how gay the spirit she owned
+might be, if only the sun would shine a little upon its
+dwelling-place; her grace, her intellect, attracted him
+irresistibly; and he loved, too, the quiet independence
+with which she met him; the calm dignity with which she
+ignored his wealth, his position, his advantages, and treated
+him as her equal—no more, no less.</p>
+
+<p>Amongst the list of events which made, as it were, a
+gaily coloured, kaleidoscopic pattern in his memory, that
+week at Wetzlar stood out from the rest, like a little patch of
+pure gold, like the lucent background on which stands out,
+pure and clear, some mediæval Madonna.</p>
+
+<p>One morning, when he went to call upon them, he found
+Adrienne in sore distress, which she tried in vain to conceal.
+She was alone, and he had succeeded at last in getting her
+to confess what troubled her. A creditor of her father’s
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">[Pg 207]</span>pressed hard for a certain sum of money, due long ago.
+That fact was in itself painful enough, but it alone would
+not have been sufficient to break down Adrienne’s calm
+and steadfast courage. It was her father’s manner of
+accepting, or not accepting, his position, which alarmed
+and made her wretched. More than once he had uttered
+dark and oracular hints as to the wisdom of leaving a world
+which was full of nothing but misery and contradictions.
+At that time he was in his room, and had refused to see
+her or speak to her. She did not know what would happen,
+what he might or might not do; and Sebastian saw the
+young girl’s courage fail for the first time, for the first time
+saw her fold her hands, and, with tear-stained eyes, ask
+piteously,</p>
+
+<p>‘What am I to do?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Leave it to me, Miss Blisset. Of course something
+must be done, and I will do it. For your sake I will do
+it gladly,’ he had said, taking her hands, looking into her
+troubled eyes with a glance that made them more troubled
+still, and going straight to her father’s room.</p>
+
+<p>The ‘something to be done’ naturally resolved itself
+into pecuniary assistance. The matter was perfectly simple.
+Notes for three hundred thalers settled it. Sebastian insisted
+upon becoming Mr. Blisset’s banker, and Mr. Blisset said
+that he could not refuse the possibility of being under
+obligations to a gentleman, who would understand the feelings
+of another gentleman, rather than to a coarse-minded
+tradesman, who could not by any possibility understand
+such fine sensibilities. The money was a loan. They both
+called it a loan; and Sebastian came out and told Adrienne
+that it was all right.</p>
+
+<p>She had burst into tears; then recovering, had said,</p>
+
+<p>‘There is nothing that I would not do for you.’</p>
+
+<p>To which he had replied,</p>
+
+<p>‘Then come and have a row on the river.’</p>
+
+<p>Upon which they had straightway had a very delightful
+row on the river, the Lahn; and delicacy alone had prevented
+Sebastian from then and there saying to Adrienne
+that he loved her, and asking her to be his wife. He deferred
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">[Pg 208]</span>the question—he hoped, not for long—only until he
+had spoken to her father; and that he decided he would
+do the following day.</p>
+
+<p>In pursuance of this resolution, he had called during the
+forenoon at the musician’s lodgings, and had asked to see him.</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Ja!</i>’ the hostess told him, with a shrug of the shoulders,
+‘the <i>Herrschaften</i> had left by the first train that morning.
+Last night the gentleman had spoken very sternly to the
+Fräulein; she had heard him. The Fräulein had expostulated,
+and cried, and said, “How unthankful it will seem!” To
+which her <i>Herr Papa</i> had replied that he could not endure
+such a burden; he must leave the place. After which he had
+desired his <i>Fräulein Tochter</i> to pack up, and they were gone.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Where?’ asked Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Na!</i> How should I know, <i>mein Herr</i>? Apparently
+to Frankfort, since the first train in the morning goes direct
+there; but from Frankfort, I have heard, one may go out
+anywhere over the whole world, even to Africa, if one
+chooses. What do I know?’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian had retired, quite convinced that it was not
+Adrienne but the morbid pride and vanity of her father,
+which had caused this <i>contretemps</i>. That pride could not
+endure to live in the presence of the man who had placed
+him under an obligation. He had gone to hide himself,
+and Sebastian tried in vain to find any further trace of
+Adrian Blisset and his daughter.</p>
+
+<p>He had so much the less forgotten her. The feelings of
+warm admiration, chivalrous respect, and tender affection
+which he had hitherto felt for her, suddenly leaped up in a
+quicker flame—he loved her. From feeling convinced that
+to have her as his wife would be a good and a happy thing
+for him, he had become determined that one day she should
+be his wife; she and no other. From that time she had
+remained for him as a sort of standard, an ideal of womanhood;
+gentle-spirited, true, and pure, wise and prudent,
+sweet and modest. He had judged all other women by this
+standard, and had never felt anything more than a certain
+admiration for any woman since his parting from Adrienne.</p>
+
+<p>Then had ensued his return home, his not very satisfactory
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">[Pg 209]</span>relations with his mother, the distress amongst his
+people, the necessity for prompt action and hard work, his
+introduction to Helena Spenceley, his sudden, unexpected
+meeting with Adrienne, and the eager conviction that now
+she soon must, should be his. Beside Helena’s brilliant
+beauty, the delicate grace of Adrienne was as the beauty of
+a white violet compared with a crimson rose. Helena was
+dazzlingly beautiful, but she was the exact opposite of all
+which he had been for three years praising and exalting to
+himself as best and sweetest and most desirable in woman.
+He thought a good deal of Helena. She was younger than
+Adrienne, wilder, less educated, prejudiced, hot-headed,
+violent, and bewitching.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, she must be bewitching,’ argued Sebastian, with
+exquisite <i>naïveté</i>, within himself. ‘Look at Hugo. The
+lad was enraptured with her.’ That was to be expected.
+Hugo was young too; he had not loved Adrienne Blisset
+for three years. Sebastian had the steady purpose and
+intention of asking Adrienne to marry him, to honour him
+and make him happy by becoming his wife. When? As
+soon as he could find the opportunity, he said to himself.
+But it never did come. He could not understand how it
+was, that, though he saw Adrienne repeatedly and alone,
+though she was amiable, cordial, pleasant, yet he could never
+get that question asked. Adrienne’s behaviour puzzled him.
+He could have sworn that once she loved him. When he
+was with her, Myles Heywood’s handsome olive-hued face,
+with its scornful lips and defiant eyes, seemed always to be
+hovering there between her and him. And yet, on the one
+occasion on which he had seen them together, Myles had
+looked and behaved as if he were as far as possible from
+being anything like a favoured lover, thought Sebastian, with
+an odd sensation of jealousy and pain. No; it was only
+opportunity for which he waited, an opportunity which
+seemed as if it would never come. Certainly it had not
+been there that evening. He walked home lost in profound
+speculations, thinking of Adrienne’s lifted head and flashing
+eyes, and of how Myles Heywood had been ‘very stiff
+indeed’ with poor old Wilson that morning.</p>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">[Pg 210]</span></p>
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_III">CHAPTER III.
+</h2>
+</div>
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Kannst du des Herzens Flammentrieb nicht dämpfen,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">So fordre, Tugend, dieses Opfer nicht.’</div></div></div>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Towards eight o’clock on the following evening, Mary
+Heywood and Edmund were the only occupants of the
+kitchen. The lad was somewhat better and less feverish,
+and Myles had carried him downstairs and laid him upon his
+old resting-place, the chintz-covered sofa under the window.</p>
+
+<p>There he lay, with a shawl thrown across him; his thin
+face wasted to sharpness—a waxen pallor on his cheeks
+and lips; dark rings under his great bright eyes. His
+almost transparent hands were stretched out upon the couch
+before him, and his unread book lay open across his knees.
+Mary had made things as cheerful as she could, so as not
+to let Edmund know how bitterly they were pinched in
+order to give him the things he needed. True, the fire
+was smaller than their kitchen fires were wont to be; and
+behind the cupboard-doors there was not very much to bring
+forth for supper; but the place was exquisitely clean and
+tidy, and so was the girl herself, in her faded gown, and
+with her pale, pathetic face.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mary,’ said Edmund, breaking a silence, ‘does Miss
+Blisset never come here now?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, it’s a good while, like, since hoo were here;
+likely hoo’s had summat to do as has kept her away,’ said
+Mary, as confidently as she could.</p>
+
+<p>‘I canno’ think why hoo ne’er comes. I could like to
+see her ... where’s Myles to-neet?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Gone to the reading-room, he said. I’m some and glad
+he does go there. Some o’ these chaps is hanging about
+the livelong day, fair as if they didn’t know what to do with
+theirsels. I reckon some on ’em will do summat as they
+shouldn’t before long.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Has Harry Ashworth been lately?’ pursued Edmund,
+his thoughts turning towards his friends, now that he felt
+himself somewhat more free from pain and weariness.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">[Pg 211]</span></p>
+<p>‘Ay—he’s been more than once,’ replied Mary, and her
+cheeks flushed, and she gave a great jump, as a knock resounded
+at that very moment through the house. The coincidence
+was too remarkable.</p>
+
+<p>In a moment, however, she realised that the knock was
+at the front, not the back, door, therefore it could not be
+Harry Ashworth who knocked; and secondly, it was not
+at all like his knock when he did come. Wondering who
+the visitor could be, and casting a critical glance around,
+to see if the kitchen were as neat as it should be, she
+stepped out through the passage, and went through the
+ceremony of unlocking and opening the door.</p>
+
+<p>Outside it was dark. Coming from the light of the
+kitchen she could not see who stood there, but a voice which
+she had already heard once, and thought pleasant, inquired,</p>
+
+<p>‘Does Myles Heywood live here?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, he does; but he’s out.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, is he? I’m sorry. I felt sure he would be in in
+the evening.’</p>
+
+<p>The visitor still lingered on the doorstep, and inquired
+again,</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you know how long he will be?’</p>
+
+<p>Mary’s sense of hospitality was stronger than even her
+dread of Myles’s displeasure.</p>
+
+<p>‘Won’t you step in a minute, and see if he comes? It’s
+Mr. Mallory, isn’t it?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. I did want to see him very particularly.’</p>
+
+<p>‘’Appen, if you were to sit you down a bit, he might
+coom back soon,’ suggested Mary, fervently trusting that
+he would do nothing of the kind; and that Mr. Mallory
+would get tired of waiting, as she knew Myles himself did.</p>
+
+<p>With a word of thanks Mr. Mallory accepted the invitation,
+and entered the house. A proper attention to
+established etiquette would have led Mary to usher him into
+the highly coloured parlour, but the recollection that there
+was no fire there, and that some of the furniture was wanting,
+overcame conventional rules, and he was taken forward
+into the kitchen.</p>
+
+<p>‘I hope I am not intruding,’ he began, so courteously
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">[Pg 212]</span>that all Mary’s innate politeness was roused to action, and
+his welcome was more effusive than it might otherwise have
+been.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, dear no! Please take a seat!’ said Mary, pulling up
+her own rocking-chair. ‘Me and Edmund was quite alone,
+and not doin’ nowt at all, except talk a bit. Ned, here’s
+Mr. Mallory. You’ve ne’er seen him afore.’</p>
+
+<p>Edmund had never been aware of Myles’s deep antipathy
+to the young master; he only knew that his brother had a
+sort of contempt for his employer, as a useless, highly finished
+piece of humanity, not good for much in such a rough
+place as Thanshope. He himself was intensely sensitive
+to refinement and beauty, in every shape and form, and
+as Sebastian was handsome, polished, and refined in an
+eminent degree, Edmund’s eyes rested upon him with a
+sense of satisfaction and soothed pleasure and delight, and
+he smiled pleasantly as he took the hand which their
+visitor extended, saying kindly,</p>
+
+<p>‘I fear you are a great invalid.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m none so strong,’ said Edmund. ‘I’ve been ill,
+but now I’m better.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose you are Myles Heywood’s brother and
+sister?’ continued Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay,’ said the others, and they smiled—that smile of
+mingled pride and affection which speaks well for the
+absent one, and which Sebastian noted directly.</p>
+
+<p>He took a chair by Edmund’s sofa, and, turning to Mary,
+said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose you know your brother has had his name and
+yours taken off my books.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay,’ responded Mary, colouring with some embarrassment,
+while Edmund looked rather anxiously from the one
+to the other, this being the first he had heard of the circumstance.</p>
+
+<p>‘Was it your wish, too, to leave my employment so
+suddenly?’ he asked slowly.</p>
+
+<p>‘I didn’t know—Myles did it. He thought it would be
+for the best, I suppose, sir,’ stammered the girl.</p>
+
+<p>‘But you,’ he persisted gently—‘have you such an intense
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">[Pg 213]</span>objection to receiving a little assistance in such a
+time of distress, from a—you don’t say master here, I
+notice—from an employer whom you have served so long
+and so well as I hear you have done? I should not have
+thought so. You know it is not an ordinary case. It is
+not as if you or I, or any of us here, could have prevented
+it. There can be no shame——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I never thought there was,’ said Mary, wondering in her
+distress what could be the grudge that Myles had against
+such a master as this. ‘I fair cried wi’ joy when I heard
+what you was going to do; but when Myles came in and
+told me——’</p>
+
+<p>‘But you do not mean that he has forbidden you—that
+he prevents—it is——’</p>
+
+<p>‘No!’ said Mary, suddenly. ‘Our Myles is not one of
+that sort, I can tell you, Mr. Mallory. He won’t take a
+penny himself—why, I don’t know. And I saw as it would
+go near to break his heart to see me and yon lad eating
+another man’s bread, and him standing by idle. But he
+said to me, “Thou’ll do what thou’s a mind to, Molly; it’s
+a great distress, and we m—mun—be g—great to meet it.”
+Oh! it were same as if he’d said, “There’s nowt for’t but to
+cut off my right hand; give me th’ chopper, and let me do
+it!”—that it were!’</p>
+
+<p>She sobbed vehemently once or twice, and Sebastian read
+the passionate love and devotion she felt for that brother,
+whom, he began to think, he never could conquer.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! that is more like him!’ he said warmly. ‘I thought
+I was mistaken. And will nothing persuade you to accept
+this help? It is such a small thing to refuse; and I do
+not think it right in you to refuse it. You must think of
+this brother of yours. He cannot stand the hardships of
+this time as Myles, and even you, can; and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are very good—reet-down kind, you are!’ said
+Mary, looking at him with gratitude. ‘I’ll say this. We’ll
+hold out as long as we can. We mun do that, if we want
+to think well of ourselves. But I’ll come to you when it
+gets too much. You’re reet: I can’t see nowt to be ashamed
+of in it.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">[Pg 214]</span></p>
+<p>‘You promise?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, I promise.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is well. Now, if your brother would come in, I
+could say what I have to say to him, and——’</p>
+
+<p>Mary lifted her head. She heard footsteps along the
+flags of the back, and the tune being whistled which no one
+but Myles ever did whistle. She started forward as the
+back door was opened, and exclaimed,</p>
+
+<p>‘Here’s Myles; he’s coming now.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, I’m glad of that,’ said Sebastian, though he was
+fully conscious of Mary’s discomfited looks. ‘Now I can
+speak to him myself.’</p>
+
+<p>The back door was closed again; the quick steps grew
+leisurely; presently the kitchen-door also was opened, and
+the voice of Myles was heard, saying, as he entered,</p>
+
+<p>‘I say, Molly, thou must——’</p>
+
+<p>He came in, and looked round with a smile, which flashed
+out of his face as he saw who was there. His first impulse
+was to ask fiercely, ‘What brings <i>you</i> to my house?’ but
+Myles had very strongly developed the proverbial Lancashire
+sense of hospitality, and accordingly he suppressed
+his question, and remained silent, until Sebastian offered
+him his hand, saying courteously,</p>
+
+<p>‘I hope you will not think I am intruding. I particularly
+wished to see you, and your sister was so kind as to
+ask me to wait a few minutes, in the hope that you would
+return.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian had spoken just in time. Myles was assailed
+on the side of hospitality, politeness to a guest, and other
+similar feelings. He realised quickly that Sebastian had
+not acted as most masters would have done—sent for him
+to come and see him—but had come himself to seek him
+out, and now apologised for intruding in the most handsome
+and ample manner. There was nothing there that even his
+sore heart could construe into a slight. Moreover, the man
+was there, under his roof—had been invited there; and, if
+Molly might have been wiser, the thing was done, and he
+must act accordingly. He could not look cordial—the
+sense of the advantages which the other had over him was
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">[Pg 215]</span>too heavily and oppressively present for that—but he could
+be civil, he could speak words something like welcome.
+He could even, under the circumstances, accept the hand
+which Mallory held out—or rather, circumstances did not
+allow him to refuse it. Accordingly, he took the hand,
+standing very erect, and looking very proud and solemn,
+while Mary knitted more quickly, as she observed, from her
+seat in the background, how each man looked straight and
+steadily into the other’s eyes.</p>
+
+<p>‘Won’t you take a seat?’ said Myles, handing a chair to
+Sebastian, and taking one himself. ‘It’s a cold night, and
+you’ve had a longish walk.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Thank you. It was on a small matter of business that
+I called—about your having taken your name from my
+books.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Myles, his eyebrows setting suddenly in a
+straight line across his brow, and his lips in one nearly as
+straight beneath his moustache.</p>
+
+<p>‘It was this. I do hope you will not think that I come
+out of any officiousness or curiosity, because it is not so.
+Mr. Sutcliffe told me you had left my employment. I asked
+him if he thought you had any other occupation; and he
+said that, so far as he knew, you had not. I concluded,
+whether rightly or not, that your reason for leaving was that
+the factory was closed, and you would not accept assistance
+without working for it. Was I right?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Myles, concisely.</p>
+
+<p>‘I know that employment, especially remunerative employment,
+is not easy to find in these bad times, and that
+you might not soon find anything to do; so I merely called
+to say that I know of two situations, for either of which you
+would be suited, and if you would like me to use my influence
+to get you either of them, I shall be glad to do so.
+You must not think that I meant anything else.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are very kind,’ said Myles, in the same constrained
+and colourless voice, which belied his contracted brows and
+the fiery flash of his eyes beneath them, ‘very kind; but I
+do not require any assistance, thank you!’</p>
+
+<p>The manner and the tone were such that Sebastian felt
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">[Pg 216]</span>he could not, after what he had said, urge his offer any
+farther. But the desire which he constantly felt when with
+Myles, to gain his esteem and win his confidence, rushed
+more strongly over him than ever before. He saw in the
+young man so much that was noble, so much that was good,
+so much that he, in his quiet, reserved way, intensely prized.
+Sebastian had a strong, though secret, desire to be much
+loved, to greatly influence certain individuals. He felt very
+strongly that where Myles Heywood loved or admired, it
+would be with a passionate whole-hearted devotion, which
+would go all lengths; and he desired greatly to see some
+other expression light those sombre, moody eyes, when they
+looked at him; to compel that right hand to stretch itself
+towards him in a genial, spontaneous clasp of friendship and
+regard.</p>
+
+<p>Was it possible that he who before now had won hearts,
+both of men and of women; he who had inspired that fitful,
+capricious artist-Hugo with a passionate love and devotion;
+he who had seen Adrienne Blisset’s quiet eyes well
+over with something more than gratitude; he who felt
+within him the potentiality to subdue that fiery-hearted
+Helena, did he but choose to give his mind to the task,
+and to bring her to his feet with a devotion as intense as
+her present half-assumed scorn—was it possible that he was
+to be baffled by a young, uncultivated, untutored, unsophisticated
+artisan, who could continue to resist, defy,
+and scorn him, in spite of all his efforts to the contrary?
+Was it possible that this plain-spoken Myles Heywood, with
+nothing on his side but his prejudices, his pride, and his
+love, could continue to hold Sebastian Mallory at arm’s
+length, when he really set his whole battery of persuasion
+to work upon him? The idea was a galling one. He did
+not like effusiveness, but he did like devotion very much.
+He hated a display of power; but the power itself he loved
+dearly. Myles, in his present attitude, represented a defiant
+obstacle which must be overcome. But how?</p>
+
+<p>Mary here afforded him unconsciously a little assistance,
+by saying in a tearful voice, ‘Eh, Myles, think about it!
+Remember how badly off we are. It’s not for mysel’, it’s
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">[Pg 217]</span>for Edmund and thee. I canna bear to think o’ thee bein’
+so pulled down and troubled wi’ such things. Thou’rt too
+good for it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Molly, lass, don’t make it worse for me!’ said Myles,
+with a reproachful look; and Mary was silenced, as Sebastian
+saw.</p>
+
+<p>She sat down in a rocking-chair, and cried quietly, wiping
+her eyes at intervals, but she said no more. Myles turned
+his back upon her, not wishing to see her distress. Sebastian
+had also stood up. The man’s pride was stiffer than even
+he had supposed, and his desire to bend it became proportionately
+greater.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am very sorry you will not let me do anything,’ he
+said. ‘You are quite mistaken in thinking there could be
+any degradation in it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I never said I did think so,’ interposed Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘You are not without ambition,’ pursued Sebastian, fixing
+his eyes upon Myles with conviction, and noting the answering
+flush in his face, though his eyes remained downcast.
+‘No man who is worth anything is without ambition. If
+you would let me, I could put you into the way of furthering
+your ambition. Of course it would be a struggle;
+but then you are one of the right kind to struggle—you
+like it. A few years’ absence from England, a few years’
+hard work in a post for which you would be well suited, and
+you might return here, if you liked, a different man, in a
+different position, able to do and get pretty much what you
+liked. Remember, to a man of courage, who has made a
+mark, <i>most things that he wishes for stand open</i>. Is this
+nothing to you? Do you prefer remaining shut up in Thanshope,
+with your own prospects, and the prospects of your
+fellow-workmen no better than they are? I cannot believe
+it of you.’</p>
+
+<p>Almost unconsciously, Sebastian had half-cast aside the
+mask of indifference, and was speaking nearly as eagerly as
+he felt. He had stepped up to Myles, and laid his hand
+upon his arm. Their eyes met. Myles’s very soul had
+been stirred by the words he had heard.</p>
+
+<p>They had touched the very well-spring of his present
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">[Pg 218]</span>wishes and desires, the longing which had grown and intensified
+with his love and his sense of its utter hopelessness.
+To leave this place—go away to some other spot, where
+there would be scope for hard work, mental and bodily—work
+that would absorb his energies. There was nothing
+he desired more than such work. His enforced idleness
+was absolutely hideous to him. Out of England, he might
+advance, rise; Sebastian, he knew, was not wont to speak
+rashly or unadvisedly on such matters, but was given to
+measuring his words. He might return an altered man,
+well off, perhaps, or at least with the means of becoming
+well off; why, he might (it all seemed to flash in a second
+through his mind)—he might go at last, and seek Adrienne—and
+find her gone, hear that she was Sebastian Mallory’s
+wife. And <i>then</i> the acceptance of Sebastian Mallory’s assistance
+would have caused his last state to be worse than his
+first. He would have stooped, not to conquer, but to be
+forestalled, defeated, humiliated, and all the riches, and all
+the position that the world could give, would not restore
+his hopes and his lost self-respect. With a short sardonic,
+miserable laugh, he jerked his arm from Sebastian’s hand,
+and said almost angrily,</p>
+
+<p>‘It is of no use. You will never persuade me to that.
+It is wasted breath to try it.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian felt an absolute thrill of vexation and mortification;
+a thrill so strong as to surprise himself.</p>
+
+<p>‘What makes you so obstinate?’ he unwarily exclaimed.
+‘Is it some personal reason?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ answered Myles, looking him directly in the eyes;
+‘it is!’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian’s lips were parted to speak, but he could not
+utter the words he intended to say. He was silent with a
+disagreeable, discomfiting sense that he was baffled and
+defeated. They were all silent till Sebastian said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, since you will not, you will not. But I think you
+are mistaken in your course, and what is more, I think you
+will repent it before long. If you do, if you should come
+to change your mind, let me know. I have no wish to take
+my word back, but shall always be ready to abide by it.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">[Pg 219]</span></p>
+<p>Myles smiled, almost scornfully, as he bowed his head
+slightly and said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Thank you.’</p>
+
+<p>In his inmost heart he was thinking that he would rather
+die than place himself under obligations to his rival, whose
+full formidableness he only realised to-night. There was,
+he confessed it, fully and frankly to himself, something extremely
+attractive about the grace and courtesy of Sebastian,
+but the most dangerous quality was the power which soon
+became distinctly visible beneath the polish; a power which
+forced the observer, however reluctantly, to respect as well
+as to admire. If he, the unwilling and prejudiced, felt these
+things so strongly, how much more must others, already
+prejudiced in his favour, experience it? So much the more
+reason why he, the plain and unadorned, should keep himself
+to himself, follow his own path, and not ape qualities so different
+from his own. But he had ceased to bear any ill-will to
+Sebastian. The latter did not know how far he had advanced
+in the very moment in which he seemed to have receded.</p>
+
+<p>‘I will not intrude upon you any longer,’ said he. ‘You
+bear no resentment, I trust, but understand my motives?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I bear no resentment at all,’ said poor Myles, putting
+his hand without hesitation into that held out to him. ‘If
+I have been rather rough, I beg your pardon. It is my way.
+I meant no incivility.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am sure of it. Good night,’ he added, turning to
+Edmund. ‘Good night, Miss Heywood.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Good night, sir,’ said Mary, looking tearfully up, as
+Sebastian followed Myles from the room. She heard the
+door open and shut, and the steps of the unwonted visitor
+going away. Then Myles returned to the kitchen.</p>
+
+<p>Edmund was tired. Myles helped him upstairs, and
+came down again. They scarcely spoke. Mary uttered no
+reproach, and he offered no apology; but when she got up
+to go to bed, he kissed her tenderly, saying,</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t think too hardly of me, Molly. I can’t do otherwise
+and be an honest man at the same time.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m none thinking of blaming thee, lad,’ said Mary,
+escaping from him, and going upstairs.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">[Pg 220]</span></p>
+<p>He remained there a long time, brooding over the embers
+of the fire, and thinking, if only things had been different!
+And as he thought, a vision rose before him of that Sunday
+afternoon when he had so nearly betrayed himself, and he
+remembered Adrienne’s words:</p>
+
+<p>‘If I loved that man, and he loved me, and asked me
+to be his wife, I would say yes; and I would love him and
+serve him as long as I lived.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, my darling!’ his heart cried within him, in a kind
+of anguish, ‘but you don’t love me; and if you did, I
+should not be worthy of you, if I did what was wrong to
+win you.’</p>
+
+<p>No doubt he took a wild, fantastic, mistaken view of
+things, but to him it was much more real than if the most
+accomplished logician had argued it out for him, and proved
+it to be founded on the purest and most solidly reasonable
+basis.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_IV">CHAPTER IV.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+COMBINATION <i>V.</i> STARVATION.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>For the space of some six weeks—that is, from early
+March to the middle of April, Adrienne, Helena, Mr.
+Sutcliffe, Hugo, Sebastian, and others who worked with
+them or under them, had toiled hard at the schools of both
+kinds which Mr. Mallory had opened in connection with
+his relief system. At first considerable difficulties were
+naturally experienced; some of the work-people grumbled
+bitterly at being obliged to ‘go to school again,’ as the
+condition of receiving a sum, which appeared to them small
+indeed, after the abundant wages they had for years been
+earning; but the tact and kindness of the three principals,
+Sebastian, Adrienne, and good little Mr. Sutcliffe, and the
+hearty manner in which they were backed up by their subordinates,
+soon worked wonders. Ere long the work-people
+themselves discovered how much better off they were than
+those of their friends whose masters had not seen fit to
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">[Pg 221]</span>provide for them; and who were just then groaning under
+the obnoxious ‘labour test,’ as it was called, which roused
+so much gall and bitterness before the sewing and educational
+schools were fairly started. Learning to make clothes,
+or reading, writing, and arithmetic, were felt to be decidedly
+more distinguished and elevating employments than stone-breaking,
+or road-making, and were, moreover, much better
+adapted to the lissom fingers, and to the physique, accustomed
+to sedentary labour in a high temperature, of the
+operatives. By degrees they fell into their places. They
+felt that they were known, and expected, and missed if they
+did not come at the appointed time. The great warehouse
+was warmed and lighted, and threw open its doors hospitably
+wide to receive them. ‘Mallory’s schools’ were known all
+over the town, and those who attended them were envied
+by those who did not.</p>
+
+<p>For the principals the task was, as Sebastian had told
+Adrienne, no joke. It was continuous, dry drudgery. The
+routine was monotonous, and the discipline strict; but the
+master and head of it all was the first to adhere unswervingly
+to every rule laid down, and his coadjutors followed
+with unhesitating obedience. Mr. Blisset received more
+kisses and thanks from his niece just now than she had
+ever bestowed before—kisses and thanks for what she
+called his goodness in sparing her to help the poor people
+in their great distress. She was with him much less than
+usual, and perhaps did not therefore notice so much his
+pallor and weakness, and the strength which was failing in
+every way. He, for some reason, withheld the truth from
+her, and did not tell her that he felt almost at the end of
+his weary, dismal pilgrimage. It was only to Sebastian
+that he spoke about that—Sebastian, who had become the
+trusted friend of the poor, lonely man.</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne and Helena worked heartily, hand in hand.
+That was no time for petty bickerings and jealousies. Even
+sectarians forgot their differences in the imperative necessity
+for administering to the great need and woe of the people.
+In working-hours Adrienne forgot entirely who Helena was;
+and knew her only as a hearty helper, a quick, bright, kind-hearted
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">[Pg 222]</span>girl, to whom no trouble was too great, and no task
+too hard. It was not quite the same with Helena. She
+had divined, by some subtle means—herself scarce knew
+how—that Adrienne was no other than ‘the nicest girl I
+ever knew,’ and Miss Spenceley’s eyes grew intensely critical.
+Every word, every gesture and action of her coadjutor, was
+weighed in a nice balance, and, so far, had not been found
+wanting. Helena herself was, without knowing it, changing
+rapidly. Despite a certain vague disquietude of heart, she
+was happier than she had ever been in her life before. She
+threw herself into her new work with her characteristic
+passionate energy and vehemence, and her contact with
+life, and some of its sternest lessons, was rubbing down
+her preconceived extravagances of opinion, though she still,
+in word and theory, cherished them as fondly as ever. But
+it was impossible that one of her intensely sensitive and
+receptive mind could behold what she daily did, of sorrow
+and pain, of ignorance and helplessness, and remain the
+same. She saw into depths in this our life of which she
+had never dreamed, and which Laura Mereweather’s philosophy
+passed over entirely.</p>
+
+<p>It has been acknowledged on all sides that the benefits,
+at that time were not only on one side. It was not only
+the rough factory-girls who came to learn, but also the
+delicate ladies who gave up time and comfort and their
+best energies to teach, who profited by the intercourse.
+In the sad and degrading spectacle of the spring of 1878,
+the sweet lessons learned and taught in that bitter season
+of 1862 seem almost to have been forgotten and obliterated.
+Many a benighted girl—many an uneducated, ignorant
+matron, roused to her toil at half-past five in the morning,
+and prevented by its long monotony from acquiring any
+domestic grace, learnt almost her first notions of making
+home happy and comfortable in the schools that were set
+up in the ‘panic.’</p>
+
+<p>Then, in the woe of the poor, and the sympathy of the
+rich, it almost seemed as if the great black frowning barriers
+of caste had been overthrown; but the division of classes,
+the opposition between master and man, is a plant of sturdy
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">[Pg 223]</span>growth, and strikes its roots deep and far under the earth.
+Now, sixteen years later, comes a strike almost without
+parallel for bitterness and unyielding stubbornness on either
+side—a strike accompanied by rioting and mob-rule, broken
+windows, houses sacked, men assaulted, women and children
+threatened; and the necessity for a strong military force to
+preserve even the outward semblance of order; and this,
+on the identical ground where, during the cotton famine,
+the sore distress was most nobly borne and most generously
+relieved. These things make a riddle hard to read.</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne and Helena found both their mental and physical
+energies taxed to the utmost by the work they had
+undertaken, but neither had any thought of giving up.
+With Adrienne it was a labour of calm, affectionate duty;
+she went to it with an enlightened sense of her own responsibilities,
+and a full comprehension of the gravity of the crisis.
+With Helena it was something quite different; she worked
+eagerly, till she was wearied, and scarcely knew why she
+did it. Of course she was sorry for the poor people, and
+pitied them in their present condition, and was anxious to
+help them, strained every nerve to do her work; but she
+thought more about Adrienne Blisset and Sebastian Mallory
+than about all the poor people in Thanshope.</p>
+
+<p>She was changing rapidly, without knowing it. In the
+presence of this great urgent need, and of her own deeper
+emotions, all the flimsy theories of the past were being
+utterly undermined, though outwardly towering as high and
+as fair as ever. She was no happier in her home-relations
+than before. Sebastian’s conduct was condemned there by
+her father and brother. She knew that it was only because
+of Sebastian’s wealth and Mrs. Mallory’s high position in
+the town, that she was allowed to participate in what was
+called the ‘madness’ of Mr. Mallory. Fool and madman
+were the mildest words in the vocabulary of the Spenceley
+men, by which to describe Sebastian’s course. It was
+wrong and iniquitous in him, they said, to set such an
+example, as if every mill-owner in Thanshope could be expected
+to support his hands while this confounded war lasted.</p>
+
+<p>‘Every mill-owner—no!’ said Helena, with flashing eyes.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">[Pg 224]</span>‘So many of them are too poor. They have not the means;
+but if all those who could afford it did so, it would only be
+their duty—their bare duty, and there would not be so many
+begging letters in the papers, asking for help for the richest
+county in the richest country in the world.’</p>
+
+<p>She was informed that she knew nothing about it, and
+that it was only to keep her out of some other mischief that
+she was allowed to have anything to do with such folly.</p>
+
+<p>(‘And,’ she thought to herself, with a hard smile, ‘because
+Sebastian Mallory is rich and influential, and I see him
+every day, there.’)</p>
+
+<p>The conversation turned to Helena’s coming birthday,
+when she would attain her majority, and great festivities
+would be the order of the day. With tears in her eyes, she
+took the opportunity to implore her father to give up the
+ball which would cost so much money, and to give her half,
+nay, a quarter of the sum he intended to spend upon it, that
+she might give it to Miss Blisset or Mr. Mallory, and have
+it used for relief purposes; but the request was peremptorily
+refused, and she was told, in oracular language, that she did
+not know what was good either for herself or the work-people.
+Moreover, she was informed, it was all very well for a pretty
+girl to play at women’s rights; but that a daughter was
+expected to obey her father; and the regal Fred remarked
+that a fool and her money were soon parted, and he would
+back Helena for making ducks and drakes of any property
+she might ever have, if it were not pretty tightly tied up.</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose it is only finished gentlemen like yourself who
+know how to make proper use of their money and their
+time,’ said Helena, turning upon him bitterly. ‘I can tell
+you the whole town will cry shame on both of you—the
+richest men in it, and you have scarcely subscribed five
+pounds to keep your own work-people from starving.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I didn’t become the richest man in Thanshope by pouring
+my money into my work-people’s pockets,’ said Mr.
+Spenceley, grimly.</p>
+
+<p>And Helena, with a passionate ‘Psha!’ rushed from the
+room, drawing on her gloves as she went, to go forth to her
+afternoon labours at the school.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">[Pg 225]</span></p>
+<p>This was in the middle of March, and as she came up
+the cindery path leading to the little anteroom, which
+Sebastian and his staff were in the habit of using as an
+office, he and Miss Blisset sat at the window watching her
+approach.</p>
+
+<p>‘What a lovely, graceful creature she is!’ said Adrienne,
+admiringly, as the tall supple figure of the girl came swiftly
+up the walk. ‘I often wonder how she can be the child of
+such parents.’</p>
+
+<p>‘There is some southern impetuousness in her nature,’
+he replied, ‘and a capacity for southern rages, too,’ he
+added, watching her and smiling. ‘Look at her now, Miss
+Blisset; do you see that frown, and how her eyes are flashing,
+and her lips set?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I do; but that is a very unusual expression with her.
+I wonder what is the matter with her?’</p>
+
+<p>Here Helena came in, somewhat in the whirlwind style,
+her tall figure erect—her silken skirts angrily sweeping about
+her.</p>
+
+<p>‘You look annoyed, Miss Spenceley,’ said Adrienne,
+looking up from where she sat, composed and cool.</p>
+
+<p>‘Annoyed!’ repeated Helena, whose anger and mortification
+had been augmenting all the time since she had left
+home, and whose voice vibrated; ‘they tell me on all sides
+that my father is the richest man in Thanshope, and that I
+shall have more money than I know what to do with—some
+time. Some time, indeed! And I cannot get five pounds
+now to help people with. I’ve given away all my money.
+I have just half a crown in the world, and I can’t get any
+more for a month. Do you call <i>that</i> the proper way to
+treat a woman who will be responsible for five thousand a
+year—<i>some time</i>? My father said I should. Do you call
+that the right means to accustom her to the duties of her
+position?’</p>
+
+<p>She had turned suddenly, and almost fiercely, to
+Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘Not at all,’ said he at once; perceiving that her lips
+quivered, and that she was divided between tears of mortification
+and flames of anger. ‘Not at all; but, my dear
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">[Pg 226]</span>Miss Spenceley, so long as we have your services, the money
+which you do or do not contribute is not of the very least
+consequence.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t say that to me!’ she exclaimed, excitedly. ‘What
+is the use? My services are nothing; I can do nothing.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Indeed, I don’t know what I should do without you,’
+said Adrienne. ‘You can influence those girls and women
+sometimes, when I can make nothing of them. You can
+make them laugh heartily, when all my efforts can only
+extort a solemn stare from them.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You must not talk of going,’ chimed in Sebastian. ‘It
+is your countenance alone which reconciles my mother to
+the undertaking. And if you did not come,’ he added,
+smiling, ‘I don’t believe Hugo would have anything to say
+to it; and he is invaluable to me amongst the boys. For
+heaven’s sake, don’t desert us!’</p>
+
+<p>Helena, with downcast eyes, was taking off her gloves.
+Her cheek was flushed, and she smiled a little triumphantly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Girls can do something then, after all?’ said she.</p>
+
+<p>‘Have I not two living and bright proofs of the fact
+before me now?’ he replied, looking from the one to the
+other.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, yes!’ said Helena, coolly, while the flush died from
+her cheek, and the smile faded from her lips. ‘Would you
+mind helping me off with my mantle? Thanks. There
+comes Hugo von Birkenau, and there is our first batch of
+girls, Miss Blisset. What is the programme for this afternoon?’</p>
+
+<p>She was all business now; had tied on a great holland
+apron, studded with baggy-looking pockets, and slung a
+huge pair of scissors by a string round her slim waist.
+Adrienne was accoutred in a similar manner. Helena
+stopped some of the girls who were coming in, to make
+them carry a pile of calico to the workroom. Raising his
+hat, Sebastian left them to their labours, and joined Hugo
+outside.</p>
+
+<p>Half of the great warehouse had been temporarily cleared,
+and accommodated with benches and half a dozen huge
+deal tables. This afternoon was to be a ‘cutting-out’ lesson—a
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">[Pg 227]</span>lesson which, sooth to say, Helena had had to learn
+herself for the occasion, from her mother. The two young
+ladies, with some half-dozen others, who rapidly followed
+on Helena’s steps, each took a class, and began their instructions;
+the women and girls standing round, and many
+a dozen of them receiving their first impressions as to the
+practical construction of the clothes they wore. The
+directions were clear and simple enough; care was taken,
+by questionings and cross-questionings, that the pupils
+should thoroughly understand what was being explained to
+them.</p>
+
+<p>When the ‘cutting out’ was over, they were shown how
+to fix the things, and as they all sat doing this, each one
+bringing up her performance when it was complete, for
+approval or correction, there was much talking, and some
+singing, chiefly of hymns, in very high, and generally in
+minor keys. It was very fatiguing work: the long standing,
+the continuous talking, explaining, expounding, arranging
+and rearranging for the stiff, unaccustomed fingers,
+formed no light task. After more than two hours and a
+half of such labour, it was time to go. The work was folded
+up, piled in heaps, laid on one side, and the pupils prepared
+to leave.</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne and Helena, both very tired, stood at the door,
+counting them as they filed out.</p>
+
+<p>‘Three hundred and five,’ they exclaimed together, as
+the last one departed, and they smiled, and turned inside the
+room again, to divest themselves of their aprons and shears.</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Blisset, will you not come home with me, and
+have some tea?’ asked Helena, who had given the invitation
+several times before, and always received the same
+answer as on this occasion.</p>
+
+<p>‘Thank you very much. I am sorry to say I cannot
+come.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You always say that,’ said Helena, looking earnestly at
+her. ‘I have tried in vain to get a little conversation with
+you, and to know you better. I never see you, except at
+this dingy schoolroom, where I am sure the incentives to
+cheerful intercourse are not strong.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">[Pg 228]</span></p>
+<p>Adrienne smiled rather faintly as she replied,</p>
+
+<p>‘I am sorry; it looks rude, I know, but I must go home
+to my uncle. He is not very well at present; and I am
+obliged to leave him so much. You must excuse me!’</p>
+
+<p>‘If I must, I must, I suppose, but I don’t all the same,’
+said Helena, turning away in some dissatisfaction, and at
+that moment Sebastian and Hugo entered, arm in arm.</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Spenceley!’ said Hugo, eagerly going up to her;
+‘it is getting dark. May I accompany you home?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh yes, if you like,’ said Helena, absently, while she
+attentively listened to what was passing between their fellow-workers.</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Blisset,’ she heard Sebastian say, ‘your uncle particularly
+asked me to call this afternoon. I will walk with
+you to Stonegate, if you will allow me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall be very glad,’ said she. ‘I am sure he will be
+pleased to see you. Do you know, sometimes I am afraid
+he will not live long.’</p>
+
+<p>‘His is hardly likely to be a long life,’ said Sebastian,
+evasively.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, but it may be. Invalids—when they are taken
+such care of as I take of him—sometimes live a long time.
+And he is not old, and it is not as if he had a complaint in
+which there was danger of his dying suddenly.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you dread his death so much?’ asked Sebastian,
+folding her shawl around her.</p>
+
+<p>‘I do; and I fear for selfish reasons. Without him I
+should be perfectly alone in the world.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You alone? not unless you wished it,’ said he, almost
+reproachfully, whilst Helena, assisted by the proud and
+happy Hugo, was wrapping herself in her fur-lined mantle
+with the sable border; the mantle which set off her dark,
+piquant beauty to the utmost advantage; for she was one of
+those truly English beauties who look almost lovelier in
+their outdoor dress, and with the flush of exercise upon
+their cheeks, than in the airy fabrics of the ball-room. But
+there was no flush upon Helena’s cheeks now. She turned
+to the boy who had been, or wished to be since he first saw
+her, her particular page in attendance (he aspired to nothing
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">[Pg 229]</span>more in his own mind, and, despite all unfavourable circumstances,
+he had always seen Helena the wife of his worshipped
+friend), and said, in a voice that had sunk and grown tired,</p>
+
+<p>‘Come, Hugo, I have no time to spare. We will leave
+the others to lock up. I must go.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am ready, and waiting your pleasure, <i>mein gnädiges
+Fräulein</i>.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t speak foreign tongues to me. Do you forget
+what Gretchen said to Faust when he called her Fräulein?’</p>
+
+<p>‘“Thank you, sir, I can walk home by myself.” That
+would be shocking, and I will not do it again.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Good afternoon!’ suddenly said Helena, in a loud, clear
+voice, as she looked carelessly over her shoulder at the
+other two, who started, as if suddenly recalled to a sense of
+what was going on around them.</p>
+
+<p>Hugo and his companion left the mill-yard, and paced
+down the street in the bitter cold of the March twilight, now
+rapidly becoming darkness. The lamps were being lighted;
+some shops were open; the passengers along the streets were
+not many; the great factories were silent, there was no
+cloud of smoke to obscure the frostily twinkling stars.</p>
+
+<p>Helena suddenly began to speak, in a voice bitter, though
+it strove to be careless, and with a short laugh that was not
+a merry one.</p>
+
+<p>‘How affecting—truly affecting it is, to see two such
+congenial spirits together as Mr. Sebastian Mallory and Miss
+Adrienne Blisset. He likes a rose-watery kind of woman,
+who looks up to him and thinks he is better than she is
+herself, and wiser; and she likes a dreamy, unpractical kind
+of man, full of sweet compliments and vague generalities—like
+a sugar-plum that breaks in your mouth, and then you
+find it has been full of a weak, diluted kind of essence—like
+Sebastian Mallory.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What a comparison!’ exclaimed Hugo, in a tone, almost
+of offence. ‘You are very harsh, sometimes, Miss Spenceley.
+Sebastian dreamy and unpractical! <i>Jawohl!</i> I used to
+think so once; but I have found out that there is an iron
+hand under the silken glove. Once I fancied he was all art,
+all——’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">[Pg 230]</span></p>
+<p>‘All art!’ said Helena, perversely twisting his imperfect
+English to suit her own purposes; ‘perhaps you were not
+so far wrong there, Hugo.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What has occurred to vex you, <i>mein Fräulein</i>?’ asked
+her companion innocently.</p>
+
+<p>‘To vex me? I am not vexed. I am tired, and it is so
+cold. Well, go on! I don’t think very highly of Mr.
+Mallory, as you may be aware; and I should like to hear
+what you can find to say in his favour. What other good
+points has he?’</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Herrgott!</i> He is all good.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ha! ha!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Spenceley——’</p>
+
+<p>‘A good, bigoted Tory and Conservative, despite his
+professed radicalism. Mrs. Mallory need not have been
+distressed. He may call himself what he likes, but he hates
+progress.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t understand about Radicals and Conservatives,’
+said Hugo, good-humouredly. ‘I am densely ignorant
+about politics. In Prussia there are Liberals and Conservatives,
+and Communists, but I don’t know what any of
+them want. I don’t think the <i>Reichstag</i> is the sphere for
+me—do you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Good gracious! how should I know? I was not talking
+about Communists or the <i>Reichstag</i>. If you don’t know
+anything about them, you know something else, Hugo,’ she
+said, softening her voice confidentially.</p>
+
+<p>‘I know that you are charming—so kind to me,’ said he,
+with a vibration in his voice—and indeed Helena had been
+very kind to the boy; ‘and I know that you sing “Since
+first I saw your face” like an angel.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You know perfectly well that Mr. Mallory and Miss
+Blisset are desperately in love with one another—deny it if
+you can.’</p>
+
+<p>Hugo was silent.</p>
+
+<p>‘You cannot,’ said Helena, triumphantly.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am not in their confidence,’ he said slowly.</p>
+
+<p>‘All the world is in the confidence of people who are so
+far gone as they are. If you mean to say that they did not
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">[Pg 231]</span>each take you separately aside, and tell you in so many
+words—well, I can say the same. He that hath eyes to
+see, let him observe.’</p>
+
+<p>Hugo was not yet master enough of the English language
+to be able to turn off her remark. Helena began to hum
+a little song to herself, and then suddenly sank into silence
+and gravity, until it began to snow, and grew quite dark,
+when she shivered, putting up her umbrella, and saying
+pettishly,</p>
+
+<p>‘My mantle will be ruined. Why didn’t I bring a cloak?
+I declare, another day, when the weather is so bad, I won’t
+take this horrid long walk.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You will rather drive?’ suggested Hugo, with apparently
+the most childlike innocence of her meaning.</p>
+
+<p>‘How ridiculous you are! How far is it, Hugo, from the
+mill to Stonegate?’</p>
+
+<p>‘About as far as from the mill to Castle Hill, only in
+exactly the opposite direction.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh! I don’t know that end of the town at all. We, at
+any rate, have had time for a delightful conversation, haven’t
+we? Come in, and have some tea, and play me something.’</p>
+
+<p>Nothing loth, Hugo followed her, and they vanished
+within the portals of Castle Hill.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_V">CHAPTER V.
+</h2></div>
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Death, with most grim and grisly visage seene,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Yet is he nought but parting of the breath;</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Ne ought to see, but like a shade to weene,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Unbodièd, unsoul’d, unheard, unseene.’</div></div></div>
+</div>
+
+
+
+<p>Adrienne and Sebastian were walking ‘just the opposite
+way,’ with very little more satisfaction to themselves than
+Hugo and Helena had found. Helena was constantly picturing
+Sebastian to herself as engaged in half-intellectual,
+half-amorous discourse with the ‘nicest of girls;’ his mind
+elevated by her spiritual observations, and his languid but
+ever-present sense of superiority (this was Helena’s hypothesis)
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">[Pg 232]</span>gratified by her deference to his superior wisdom.
+It was a comical theory—one worthy of Helena’s vivid
+imagination and hopelessly impractical ideas; and was,
+moreover, as far removed from the truth as she herself
+could possibly have wished. Yes, wished; for while the
+delusive vision kept dangling before her mental eyes, and
+while she professed to sneer and scoff at it, it was in reality
+an ever-present, dull pain, none the less real because not
+clearly comprehended for what it was.</p>
+
+<p>On this especial evening Adrienne was tired more than
+usual, and mentally as well as physically weary. An undefined
+pain and distress had troubled her mind for some
+weeks—to-day the cloud was very dark. She had seen
+Sebastian Mallory growing more and more intimate with
+her uncle, and progressing with great rapidity in the favour
+of that most fastidious individual; she had seen—how
+could she help seeing?—Sebastian’s attentions to herself;
+how, when he was with her, his eyes constantly turned
+towards her, and how a light flashed into their quietness
+when they met hers; how his voice, in speaking to her,
+took a deeper sound. He was good, rich, handsome, clever,
+kind. She knew all his good qualities, and thoroughly
+valued them. She approved of him; she liked his presence;
+it was pleasant to her. She remembered with deep, earnest
+gratitude his delicate kindness and attention to her in those
+days gone by, when her troubles with her father, and her
+terrible struggle against their adverse circumstances had
+threatened to overwhelm her. ‘I would do anything for
+you,’ she had said, and had meant it. And yet, now!
+How painfully, unaccountably, unexpectedly things changed!
+Thus meditating, her step dragged, and her head drooped
+a little, as they paced the dreary length of Blake Street
+together. She did not understand why that load of oppression
+and longing—that <i>Sehnsucht</i>—should just now lie so
+heavily upon her heart. Sebastian paused at the gate, and
+laid his hand upon it, and then Adrienne seemed to see, in
+a flash of sunlight, Myles Heywood’s tall figure and earnest
+face; as he, in the same attitude, almost a year ago, had
+laid his hand upon that wicket, and had opened it for her
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">[Pg 233]</span>to pass in. Her heart throbbed—something rose in her
+throat as she entered.</p>
+
+<p>‘Myles has not been near us for weeks,’ said she to herself.
+‘I will go and call there some day, very soon,’ she
+added valiantly, ‘and ask the reason of it, and if I have
+done anything to offend them.’</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Blisset, his servant said, was not at all well. He
+felt very weak, and had gone to bed, and he had left word
+that if Mr. Mallory called, he particularly wished to see him.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian followed the man upstairs. Adrienne went
+into the drawing-room, and mechanically sat down, without
+even turning up the shaded lamp, and her hands clasped
+themselves before her upon her knees.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian sat a long time beside Mr. Blisset’s bed, for
+their conversation was prolonged. At last Mr. Blisset said,</p>
+
+<p>‘And I have made you one of my executors. I hope
+you don’t mind. I have so few friends.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am honoured in being chosen, and will gladly undertake
+it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Thank you. Of course, I have left everything to
+Adrienne. She will be placed above all money troubles;
+for she is like me, she has no extravagant desires. But I
+should wish the child to have a staunch friend, and you
+are different from other young men, or I would not have
+asked it. Will you be her friend?’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is my most earnest wish. But since we have spoken
+of this, I may as well tell you the whole truth. I have
+loved your niece for a long time—for years. When I find
+an opportunity, I intend asking her to become my wife.
+Have you anything against it?’</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Blisset pressed the young man’s hand with a clasp
+which had grown feeble.</p>
+
+<p>‘You make me very happy. I would rather know her
+safe in your hands than in those of any other man.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I wish you could know it,’ said Sebastian, with a somewhat
+melancholy smile. ‘I assure you I am far from feeling
+confident myself, but I hope for the best.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think you may be quite confident,’ said Mr. Blisset.
+‘Poor child! now she need not be alone, and has a fair
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">[Pg 234]</span>chance of a safe, untroubled future, such as a woman ought
+to enjoy.’</p>
+
+<p>Shortly after this Sebastian left him, and went away without
+seeing Adrienne. Later, she went upstairs to sit with
+her uncle, and ask if she should read to him.</p>
+
+<p>‘No, thank you, my child. I shall need no more reading
+now, Adrienne. Your wearisome, monotonous task is almost
+at an end.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Dear uncle, what do you mean?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am what men call dying, my dear. Whether it is the
+end of all things for each one of us, or whether it is but
+the beginning of an endless succession of advancing lives,
+very soon I shall know—or I shall not know.’</p>
+
+<p>She kissed his hand.</p>
+
+<p>‘You must not talk in that way. You have been very
+good to me, and I cannot spare you. I love you, uncle—you
+must not leave me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I fear your pleasure will not be consulted on that point,
+my daughter,’ said he, with a strange half-smile, half-pity,
+half-deep amusement. ‘Ah! Adrienne, when men have
+lived—or existed—as I have done, and for so long, they
+are not sorry when the machinery comes to a stop, and they
+know no more.’</p>
+
+<p>Much moved and much distressed, she listened to him
+until he sent her away, telling her to sleep undisturbedly,
+for he would yet live to talk with her, and convince her
+that it was for the best.</p>
+
+<p>But he was wrong. When morning dawned, Richard
+Blisset was at rest, and free from the mantle of pain and
+weakness which he had worn so long.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_VI">CHAPTER VI.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+‘TO THE DREGS.’</p></div>
+
+
+<p>The merry month of May, in the year of grace 1862, and
+in that part of her Majesty’s dominions known as the
+County Palatine of Lancaster, wore a face even less smiling
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">[Pg 235]</span>and colder than usual. Despite the gaudy sunshine,
+despite the unusual chances offered to external nature, of
+showing herself to the best advantage through the absence
+of smoke—despite this, all was sad, penitential, silent.
+One missed the burst of talk and laughter, the chaffing and
+shouting in the streets when the mills were loosed. One
+missed the tramp, tramp, of the thousands of clogs over
+the flags at the appointed times.</p>
+
+<p>Trade had collapsed. King Cotton was discrowned;
+his subjects had become a nation of paupers; some of
+whom were begging their bread, all of whom were living
+chiefly on help from outside. There was a vast organisation
+kept up, chiefly by unpaid, voluntary toil, for discovering
+distress, and distributing relief. Thanshope had now added
+herself to the list of towns which had instituted Relief Committees,
+and Sebastian’s schools had been merged into the
+larger ones belonging to the public body. They had served
+as a sort of model or introduction, and the others were
+founded upon the same plan. He himself was one of the
+most powerful and active members of the committee, while
+Adrienne and Helena, from their previous experience, were
+in reality the head and front of the ladies’ committee, though
+duly subordinated in outward order to Mrs. Ponsonby, and
+one or two other dames of place and importance.</p>
+
+<p>But while the great complicated machine was working
+with such regularity and smoothness, so that it and its
+movements were praised by all who beheld them, what were
+those doing on whose behalf all this mechanism had been
+set a-going? What was happening in the thousands of
+homes whose most cherished hopes and traditions had to
+be given up and forsaken in this terrible emergency? In
+the one home in which we are interested it was going
+hardly enough.</p>
+
+<p>It was in the very beginning of the month, a bright,
+glaring, sunny May morning, to look upon, with a dry pitiless
+east wind blowing round the corners and sweeping
+down the shady side of the streets. It was the middle of
+the forenoon, and the Heywoods’ kitchen did not get the
+morning sun. There was no fire. Mary and her next-door
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">[Pg 236]</span>neighbour, Mrs. Mitchell, took turns at having a fire, for the
+cooking of both households now was less extensive than it
+once had been, and each alternately undertook the responsibility
+of the other’s baking and boiling. This was the day
+on which Mrs. Mitchell had the fire; consequently Mary’s
+kitchen was all the colder from its bareness and its spotless
+neatness. She was sitting in the window, sewing. Myles
+was at the centre table with some books from the library
+before him, ostensibly reading—really gazing blankly at the
+page, and looking, as it is not good that a young man, or
+any man, should look—looking as men only do look when
+their affairs are in a very bad way.</p>
+
+<p>His sister stole occasional side-glances at his face, and
+her heart wept, if her eyes did not. She and Edmund had
+been living all this time upon the weekly sum allowed by
+Sebastian Mallory to such of his hands as chose to accept
+it. They had been aided by Myles from his own store, in
+order that Edmund might have the things he required; and
+that store, Mary knew now, was at an end, had come to an
+end some days ago. She did not quite know how Myles
+had lived during those few dreadful days. He had accepted
+nothing from her, because what she offered had been bought
+with Sebastian Mallory’s money. He had smiled when she
+had implored him to take something and repay her when
+times mended, if he would not have it as a gift; smiled in
+a way that had not encouraged her to repeat the offer. He
+had made no complaints, had been very quiet, but those
+days had been the most wretched Mary had ever spent in
+her life. She knew what her brother had been trying to
+hold out for, but the hope continued to be deferred; and
+even if it must now be soon fulfilled, she feared the relief
+would come too late to save him from what he and she both
+considered the supreme and ultimate disgrace and shame,
+of having to apply for relief. Some fortnight ago, the Relief
+Committee had advertised for two clerks, to relieve their
+honorary secretaries of the burden of accounts and correspondence,
+which had grown greater than they could bear.
+Candidates of the artisan class were invited to apply, and it
+was intimated that, if competent, they would be preferred
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">[Pg 237]</span>rather than others, on the principle of helping them to help
+themselves. Myles Heywood had been one of the applicants,
+and the decision would not be known for two days
+yet. The day before, Mary had met Mr. Mallory, and had
+hurriedly implored him to use his influence, if he had any,
+to get her brother in; but never, never to say she had
+asked him, or she did not know what would happen if Myles
+ever knew of it. He had promised; but there still remained
+a dreadful blank two days, and then, even with Sebastian’s
+efforts, the answer might be that Myles was rejected.</p>
+
+<p>Thus she sat this morning, with a sick heart, furtively
+watching her brother in an anguish of pity. Would it really
+come to the worst? Would he actually have to turn his
+steps—her brother, of whom she was so proud—towards
+those dreadful doors above which glared, in white letters a
+foot long, ‘Relief Committee’s Offices’? those doors which,
+she thanked her God every night, she had not yet been
+obliged to enter? He had had no breakfast, she knew;
+she did not know when he had last eaten, or of what the meal
+had consisted. His face was terribly wasted; so was the
+muscular, long-fingered hand which lay before him on the
+table. There was lassitude in his attitude, a drawn look
+about his lips and his eyes; his eyes haunted her, and made
+her very heart bleed when she encountered them. What
+would he do? At eleven the committee began their sitting,
+and it was ten minutes to eleven now, and the offices were
+some distance away. If he were going it was time he——</p>
+
+<p>She started violently as he, at this moment, pushed his
+books away from him with a slow, resolute sweep of his
+hand, and rose. What a terrible change had taken place in
+the whole figure and deportment of the man!</p>
+
+<p>Myles took his cap from the nail on which it hung, and
+turned to her.</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m going out, Molly,’ said he.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ she answered; and something in the muffled toneless
+accent of her voice made him look at her. She was
+gazing intently at him, with a fixed, almost staring look—a
+glance of blank pain and suffering, passive, yet terrible.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mary,’ said he, pausing, ‘you know what it is. It must
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">[Pg 238]</span>be. You think it is the worst; but I tell you it is not so.
+It is not so bad as what you would have me do.’</p>
+
+<p>With that he left the room and the house.</p>
+
+<p>He had a pretty long walk, up and down hill. He felt
+inexpressibly tired—and worse than tired: his stomach was
+empty: he had a sick, gnawing sense of hunger—absolute,
+grinding hunger, such as he had read of others—destitute
+people—feeling; but such as he had never before felt, till
+now that he was destitute himself. His head felt weak and
+dizzy; his mind dull and stupid—he found he could only
+walk slowly, as he took first this turning and then that, and
+presently arrived at his destination—the one place in Thanshope
+where, in these hard times, a flourishing business was
+being carried on.</p>
+
+<p>About the door was a crowd of people—men and women;
+young and old. The expressions upon the different faces
+varied from callousness, through every variety of unwillingness,
+pain, and shame, up to a careless hardihood that felt
+no disgrace, and was only wishful to make the most of the
+opportunity.</p>
+
+<p>Into this crowd stepped the tall figure of the young workman;
+his face white, half with exhaustion, half with
+emotion; his lips set, his deep-set eyes glooming beneath
+the pain-drawn brows. He looked neither to right nor left
+of him, but leaning against the wall, plunged his hands into
+his pockets and waited. There was a kind of network of
+railings before the door, through which the people had to
+pass in single file, to prevent their all crowding in together,
+and Myles, like the rest, had to wait his turn.</p>
+
+<p>Most men have to go through one or two <i>mauvais quarts
+d’heure</i> in the course of their lives, but few can have surpassed
+in bitterness the minutes which Myles Heywood
+spent, waiting his turn, before the door of the committee-room.
+Some one recognised him, spoke to him, and said
+she had never expected to see him there. He answered
+mechanically and composedly, but felt his face suddenly
+grow fierily hot; and then a little push from behind warned
+him to move on, and he obeyed it.</p>
+
+<p>He entered the large room in company with several other
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">[Pg 239]</span>people, and there were more than a dozen gentlemen seated
+round the table in the middle of the room. But from the
+moment in which he entered and saw a face raised, a pair
+of eyes fixed in pitying astonishment upon him, he felt as
+if he were alone with one man, and that man Sebastian
+Mallory. Strange to say, he had never remembered, had
+scarcely been conscious of the fact, that Mallory was one
+of the most important members of this very committee.
+He knew it now—realised it with heart and brain and consciousness,
+as the face of his rival</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Flashed like a cymbal on his face,’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>and for a moment the sense of degradation, of humiliation,
+burned and scorched him, and he felt almost mad.</p>
+
+<p>Almost—but no; reason was still the stronger. The remembrance
+of his own utter destitution, the distinct,
+imperative call of sickness and hunger, the clear knowledge
+that there was no alternative, prevailed. He did not turn
+round and walk away. He remained, but how he dragged
+his feet towards the desk of the man who was asking questions,
+he knew not. How he answered those questions remained
+also a mystery to him. The gentlemen heard him,
+noted his address, and said he would see that the case was
+inquired into. Myles felt no resentment at the idea of his
+statements being thought to require investigation: whether
+because his pride had been once for all laid low, or whether
+from sheer weakness and dulness of sense, he did not know.
+He was turning away and wondering when the inquiries
+would be made, and how much longer he would be able to
+hold out, when Sebastian Mallory, for the first time removing
+his attention from the writing in which he had apparently
+been engrossed, said composedly,</p>
+
+<p>‘There is no need to trouble the visitor to inquire into
+that case, Mr. Whitaker. I can vouch for the truth of every
+word of it. I should recommend you to write a ticket and
+pay the sum required at once.’</p>
+
+<p>Then he turned to his writing again. Mr. Whitaker said,
+‘Ah, that is all right, then,’ and immediately took a ticket
+and began to write.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">[Pg 240]</span></p>
+<p>Myles felt as if everything was reeling around him, and
+himself with the rest. He caught at the top of a chair by the
+table and steadied himself, feeling as if he were some one
+else, some strange, alien, degraded being—one of the beggars
+of whom he used to read in advanced periodicals, that they
+ought not to be relieved by private, miscellaneous almsgiving;
+but should all be ticketed and classified, and strictly
+watched and overlooked. It was as the bitterness of death, and
+must be borne unmoved, standing composedly and decently.</p>
+
+<p>All the time he still supported himself by the back of the
+chair, unable, from very weakness and dizziness, to move.
+The gentleman who sat in it rose, and looked at him from
+a pair of keen, stern, steel-gray eyes.</p>
+
+<p>‘You look ill, young man,’ said he. ‘Come with me,
+and I will show you where to get the money.’</p>
+
+<p>He took the ticket in his hand, and, taking Myles’s arm,
+led him away through a side-door, into a small sort of anteroom.
+Here he bade Myles sit down, and he took from a
+cupboard some wine—red wine, which he poured into a
+glass and gave to Myles with a piece of bread.</p>
+
+<p>‘Take that,’ said he, ‘and drink the wine, or you will be
+ill before you get home. You have fasted long. You
+should have come sooner. How long is it since you had
+any food?’</p>
+
+<p>‘About thirty-six hours, I think,’ said Myles, looking at
+him as he took the glass in his hand. It was Canon
+Ponsonby, ‘the radical parson,’ the man who ought to have
+been a prime minister, but who, as Rector of Thanshope,
+earned more love than falls to the lot of most prime
+ministers, charm they never so wisely.</p>
+
+<p>His stern face softened as he looked upon the figure
+before him.</p>
+
+<p>‘You have a right spirit,’ said he. ‘I know your name,
+and who you are. Your sister attends the parish church.
+You——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Attend no church at all. I’m a free thinker.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Are you? I don’t think you will ever solve your riddle
+by free-thinking. But shake hands. I wish you were one
+of my flock.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">[Pg 241]</span></p>
+<p>‘If anything could make me one of a flock, it would be
+that you are the shepherd, sir,’ said Myles, finishing his
+bread and wine, and feeling a warmed life in his veins and
+at his heart.</p>
+
+<p>‘See!’ said Canon Ponsonby, ‘here is the weekly allowance
+to which your ticket entitles you. Do not trouble to
+call at the office. Good morning.’ He took the young
+man’s hand. ‘I have long known of you. I am glad to
+have seen you. God have you in His keeping!’</p>
+
+<p>Strangely moved and grateful, Myles silently clasped the
+noble old man’s hand. He could not speak. Canon
+Ponsonby showed him out by a side-door, so that he
+avoided that dreadful crowd round the entrance. He was in
+the street again, with the white ticket, and some money in his
+hand. After what Canon Ponsonby had said to him, he had
+ceased to feel that dreadful agony of shame, but he felt utterly
+crushed, and reduced to the most perfect insignificance.</p>
+
+<p>Dreamily pursuing his homeward way, he turned over
+the money in his hand, and remembered that he must buy
+some food with it! Food! for himself? When he had gone
+through that age of anguish, as it had seemed to him, he
+should take the coins which had been so hardly earned, and
+buy bread with them, and eat them? It struck him as
+being absurd—as if one had used a steam-hammer to crush
+a midge withal.</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, he went into a shop, and bought some
+bread and cheese, and was carrying it home, still with the
+same sense of incongruity between the means and the end.
+But, as he passed a doorstep, at the end of a street, he
+beheld a little girl sitting on it, and crying bitterly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Little one, what’s the matter?’ he asked, stopping, and
+looking down at her.</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m—so—hungry!’ said the child, with a sob between
+each word, as she looked piteously up into his face, and
+held a thin little pinafore, soaked with tears, in two small,
+tremulous hands.</p>
+
+<p>‘So hungry!’ he said, stooping over her, with the sense
+that perhaps, after all, he had not gone through the furnace
+to find nothing at the other side. ‘Hast had no breakfast?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">[Pg 242]</span></p>
+<p>‘Nay, none at o’.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How’s that?’</p>
+
+<p>Here a thin, clean-looking, poorly clad woman, with a
+baby in her arms, came to the door.</p>
+
+<p>‘Come in, Sarah Emily,’ said she. ‘For shame o’ thisel,
+to sit bawlin’ on th’ dur-step. Thi’ feyther’s gone to see
+about summat to ayt. Coom in, and hold thi’ din.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m—so—hungry!’ was the only answer.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ne’er heed her, lad!’ said the woman to Myles. ‘My
+measter’s going to th’ committee to-day. We’ve had to
+come to that, and we’ll likely get summat to ayt afore neet.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Nay, but it’s very hard for such a bit of a lass to wait
+so long,’ said Myles. ‘If you’ll trust her to me, I’ll give
+her some breakfast. I’m just going to get my own.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, thank you, you’re very kind,’ said the woman, her
+voice suddenly breaking, as she looked at him, and then
+turned aside again.</p>
+
+<p>‘Come, my lass!’ said Myles gently, and he took the open-mouthed
+Sarah Emily in his arms, and carried her to his home.</p>
+
+<p>In the kitchen, he seated her in Mary’s rocking-chair,
+explaining briefly to his sister that the child was clemming,
+and must be fed, and then he cut her some bread and
+cheese, and watched her with an intense and altogether
+unaccountable interest while she ate it. He felt almost
+light-hearted. If he had not, so to speak, walked up to the
+cannon’s mouth this morning, little Sarah Emily might have
+been sickening with hunger until eventide.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good! good!’ she cried, when she had eaten as much
+as she could.</p>
+
+<p>And she laughed at him, while he slowly ate something
+himself.</p>
+
+<p>‘Look here!’ he suggested; ‘do you think you could
+find your way from your home to this another day?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, ay! It’s none so far,’ said Sarah Emily.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then, if you come every morning—every morning, mind—I’ll
+give you something to eat always, eh?’ he suggested.</p>
+
+<p>‘But I can ayt such a lot, when I’m hungry,’ said Sarah
+Emily bashfully, putting her forefinger into her mouth.</p>
+
+<p>‘Never mind! There’ll always be something. Wilt come?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">[Pg 243]</span></p>
+<p>‘Eh, I will so!’ said the child, clapping her hands,
+jumping upon his knee, and kissing him.</p>
+
+<p>Thus was the bargain struck.</p>
+
+<p>There is this day, in Thanshope, a dark-eyed young
+woman, of some twenty-four years, who has a husband, and
+some young children. When the little ones clamour for
+breakfast or dinner, she is in the habit of reproving them,
+by telling them that they don’t know what real hunger is;
+and, as an instance in point, she is given to relating the
+story how she sat on the doorstep one day in the ‘panic’
+crying with hunger, and how the tall, pale-faced young man
+with the kind eyes picked her up, and carried her home,
+and gave her food; and how either he or his sister welcomed
+their hungry little visitor daily for——</p>
+
+<p>‘How long, mother?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Three months, child; every day—eh, they were kind;
+they were so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is he alive now, mother?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, for sure he is, and——’</p>
+
+<p>But the dark-eyed young woman always makes rather a
+long story of it, and freely intersperses remarks and comments,
+which, though doubtless interesting to her family,
+might not be considered of value by the public in general.</p>
+
+<p>Two days later, the postman brought Myles a summons
+to attend at the Central Offices of the Relief Committee
+that day, as he was one of the successful candidates for the
+clerkship, and the announcement that his salary would be
+twenty shillings a week.</p>
+
+<p>Thus the worst, materially, was tided over; but the
+bitterness of the cup he had drunk that terrible morning
+did not lightly pass away.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_VII">CHAPTER VII.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+A PAUSE.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>When Myles began his work at the Committee Office, one
+conspicuous member of the Ladies’ Committee was temporarily
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">[Pg 244]</span>absent. Adrienne Blisset was then occupied in
+learning the condition of her own affairs, and found herself
+soon in a totally different position from any she had ever
+expected to fill—very rich, as it seemed to her, and a person
+of great importance; and, what was strangest of all,
+with Sebastian Mallory coming and going and fulfilling
+his duties as executor, and explaining everything to her.
+She repeatedly told him that she could not believe it; it
+was impossible—there must be a mistake. All that money
+hers to do as she liked with, and she had not earned it, nor
+worked for it!</p>
+
+<p>‘What an idea you have of working for everything you
+get!’ he exclaimed suddenly one day. ‘Do you carry it so
+far as to demand a service from every one to whom you accord
+a sign of favour?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Really I don’t know what you mean,’ replied she. ‘I
+only know that I have got, you tell me, between six and
+seven hundred a year, and I have done nothing to deserve it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No. I suppose you have to deserve it now, by using
+it properly,’ said he sedately.</p>
+
+<p>That was in fact the amount of Adrienne’s means, and it
+was natural that it should appear to her as wealth unbounded.
+She had also Stonegate on a lease, which had yet somewhat
+over two years to run. And when she had learnt all
+this, and that she really was the mistress of such means,
+with the only drawback that there was no one to share them
+with, no one to consult with—herself alone, and her own
+pleasure and convenience to study; when she had grasped
+these facts, and had begun to feel rather sad and lonely,
+she returned to her work one morning in a black dress,
+looking rather thinner and paler than she had done before.
+The people with whom she had become acquainted in her
+work, and who had heard the reason of her absence, came
+round her, and, though not openly, congratulated her, hoped
+she would now take a recognised place amongst them, asked
+if they might call, and so on. And as she somewhat
+vaguely and sadly answered these efforts at friendship, she
+looked up, and saw some one pass the window. It was
+Myles Heywood going to his work.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">[Pg 245]</span></p>
+<p>Adrienne’s name had become well known in Thanshope
+during the last three months. It was but a provincial
+town, and every one seemed thoroughly acquainted with
+every one else’s affairs. Mrs. Mallory had been much
+annoyed at finding Sebastian ‘mixed up,’ as she called it,
+with Mr. Blisset’s affairs, and above all, with those of Miss
+Blisset. She had had to explain it as well as she could to
+certain friends who had asked her who this Miss Blisset was,
+and what it all meant.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian, she said, was so very good-natured; she feared
+he would be imposed on some time. Did she know Miss
+Blisset? Certainly she did, in a way; but as for being a
+friend of hers, certainly not! Sebastian had consented to
+act as Mr. Blisset’s executor out of pure goodwill and kindness,
+because the man was so much to be pitied, and seemed
+to have absolutely no friends. That was all.</p>
+
+<p>But despite all Mrs. Mallory’s efforts, it got known that
+her son and the young lady, who had lately come into a
+fortune, and who was reported to be both charming and accomplished,
+were very great friends. Helena Spenceley
+took rather a malicious pleasure in upholding this theory in
+Mrs. Mallory’s very presence, so that that lady would have
+boxed her ears with pleasure, if one could box the ears of a
+person who would have one hundred thousand pounds
+some day.</p>
+
+<p>Thus Miss Blisset and Mr. Mallory were already talked
+about in a certain set, and Adrienne’s duties had made her
+name and herself familiar to another and a less distinguished
+public—to the working-people of Thanshope. She had
+been a notability amongst them before her sudden accession
+to wealth and friends; she was doubly well known to them
+now. She was busy and preoccupied, thought Myles, as he
+sat at his desk in the second office, and saw her almost
+daily pass the windows on her way to the Ladies’ Committee-room.
+She was a lady of property, sought after and
+busy, and he was a clerk on a high stool, to whom she
+scarce spoke a word from one week’s end to the other.</p>
+
+<p>Those years of distress brought about some strange
+acquaintances, and led to some unusual events. Though
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">[Pg 246]</span>everything appeared on the outside to work so smoothly,
+there were active emotions stirring amongst the members of
+that Thanshope Relief Committee—emotions, quite unconnected
+with the wants of those for whose benefit they had
+assembled themselves. The circumstances were exceptional,
+and it was only under exceptional circumstances that those
+particular people could have not only met, but continued
+almost daily to meet and come in contact with one another.
+Gradually circumstances drew them together—gradually as
+they met, the half-forgotten, smouldering feelings of love
+and hate, contempt and pity, sprang into life and activity
+again, and emotion stepped to the front, and all these things
+acted and reacted one upon the other, till every story was
+modified, every life received a bend this way or that, a
+change in the even tenor of its way.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_VIII">CHAPTER VIII.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+A MEETING.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Spenceley, the millionaire, the richest man in Thanshope,
+the man of boundless wealth and boundless callousness,
+was amongst those cotton lords who, to their lasting shame
+and disgrace, were determined at this crisis not to come
+forward and give of their abundance, but who preferred
+to hang back until the popular voice left them no option,
+and the universal indignation absolutely thrust them to the
+front.</p>
+
+<p>For a long time Mr. Spenceley had contented himself
+with abusing the sorely tried work-people, demanding to
+know why they did not all emigrate, and vowing that he
+would not waste his money upon them. He amused himself
+by everywhere calling Sebastian Mallory, behind his
+back, a fool and a madman, a spendthrift, a pernicious
+leveller, and so on: and by behaving to him before his face
+with the utmost courtesy and politeness, excusing conduct
+which might savour of double dealing by saying that such
+fools could never be made to see that they were fools, and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">[Pg 247]</span>that it was best to take them as you found them, and let
+them go their own way.</p>
+
+<p>When the Public Relief Committee was established, and
+one and all, rich and poor, young and old, contributed something
+either in money, or kind, or assistance, or all, the chief
+inhabitant of Thanshope could no longer hold back. He
+allowed his name to appear as a member of the committee,
+sent a subscription of a hundred pounds, and deputed his son
+to act as his proxy at councils, committee meetings, and so
+on. Despite the bad times, he himself was so much engaged
+with business, that he had no time to attend to such things.</p>
+
+<p>Accordingly, Fred Spenceley periodically shed the light
+of his countenance upon the council board and those surrounding
+it. He continued to come, despite a terrible
+rebuff he received on the occasion of his first appearance
+upon the scene.</p>
+
+<p>It was that rebuff, and one or two incidents connected
+with it, which filled him with rage and bitterness; so that if
+he had been an Irish reaper, or an Oldham weaver, he would
+have proceeded to drink himself blind, and then gone home
+and maltreated his wife, or any other feminine creature
+within the range of his arm. Being in a different station
+from that occupied by reapers and weavers, and thinly
+veneered over into a poor, tinselly, outward semblance of a
+gentleman, he only raged frantically within himself, and
+cast about to find an instrument to execute a moral revenge,
+which, he had sense enough in his dull brutal brain to know,
+would far more torture the objects of it than all the corporal
+punishment in the world.</p>
+
+<p>He arrived one afternoon, thinking the whole business a
+great piece of ‘tomfoolery.’ The Relief Committee’s offices
+consisted of three rooms, opening one out of the other.
+The first was the Ladies’ Committee-room, a large, spacious
+place, where the ladies could meet, decide upon their proceedings,
+and hear the accounts of their wants and troubles
+brought to them by mothers, wives, and daughters from all
+parts of the town. Passing through this room, a second
+and smaller one was reached, in which sat the two clerks,
+Myles Heywood, and a lad who was under him. Through
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">[Pg 248]</span>this second apartment, ingress was obtained to the Gentlemen’s
+Committee-room, where the council assembled, three
+times a week as a rule, and oftener if necessary.</p>
+
+<p>Coming to attend his first committee meeting, Fred
+Spenceley entered the first of these rooms, and, glancing
+round, beheld different groups scattered in different parts
+of the room. No one took any notice of him; they were
+all much too busy; but as he looked round, he perceived,
+in one of the windows apart from the rest, three persons:
+Sebastian Mallory, whom he had hated since first he saw his
+face, as only a true ‘cad’ can hate a true gentleman; and
+two ladies—one in black, whose back was turned towards
+him, the other his sister Helena, erect, animated, with her
+dark eyes flashing and her silks in some agitation.</p>
+
+<p>He walked up to the group, and touched Helena on the
+shoulder, inquiring graciously,</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, little one, what’s the matter now?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Fred! How you startled me! Have you come to the
+meeting?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I have. Much good it will do me or any one else,
+my being here. But the governor was——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh yes! I know. But stop! You know Mr. Mallory.
+Miss Blisset, let me——’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne interrupted her. She was standing, pale,
+haughty, and erect, with eyes full of cold contempt; and
+she interposed, in a cool, decided voice,</p>
+
+<p>‘Pardon me, Miss Spenceley, I do not wish for any
+introduction. I must decline to make that—gentleman’s
+acquaintance.’</p>
+
+<p>With which she turned away, in perfect outward composure,
+and, seating herself at a desk, calmly looked out of
+the window, leaving Sebastian surprised, and yet not surprised,
+Fred furious, and Helena overwhelmed with confusion;
+for she knew her brother, and felt sure that he
+must have distinguished himself in some far from desirable
+manner towards Miss Blisset, to cause that gentle lady
+openly to manifest discourtesy. Helena’s humiliation was
+increased as she realised, with lightning-like rapidity, that
+Adrienne must have some excellent reason for repeatedly
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">[Pg 249]</span>refusing to visit her at Castle Hill. Crimson, she stood
+where she had received the rebuff, and knew not what to
+do. It was Sebastian who, after the unavoidable momentary
+pause, and when Mr. Spenceley had turned upon his
+heel, said just as if nothing had happened,</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall lay the matter before the Board to-day, Miss
+Spenceley, and I am sure it will be attended to immediately.’</p>
+
+<p>Helena met his eyes as she looked up at him, and the
+burning blush of mortification glowed more deeply than
+before.</p>
+
+<p>‘You are very kind,’ said she, in a low, choked voice;
+‘but you cannot do away with the fact that I have to blush
+for my nearest relations.’</p>
+
+<p>With that, she too turned away, as if not knowing where
+to go to; and Sebastian decided that the best thing he
+could do would be to follow Mr. Spenceley to the council-room.</p>
+
+<p>For Mr. Spenceley, muttering an anathema, had directed
+his steps away from such dangerous ground, and with raging
+hatred in his heart, entered the second of the three rooms.
+In that moment he would gladly have strangled some one,
+or kicked his dog, or flogged his horse, or sworn at his
+mother; and if he had had a wife, he would have caused
+her to spend a joyful evening on his return home.</p>
+
+<p>As it was, he found himself in a small room, in the
+window of which stood a long desk, at which desk sat two
+men busily writing. One of them rose, as he entered, to
+fetch a ledger from a shelf at the other side of the room.
+Spenceley’s rage gave way to a momentary start of surprise;
+then the blood came surging to his face and ears, as he
+found that he was confronting that insolent, unknown operative
+who had disgraced and branded him, and degraded
+and punished him, ten months ago in the club billiard-room.</p>
+
+<p>Like a lurid dream it all started up again in his brain.
+There the man stood—he tingled from head to foot as he
+beheld him—with face pinched and worn, but with that
+same broad, unstained brow, the same scornful grey eyes,
+the same muscular fingers—he seemed to feel them at his
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">[Pg 250]</span>collar again—and he could not grind him to powder, as he
+would like to do, nor put him to any kind of horrible torture,
+such as he would have deemed desirable for him.
+Myles’s eyes fell upon him, and a sudden gleam of scornful
+contemptuous amusement shot into them; his head flung
+itself backwards—his lips curved into a kind of smile, but
+otherwise he did not deign to notice Mr. Spenceley.</p>
+
+<p>Into the heart of the latter the old devils of revengeful
+desire and frantic hatred came leaping back. Why had he
+been so quiet? Why had he suffered himself to be laughed
+at and diverted from his original purpose of punishment?
+Why had he sat down patiently all this time with that—a
+black cloud of fury overshadowed his mind. His thoughts
+were scarcely coherent. But it was incredible. The fellow
+should and must be made to pay dearly for his insolence. He
+had sworn it once, and he would carry it out now. With
+wrath and rage contending madly in his stupid, brutal soul, he
+went on into the committee-room, where he was immediately
+followed by Sebastian Mallory, and business commenced.</p>
+
+<p>Fred Spenceley was too much occupied with his own
+private fury, with thinking, with a sort of hatred and love
+combined, of the sweet, contemptuous face of Adrienne
+Blisset, which he could not banish from his mind—of
+these and of other things, to take any particular notice of
+the man called James Hoyle, who was summoned to read
+a report to the Board that afternoon.</p>
+
+<p>He had been intrusted with the task of visiting certain
+courts in a low part of the town, whither, it was said, a
+number of the factory hands had been obliged to retire, in
+consequence of being unable any longer to pay the rent of
+more respectable houses. Mr. Hoyle had offered himself
+to the Board as peculiarly suited for the work, being himself
+a minister of the gospel, and used to strange scenes and low
+neighbourhoods.</p>
+
+<p>‘He speaks the truth there, at all events,’ Sebastian Mallory
+had remarked <i>sotto voce</i> to Canon Ponsonby, ‘but the
+Father of Lies has had some share in his parentage, all the
+same, sir—don’t you think so?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Or else he has selected him as his peculiar adversary,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">[Pg 251]</span>and left the traces of his attempts to corrupt him,’ replied
+Canon Ponsonby, fixing his piercing eyes upon Mr. Hoyle.</p>
+
+<p>But as Mr. Hoyle really did seem well fitted and anxious
+for the work, he was allowed to undertake it.</p>
+
+<p>His report was considered clear and succinct. He was
+told that he had done well; a further commission of the
+same kind was given him, and he was told to present himself
+again as soon as possible with the required information.</p>
+
+<p>Expressing himself humbly gratified at having been of any
+service in such a cause, Mr. Hoyle bowed to the assembled
+Board, carefully avoiding two pairs of eyes—a pair of lazy
+brown ones and a pair of piercing grey ones, and, with a
+long sidelong look at the sullen, averted countenance of
+Frederick Spenceley, took his departure.</p>
+
+<p>A fortnight passed. The middle of May had come and
+gone. Every day the distress grew more tremendous—the
+efforts needed to meet it more strenuous and unceasing.
+The whole time and the whole energies of those who
+had begun the work were gradually absorbed into it. Still
+the cruel war raged on across the Atlantic, and Mid-summer
+and Famine advanced hand in hand, with long, devouring
+strides.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_IX">CHAPTER IX.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+‘FOR A PRICE.’</p></div>
+
+
+<p>A committee meeting had been called for a certain
+Tuesday afternoon. An appeal for help had been sent out
+to all the persons of any position in the neighbourhood.
+Canon Ponsonby’s name headed the list with a donation of
+fifty pounds, which was more to him than fifty hundred
+would have been to Mr. Spenceley. Some half-dozen large
+manufacturing firms followed with sums varying from one
+to five hundred pounds. ‘S. M., five hundred pounds.’
+‘Mrs. Mallory, five pounds.’ Mrs. Mallory had so many
+calls upon her charity just then, she said, she really could
+not afford more, or the yearly sum she set apart for such
+purposes would be exceeded.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">[Pg 252]</span></p>
+<p>‘The yearly distress to be relieved is also considerably
+exceeded,’ murmured her son, as he took possession of the
+contribution. ‘H. v. B., five pounds.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Our money!’ as Mrs. Mallory indignantly observed to
+herself, and tossed her head angrily.</p>
+
+<p>‘H. S., ten pounds.’ This stood for Helena Spenceley,
+who delivered the money over to Sebastian with a kind of
+chuckle. ‘You would never guess how I got it,’ said she,
+with a broad smile of triumph and satisfaction.</p>
+
+<p>‘Begged, borrowed, or stolen?’ he asked, smiling too.</p>
+
+<p>‘Neither one nor the other. Nor yet was it a free gift,
+nor yet did I find it at the back of a drawer, having quite
+forgotten that I had put it there, as I once before did with
+a five-pound note. Oh, you will never know how I got it.’
+And she laughed.</p>
+
+<p>But Sebastian learnt from Adrienne how she had come
+by the money.</p>
+
+<p>‘Her father would not give her a penny,’ said she,
+‘because he had made up his mind with his narrow income
+to sacrifice twenty-five pounds, which he was sadly in need
+of himself, so what do you think she did?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Such knowledge is too wonderful for me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘She sold a lot of her dresses and things. I expect the
+poor girl has been awfully cheated,’ Adrienne added, a touch
+of real feminine feeling and regret in her tone. ‘She said
+she had left herself only half a dozen—and fancy getting
+no more than ten pounds for the rest of her wardrobe—it
+is awful to think of. But the money was there, she said,
+and she could not resist it. She is as pleased as if it had
+been a hundred.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Like somebody else’s,’ suggested Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘Somebody else’s?’</p>
+
+<p>He pointed to the written subscription list which they
+had been looking over. ‘Life let us Cherish, £100,’ stood
+inscribed on the page.</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you think I don’t know what hand traced that?’</p>
+
+<p>‘But you won’t tell, please!’ said Adrienne.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, you have confessed. No; I will not tell, unless
+I think it would be for your good.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">[Pg 253]</span></p>
+<p>‘Nonsense! But was it not nice and generous in that
+girl?’ persisted Adrienne, who always would talk to
+Sebastian, much more than he liked, about Helena.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; it was. But she has a generous disposition,’ he
+admitted, still looking affectionately at his favourite inscription.</p>
+
+<p>The celebrated twenty-five pounds spoken of by Adrienne—it
+is lucky that money has not an organised nervous
+system, or it might suffer keenly under the touch of some
+fingers!—was committed by Mr. Spenceley the elder to
+Mr. Spenceley the younger, with the remark that he
+wondered how much longer people who had honestly
+earned their money would be expected to pour it out like
+water ‘in that way;’ and the request that he would deliver
+it into the hands of Sebastian Mallory, the treasurer.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Frederick Spenceley, who did not appear to find
+business so engrossing as his father, strolled down to the
+committee-rooms, arriving on the scene of action some ten
+minutes or quarter of an hour before any signs of action
+had begun to manifest themselves. The well-known <i>mauvais
+quart d’heure</i> may be evil in many ways, kinds, and degrees
+of badness. Frederick Spenceley had no intention of
+spending his fifteen minutes more aimlessly or mischievously
+than usual; but his guardian demon had ordained
+that they should be consumed more reprehensibly, perhaps,
+than all the rest of his existence put together.</p>
+
+<p>There was no one in the first room, no one in the second
+room; in the third room was a solitary figure standing in
+one of the windows—a figure in black cloth clothes, with a
+bundle of documents under one arm—the figure of Mr.
+James Hoyle.</p>
+
+<p>There were two windows to the room. Mr. Spenceley,
+jingling the coin in his pockets, strolled up to the other
+one, and stood at it, whistling to himself, and looking out
+upon the prospect—what there was of it. The two windows
+were on the same side of the room, and looked upon a kind
+of open yard, separated from the street by a low wall. It
+was a slanting street, like so many others in that up-and-down
+town, Thanshope. Exactly opposite the window in
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">[Pg 254]</span>which Spenceley stood was a gate, through which any one
+coming to the committee-rooms must pass, and, going under
+the windows (to the right) of the other two rooms, at last
+arrive at the door opening into the Ladies’ Committee-room.
+There was also a separate door, leading into the second
+room, or clerk’s office, where Myles Heywood and his fellow-clerk
+sat.</p>
+
+<p>Half absently, Spenceley began to collect the money together
+that his father had given him, and to lay it out, two
+five-pound notes and fifteen sovereigns, upon the window-ledge
+before him. He looked at it pensively, and Mr. Hoyle’s
+little sharp eyes were fixed with a sidelong gaze, full of interest,
+upon his face. Mr. Hoyle had surveyed the prospect
+to more purpose than Mr. Spenceley, and was very anxious
+that the latter should give over counting out his money,
+and return to the apparently innocent pursuit of looking out
+of the window, which he presently did.</p>
+
+<p>He plunged his hands into his pockets, and gazed out
+again, swaying to and fro from his toes to his heels, in the
+rhythmic manner common to persons in his position.
+Presently the rhythmic movement ceased. Mr. Spenceley’s
+attention became concentrated on outside objects, on a
+figure some two hundred yards distant, approaching down
+the hill. He looked at her as she came along, in her black
+dress, with her pale face and her warmly tinted hair. He
+hated her for a thousand reasons, and because she looked
+sad and lovely at once, because she was gentle to others and
+to him an icicle; and most of all, because he had made a
+great mistake about her in his gross, clumsy, blundering
+way, and knew now, that if he had but known what she was
+he would never have insulted her, but would have tried with
+all his might, though he was not clever, to become good
+enough for her. But she had prevented that, she had refused
+him the faintest chance of letting her know that he
+repented, and by ——, he thought savagely, he did not repent.
+These women were all alike; either worse than the devil
+himself, or too icily cold and pure to glance aside at such
+as he. He watched and watched, as if fascinated; watched
+how she came along, looking tired and pale, but lovely;
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">[Pg 255]</span>despite his hatred he felt, with all the finer feeling he had,
+that she was lovely, and his head turned, his eyes followed
+her steps, till she arrived at the gate, and then her face
+changed, and he gave a great start, for, standing there, exactly
+as she came up, was Myles Heywood, who had been
+coming (as the astute Mr. Hoyle had perceived) up the hill
+from the opposite direction.</p>
+
+<p>They met at the gate. Adrienne’s face, after a faint
+smile, seemed to grow still paler and calmer. She held out
+her hand. Myles took off his cap, and though he did not
+smile—unless a slight quiver about the comers of his
+mouth could be called a smile—yet he took her hand, and
+they spoke together for a moment at the gate. It was
+quite evident that it was Adrienne, and not Myles, who
+made the pause and carried on the conversation which took
+place before they both came on, past the windows (which
+had the lower panes frosted, on purpose to baffle vulgar
+curiosity), without seeing the two striking countenances that
+were watching them.</p>
+
+<p>Myles left Adrienne at the door of the second room, and
+she went on to the ladies’ room.</p>
+
+<p>Frederick Spenceley had entirely forgotten the presence
+of any one but himself. He gave vent to his feelings in a
+low but distinctly audible—</p>
+
+<p>‘D—n them!’</p>
+
+<p>He suddenly felt a touch on his arm, and, turning round
+with his usual disproportionate start, beheld Mr. Hoyle at
+his elbow, looking into his face.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh! Confound you! What do you want, creeping up
+to a fellow in that way?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I beg your pardon, sir. I have been looking at that
+man Myles Heywood....’</p>
+
+<p>‘What, that’s the blackguard’s name, is it?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, sir. My step-son. A—<i>some</i> young ladies choose
+strange friends, sir; don’t you think so?’</p>
+
+<p>Spenceley was about to ask roughly what business of his
+it was; but something in the intent, glittering fixity of the
+man’s gaze held him fast.</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps they do,’ said he, slowly. ‘What then?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">[Pg 256]</span></p>
+<p>‘Only this. That young man’s mother is now my wife.
+I ought to know what sort of a character he is. I ought
+to know something about the young lady, too. If the facts
+about both of them, the real facts, were known, <i>she</i> would
+be in a different position from what she has, and he——’</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Hoyle laughed.</p>
+
+<p>‘He—what about him?’ asked Mr. Spenceley, almost
+breathlessly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, I don’t think that young fool of a master of
+his——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Who is his master?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mallory.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah—h!’</p>
+
+<p>‘He’s taken a fancy to him; he’s offered to help him.
+He did help him to his present place. But it was in
+ignorance of the facts. If he knew the facts, my young
+gentleman would not be in such a hurry to patronise him.
+In fact—he’d be ruined.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Facts—what facts?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah!’ said Mr. Hoyle. ‘That’s just it. Properly to investigate
+and establish those facts might be rather expensive.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh! you are certain that if they were known they would
+have the requisite effect?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You mean——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Of parting him and her—of punishing her?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I tell you, he would leave the place, and she would cry
+her eyes out. I know it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And about how expensive would that be?’ demanded
+Spenceley.</p>
+
+<p>‘It would cost a hundred pounds, and I should want five-and-twenty
+to go on with—the rest down when I tell you
+he has gone.’</p>
+
+<p>Spenceley put his hand on the money.</p>
+
+<p>‘This is five-and-twenty,’ he remarked. ‘I must give
+them a cheque for it, instead of money down. But remember,
+if you’re cheating me——’</p>
+
+<p>‘On my soul and honour, sir,’ said Hoyle, with almost
+vehement earnestness, ‘you may trust me. It’s as much
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">[Pg 257]</span>my cause as yours. And meantime, if you should hear any
+reports to the disadvantage of a certain lady, don’t deny
+them—I told you I knew some queer facts about them
+both.’</p>
+
+<p>Scarcely had the money been transferred to the keeping
+of Mr. Hoyle, than the door was opened, and Canon
+Ponsonby, Sebastian Mallory, and others, came in. Mr.
+Hoyle began to study his documents, and Fred Spenceley
+to look out of the window again, his heart beating unheroically
+fast, with a sense of peril of which he felt ashamed, and
+an undercurrent of eager thirst for revenge, the stronger in
+that there was now some prospect of its being gratified.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_X">CHAPTER X.
+</h2>
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Bear not false witness; let the lie</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Have time on its own wings to fly.’</div></div></div>
+</div>
+
+
+
+<p>One fine morning, Mrs. Mallory, her son, and Hugo von
+Birkenau sat at breakfast, and the young men maintained a
+decorous silence while the lady held forth on what was at
+present her favourite topic, the approaching ball at Castle
+Hill, in honour of Helena’s coming of age.</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena will be the belle at her own ball,’ she observed.
+‘I called the other day, and Mrs. Spenceley showed me her
+dress. It had just come from Paris. It is perfectly exquisite.
+Even you, Sebastian, will be able to find no fault
+with that toilette.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Black velvet, diamonds, and point lace?’ he suggested.
+‘That would be just like her, and then it is a costume on
+which you may spend an indefinite amount of money.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How ill-natured you are! It is a charming dress, and
+she will look lovely in it. I hope you have secured one
+dance, at any rate, or you will have no chance now.’</p>
+
+<p>He confessed that he had not acted with sufficient spirit
+in that respect; he had never even thought of asking for a
+dance.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then I am sure she will be very much hurt. She let
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">[Pg 258]</span>me see the other day that she thought a great deal about
+your coming.’</p>
+
+<p>‘If she did, she is not the girl I take her for,’ said he,
+looking rather impatient. It was not Mrs. Mallory’s fault
+if her son remained sceptical on the subject of Helena
+Spenceley’s <i>penchant</i> for him. She had long ago seen that
+it was useless for her to dangle Helena’s hundred thousand
+pounds before his eyes; he would none of it, whereas to
+Mrs. Mallory it was an ornament which grew more becoming
+and more desirable the longer she looked at it.
+She had discovered, or thought she had discovered, that
+Sebastian was very anxious not to hurt the feelings of any
+one, by neglect or unkindness, ‘that is, of any one but myself,’
+as she plaintively told herself—and she thought that
+if she pictured in colours strong enough the affection which
+she was determined Helena had for him, this sensitiveness
+of his might lead to the desired results—sooner or later.</p>
+
+<p>‘Any other man,’ Mrs. Mallory said to herself, ‘would
+have fallen in love with the girl for her beauty alone, if she
+had not had a penny; but in that case, of course, he would
+have fallen in love with her.’</p>
+
+<p>Then she tried to excite his self-esteem, and pique his
+<i>amour propre</i>, by telling him that Helena was very difficult
+to please, and had already had half a dozen more or less
+eligible offers, all of which she had refused <i>sans façon</i>.</p>
+
+<p>‘I can quite believe it,’ was the tranquil reply. ‘<i>Sans
+façon</i> exactly describes her manner and her character as well.
+She has no idea of any medium. Wild enthusiasms and
+extravagant hatreds——’</p>
+
+<p>(‘Like me,’ murmured Hugo to his plate.)</p>
+
+<p>‘And I have no doubt she did refuse the “six braw
+gentlemen” you mention, unceremoniously enough.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory would have despaired, if she had not taken
+comfort in the idea that Sebastian liked to conceal his feelings
+from her, which argued that perhaps he cherished a
+secret passion for Helena, and would do as he ought to do,
+if he were let alone.</p>
+
+<p>Her fears as to the influence of Adrienne Blisset were
+fitful and intermittent. Sometimes that adventuress did not
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">[Pg 259]</span>particularly disturb her mental peace, but at other moments
+a dread fear seized her lest the game should be going in the
+very direction she least wished it to take; lest the obstacle
+which interfered with her plans and wishes was not Sebastian’s
+utter and unaccountable indifference to beauty, love,
+and a hundred thousand pounds, but a misguided, infatuated
+inclination on his part, for a daughter of Heth, with neither
+beauty (compared with Helena) nor pretensions. When
+attacked by such thoughts, Mrs. Mallory felt herself turn
+cold and numb with fear. The idea of Adrienne Blisset
+promoted to her place was the most thoroughly unpleasant—not
+to say altogether hideous—that had ever occurred to
+her.</p>
+
+<p>On the morning in question, Sebastian, on being asked
+what his plans were, said he should be in his office all
+morning, and at a committee meeting in the afternoon.
+Would he be in to lunch at half-past one? Yes, he fully
+expected so; and with that, he said good morning, and went
+away.</p>
+
+<p>The others went their several ways. Hugo retired to the
+drawing-room, to a packet of new transcendental German
+music, and to the spinning out certain music of his own.
+Mrs. Mallory, after an interview with her housekeeper,
+ordered her carriage for half-past eleven, wrote letters in the
+breakfast-room till that time, and then got ready and drove
+out in the said carriage. The proverbial ‘spectator might
+have seen’ the equipage go from one place to another in
+the town, and afterwards to certain mansions in the vicinity
+of the same, where its mistress made state calls. (It was
+the fashion in Thanshope to make state calls in full dress
+between twelve and one.) It was quite half-past one when
+Mrs. Mallory forsook the war-path, and returning home,
+came into the dining-room. She sat down to lunch without
+removing her bonnet. She was dressed in her favourite
+lavender and black, and so attired, with a new and unusual
+expression of animation and amiability upon her high fair
+features, she looked a very handsome, agreeable, though
+rather thin-lipped English matron.</p>
+
+<p>The gong sounded. First Hugo strolled in, and raised
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">[Pg 260]</span>his dark eyes in astonishment when the lady graciously and
+sweetly inquired,</p>
+
+<p>‘May I give you some soup, Mr. von Birkenau?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, thank you,’ he replied, politely but tentatively.</p>
+
+<p>‘How warm it is, is it not? So unlike the end of May.
+May is generally such a bad month in England; don’t you
+think so?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You should know best,’ said Hugo, bowing solemnly, and
+somewhat nervous under this excessive amiability.</p>
+
+<p>‘I wonder what Sebastian is doing,’ she remarked, still
+graciously. ‘He really seems to have his hands quite
+full.’</p>
+
+<p>At that moment he came in.</p>
+
+<p>‘Sorry to be so late, but Sutcliffe kept me. Soup? No,
+thanks. I’ll trouble you for some of that cold fowl, Hugo,
+please.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And will you give me a little sherry, my dear?’ said his
+mother.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian, too, changed countenance at this tone, privately
+wondering ‘what next?’ but poured out the sherry with imperturbable
+gravity.</p>
+
+<p>The meal proceeded in silence for some little time, until
+it occurred to Sebastian to ask,</p>
+
+<p>‘Where have you been all morning, mother?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Driving,’ was the vague reply, and another pause ensued.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian poured out a glass of sherry, drank some of it,
+and then thought he would trouble Hugo again; he was so
+awfully hungry. Hugo, with a gravity amounting to gloom,
+wrenched the second wing from the fowl before him, and
+placed it upon Sebastian’s plate.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian was watching the operation with the intense
+eagerness of a mind quite at ease; and it was at this juncture
+that Mrs. Mallory said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Sebastian, I am sorry to hear of a very strange thing in
+connection with that girl—what is her name?—whose uncle’s
+affairs you somehow got mixed up with.’</p>
+
+<p>Hugo’s eyes gave a flash. That was what was coming.</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you mean Miss Adrienne Blisset?’ asked Sebastian,
+in a distinct voice.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">[Pg 261]</span></p>
+<p>‘Blisset—yes, Miss Blisset. She professes to take a great
+interest in the relief affairs.’</p>
+
+<p>‘So far as I know, the interest is real—at least if hard
+work is any test of reality.’</p>
+
+<p>‘She appears to choose very strange people as her intimate
+friends.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Myself, <i>par exemple</i>?’ he suggested.</p>
+
+<p>War was now declared. The blandness had disappeared
+from Mrs. Mallory’s countenance. The excitement remained.
+Her son did not appear to her to be excited, but Hugo, glancing
+at him, felt a little thrill as he saw all the slight signs which
+he so well understood, and which told him that his friend
+was moved, much moved, unpleasantly moved.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory, all unconscious how much Sebastian knew,
+and reckless of the storm she was inviting to descend upon
+herself, continued,</p>
+
+<p>‘I must say, I hope you are not amongst her intimate
+friends, unless you wish to be placed on the level of low,
+immoral, atheistical work-people; the very dregs of the lower
+orders.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is asserted that Miss Blisset selects her friends from
+the dregs of the lower orders?’ he inquired, with ominous
+politeness.</p>
+
+<p>‘The case does not rest on mere assertion. Her uncle
+professed peculiar opinions, and she carries them to
+extremes, as is the way with those women who have been
+brought up amongst men, and always led a vagabond life.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian smiled slightly as he carefully balanced a fork
+upon his little finger.</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Après?</i>’ he inquired.</p>
+
+<p>‘She made the acquaintance of a young man of whose
+character the less is said the better—picked him up at some
+reading-room where she used to go in an evening—an
+<i>evening</i>,’ said Mrs. Mallory, in an utterly indescribable tone.
+‘She encouraged him to visit her, and he did so repeatedly;
+he is a socialist, an atheist, and altogether immoral. How
+far the connection may have gone I cannot pretend to say,
+but this I know, that Frederick Spenceley, who is not exactly
+strait-laced——’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">[Pg 262]</span></p>
+<p>‘No, certainly not.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Frederick Spenceley declined to make her acquaintance,
+and took his sister away, and declined to let her converse
+with her.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You have this information from a reliable source?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perfectly reliable. I am not at liberty to say who told
+me, but I must say the news exactly agrees with what my
+own judgment led me to expect. I always said....’</p>
+
+<p>‘Pardon! No matter what you have always said, or
+what other people say. I can tell you the truth, not from
+any second-hand source, but from my own personal knowledge
+of the circumstances. The young man of whom you
+have heard such a delightful character was, though he no
+longer is, one of my own work-people. He is perfectly
+respectable, and of unstained character. If Frederick
+Spenceley were one hundredth part—if he could ever become
+one hundredth part as much of a gentleman as Myles
+Heywood naturally is, he might congratulate himself. He—Heywood,
+I mean—is a friend of Miss Blisset’s, and the
+fact honours both him and her. I have met him at her
+uncle’s house, and I have shaken hands with him in his
+own house. He is a man whom I honour and respect
+very much. So much for that part of your information.
+For the rest, that Frederick Spenceley refused to make
+Miss Blisset’s acquaintance—my dear mother, I am surprised
+that a woman with your knowledge of the world
+should believe such a story. I happened to be present
+then, too. Miss Spenceley wished to introduce her brother
+to Miss Blisset, and the latter declined the acquaintance;
+I believe she had excellent reasons for doing so. I pitied
+Miss Spenceley, from my soul, for she is as superior to her
+blackguard of a brother as heaven is to earth. But—I
+trust you will see the wisdom of making the best of Miss
+Blisset, and not the worst, for I shall ask her to be my
+wife—to-day, if I get the chance, and if not, on the
+very first opportunity.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory had sat, during this prolonged harangue,
+drawing deep breaths, but at the last announcement, made
+with an emphasis unusual to Sebastian, it seemed suddenly
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">[Pg 263]</span>to burst upon her, how entirely she had overreached herself,
+and she rose from her chair very pale; and, but that her
+pride forbade it, would have burst into tears of mortification.</p>
+
+<p>‘There is no ingratitude like that of a child to a mother,’
+said she, in an icy voice. ‘You have done all you could
+to humiliate me and cross my wishes ever since your return,
+and now you insult me by seeking out the least——’</p>
+
+<p>They were at the door. He had opened it for her, but
+as she looked up in uttering those words, she paused, subdued
+by a certain expression in his eyes and mouth.</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t speak too recklessly of that lady. It will do no
+good, and you would repent it,’ he remarked.</p>
+
+<p>She did not finish her sentence, but swept out of the
+room, and he gently closed the door after her.</p>
+
+<p>He stood in the middle of the room, biting his lip, till
+Hugo came up to him and took his hand.</p>
+
+<p>‘Dear Sebastian, I wish you success, though, <i>freilich</i>, I
+fancied you would marry Miss Spenceley.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, I wonder?’ asked Sebastian, impatiently. ‘I
+cannot imagine why I am supposed to be destined for Miss
+Spenceley, or she for me. She cannot endure me, and
+makes no secret of her dislike....</p>
+
+<p>‘You could overcome that,’ suggested his counsellor
+audaciously.</p>
+
+<p>‘Could I? She is perfectly charming, I don’t wish to
+deny, but I have loved Adrienne Blisset for years, and I
+am not going to give her up unless she refuses me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Fellows don’t always give up when they are refused,’
+suggested Hugo again.</p>
+
+<p>‘Finish your lunch and hold your tongue. What I was
+going to say is, that my mother is answerable for a great
+deal of mischief by persisting in marrying me to Miss
+Spenceley.’</p>
+
+<p>‘If there had been no such person as you, then there
+would have been no mischief,’ said Hugo, apparently throwing
+in the observation between two sips of claret, for he
+had obediently returned to the table.</p>
+
+<p>‘What do you mean?’ asked his friend, stopping in his
+promenade between the two windows.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">[Pg 264]</span></p>
+<p>‘I mean what I say.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, do you mean that I have ever encouraged——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Spenceley? <i>I, bewahre!</i> No. But——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall do you some serious bodily injury if you don’t curb
+your boundless impertinence. Do you mean that I ever
+encouraged my mother’s scheme in any way?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Can’t say. I’ve done. Adieu!’ said Hugo, going out
+of the room, and singing in an insultingly loud voice—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Willst du dein Herz mir schenken,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">So fang’ es heimlich an!’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_XI">CHAPTER XI.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph4">
+‘Opportunity is always golden and beautiful. It is the use it is
+sometimes put to that is—imperfect.’
+</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Sebastian did not find any opportunity that afternoon for
+carrying out his purpose. He was fully occupied; so was
+Adrienne, and he was forced to see her, half an hour before
+he could leave himself, walk away alone in the direction of
+Blake Street, without having been able to exchange a word
+with her. This annoyed him, and made him feel nervous
+and anxious. Three months ago he would, without any
+inordinate vanity, have felt almost secure of being accepted
+if he proposed to Adrienne; now he felt very far from sure
+of it. The unpleasant scene with Mrs. Mallory left him determined
+to wait no longer, no more to ‘fear his fate too
+much,’ but ‘to put it to the touch, and win or lose it all,’
+that very day, be it early or late.</p>
+
+<p>Accordingly, he returned home after the meeting, dined
+alone before the usual time, and, knowing that Adrienne
+was usually at home about half-past seven, set off a little
+after seven.</p>
+
+<p>His shortest way to Blake Street was to go past the town-hall,
+and proceed through the pleasure-grounds on the hillside,
+through the park at the top, and so across the
+Townfield into Blake Street.</p>
+
+<p>This he did, and having ascended the hill, entered the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">[Pg 265]</span>park by one of its gates, and found that it was almost deserted.
+There was a nursemaid, and some children playing
+about the croquet lawn; there was a man reclining upon
+a bench in a rocky recess—a man who seemed tired, for
+he was almost crouched together; his face was completely
+hidden by his arm and hand, which were stretched on the
+back of the bench. There was also a woman’s figure
+advancing from the other end of the park, and Sebastian’s
+heart gave a spring as he recognised Adrienne Blisset.</p>
+
+<p>He walked up to her, and met her.</p>
+
+<p>‘You here, Mr. Mallory, at this time? That is unusual,
+isn’t it?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am here because I was on my way to your house,
+hoping very much to find you in. I am glad I have not
+missed you altogether.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad too. I was going to see Mary Heywood,
+and should most likely have sat with her some time, for my
+conscience accuses me of having neglected her. But shall
+we return to my house?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not on any account—that is, if you are not tired, and
+do not object to walking about on this terrace for a short
+time.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not in the least. What a lovely evening it is! And
+how clear! Look at those purple moors to the north. I
+have often longed to get to the top of one of those moors.
+What do you think I should see at the other side?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yorkshire—and more moors.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Those are the moors on the other side of which Charlotte
+and Emily Brontë lived,’ said Adrienne, her thoughts
+taking any direction but the one Sebastian wished.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I believe so. Haworth and Keighley, and all about
+there. You should go there some time. But don’t look
+at the prospect now. I want to ask you something.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Adrienne, turning to him with a half-smile.</p>
+
+<p>The smile died away. She found his eyes fixed upon
+hers with an unmistakable meaning in their earnest gaze.
+Her own face flushed deeply, as he gently took her hand and
+said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I have tried in vain to take an opportunity—at last I
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">[Pg 266]</span>have had to make one. I must know something, certainly.
+I cannot wait any longer. Adrienne, I love you dearly—I
+have loved you ever since I lost sight of you on that unhappy
+morning after you left Wetzlar. I knew it then, and
+my love has only grown stronger ever since. Can you return
+it? Will you—some time—be my wife?’</p>
+
+<p>He felt his happy confidence falling from him on all sides,
+as he beheld her face, and stood there, cold, as if a warm
+mantle had dropped from his shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>‘You—I am very sorry,’ she stammered. ‘Oh, Mr.
+Mallory——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory!’ he echoed drearily. ‘Adrienne, I see
+what you are going to say, but think again! I must have
+been a terrible, conceited fool all this time; but will you
+not think again? Wait till to-morrow. Don’t speak to-day.
+Let me explain.’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne’s face was full of pain as she said, tremulously
+but decisively,</p>
+
+<p>‘No. It would be wrong. I know what I feel, and
+must always feel, now. I admire you very much; I respect
+you, oh, more than I can tell you. I have a sort of
+affection for you. Indeed, I am very fond of you. You
+were so good to me,’ said Adrienne, with tears swimming in
+her eyes; ‘but I cannot marry you.... Oh, do not look
+like that!’ she exclaimed, in an agony, ‘I am so sorry; I
+am so sorry.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Are you quite certain?’ he asked in a low voice. ‘Have
+I all along been so utterly indifferent to the woman I——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not indifferent. You were never indifferent to me.
+And once——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Once!’ he echoed eagerly.</p>
+
+<p>‘I thought—I believed——’</p>
+
+<p>‘That you could love me—perhaps that you did love me?’</p>
+
+<p>She bowed.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, that was when I was away. But why should you
+not love me now, dearest? If you would only let me show
+you how I love you—you must—you could not help—so
+good and so loving as you are.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, no! Do not speak to me of it. <i>It can never be.</i>
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">[Pg 267]</span>I know my own heart now—too well,’ she said, looking at
+him almost appealingly, and with distracted, troubled eyes.</p>
+
+<p>‘And there is no love in it for me?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not that kind of love. Oh, heavens! why must I have
+such things to say to <i>you</i>! You must know that you ought
+to have a very different kind of wife from me. Your wife
+should be rich and beautiful, and quite different. You will
+see it yourself some day, when you meet a woman worthy
+of you, who will love you as you deserve to be loved.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is cold comfort when the woman I worship won’t
+have me. I cannot make you love me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Only because another man has all the love I have to
+give,’ said Adrienne, scarcely audibly, as she turned aside
+her face.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian stood still for a moment.</p>
+
+<p>‘Forgive me!’ said he; ‘it is hopeless, I see. I will
+never speak to you of it again.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Forgive <i>me</i>!’ she said, much moved. ‘I ought—no, I
+could not tell you. I have been distracted.... I——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do not reproach yourself,’ said he, chivalrously. ‘I
+understand. After this’ (they had begun to move towards
+the farther gate of the park, along the broad terrace where
+the man was sitting on the seat in the trees)—‘after this I
+have not another word to say. We shall have to meet as
+before, Adrienne. May I call you Adrienne sometimes?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Always, if you like.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Will you try to overlook this—to treat me as if I had
+not annoyed you thus?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Annoyed me—<i>you</i>! Oh, how can you ask?’</p>
+
+<p>‘And then slander will be silenced, and then there will
+be no more misunderstandings. All will be clear between
+us.’</p>
+
+<p>The tenderness he felt he could not banish from his
+voice, and hers trembled as she answered.</p>
+
+<p>‘Quite clear—as it should be.’</p>
+
+<p>He raised her hand to his lips, and they passed on. The
+man on the bench had not moved, and they, as they uttered
+these last words, which were in effect a farewell, saw nothing
+and no one but each other.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">[Pg 268]</span></p>
+<p>‘I must go home. I cannot go on now,’ said Adrienne,
+as they arrived at the gate.</p>
+
+<p>‘I will leave you. Good-bye.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Good-bye,’ said she, putting her hand in his, but not
+looking at him. He kept her hand in his so long that at
+last she looked up.</p>
+
+<p>‘Dear Sebastian, I——’</p>
+
+<p>‘There, that is all I wanted,’ said he, with a rather faint
+smile. ‘God keep you, child. Good-bye!’</p>
+
+<p>When Adrienne had left her home, it had been with the
+firm resolution to see Mary Heywood before returning.
+But she met Sebastian, and the visit was not accomplished.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_XII">CHAPTER XII.
+</h2>
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Great Mother Nature!</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Eternal good and blessed!</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Hear me! Hear my prayer!</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Forsake me not in this my need!’</div></div></div>
+</div>
+
+
+
+<p>Myles Heywood’s life had become worse and darker than
+merely a sad life. It was filled with a wretched pain and
+unrest, which had been growing like a disease for weeks.
+His was an earnest, passionate nature, deep and intense;
+but there was in it a well-spring of contentment, a something
+essentially sweet and wholesome, which, so long as no very
+disturbing element intruded, left him tolerably at ease with
+his life, in spite of the vague dissatisfaction and striving
+which had led him in earlier days to associate himself with
+radical working-men’s clubs; which had made him eagerly
+devour all kinds of iconoclastic literature, and which had
+often sent him home, on pay-day, meditating upon the
+unequal manner in which wealth was distributed. But he
+had had nothing to make him feel this inequality, keenly
+and cruelly, until, with one single circumstance, one single
+evening’s adventure, the turning-point in his life came,
+and he seemed all at once to realise the significance of all
+these things—wealth, station, and culture—in the shape of
+Adrienne Blisset. From that time his view of things was
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">[Pg 269]</span>changed. He had seen what he felt to be the best, and
+most beautiful, and desirable thing in the world; and he did
+desire it with the ardour of a young man and a poet and a
+lover all combined, and with an ardour deeper still—the
+ardour of one who feels that everything great and high and
+satisfactory lies in one direction, and in the other, blackness,
+emptiness, death, if death be the opposite of life. He could
+never look back or down again; and yet, the more he looked
+forwards and upwards, the more did all he saw in the distance
+seem unattainable and impossible. He had quite
+ceased to visit Adrienne. To be with her now was only a
+prolonged ache and pain. He watched her wistfully, and
+noted in his heart each day that passed over without a visit
+from her. She used to come so often; now she never came
+at all. He knew—every one knew, that her uncle was
+dead, and that she was his heiress. More than once he had
+heard it was likely that she and Sebastian Mallory would
+be married. He felt it to be very likely himself; but to go
+and see her, to hear such a thing from her own lips, was
+more than his will had strength to accomplish.</p>
+
+<p>Myles had at one time heartily despised Sebastian
+Mallory; and later, with little more reason, had as intensely
+disliked him. Now that was all changed, and he
+himself was surprised to find how utterly and entirely his
+resentment had burnt out, vanished, evaporated. He could
+see his (as he considered him) successful rival without any
+other feeling than one of quiet, despairing indifference.
+His most active wish, when he was conscious of actively
+wishing anything, was that all this could somehow come to
+an end, that some change would soon take place.</p>
+
+<p>The change was approaching, in a manner so unexpected,
+so utterly terrible and unthought of, that if his sore and
+weary heart led him somewhat astray, a just and righteously
+acting world must not blame him too severely. When the
+eyes are dim with watching, when every nerve is irritable
+from long strain and a cruel endless tension, when calamity
+quickly succeeds calamity, it is not given to all men to act
+exactly as they ought to do.</p>
+
+<p>On the morning of the day on which Mrs. Mallory had
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">[Pg 270]</span>been so signally defeated as regarded Miss Blisset, Myles
+Heywood received a letter. Address and contents were
+alike in a handwriting unknown to him. The epistle was
+simply headed ‘Thanshope,’ with the date following. He
+turned it over, and the subscription puzzled him—‘A
+Christian Well-wisher,’ it was signed. Marvelling at the
+whole thing, he began at the beginning, and read it through.</p>
+
+<div class="blockquot">
+<p>‘Do you know,’ began the ‘Christian Well-wisher,’ ‘what
+position you are standing in? Do you know to whom you
+really owe your situation? You owe it to your friend Mr.
+Sebastian Mallory. Ask him if he did not get Canon
+Ponsonby’s casting vote, which, with his own, got you in.
+I thought you were determined to owe nothing to him.
+Do you know that, with all his fair professions, he is stealing
+a march upon you in one direction—that if you don’t
+either make sure of a certain young lady, or give her up
+altogether, you will soon look a great fool? I say this
+because it is well known that you and she are, or were,
+great friends. Ask any one you know, almost any one in
+the town of Thanshope, what is said about you and her, and
+see if I have not written the truth. There is one way open
+to you out of this, and one only—you can leave the place.
+I take a real interest in you, and advise this, supposing that
+you do feel some grief at having caused her to be spoken
+about in such a manner. Of course you are at liberty
+either to take my advice or leave it. I should think there
+cannot be much doubt which is the most manly, not to say
+Christian, course.</p>
+
+<p class="author">
+<span class="smcap">A Christian Well-wisher.</span>’<br>
+</p>
+</div>
+
+<p>He laid the letter down, feeling that he was trembling—feeling
+almost as if his limbs failed him. He did not
+speculate as to who had written the letter. Much of it
+seemed true to him. Sebastian’s love for Adrienne was no
+delusion of his jealous fancy. Nothing was said against
+her; he was blamed, and it was hinted that others spoke
+lightly of her. He was told to test the report, to inquire
+for himself; the challenge was a fair one.</p>
+
+<p>That he owed his situation to Sebastian Mallory’s influence
+was nothing; such things as that had now lost the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">[Pg 271]</span>slightest power to distress him. That Sebastian was ‘stealing
+a march’ upon him—that idea was so ludicrous and
+so pitiable as to make him smile drily in the midst of his
+own torture. There was no sting in that. If Sebastian
+chose to woo Adrienne, if she chose to receive his wooing,
+who should say them nay? He had no such right, at least.
+He dwelt for a moment on these points, and then came
+the rush of horror and disgust, the sickening, dreadful part
+of it. He shook with fury, and with misery too, as he
+realised that there were people who had watched him and
+her; that wrong constructions had been put upon their
+friendship; that people gossiped about her—coupled her
+name with his. It stung him into madness. There must
+be something in it. ‘Ask,’ said the writer, ‘ask, and see
+if I have not written the truth.’ To advise him to go away—to
+appeal to his manly feeling! It was like a hideous
+dream, which he could not at first grasp. His heart was
+sore and aching already; this blow seemed to crush him.
+His nerves had been strained for weeks past; he saw
+nothing in its proper light or just proportions. He thrust
+the letter into his breast-pocket, and, driven by necessity,
+went out to his work. How he got that work accomplished
+he could not tell. Adrienne was not there, or he did not
+think he could have struggled through with it.</p>
+
+<p>At noon he took his way home again. Crossing the
+Townfield, he met Harry Ashworth, who joined him, wishing
+him good-day, and observing,</p>
+
+<p>‘Myles, lad, you don’t look so well. What ails you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Nothing, nothing ails me,’ said Myles; and then there
+flashed a sudden thought into his mind: that letter—that
+‘Ask, and see if I have not written the truth.’ He would put
+it to the test now; no time like the present.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am telling lies,’ said he; ‘something does ail me.
+Harry, are you my friend?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, for sure I am, old lad.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then come and prove it. Come with me into our house;
+I want to show you something.’</p>
+
+<p>They were close at home. Myles led the way, and Harry
+followed him into the parlour, the front room, now stripped
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">[Pg 272]</span>of almost all the furniture and ornaments which had formerly
+been the pride of Mary’s life.</p>
+
+<p>‘See here!’ said Myles, his eyes filled with a sombre fire,
+and his lips twitching a little as he pulled out the letter:
+‘read this, and tell me, when you’ve done, if you know who’s
+meant in it.’</p>
+
+<p>Harry looked surprised, but took the letter and read it.
+Myles watched him, thinking what a good idea it was to
+make him read the letter. If the report were unfounded,
+he would not guess who was referred to; and if it were true,
+he would. Harry’s face changed, grew amazed, embarrassed
+as he read on. When he had finished the letter, he folded
+it up, and returned it, without speaking, to its owner. He
+did not look at Myles, but out of the window, as he
+said,</p>
+
+<p>‘It’s a very queer kind of a letter.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well,’ said Myles, obliged to raise his voice, but desirous
+that neither Mary nor Edmund should overhear the conversation,
+‘can you give a guess, lad, as to who the lady is
+that’s spoken of?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well,’ said Harry, rather confusedly, ‘I have heard some
+talk about you and—and—that lady.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Suppose I don’t know who is meant? Suppose it’s all
+a riddle to me?’ said Myles.</p>
+
+<p>But Harry shook his head, saying,</p>
+
+<p>‘Nay, nay, that won’t do.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But tell me who you think it is,’ said Myles, impatiently,
+desperately; ‘tell me, for God’s sake! I will know, Harry,
+so out with it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You must remember, it’s no tale of mine—it’s only what
+I’ve heard; and I believe the lady meant is Miss Blisset.
+Fact is,’ he added decisively, ‘I know it is!’</p>
+
+<p>Again Myles’s lips quivered a little as he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘You said you were my friend, Harry. You must tell
+me what you’ve heard.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, it’s useless to deny that there’s a story going about
+that before her uncle died she was in love with you, and that
+you said so often; but <i>I</i> don’t believe it, old chap. You
+never think I believe it all?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">[Pg 273]</span></p>
+<p>‘That I said she was in love with me?’ said Myles in a
+voice that had grown almost hoarse.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; and that when you went to their house it wasn’t
+exactly to see the old gentleman, but——’</p>
+
+<p>‘There, that will do!’ said the other, holding up his hand
+and turning away sickened. It was too hideous. If any
+such rumour had penetrated to her ears? He could not
+speak, till Harry, in an ill-judged moment, said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Nay, there’s nothing to take on about so much, Myles.
+Some enemy of yours has written that letter—some one as
+wants you out of the way. Can’t you see what he’s driving
+at when he advises you to go? Likely enough some one
+as thinks he might get your place if you were gone. But
+you’re not the sort of chap to pay any attention——’</p>
+
+<p>‘The advice is good,’ said Myles, curtly. ‘Very likely I
+shall take it. Do you know who set this tale going?’ he
+asked, turning to Harry with a look which startled the
+latter.</p>
+
+<p>‘That’s just what no one can tell,’ said he. ‘It seems
+to be known everywhere, and yet we can’t tell where it comes
+from.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Though you give it the benefit of free discussion. Well,
+I’ve found out what I wanted to know. There’s only one
+thing more—if you care for me or mine—and we’ve known
+each other a good many years now—you’ll never speak of
+what we have spoken of this morning.’</p>
+
+<p>‘My hand upon it,’ said his friend. ‘Never, so long as I
+live.’</p>
+
+<p>They left the room. Harry departed by the back way
+to have a word with Mary, and to offer to come and sit up
+that night with Edmund, who was much worse. The offer
+was accepted, and Harry went away.</p>
+
+<p>The midday meal was again a very sad one. Myles ate
+nothing, and said nothing; and Mary, full of fears and forebodings,
+was almost as bad.</p>
+
+<p>After dinner the young man went out again—up the street
+he hated, to the room which had become a purgatory to him.
+How he loathed the sight of that long building with the
+many windows and the well-known faces! It seemed to
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_274">[Pg 274]</span>him as if every eye must be fixed upon him, every finger
+pointing at him.</p>
+
+<p>Work was not over until late that afternoon. It was six
+o’clock, or after, when Myles got home again, and on going
+into the house found that Mary was sitting upstairs with
+Edmund; so, after brooding a little, his mind full of wild,
+half-chaotic projects and ideas, he left the house and wandered
+out, he knew not whither. At last he found himself
+in the park, pacing about the broad terrace, and looking
+with eyes that saw nothing, across the idle town and the
+nearer hills, to the blue, calm, moorland ridges far away
+to the north. It was a scene he had loved, half unconsciously,
+from his childhood up, but to-day it was without
+joy—almost without existence for him.</p>
+
+<p>At last he seated himself on a bench situated in a kind
+of rockery which ran along one side of the terrace; the
+seat was a little retired in a hollow of the rockwork, and
+there he remained, and gradually he turned his back upon
+the prospect and his face to the wall, and hid his face in
+his arm and fought alone, as well as he could, with the
+misery and despair which rushed over him like a flood.
+He saw no point of cheerfulness or light in all his life’s sky.
+All was black and thick and overcast.</p>
+
+<p>‘This is no fit place for me to stay in,’ he thought. ‘I
+must get away as soon as I can. If I go, all the lies will
+die out quickly enough, and then—there’s another man who
+is ready to fight her battles for her, and he may see her as
+much as he pleases, and there’s no harm in it.’</p>
+
+<p>How long he had remained there motionless and miserable
+he did not know. He had forgotten all outside
+things, and was busied solely with his wretched self-introspection.
+At last, however, distant voices first, and then
+approaching footsteps, which advanced slowly and with
+many pauses, penetrated to his abstracted ear. He did not
+move; why should any one notice him, or think of him?
+Still less did he move when he distinctly heard and recognised
+Sebastian Mallory’s voice close to him saying,</p>
+
+<p>‘And then slander will be silenced, and there will be no
+more misunderstandings. All will be clear between us.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_275">[Pg 275]</span></p>
+<p>His voice was deep with love as he spoke, and to each
+vibration of it Myles’s heart seemed to give an answering
+throb.</p>
+
+<p>‘Quite clear, as it should be,’ replied the voice he loved
+best, and it trembled too.</p>
+
+<p>They paced past. Myles hid his face more deeply in
+his folded arms. He heard Sebastian kiss her hand, and
+then their voices died away—their footsteps too, and at last
+Myles raised his head and changed his position. He was
+half puzzled at the change which had come over him, at the
+quiet apathy which seemed to fill his whole soul. He had
+heard those words spoken which he had thought would be
+harder than any other words for him to bear, and yet he
+found himself sitting on in the same place, his pulses beating
+no faster, his breath coming no more quickly. Such utter
+indifference he felt to be ominous, and yet, though he tried,
+he could bring no different feelings forward; he repeated
+to himself all that he thought he had lost, all he believed
+Sebastian had won—conned it over as a devotee might tell
+his beads, but it had no effect. He felt no special pain or
+indignation.</p>
+
+<p>And yet, when he rose with the instinctive intention of
+turning his steps homeward, he found that he was incapable
+of going home. He recoiled from the very idea of entering
+the house, or speaking to any one he knew. He stood
+reasoning within himself about it.</p>
+
+<p>‘Why shouldn’t I go home? Home is surely the best
+place. Molly is there, and Ned. I ought to go and stay
+with him; he’s so ill.’ And he forced his feet towards home.
+But it was useless, he felt it impossible to enter the house.</p>
+
+<p>‘I know what I want,’ he reasoned within himself. ‘I want a
+good stretch of a walk, right over the moors, and away from
+this smoky hole. There’s nothing like a moorland breeze for
+blowing away unhealthy fancies. Harry used to say so, and
+he’s tried it often enough, and in trouble enough, poor lad.’</p>
+
+<p>He smiled. He found himself pitying Harry Ashworth
+with an intensity of commiseration such as he could not by
+any means wring out for his own sorrows.</p>
+
+<p>But he congratulated himself. A long, long walk, a walk
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_276">[Pg 276]</span>of twenty miles or so, to prove to himself that he was still
+young and strong, and swift of foot, and that six weeks of
+clerkship drudgery, and six months’ alternate hot and cold,
+hope and fear, doubt and despair, had not impaired one iota
+his strength and endurance! That glorious moorland air,
+blowing keen and fresh, though it was pure, from the north
+over the top of Blackrigg! There was surely not a grief, not
+a solitude-nourished fear and sorrow, that its strong, bracing
+breath would not blow clean away!</p>
+
+<p>By this time he had left the park, and was walking
+quickly down the street in a northerly direction. He met
+one or two friends and acquaintances before he got fairly
+out of the town; he returned their salutations quite mechanically,
+and still walked on. Just outside Thanshope,
+as the suburb of Bridgefold began, there stood a well-known
+public-house, the <i>Craven Heifer</i>; and, as he was passing its
+door, some one hailed him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, Myles! I say, Myles, is yon you?’</p>
+
+<p>He looked up, and saw a man standing in the doorway—a
+man whom he had known years ago, who had once worked
+side by side with him in the factory, and had left and gone
+over into Rossendale before Myles had been promoted from
+the weaving shed to the warehouse. He stared blankly at
+the man, who had been drinking, and though by no means
+drunk, was decidedly elevated.</p>
+
+<p>‘Come in, mon?’ he cried. ‘It’s years sin’ I saw you.
+Come in, and have a glass, for old acquaintance sake. I’ll
+stand it.’</p>
+
+<p>He would not be gainsaid, but rolled out, and pulled his
+former friend into the taproom. There were half a dozen
+men there, all more or less happy and free from care, as it
+seemed to Myles. They welcomed him noisily, and his
+friend asked him, with unnecessary affectionateness of tone
+and manner, what it should be.</p>
+
+<p>‘What? Oh, anything. What you are having yourself,’
+said Myles, greeting first one and then another of them, and
+thinking, with a kind of savage mirth, within himself, that
+there were more kinds of pleasure in the world than one;
+since he could not have one kind, he might as well try
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">[Pg 277]</span>another. He would see whether these men, who seemed
+so pleased to see him, were really such bad company after
+all. And he sat down, and waited until a girl brought him
+a glass of steaming hot punch—whisky punch; that was
+what they were drinking.</p>
+
+<p>‘Now, then,’ cried his acquaintance, ‘good luck to you,
+Myles! Here’s to our next merry meeting, eh?’</p>
+
+<p>‘To our next!’ said Myles, raising the glass to his lips,
+and then, even as it touched them, feeling as if he had
+suddenly come to his senses, he put the glass down on the
+table. ‘Not yet,’ he said, half aloud, and got up from his
+seat and walked out of the room, shaking off the hands that
+were outstretched to stay him, and unheeding the loud and
+angry expostulations which came after him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Pah!’ he exclaimed, as he took his way along the road
+again; ‘I’m not come to that yet!’</p>
+
+<p>It was a long and toilsome road that led from the town
+of Thanshope, through some outlying suburbs, to a large
+manufacturing village, called Hamerton, which lay on the
+very skirts of Yorkshire, closed in on all sides by the great
+ridges of Blackrigg, and some neighbouring wild and desolate
+moors. He took the road along which Hugo and
+Sebastian had once driven, and the sun had set as he turned
+his face towards the hills with that strange sensation of
+oppressive apathy and indifference ever at his heart. The
+night was descending, the ‘stars rushed out,’ as he at length
+gained the complete solitude of the moors, and, turning
+aside from the road, plunged half knee-deep into the thick
+heather and ling, which was the only vegetation about there.
+He walked, for a very short time as it seemed to him—really,
+for hours—battling with the horrible sensations of a
+great, black, yawning, hideous blank, a huge emptiness, an
+<i>ewiges Nichts</i>, which completely overpowered him. He was
+unconscious how far he had gone, or where he was, or that he
+was even weary, when suddenly he found himself stumbling
+over the knolls of heather, and looking up, found that it was
+dark. The summer night had closed in, and he, for aught he
+knew, might be twenty miles away, or thirty, from Thanshope.</p>
+
+<p>He thought he would sit down and rest a little, so he
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">[Pg 278]</span>sank down upon the friendly heather, and found that it
+formed a soft and yielding bed, and that the air which played
+around his head and face was cool, and pure, and sweet.
+For a moment he found a blessed sensation of rest and
+relief, and then all things seemed softly to swim and fade
+around him; with sweeping wing sleep came upon him,
+and laid her finger upon his eyelids, and bade the weary
+brain rest. He sank gradually down in the hollow of the
+heather, and a deep, dreamless slumber overcame him, and
+saved him. Never had sleep been a more beneficent visitant;
+never had kindly Nature taken to her soft arms a more
+weary, heart-sick child of hers, than she did that summer
+night, when she offered to Myles Heywood rest upon her
+own broad bosom.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_XIII">CHAPTER XIII.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+SUNRISE.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Mary Heywood, all the weary afternoon of that weary day,
+sat beside Edmund’s bed and nursed him, with fear at her
+heart that the nursing would be of no long duration. The
+fever which had consumed him was over, but the weakness
+which remained was terrible—it was a weakness from which,
+as Mary dimly felt, there would never be any rallying. She
+had brought sewing and knitting upstairs into the little bedroom,
+and she drew down the blind ‘to keep the sun out,’
+as they both said. Edmund lay perfectly still. She asked
+him if she should read to him, but he smiled a little, and
+shook his head. Neither of them knew how very near the
+end was. Edmund, if he could have known, would have
+been very glad, and Mary would have been so miserable,
+that it was well she did not know.</p>
+
+<p>‘I could like to see Myles a bit,’ said Edmund at last;
+‘I ne’er see him now, hardly. He’s quite different from
+what he was.’</p>
+
+<p>‘He’s not happy,’ said Mary. ‘I don’t rightly know
+what ails him, but it’s summat very bad, I’m sure.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">[Pg 279]</span></p>
+<p>‘Oh, he doesn’t like bein’ out o’ work. No more should
+I, if I was him. He’s ne’er been used to such pinchin’
+work as this. They keep him a long time at yon shop.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, they do. Harry Ashworth said he’d come and sit
+wi’ thee to-neet, Ned. Would thou like it?’</p>
+
+<p>Edmund assented, with a look of pleasure, and there was
+silence, while the afternoon wore on, and at last Mary’s head
+began to droop. She was weary with sorrow, with working,
+and with watching. The atmosphere of the room was close
+and heavy, although Mary had conscientiously tried to
+follow out the doctor’s directions about keeping it ventilated.
+She could not keep her eyes open, but slept in her chair
+until Edmund’s feeble touch on her arm awoke her, and
+she started up.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, what is it, lad?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I could so like summat to drink, Molly,’ said he, gaspingly.
+‘And I think there’s summat not reet wi’ Myles.
+I heard him come in, and sit quite still for a bit, and now
+he’s gone out again, without coming up here, or waitin’ for his
+tea, or anything.’</p>
+
+<p>Thoroughly awake, Mary hurried downstairs, and found
+emptiness and solitude. She could see that Myles had
+been in. She could see the chair that he had drawn up
+to the table and pushed away again, and she wondered,
+and was uneasy at his going out thus, without word or
+message.</p>
+
+<p>The kitchen, too, felt close. She drew up the window,
+and set the back door open to let some air in. Then she
+roused the fire, and set the gently singing kettle upon it,
+and brought out the tea-things. She prepared some tea for
+Edmund, and took it upstairs to him. He had said he was
+very thirsty, and he took the cup eagerly, and put his lips
+to it, then put it down again.</p>
+
+<p>‘I feel very faint, Mary; I can’t take that. I mun have
+a little—bran——’</p>
+
+<p>He had fainted, and it was some time before she succeeded
+in restoring him to consciousness.</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, I wish Myles was here; I wish Harry would come,’
+she kept murmuring to herself, looking with anguish upon
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">[Pg 280]</span>the poor worn face, which had now the stamp of the
+approaching end set upon it in unmistakable characters.</p>
+
+<p>At last a knock at the outer door informed her that
+Harry Ashworth had come. She ran downstairs and let
+him in, drawing him into the kitchen; and when they were
+there, sat down upon her rocking-chair, and began to cry
+heartily.</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, Mary, what ails thee, lass?’ said Harry, taking her
+hand.</p>
+
+<p>‘Myles is gone out—I don’t know where, and yon poor
+lad upstairs hasn’t so much longer to be here,’ said Mary,
+looking at him with her tearful eyes. ‘Thou munnot leave
+me yet awhile, Harry.’</p>
+
+<p>Whether the presence of a great mutual sorrow broke
+the barrier which had hitherto existed between these
+two, I know not. As Mary begged him not to leave
+her, their eyes met, and something in those eyes gave
+Harry the courage he had never before been able to summon
+to his aid. It was as if by a mutual impulse that
+they bent towards each other, and their lips met for
+consolation and reassurance; and Harry, with a wonderful
+sense of strength of courage, put his arm round Mary’s
+waist, saying,</p>
+
+<p>‘There’s nought I’d like so well as never to leave thee at
+all, Mary, if thou could look at such a poor, deaf, marred
+chap as me. Sometimes I think thou could, and sometimes
+I’m sure thou couldn’t. Dost think thou could make
+up thy mind to take me?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I made up my mind long ago what I’d do if ever thou
+asked me,’ said Mary, naïvely.</p>
+
+<p>‘And what was that?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, to take thee, for sure,’ she answered.</p>
+
+<p>Harry, smiling, looking on her with amaze and admiration,
+ventured on another kiss, and said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, but I have been a fool not to speak to thee before.’</p>
+
+<p>She smiled a little, and then the remembrance of the
+troubled present returning to her, said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I’m very happy, but we mun think o’ poor Ned just
+now. Thee go upstairs, and tell him what thou’s done.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">[Pg 281]</span>He always <i>were</i> suspicious about thee. It’ll cheer him up
+like, and I’ll come after thee in a minute or two.’</p>
+
+<p>Just for a few moments the news had the desired effect
+upon Edmund. He shook hands with Harry, smiled and
+looked what he had not voice enough to say. But the same
+chill look of coming death was upon his face; and Mary,
+as Myles still did not come, could not rest until she had
+been out and brought the doctor back with her. The doctor
+was a busy man. He made a very brief visit—said nothing
+much in the sick-room, but ordered some restorative, and,
+when Mary followed him downstairs and tremulously asked
+his opinion, said brusquely, but not at all unkindly,</p>
+
+<p>‘My good girl, you must make up your mind to lose him.
+I cannot even assure you that he will live till morning.’</p>
+
+<p>Restraining her tears, Mary went upstairs again, and, with
+Harry, resumed her watch by the sick lad. They were slow
+and solemn hours. They saw the end approaching under
+their very eyes; they saw Death’s grey seal stamping its
+impress more and more visibly upon the features, and one
+on either side the narrow little bed they sat, while it grew
+deep night, and still Myles did not come home.</p>
+
+<p>‘What can be keeping him?’ the girl uneasily wondered
+again and again; but she dared not speak her wonder, for
+every time that Edmund roused from the lethargy which
+was settling more and more heavily upon him, he looked
+round with an anxious gaze, and a vague astonishment at
+the absence of that brother who had been his stay and protection
+all his weak and painful life.</p>
+
+<p>Midnight passed, and still the sorrowful watch lasted.
+One o’clock struck, and still he came not; and still the face
+on the pillow grew grayer and more deathlike. Two
+o’clock passed, and yet all was as it had been. Towards
+half-past two, Mary, going softly to the window, raised a
+corner of the blind, and beheld the first flush of dawn in the
+east, as it may be seen at that hour on a June morning.
+Her heavy eyes looked across the houses, across the town,
+to where the pure sky, with a cool, bright light, showed the
+ridges of the moors. She looked back into the room.
+Harry’s eyes had followed her, and hung upon her face;
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">[Pg 282]</span>and Edmund’s eyes too were opened, wide, bright, and clear.
+His voice had regained a last flicker of strength, as he said
+distinctly,</p>
+
+<p>‘Wind up the blind, Molly, and open the window a bit.
+Let <i>me</i> see the sun rise.’</p>
+
+<p>Speechless, Mary complied. A waft of pure, fresh morning
+air was borne into the room through the open window.
+Then there was a pause. From where he lay, Edmund
+could see the broadening rose flush in the east, and then
+suddenly the chimes from the spire rang out; three was
+solemnly tolled, and in a moment there rang out upon the
+sleeping town, resting from its troubles, the sweet old tune,
+‘Life let us cherish!’ Mary heard the tune, ‘Myles’s tune,’
+as she called it, and wondered longingly where he was.
+She returned to the bedside, and Harry went to the window.
+Edmund had closed his eyes again, and another quarter
+had chimed, when Harry exclaimed,</p>
+
+<p>‘He’s there! He’s coming!’</p>
+
+<p>In a few moments more Myles stood in the room.
+There were very few words more. They all stood round
+the bed, and Edmund held his brother’s hand. In the
+watching him, the others had no time to notice the haggard
+look on Myles’s face. Day grew broader, and life waned.
+Four was chimed melodiously; the first stir of life was
+audible, as Edmund quietly breathed his last.</p>
+
+<p>Mary was sobbing—the sunrise was over—and day, full,
+glowing, and brilliant, poured in upon the dead face.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_XIV">CHAPTER XIV.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+DUST AND ASHES.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>The day that followed was naturally a sad one. Mary was
+too much occupied in mourning her loss to notice Myles as
+she otherwise might have done. Harry left the house about
+five o’clock, promising to call again about dinner-time. A
+friendly neighbour came in and helped Mary to perform all
+that remained to be done for the dead. At last all was
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">[Pg 283]</span>finished. The woman had gone, and Mary paused as she
+left the room, looking round it with a kind of sorrowful
+pride. It looked very white, and pure, and still.</p>
+
+<p>She had drawn the blind down and set everything in
+the most exquisite order. The dead figure lay stretched
+out in its eternal repose, with calm, beautiful face, and
+quietly closed eyes. At the door she returned, and ran up
+to the bedside, and kissed the cold forehead.</p>
+
+<p>‘Poor lad! poor lad!’ she whispered between her tears,
+‘thine has been a hard life, but thou’rt in heaven now, if
+ever anybody was.’</p>
+
+<p>When Myles came in, during the forenoon, she was struck,
+for the first time, with his great stillness and the strange,
+haggard look upon his face. She remembered that he had
+been out all night, and asked him what he had been doing.</p>
+
+<p>‘I dare say it seemed unkind,’ he replied, ‘but you may
+trust me, Molly, I couldn’t help it. I can’t explain to you
+why it was; something had happened. I couldn’t help it.’</p>
+
+<p>He sat down beside her, and took her hand, and they
+both remained there, looking mournfully into the little fire;
+she with the sorrow of deep affection which knows its object
+removed; he sad too, but with a more incurable sadness
+than hers. They were both oppressed with sorrow, but he</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent8">‘Beneath a rougher sea,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">And whelmed in deeper gulfs than she.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>On this scene entered Harry Ashworth, with offers of his
+services if they were wanted, and also with the object of
+telling Myles what had passed between him and Mary.</p>
+
+<p>Myles heard it all out, down to Mary’s acknowledgment
+that she wished to marry Harry, ‘supposing thou hast
+nothing against it, Myles.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Against it? What could I have against it? You’ve
+my hearty consent and good wishes, both of you. There
+won’t be a better wife in Thanshope, nor in England, than
+you’ll get, Harry; and I know you so well that I’m not afraid
+to trust Molly to you. I’m glad it is so, for I don’t think I
+shall stay here long, and I should have been unhappy to leave
+her alone. I hope you’ll both be as happy as you deserve.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">[Pg 284]</span></p>
+<p>He shook hands with Harry and kissed Mary, but he
+could not force a smile. They saw that he was glad,
+relieved to find that they had decided to be married; but
+they also saw that he had some sorrow behind it all, which
+was greater than the joy.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb">
+
+<p>It was a little after eight on the same evening.
+Myles found himself standing opposite the Townhall, with
+his hand on the latch of the Oakenrod gate. He paused
+a moment before lifting it, then summoning up courage, did
+so, and stood within the garden of the house against which
+he had had so long and so strong a prejudice.</p>
+
+<p>He had never been so near it before. His feet were
+strange within the gates of rich or important people of any
+kind, but particularly here. It was with a sort of thrill that
+he looked round at the smoothly shaven grass, the dazzling
+flower-beds, in all the splendour of their June garments,
+the softly rolled gravel beneath his feet. The errand he
+came upon was one which, a month ago, he would have
+repudiated, would have said that no imaginable combination
+of circumstances could make him undertake. Yes, truly;
+but the combinations of circumstances which force us into
+the actions that humble us, and wound us, and sting our
+self-esteem with hornet-stings, are always such combinations
+as we should never imagine beforehand, because it never
+occurs to us that deserving persons, such as ourselves, can
+be put into positions only appropriate to ill-regulated conduct.</p>
+
+<p>Myles was conscious of no bad conduct or evil intentions,
+but only of a great, ever-growing misery, which was so strong
+as to force him to try in some way to escape from it, and
+this was the only path which presented itself as practicable;
+so he took it, as is generally the case.</p>
+
+<p>He walked up to the front door, past the open windows
+with the lace curtains fluttering inside, and pulled the bell.
+An unpleasant fear seized him, lest Sebastian should be out,
+gone to see Adrienne, perhaps, and he would have his hard
+task to do all over again.</p>
+
+<p>A page-boy opened the door, and Myles inquired if Mr.
+Mallory were at home.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">[Pg 285]</span></p>
+<p>‘I believe so,’ said the youth, a little wondering at the
+unusual visitor.</p>
+
+<p>‘I wish to see him,’ said Myles, stepping in, ‘if he is not
+engaged, that is; and my business is rather particular.’</p>
+
+<p>The boy, after serious consideration, decided to show
+the visitor into the library, and asked him to take a seat.
+This he did, and inquired,</p>
+
+<p>‘Who shall I say wishes to see him?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Tell him that Myles Heywood would be glad to speak
+to him, if he is disengaged.’</p>
+
+<p>The page disappeared. Myles was left alone in the library,
+and his quick, restless eyes roamed round it, and took
+everything in, and the full significance of everything—the
+soft carpets, the harmonious, subdued hues of walls, hangings,
+and furniture; the relief afforded by gleams of gold
+here and there; the book-cases filled with books of all times
+and in all languages; the great bronze busts of Aristotle
+and Sophocles; the quaint blue and white vases; the two
+curious paintings by Sebastian’s favourite German artist;
+the reading-stands; the writing-tables; the pleasant luxury
+and taste, and abundance of every appointment.</p>
+
+<p>‘No wonder!’ said he to himself. ‘And between the
+man and me—his manners and mine, his mind and mine—there
+is just the same difference as there is between this
+library of his and our little flagged kitchen at home. This
+is the place for her, and I feel as if I could see her here
+sitting at that writing-table, or standing in the window there
+looking out.’</p>
+
+<p>He heaved a deep sigh, and at that moment some one
+began to play a melody on a piano in another room; a soft,
+sad, melancholy air, to which he listened so intently that he
+did not hear the door open, and was first roused by Sebastian’s
+voice.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good evening. I am sorry to have kept you waiting;
+but I was engaged and could not escape.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t mention it,’ said Myles, rising; and as each man’s
+eyes fell upon the other man’s face, both felt surprise.
+Sebastian almost showed his, in a suppressed exclamation,
+but Myles was too sad and oppressed to experience more
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">[Pg 286]</span>than a vague wonder and astonishment that a man in what
+he thought was Sebastian’s position should wear that subdued,
+grave, downcast look.</p>
+
+<p>‘I noticed that you were not in your place to-day,’
+began Mallory, by way of opening the conversation; ‘nothing
+wrong at home, I hope?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; we are in trouble at home. My brother, who
+has been ill for a long time, died this morning, early.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am very sorry indeed. Of course you would not
+think of coming to work, at present. It is not——’</p>
+
+<p>‘It was not to excuse myself from work that I came,’
+said Myles, in the same quiet, constrained way. ‘My
+brother’s death is a grief to me, of course; but one does
+not talk about such things. I was going to trouble you on
+a matter of business, if you can spare the time——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perfectly well. In what can I help you?’</p>
+
+<p>Myles bit his lips. He had strong ideas about what it
+was fitting for a man to say and do under certain circumstances.
+Probably if he had formulated some of his ideas
+upon ethics, most sophisticated persons would have broken
+into inextinguishable laughter. One favourite maxim of his
+was that, to use his own language, ‘To blackguard a man
+high and low, and then go and ask a favour of him, was a
+mean, dirty trick; fit for a hound, perhaps, but not for an
+honest man.’ If he could not be said to have ‘blackguarded’
+Sebastian high and low, he had certainly spoken with less
+than courtesy, both of him and to him; it was impossible to
+ignore that fact, and proceed to his real errand.</p>
+
+<p>‘You may think it a very strange thing, but I’ve come to
+ask a favour of you,’ said he.</p>
+
+<p>‘Is it strange? I shall be glad to grant it if I can.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles lifted his hand a moment, and then went on,</p>
+
+<p>‘You may not know that I have often spoken very bitterly
+of you, but you do know that I have not been particularly
+civil to you—have I?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, not exactly effusive,’ admitted Sebastian, with a
+slight smile, wondering whether he had at last completed
+his much-desired conquest.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is true,’ said Myles. ‘I had a bad opinion of you—a
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">[Pg 287]</span>prejudice against you—and I expressed it. If it had not
+been for troubles I have had lately,’ he added, with that
+little nervous twitch of the lips which had only lately been
+present with him; ‘but for those troubles, I might have
+gone on thinking and speaking evil of you without a cause,
+but my eyes have been opened. I see how utterly wrong
+I was—blind and bigoted. You have proved yourself a
+very different man from what I thought you—a very much
+wiser and better man than I should have been in your place—and
+I beg your pardon for what I have said against you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But, my dear fellow, you must not take it so terribly in
+earnest; so—so tragically. Every one has his prejudices;
+I have some most preposterous ones, I believe. All the
+same, I confess to you that I was excessively piqued by
+your bad opinion of me. It has been a matter of some
+moment, with me, to overcome that prejudice, and enlist
+you amongst my friends. If I can say that you are amongst
+them now, I must feel that I have won a kind of victory.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory, I can never be amongst your enemies,
+never again. Let that be enough. I can say no more.
+You are wiser and more generous, too, than I am; but
+you can afford to be so. The reason I came to-night was
+to ask you if you still remembered an offer you made me
+a short time ago—the offer to give me a place away from
+Thanshope and <i>out of England</i>, you said?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I remember it perfectly well, and that I said I could
+still do it if you changed your mind about it. Well?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I have changed my mind about it If you can carry
+your generosity a little farther, and get me that place, or
+something like it—the farther away from here the better—I
+shall be—God knows, how grateful to you: I can never
+express it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I can still do it,’ said Sebastian, looking attentively and
+kindly at the eager, haggard face of the other. ‘But I am
+sorry you think of leaving Thanshope.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I <i>must</i> leave Thanshope. It is to get away from here
+that I ask. Will the work be hard? I hope so. I care
+for nothing but hard work—hard work,’ he repeated, in a
+sort of restless, prolonged sigh.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">[Pg 288]</span></p>
+<p>‘You will have what you wish for. The work is certainly
+pretty stiff. It is in Germany—in a rough, mining district
+near a large town. There is a cotton factory, and some
+collieries. They have a lot of English and Irish work-people
+there. The master and owner, Herr Süsmeyer, is a very
+intimate friend of mine. He wants a sort of superintendent—an
+Englishman, and one who is not afraid of work. He
+himself is as much an Englishman as a German. Still, you
+must know a little of the language. Did you not learn
+something of it from Miss Blisset?’ he added deliberately.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Myles, curtly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, you will soon pick up more; you are quick, and
+you must study when work is over. That will give you
+as much occupation as even you could wish, I think. I
+shall give you a very high recommendation, indeed, as being
+personally known to me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And as having been always polite, reasonable, and
+amiable with my superiors; not ready to take offence, and
+willing to own myself in the wrong!’ suggested Myles, with
+grim humour.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian smiled, in silence, as he drew a paper-case and
+inkstand towards him, and wrote rapidly. He fastened up the
+letter, and addressed it to—<span class="smcap">Herrn Gustav Süsmeyer</span>, Eisendorf,
+Westphalien, Prussia, and handed it to Myles, saying,</p>
+
+<p>‘I know the situation is still open, and that letter will
+secure it for you. I shall also write to Herr Süsmeyer to-night,
+so as to lose no time. From what you say, I suppose
+you will want to go soon?’</p>
+
+<p>‘As soon as ever I can—in a few days, when poor Ned
+is buried, and I can leave Mary.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You will leave your sister behind you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘For a good reason,’ said Myles. ‘She’s going to be
+married, and I know I leave her in good hands.’</p>
+
+<p>‘May I ask whom she will marry?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Harry Ashworth, a friend of ours. He has loved her
+long,’ said Myles, not even feeling surprised that he should
+be relating such things to Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am very glad; I wish them all happiness. I am sure
+the man is fortunate who marries your sister.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_289">[Pg 289]</span></p>
+<p>‘Yes, he is,’ assented Myles. ‘Then,’ he added, ‘you
+think I may go any day?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Any day; but before you go, I hope you will see me
+again, so that I can give you some idea of the place, and tell
+you what route to take. It is an out-of-the-way sort of place;
+and excuse me, the journey is somewhat expensive, and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are very kind. My friend Harry has money which he
+will lend me. I shall soon repay him if I once get work. He
+won’t want it till he is married. Let me see: the day after to-morrow—Mary
+will stay with Harry’s mother. Would it be
+convenient if I called the day after to-morrow, in the evening?’</p>
+
+<p>‘The day after to-morrow—to-morrow is Mrs. Spenceley’s
+ball,’ said Sebastian, half to himself. ‘Yes; the day after
+to-morrow will suit me perfectly well.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And the day after that I can go,’ exclaimed Myles, the
+first ray of anything like pleasure flashing across his face.
+‘I can go,’ he repeated.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian looked at him, not feeling at all satisfied with
+his victory. All that he had ever wished to himself, with
+regard to Myles, had come to pass. The latter had owned
+himself wrong; had apologised for his own frowardness;
+had descended so far as to ask a favour, and to express
+himself in tones of unmistakable emotion as deeply grateful
+when it was granted. And yet—the effect was not in the
+least what it ought to have been. The sensations of the
+victor were anything but jubilant.</p>
+
+<p>‘You seem very anxious to get away?’ he remarked,
+involuntarily and inquiringly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I am; it’s the only thing I care for, just at present,’
+said Myles. ‘Good night,’ he added, rising. ‘I can’t express
+my gratitude to you. You would have been justified
+in treating me very differently.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Indeed I should not!’ exclaimed Sebastian; and the
+sense that his victory was a barren one was borne still more
+strongly in upon him.</p>
+
+<p>What was it worth if, after all, it had only been won <i>for</i>
+him by Myles’s adverse circumstances, not <i>by</i> him, through
+his own influence over the conquered one?</p>
+
+<p>‘Heywood,’ he exclaimed earnestly, ‘is there nothing
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_290">[Pg 290]</span>behind all this that you could tell me? Can I do nothing
+for you but help you to get away from this place, which
+seems to have grown so unbearable to you? I do not ask
+from ordinary curiosity—you must know that; it is from
+sympathy, and a sincere wish to be your friend, if possible.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles shook his head.</p>
+
+<p>‘I can speak to no man of what troubles me, thank you,’
+said he. ‘All the same, I am not ungrateful.’</p>
+
+<p>He held out his hand, which the other grasped heartily,
+and in another minute found himself alone.</p>
+
+<p>All that evening, all the night, he was haunted by a vision
+of the pale face and miserable eyes of Myles Heywood—a
+vision of suffering whose very remembrance oppressed him.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_XV">CHAPTER XV.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+HUGO.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>The few days intervening between her dispute with her son
+and the Spenceleys’ ball were, as may be supposed, not particularly
+pleasant ones to Mrs. Mallory. Sebastian, after his
+interview with Adrienne, came home, and looking into the
+drawing-room found his mother alone. She did not deign
+to notice him, but he, coming in, said to her,</p>
+
+<p>‘Mother, I want to speak to you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I proposed to Miss Blisset this evening.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Indeed!’</p>
+
+<p>‘You do not ask what reception my offer met with.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I imagine, considering your relative positions, there cannot
+be much need to inquire.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Still, I may as well tell you that she refused me.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory was profoundly astonished, of course; but
+as, after a moment’s reflection, she did not perceive herself
+any nearer her real and cherished object, Sebastian’s marriage
+with Helena, she contented herself with uttering a
+sneering little laugh, and saying, in an exasperating tone—</p>
+
+<p>‘Really!’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_291">[Pg 291]</span></p>
+<p>‘So that you will not have the annoyance of knowing her
+your daughter-in-law. But I think it better to mention
+that such remarks as you made about her this morning
+must not be repeated in my presence. I do not choose to
+hear anything spoken of that young lady which is not quite
+respectful.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Though she <i>has</i> jilted you,’ said Mrs. Mallory, with an
+amiable smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘I was not aware of it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Very likely not; men seldom do know when women
+make fools of them. The better for them and their conviction
+as to their superior wisdom.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You may possibly be right,’ he rejoined, with perfect
+temper; ‘but the point I wish to impress upon you is, that
+nothing disrespectful is ever to be uttered of Miss Blisset
+in my presence. The other questions are quite supplementary.’</p>
+
+<p>She made no answer, and Sebastian, politely wishing her
+good night, retired to his study.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory sat alone, very angry, after her phlegmatic,
+batrachian fashion, at what had happened, and longing very
+much, for the relief of her own feelings, to punish some one
+in some way. It was too exasperating that Sebastian should
+behave in that manner, after all her plans for his good and
+welfare. Helena Spenceley was at the moment perfection
+in her eyes.</p>
+
+<p>‘At any rate, he must go to the ball the day after to-morrow,’
+she said to herself. ‘It is a good chance. There is no
+time when a man is so likely to fall in love with a woman
+as when he has just been “refused” by another woman.’</p>
+
+<p>But here her thoughts wandered off to Adrienne, and
+she felt as angry with her for her presumption in refusing
+Sebastian as she would have felt with her success had she
+accepted him. Indeed, her audacity in attracting him at
+all was thoroughly odious; she was a little dog in the
+manger, who would neither accept the man’s love herself
+nor leave him free to wander aside to where beauty and a
+hundred thousand pounds waited for him to lift his hand
+in order to utter a rapturous ‘Yes.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_292">[Pg 292]</span></p>
+<p>‘For Helena <i>is</i> in love with him, let her pretend what
+she likes,’ she muttered angrily. ‘I can see it distinctly.
+He might have her for the asking.... I wonder if all
+children are born to break their mothers’ hearts?’</p>
+
+<p>With which speculation agitating her brain she retired to
+rest.</p>
+
+<p>Her spirit was still ruffled and ill at ease all the next day,
+and by degrees she concentrated her ill-temper upon a single
+object—a sort of focus to her anger and vexation—and that
+object was no other than Hugo von Birkenau. She had
+always regarded him with little favour: he was poor,
+dependent, and behaved himself as if he were rich and free.
+Now, everything that he said or did appeared an offence—a
+purposely intended, premeditated insult directed at herself,
+with the purpose of angering her—a very strange frame
+of mind, dear reader, and one which, from its being so
+utterly unknown to you and me and eminently reasonable
+persons like ourselves, would almost seem to require some
+elucidation or description.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory found the day go over, and Hugo continue
+to be insultingly cheerful and conversational, without her
+being able to find any actual ground for quarrelling with
+him. It would come, she was determined; it should come:
+he was too impertinent to be tolerated without an attempt to
+repress him.</p>
+
+<p>On the evening on which Myles came to see Sebastian,
+the latter and Hugo were sitting together in Sebastian’s study.
+Hugo had heard of Adrienne’s refusal, and though condoling,
+did not feel so sorry as he considered he ought to have
+done. By degrees the conversation drifted off to Hugo’s
+own affairs and prospects. Sebastian told him he thought
+he ought seriously to think about what he meant to do.</p>
+
+<p>‘I have thought about it, and decided,’ said Hugo. ‘I’m
+going to write an opera. That has been my ambition ever
+since I could strum upon a piano.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But, my dear lad, you will never learn all that you must
+know in order to write an opera by staying in Thanshope.
+You must go away, Hugo, to your native land, where alone
+true music flourishes, and you must study. You ought to
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_293">[Pg 293]</span>go to Köln or Leipzig or some other conservatorium. I
+should recommend Leipzig.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I have always thought of Leipzig,’ answered the boy,
+‘and I will go as soon as you like, Sebastian, but it will be
+very dreary without you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, bah! Yours is a fickle, artist nature, Hugo, revelling
+in the delight of the moment. You will think Leipzig
+heaven a week after you get there, and all the other pupils
+in the conservatorium seraphs and angels, and you will
+wonder how you ever lived here.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not fickle, Sebastian!’ he cried, with the tragic earnest
+which sometimes made Sebastian think him so like Helena
+Spenceley. ‘Anything but that! Anything but fickle to you!
+If I thought I ever <i>could</i> be fickle to you, I’d put an end to
+myself to-night, and have no qualms of conscience about it.
+Such a wretch would be better out of the world than in it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, nonsense! But one thing I do wish you would
+promise me. I’ve often thought of asking you before, but I
+was afraid it might seem like trying to entrap your youth
+and innocence.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What is it? Quick, tell me what it is!’ asked Hugo, his
+eyes ablaze with eagerness.</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, it is this: that you will never, before you are one-and-twenty,
+take any very important step, without <i>telling</i> me
+what you intend to do. I don’t say asking my permission.
+I trust too much to your honour and purity of heart to keep
+you from doing anything bad,’ he added, with a smile. ‘I
+would not harass and fetter you by any such stupid restriction;
+but, as I trust you, I want you to trust me. Don’t do
+anything important without telling me that you intend to
+do it, and giving me a chance to offer you a specimen of
+my superior wisdom, you know.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What a question! I swear it!’ said Hugo, enthusiastically.
+‘As if I <i>could</i> do anything without consulting you!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not so fast!’ said his friend, laughing. ‘Wait till the
+time comes. I shall most likely seem then a wearisome
+old formalist, who——’</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Never!</i>’</p>
+
+<p>‘But I tell you, it will be so, you obstinate young dog!
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_294">[Pg 294]</span>There are temptations, Hugo, and you, with your temperament,
+will find them as hard to resist as if they were red-hot
+fiery hail. I am such a slow, phlegmatic sort of fellow.
+They don’t affect me in the same way. My temptations
+always come too late. By the time I begin to think I should
+like to do something either bad or idiotic, the chance is
+over, and I am saved. So I have got the reputation of
+being a very well-conducted sort of person, and not caring
+for the things other fellows care about.’</p>
+
+<p>‘At any rate, I solemnly give the promise you ask, and
+should have done so if it had been ten times as binding—and
+there’s my hand upon it,’ said Hugo, to whom the idea
+of binding himself to any particular thing, by ‘solemn oaths
+and execrations,’ was especially fascinating and delightful.
+It seemed to surround him and his friend with a little
+romance, and to separate them from the outer crowd. It
+opened up vague possibilities of self-denial, trial, and probation,
+and a prospect of endurance through good and
+evil, thick and thin, which delighted his ardent soul.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then that is settled,’ said Sebastian, contentedly. ‘We
+can talk about your going away later.’</p>
+
+<p>It was towards the close of this conversation that Sebastian
+had been called away to Myles Heywood—the day,
+therefore, before the ball at Castle Hill.</p>
+
+<p>On the following afternoon Sebastian had to go out. His
+mother asked him at lunch if he intended to go to the dance,
+and he said yes, he supposed he did—he must now, but he
+did not care about it, and did not think it was in very good
+taste to be having balls at such a time. Moreover, he had
+heard a rumour that Mr. Spenceley’s own affairs caused him
+some anxiety.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory said she supposed it was Mr. Spenceley’s
+own business; he ought to know best whether he were able
+to give balls at such a time. He could not put off his
+daughter’s twenty-first birthday for an indefinite time.</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ said Sebastian, ‘and that is just what makes the
+whole affair such a melancholy farce. His daughter is very
+anxious not to have any ball. She told me so, and nearly
+cried with vexation about it.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_295">[Pg 295]</span></p>
+<p>Mrs. Mallory made no reply, and Sebastian, saying he
+had a meeting to attend, went out.</p>
+
+<p>Hugo was that afternoon in one of his oft-recurring idle
+moods, and wandered about, apparently not knowing what
+to do with himself. He was anticipating the ball eagerly
+enough, having extracted from Helena the promise of no
+less than three waltzes—less of a distinction than he imagined,
+perhaps, since Helena, in granting them, had been
+thinking chiefly of escaping from the defective dancing and
+fatuous remarks of the Thanshope young men, amongst
+whom she enjoyed what she considered a fatal popularity.
+She had wondered whether to keep any dances for Sebastian.
+Would he ask her to dance at all?</p>
+
+<p>‘Of course he will!’ she thought, ‘as a matter of duty,
+and I think I shall fill up my programme, and show it him
+without any comment when he asks me. Then he will
+raise his eyebrows in that way I hate, and make a little bow,
+and smile a little smile, and remark, “I see I am indeed
+too late;” and stand on one side, perfectly content not to
+dance, since the nicest girl he ever knew is not there.’</p>
+
+<p>But these workings of the feminine mind could not possibly
+be known to Hugo, who was only aware that he had
+received an indulgent smile and a pleasant glance from
+Helena’s dark eyes, as she protested a little against the three
+waltzes, but yielded in the end. He repaired to the drawing-room,
+and, with characteristic fitfulness, spent the whole
+afternoon in playing waltzes, good, bad, and indifferent, of
+every kind and from every source he could think of. Waltz
+after waltz flowed from his rapid fingers. Gung’l and
+Strauss, Beethoven, Mozart, Schubert—ancient and modern
+composers, good and bad ones, were laid under contribution,
+till his whole being seemed a waltz, and he was in a state
+of highly strung nervous excitement and anticipation, with
+which mingled the memories of past waltzes with partners of
+a bygone day. Hugo felt his whole soul penetrated with
+music, melody, and happiness as he sat in the shady corner
+of the drawing-room and saw the sun stream warmly in at
+the side window. He felt life that afternoon very full and
+rich and delicious, and crowded with sweet and grand possibilities.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_296">[Pg 296]</span>He felt at harmony with all the world, and was
+sure it was a good place to live in.</p>
+
+<p>He had just finished the solemn, passionate strains of a
+waltz of Beethoven’s, and still his fingers lingered on the
+keys, and still his ears drank in the glorious notes, when the
+door opened and Mrs. Mallory came into the room.</p>
+
+<p>Hugo stopped playing. She did not openly request him
+to do so, but he knew she disliked to hear him, and to his
+fastidious taste the very presence of an unsympathetic spirit
+was jarring. Spontaneity ceased; pleasure was gone.</p>
+
+<p>He rose from the instrument, went to the sunny window,
+and hummed over the air he had been playing.</p>
+
+<p>‘At what time do we go to-night, Mrs. Mallory?’ he
+presently inquired.</p>
+
+<p>‘Go where?’</p>
+
+<p>‘To the ball.’</p>
+
+<p>‘At eight o’clock, I believe,’ she said, with stony coldness.
+Mrs. Mallory’s anger was coming to a climax now; it would
+be strange if Hugo did not say something which should
+cause the storm to break over his head. Unconsciously,
+unwittingly, he led straight up to the point.</p>
+
+<p>‘I should like to dance every night,’ he said, rather enthusiastically,
+for his music still haunted him, and even
+Mrs. Mallory’s chill influence could not quite bring him
+down from his heights of abstraction to the commonplaces
+of every day—yet.</p>
+
+<p>‘Very likely,’ she said. ‘I have noticed that the more
+frivolous a thing is, the more you delight in it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Dancing is not necessarily frivolous,’ Hugo assured her
+with the greatest solemnity. ‘It is, or should be, an art;
+not a mere kicking about of the legs.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Indeed!’</p>
+
+<p>‘When I grow up,’ continued Hugo, ‘that is to say, when
+I am <i>majorat</i>, come of age, I mean, and come into my property,
+I shall devote a great part of my time to dancing, I
+love it so.’</p>
+
+<p>This was too much, far too much. It was high time
+that this vain, bombastical, self-conceited pauper was put
+down.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_297">[Pg 297]</span></p>
+<p>‘When you come into your property,’ she remarked with
+polite sarcasm, ‘then you can squander it just as you please.
+But I would advise you first to make certain that you have
+any property to come into.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, I don’t suppose I shall be rich. Sebastian knows
+all about it. He says he will explain all in good time.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Sebastian is as foolish a young man, in some respects,
+as I know; and as for you, Mr. von Birkenau, I am at a
+loss to understand how any one professing to be a gentleman
+can behave as you do.’</p>
+
+<p>‘As how?’ demanded Hugo, his brow suddenly clouding
+as he perceived that her words bore reference to something
+unknown to him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Did Sebastian ever tell you, in so many words, that you
+had any property, any money, estate, possessions of any kind?’</p>
+
+<p>‘N—no.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I thought so. He is very trying, but I have always
+found him sincere, so far. I should have thought that very
+fact would have led you to think a little about your own
+position. That you can quietly accept another man’s
+bounty, and never ask the reason of it, never inquire into
+your own affairs, or ask whether you are living in a manner
+suitable to your future prospects—it is incredible! No one
+with any sense of honour could conduct himself in such a
+manner.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I do not know what you mean—Sebastian knows,’ said
+Hugo, a dread suspicion beginning to creep into his heart.
+‘He is my guardian, and I live as <i>he</i> pleases, of course.
+You know I do.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Your guardian! That is about all he has to guard, I
+think.’</p>
+
+<p>‘He is my guardian, and the guardian of my property,
+however small it may be. I dare say, to you, I may seem
+almost a beggar, but Sebastian——’</p>
+
+<p>‘You make me pity you! I do not think it right that
+you should live under such a delusion any longer. Let me
+tell you that you have no property except what my son
+gives you. You live on his bounty. But for him you
+would be a beggar.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_298">[Pg 298]</span></p>
+<p>‘You are not speaking the truth!’ said Hugo, suddenly
+standing before her and bending his flashing eyes upon her.
+‘You know you are not speaking the truth.’</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Where is it now, the glory and the dream?’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>‘Am I not? You had better ask Sebastian. It was he
+who told me. I thought you considered him perfect in all
+respects—not being his mother.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Sebastian told you that I lived on him—that he——’</p>
+
+<p>‘That your mother committed you to his charge, and he
+took it into his head to adopt you. That, except what he
+gives you, you have <i>nothing</i>. He told me that, and I think
+it best that you should know it, for I consider your behaviour
+and conversation very unfit for your position. That is all
+that I have to say, or want to hear, upon the subject.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory’s moral equilibrium was almost restored;
+she felt distinctly more cheerful and better satisfied with
+everything. For Hugo there remained only a hideous
+chaos, a general <i>bouleversement</i> of his fixed, contented conceptions
+of life and his sphere in it.</p>
+
+<p>He walked out of the room, and stood in the hall a
+moment. What should he do—whither go? This was no
+place for him. He had no right here. He was the object
+of a rich man’s pitying charity—a beggar. Mrs. Mallory
+had said it, and said it after a fashion which left no doubt
+possible. Instead of playing a grand piano in a luxurious
+drawing-room, instead of going to balls and dancing with
+beautiful young women of large fortune, and driving about,
+and riding fine horses—all belonging to another man—instead
+of this, he ought to be—what? Well, if Sebastian
+had left him at the institution where he was being brought
+up, the authorities would at least have found him a trade
+and apprenticed him to it: he might have been at this
+moment a shopman or an usher, or a clerk, or somebody’s
+secretary and amanuensis. At least, he would not have
+been anybody’s dependent, loaded with so many obligations
+that their weight crushed and overpowered him.</p>
+
+<p>By this time he had almost unconsciously ascended the
+stairs, and found himself in his own room. What must he
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299">[Pg 299]</span>do? It was impossible to let such a state of things continue
+any longer. What remained? To go, of course! The
+idea flashed like an inspiration upon him. He would fly—now,
+at once, Sebastian was out; Mrs. Mallory would
+certainly not try to prevent his departure. What should he
+take? what leave? He made an excited rush to his wardrobe,
+his drawers, and began to turn them out. Then
+another idea struck him. That would not do. They were
+all Sebastian’s things. Not one of them but had been
+bought with Sebastian’s money. He could not take any of
+them. It would be stealing. He looked down with a
+shudder at the very clothes he wore. No—he must take
+nothing; but he must go—he must get away from here,
+and go and earn some money, and pay Sebastian back.</p>
+
+<p>But he never could do that. How could he repay the
+kindness, the advice, the friendship—the care that had
+watched over him, the generosity which had condoned a
+thousand impertinences and wayward wearisome fancies?
+No money, no service, could ever repay these things. But
+at least he must get away—must remove himself. That
+very generosity which he had so often proved might, for
+anything he knew, have wearied of him long ago, though it
+would never say so.</p>
+
+<p>He rose with the vague intention of getting out of the
+house with as few impediments as possible, and, once out
+of it, never to re-enter it. And then memory and conscience
+again asserted themselves. What was it that he
+had promised Sebastian only last night? Not to do anything
+of any importance without first telling him of his
+intention. He could not even go, for he would not begin
+his new career by breaking his word to the man to whom
+he owed everything. He must wait.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, Sebastian!’ groaned the poor boy, flinging himself
+face downwards upon a couch at the foot of his bed, ‘it was
+cruel, cruel of you! You should not have treated me
+thus!’</p>
+
+<p>Men of Hugo’s temperament weep sometimes with almost
+womanly facility, and Hugo, in his new-born anguish
+and despair, wept now; and when the weeping was over,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_300">[Pg 300]</span>he did not rise, but remained with his face buried in the
+cushions, repeating to himself every item of Sebastian’s generosity,
+and his own blind, besotted self-confidence and
+ignorant assumption (such it appeared to him). A thousand
+things rose up in his memory, and he asked himself how he
+could have failed to comprehend their meaning, to have
+some suspicion of his real position. He resolved, with
+more and more impassioned eagerness, to <i>go</i>; to wait till
+he had redeemed his promise, and then to say farewell, and
+bid Sebastian forget him. How his heart ached at the
+thought! But no alternative was open to him. He was
+a gentleman. No gentleman could knowingly continue to
+live as he had been doing.</p>
+
+<p>The time went on; whether long or short he could not
+tell. He did not keep count of the minutes or hours.
+His whole consciousness seemed to resolve itself into a desire
+to be gone, which had grown overpowering and intense,
+when a quick tap at the door was heard, then it was opened,
+and Sebastian’s voice said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I say, Hugo, do you mean to go to this entertainment
+or not? Because if—why, what <i>is</i> the matter with you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I never knew, Sebastian! Upon my soul and honour I
+never knew till Mrs. Mallory told me to-day!’ exclaimed
+Hugo, starting up and confronting his horrified friend, with
+pale face, scintillating eyes, which bore traces of recent
+weeping, hair wildly tossed up and down his head, and
+generally demoralised aspect.</p>
+
+<p>‘Didn’t know <i>what</i>, my dear fellow? What is all this excitement
+about?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mrs. Mallory told me, just a little while ago, the <i>truth</i>
+about myself,’ said Hugo, speaking rapidly and vehemently
+in German, as he nearly always did when agitated, and he
+began to stride excitedly about the room. ‘It was not right
+... no, no! it was very cruel! you should not have done
+it. I have no right to reproach you, but you should not
+have laid such a burden upon me—a burden which is
+greater than I can bear ... <i>aber, Gott im Himmel</i>! what
+do I mean by reproaching you, when I owe you the very
+bread I eat, the very clothes I wear! Sebastian! Sebastian!
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_301">[Pg 301]</span>It was not <i>right</i>!’ he reiterated passionately, coming to a
+stop, and standing before the other, upon whose mind the
+truth began to dawn.</p>
+
+<p>His mother had played the traitor—had betrayed the
+trust which he had been weak enough to repose in her before
+he had understood her so well as he did now, and the
+result must be, in any case, a very painful explanation,
+and perhaps failure to convince Hugo; perhaps the alienation
+of a love which he prized more highly at this present
+moment than he ever had done before. For the moment,
+the first moment, his heart sank very low: he suddenly
+seemed to see everything that he most prized deserting him.
+Adrienne was lost to him, and his heart was yet smarting
+under that conviction. Yesterday he had seen Myles
+Heywood depart, expressing his gratitude, but, as he felt,
+unconquered, untouched at heart. Now, here was Hugo
+bitterly reproaching him for not having done what was right
+towards him. One stroke coming upon the other almost
+unmanned him momentarily, for the men with warm hearts
+and cool heads are necessarily more susceptible both to
+failure and success than the men with cool heads and cold
+hearts to boot.</p>
+
+<p>Then he suddenly gathered himself together. Hugo was
+not gone; he was only drifting away from him. He would
+make a very strong struggle to still hold him fast to him;
+if he succeeded, he might take it as a good omen for the
+future—if not, the future must look after itself. He came
+into the room and closed the door.</p>
+
+<p>‘You startle me, Hugo. This is something I did not expect.
+Suppose you tell me all about it, and we can discuss
+it. Shall we?’</p>
+
+<p>‘There is nothing to be discussed. If it had not been
+for my promise to you yesterday, I should not be here now.
+As it is, I waited; but only to say that I am going at once—to
+clear myself—to tell you that I never knew....’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why, Hugo, how <i>could</i> you know? If you had known,
+you would not have been what you are to me, the frank,
+open-hearted comrade, whose friendship and companionship
+have made me so happy.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_302">[Pg 302]</span></p>
+<p>‘If I had known,’ said Hugo, ‘I should not have behaved
+myself like a mountebank, such as I must have seemed to
+you many a time, with my impertinences and fancies. Mrs.
+Mallory is quite right—for me to be thinking of balls and
+amusements and enjoyments is folly—madness. What an
+ape! what a confounded, conceited, self-important <i>ape</i> I
+must have seemed all these years! Acting as if I had
+great prospects before me, while all the time I am a beggar.
+It is hideous!’</p>
+
+<p>He was getting excited again. His eyes began to flash
+and his foot to beat the floor restlessly. Sebastian noticed
+that he had not once looked at him during all this scene,
+but away from him: anywhere rather than meet his eyes.</p>
+
+<p>‘Let me go,’ he added, in a choked voice. ‘Let me go,
+and forget me. That is all you and I can do, and it must
+be done at once.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You will never leave me, any more than I can, or shall
+try to forget you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why? Because I am under such obligations to you,
+that you can force me to obey you from very shame?’ asked
+Hugo, bitterly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Not at all, Hugo, but because you love me, and I love
+you (if it were not so, after all these years, it would be
+strange), and you could never find it in your heart to wound
+me as such a proceeding would wound me.’</p>
+
+<p>At last Hugo’s eyes turned to him; at last he stood still
+and looked at him, and Sebastian returned the look from
+his inmost heart. This soul-to-soul, searching gaze was a
+prolonged one, and Hugo at last, turning away, sat down
+on the sofa again, put his hand before his face, and said in
+a broken voice,</p>
+
+<p>‘You could always do what you liked with me, and you
+can now. What do you want?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I only want you to listen to me and <i>believe</i> me,’ said
+Sebastian. ‘If you will only believe me, all will be well.’</p>
+
+<p>A movement of the head showed that Hugo was listening.</p>
+
+<p>‘You have called me cruel—you have said that what I
+have done was not right. I cannot hear such accusations
+unmoved. Why have I been cruel?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_303">[Pg 303]</span></p>
+<p>‘In putting me into a false position—making me believe
+myself to be what I am not.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Somewhat insincere it may have been, but I do not see
+how I could well have acted otherwise. When your mother
+died you were equally badly off, so far as worldly circumstances
+go, as you are now. <i>You</i> did not know it. It was
+her weakness that she could not bear you, whom she adored,
+to know it. She had a horror of your learning that the
+institution at which you were being educated was a ch—I
+mean——’</p>
+
+<p>‘A charity-school—yes.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That’s right, old fellow! Put it as spitefully as you can.
+If you like, it <i>was</i> a charity-school—and a poor coarse
+inadequate place too, not the place for you. When I think
+of <i>you</i> there, it is horrible; I simply took the place of the
+authorities of that school towards you. They had nothing
+to bind them to you; no single tie existed. <i>I</i> had everything.
+I had been your mother’s intimate friend; she
+gave me, in her goodness, that which no service of mine
+could repay. I reverenced her in her lifetime, and I reverence
+her memory now. She knew what I wished; I discussed
+it with her fully and freely, and she gave her unqualified
+consent. She trusted you to me—gave you to me.
+Have you any right to impute wrong motives to her memory?
+You remember her perfectly well. You know what she was.
+You must know that she never acted but as she thought,
+from right and pure motives.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I know; that alters it. But all the same it is very
+hard.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I feel it so,’ said Sebastian. ‘Year by year I have been
+more glad that I had you as my firm and faithful friend,
+who would never desert me, whatever any one else did. I
+firmly believed that it was so, and you—you have so little
+regard for me, that you would leave me—quit me here at
+an hour’s notice, and why? Because you cannot, or will
+not, rise above a few miserable, material interests; because
+you let a few paltry, sordid coins (that is what it comes to)
+raise themselves between you and me, and make them into
+a wall which neither of us can pass. Yet you told me the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_304">[Pg 304]</span>other night that you <i>could</i> not be fickle—to me. Which
+am I to believe—your words or your actions?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You may believe both now, when I tell you that I will
+do what you please. Shall I stay? I will do whatever you
+like—just whatever you like,’ said Hugo, in a dull, toneless
+kind of voice.</p>
+
+<p>‘You call that doing what I please—remaining though
+you hate it. I thought—last night I was sure that it would
+have caused you pain to leave me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It will—would, I mean, cause me agony; but what am
+I to think, when you have told Mrs. Mallory, who hates
+me, my whole story, and kept it from me, whom you say
+you love?’</p>
+
+<p>‘There I was wrong, Hugo—utterly wrong, I own it
+Had I known—but I must not say that. If I had it to do
+now, I should keep silence. But if you will not allow me
+<i>one</i> mistake, take your own way. Leave me alone. My
+mother opposes my wishes bitterly. The girl I love won’t
+have a word to say to me. I have no one left but Hugo
+von Birkenau—and he begs to decline my acquaintance.
+So be it!’</p>
+
+<p>He turned to leave the room. His hand was on the
+door-handle, when Hugo overtook him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Stop!’ said he, almost in a whisper. ‘You know me
+better than I know myself. I cannot leave you thus. If
+I thought I was of any good to you——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose I should go through all this, to keep a thing
+I didn’t care for. That is so like me!’ observed Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Hugo, with a half-laugh, half-choke, or sob;
+‘I never thought of that.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Of course not. You wish to repay me, as you call it,
+Hugo. The only way in which you can do it is to let me
+watch your future, as I have always hoped to do, till you
+are famous, and I am known as your greatest friend, eh?’</p>
+
+<p>Hugo smiled faintly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Your mother despises me,’ he began.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian shrugged his shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>‘My dear boy, you must have seen that my mother is
+by no means graciously disposed towards any one or anything
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_305">[Pg 305]</span>that I may have the misfortune to be fond of. As I
+like you better almost than any one, she naturally dislikes
+you proportionately. It is not a pleasant thing to have to
+say, but it is true. Surely, if you and I understand each
+other, it does not matter what outsiders think of us.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ said Hugo, and once more there was heartiness
+and confidence in his tone. ‘Forgive me my folly. It is
+over now.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I thank you for making such a sacrifice to me....
+When I came into the room it was to see what you were
+doing, as you didn’t appear at dinner. And, behold, nearly
+an hour has passed. The carriage will be here in ten
+minutes.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t think I shall go.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Pray do, though, or I shall have to think that this
+reconciliation is only a sham one after all. Besides,
+Helena’s <i>beaux yeux</i> will not turn very amiably towards me,
+if I come without you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It depends upon yourself how Helena’s <i>beaux yeux</i> regard
+you,’ said Hugo; ‘but I will go. It would be
+insulting to her if I did not. I’ll get ready now.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I must do the same,’ said Sebastian, leaving the room.</p>
+
+<p>Hugo proceeded to dress himself. He found himself looking
+back upon the afternoon, when he had sat playing waltzes,
+as if it had been separated by years from the evening, and
+his present self was a stranger to himself of yesterday.</p>
+
+<p>It was quite true. These few short hours had transformed
+him from a boy to a man. The process, which in some
+cases is one of such prolonged, lingering growth, had been
+with him effected at a leap, a single bound. The change
+proved itself most in the fact that he accepted the cross
+laid upon him; he felt himself possessed of that goodly,
+manly virtue, the ability to wait; two days ago he would
+have tried to rush away from pain and difficulty—now he
+could shake hands with them. As he dressed, he planned
+his course as it should be, subject to circumstances; not
+with the furious, fitful temper of an hour ago, but with
+calm, manly reasonableness and judgment.</p>
+
+<p>When the carriage came round they stood in the hall,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_306">[Pg 306]</span>and Mrs. Mallory looked curiously at his pale, altered, composed
+countenance; but she saw in an instant, by the look
+that passed between him and Sebastian, that all was perfectly
+clear between them. The sweet accord of two noble
+natures was a thing beyond her power to grasp; but she
+saw that she had not succeeded in separating them, and
+recognised that she had done her cause no service by her
+interference.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_XVI">CHAPTER XVI.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+HOW HELENA CAME INTO HER FORTUNE.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>The rooms at Castle Hill were nearly full, and the ball had
+just begun, when the Oakenrod party arrived. Sebastian
+offered his arm to his mother, and she took it, both of them
+having a very strong sense of the fact that the courtesy was
+a mere outside show, and that they would rather have been
+any number of miles apart. Followed by Hugo, they penetrated
+through the large square hall and the coffee-room, to
+the drawing-room, which blazed in the full splendour of
+unlimited wax-lights. In the centre of the room, looking
+very hot and very uncomfortable, they found Mrs. Spenceley
+alone. Her lord was nowhere to be seen, though her
+son was stationed at some little distance from her, helping
+her in the discharge of her duties with a Thanshopian
+grace and dignity all his own.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian, when his mother had finished her greetings
+and congratulations, went up to Mrs. Spenceley, and in
+his turn paid his <i>devoirs</i>.</p>
+
+<p>The lady bore upon her face distinct traces of uneasiness
+of mind. There was something terrible and <i>bezarre</i> in the
+contrast between her expression and her attire. Helena
+had considerately tried to arrange her dress for her, with
+the natural sense of beauty and harmony of colour and
+material which she so strongly possessed. She had endeavoured
+to soften down the radiant hues contemplated
+by Mrs. Spenceley, and had succeeded in inducing her
+rather to dress herself in a magnificent robe of black satin.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_307">[Pg 307]</span>Diamonds twinkled upon her spacious bosom, and diamond
+pins fastened her gorgeous lace cap. Here Helena’s efforts
+had ceased to produce any effect. At this point Mrs.
+Spenceley’s own taste in dress asserted itself. She had
+thrown over her shoulders a floating scarf of crimson gauze,
+intertwined with lines of orient gold, and over which wandered
+abnormally large bunches of abnormally large grapes—purple
+grapes, with leaves of the same phenomenal proportions.
+This treasure had been put on in order, as she
+explained to Helena, ‘to cover my shoulders and give me
+a little colour; for, say what you will, a black satin and a
+white lace cap is not full enough for a woman of my years.’</p>
+
+<p>In despairing resignation Helena had submitted, and the
+result was the apparition already described, looking, with
+the troubled, puzzled expression on her highly coloured face
+and the restless wandering of her gentle dark eyes, altogether
+so grotesque, that Sebastian’s quick observation
+instantly suspected something behind the gay show which
+surrounded them.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad to see you, Mr. Mallory,’ she said, giving him
+her hand, and with an effort giving her attention to him.
+‘I hope you’ll enjoy yourself, I’m sure. We’ve done all we
+could think of to make people enjoy themselves; but it
+is <i>very</i> provoking, Spenceley’s not coming at the last minute,
+isn’t it?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I thought I missed Mr. Spenceley. Is he engaged?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, it’s this horrid business, you know. I said to him,
+I said, “Spenceley, if business is so uncertain, it’s a very
+sure thing that we oughtn’t to be giving balls in this style;”
+not but what I am <i>very</i> glad to see you, and I hope you’ll
+enjoy it,’ she hastened to add. ‘He had to go off to Liverpool
+early this morning, and he said he <i>might</i> have to
+come home by Manchester, but he’d try to be with us
+before we began. However, he hasn’t turned up.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Very likely he has been detained.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I expect so. These are anxious times, and it keeps a
+man on the strain, with things going first up and then down,
+and not knowing how anything will turn out,’ said Mrs.
+Spenceley, lucidly. ‘But aren’t you going to dance, Mr.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_308">[Pg 308]</span>Mallory? There’s lots of young ladies will be delighted to
+dance with you. See! there’s little Fanny Kay sitting out—the
+first dance, too. Do you know her?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, thank you. I don’t think I will dance at present.
+I’m looking for Miss Spenceley, to congratulate her; but
+she is not here, I think.’</p>
+
+<p>‘She’s in the ball-room. You see, she had to open the
+ball, being for her own birthday, and all, and some of them
+were very anxious to begin. It makes it very awkward,
+Spenceley’s being away. But you’ll see Helena directly, I
+dare say. She said she should come straight here when
+the dance was over.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think I will go and see if it is over,’ said Sebastian,
+who saw Hugo leading off a white-robed virgin to the ball-room.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, do; I’m sure they must be nearly done by now,’
+she replied, drawing her dazzling scarf more closely about
+her, and obstinately refusing to lessen her fatigue by sitting
+down.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian crossed the hall, and at the door of the ball-room
+met Helena and her partner coming out. She was
+leaning on the arm of an elderly man, one of the Thanshope
+magnates, to whose lot it had fallen to guide her through
+the mazes of a duty-quadrille, by way of opening the ball.
+Helena looked bored, and the gentleman no less so. They
+were making straight for the drawing-room, in order to get
+rid of each other as soon as possible.</p>
+
+<p>Helena did not at once see Sebastian, and he had time
+to notice how downcast and pale she looked, although so
+lovely. Mr. Rawson, her partner, was at this moment
+‘collared’ in a summary manner by an acquaintance, and
+appeared particularly anxious to talk with him on congenial
+subjects. Mr. Mallory, therefore, seized the opportunity to
+advance and say:</p>
+
+<p>‘Good evening, Miss Spenceley.’</p>
+
+<p>Helena started, and turned quickly to him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Rawson,’ proceeded Sebastian, ‘I see you are engaged.
+Allow me to take Miss Spenceley to the drawing-room—or
+wherever else you please,’ he added, in a lower
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_309">[Pg 309]</span>voice, as Mr. Rawson, with evident gratitude, gave up his
+charge, and they walked away, her hand resting lightly on
+his arm.</p>
+
+<p>‘Now he is happy with a friend of his own age,’ remarked
+Sebastian. ‘I could not find you in the drawing-room, so
+I came to seek you, in order to offer you my sincere congratulations
+upon this occasion.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why so <i>sincere</i>? You speak so emphatically that I
+begin to doubt your sincerity. Why congratulate me at
+all?’</p>
+
+<p>‘What a question! I always understood, from your own
+words, that you looked forward to your twenty-first birthday
+as a moment of emancipation, when you would not be
+trodden down any more, and could really show the sex
+which fails to meet your approval what you think of them,
+and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I wish you would not keep talking in that way,’ said
+Helena. ‘It does not amuse me in the least, and I don’t
+see what fun there is in it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Fun! I had no idea of fun! You shock me. I am in
+the most solemn earnest I beg to be allowed to offer my
+congratulations to the heroine of the present occasion, and
+to wish you “many happy returns of this day.” You will
+permit me to do that?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am not a heroine, and the present occasion requires
+anything but congratulations,’ was all Helena said.</p>
+
+<p>Her wonted brilliance and high spirits had quite deserted
+her, even in the presence of Sebastian Mallory, for whose
+delectation they were usually wont to flow rather more
+rapidly than at other times. In this new and more pensive
+mood Sebastian found the charm, which he had always
+owned, a strong one. He had never before found her so
+attractive. Her dress was less splendid, and more airy and
+girlish than usual. It was white and full and flowing, suggestive
+of <i>tulle illusion</i> and silvery clouds, and was dotted
+all over with little bunches of rosebuds. There was a string
+of pearls around her lovely throat; and, for all her paleness
+and downcast looks, her beauty came out triumphant.</p>
+
+<p>‘She is a lovely creature!’ he thought, glancing downwards
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_310">[Pg 310]</span>at the serious face and the dark lashes which swept
+her cheek.</p>
+
+<p>‘Not a heroine!’ he said. ‘You must be one to-night,
+whether you like it or not. And as for congratulations, I
+could offer you a hundred reasons why people should congratulate
+you; but to confine myself to one, you are Helena
+Spenceley. Don’t you think that is reason enough for
+congratulation?’</p>
+
+<p>They had wandered into a little anteroom, divided by
+curtains from one of the other sitting-rooms, and as Sebastian
+asked the last question they were standing in the middle of
+the room, and Helena looked at him. Her face was sad,
+and her eyes were bright with tears.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is of no use; you cannot make me angry to-night,
+even by laughing at me. But if you want the satisfaction
+of knowing that your remarks wound me, take it: it is so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena! Miss Spenceley!’ he stammered, in confusion,
+for his words had not been free from malice, and he knew it.
+What he had not known was that Helena was in no mood
+for battle—that she did not even wish to quarrel with him.</p>
+
+<p>‘If you are offended, I beg your pardon,’ he said. ‘I
+did not mean anything like what you imagine. And, since
+you do not choose to be congratulated, I withdraw the congratulations.
+May I say you have my good wishes?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Not unless you mean it,’ said Helena, coldly; ‘and,
+when you think how different our thoughts and wishes, and
+hopes and objects in life are, you will, I hope, hesitate before
+making more pretty speeches.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are very severe. I think I had better say no more
+upon the subject. But,’ he added, with that air of almost
+affectionate interest which Helena believed she so greatly
+resented, ‘you are downcast and out of spirits to-night—not
+as you should be for your own birthday ball. How is it?’</p>
+
+<p>In so matter-of-fact a tone was the question asked, that
+Helena scarcely felt it strange that he should put it, and
+began in a docile manner to explain.</p>
+
+<p>‘How can I be otherwise? It is such nonsense. What
+is the good of having a ball? I don’t want a ball. I
+wanted to be quiet. I go about every day, from house to
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_311">[Pg 311]</span>house, and see people starving—much better people than I
+am, or ever shall be—and then I have to come home and see
+money flung away on a ball—for me—because such an important
+personage has condescended to live twenty-one years
+in this horrid, grimy old world; and to put on a dress that
+has cost—no, I will never reveal all my shame, but I could
+tear my dress to pieces when I think of a woman whom I saw
+this afternoon, and who was crying as if her heart would
+break, because she had to pawn her husband’s and children’s
+Sunday clothes, and their best tea-things, that she had when
+she was married. I thought of this dress, which was got
+on purpose for me at Paris, and which cost about ten times
+as much as the materials that made it are worth,’ said
+Helena passionately, ‘and when I put it on, I felt as if I
+were putting on my shroud.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am very sorry—only you won’t believe it, because I
+say so, but surely now it will be different? You must not
+get morbid. That never does any good. You will have
+wealth of your own now, and be your own mistress, when
+you can take your revenge on all these fine clothes, and go
+about in home-spun, or even sackcloth, if you choose.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Helena dispiritedly, ‘I know; but I should
+not like it. I love expensive things, and I hate coarse and
+common ones. And I am beginning to think that perhaps
+I am not such a very fit person to have money. I have
+heard a great deal about money lately, and I don’t fancy it
+is so easy to manage as I used to think.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Mereweather will assist you,’ he said, half smiling.</p>
+
+<p>‘Don’t name Miss Mereweather to me,’ said Helena, with
+sudden animation. ‘She has deceived me cruelly. I never
+was so cut-up about anything.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What <i>has</i> she done?’</p>
+
+<p>‘She has got married,’ said Helena, in a determined
+voice, as if anxious to get the worst over.</p>
+
+<p>‘Got married!... Why ... and a very good wife she
+will make, if she has got the right sort of husband. I remember
+thinking, that evening I met her here, what a
+capital head of a large establishment she would make....’</p>
+
+<p>‘Did you?’ said Helena, with a curious quaver in her
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_312">[Pg 312]</span>voice, half laughter, half astonishment. ‘Well, you must
+have been right. She has married a clergyman who is the
+head of a very large boys’ school—a sort of college.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The very thing for her. I wish, when you write, you
+would ask if she remembers my insignificance, and offer my
+warmest congratulations and good wishes.’</p>
+
+<p>‘When I write!’ echoed Helena, scornfully. ‘I wrote
+to her once, after I heard of it, but never again. I told
+her my mind.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Did you really? What did you say?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I said she was a traitor to her sex and her cause, and
+that, as I still held my old opinions, I could not be her
+friend any longer.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How awful for her! May I ask whether she made any
+reply?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh yes,’ said Helena, her colour rising, ‘she made a
+very stupid reply.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Won’t you tell me what it was?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, it was too silly.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I believe you got the worst of it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘At least, it was too ridiculous to repeat.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps she said, “Wait and see;” or, “Don’t shout till
+you are out of the wood!” only more elegantly expressed.’</p>
+
+<p>‘She—oh, there is Hugo coming. This is my first dance
+with him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Spenceley, will you be very kind to Hugo to-night?
+Really and truly, he has had a great trouble.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I will. Poor boy!’</p>
+
+<p>‘And have you any dances left?—a waltz? Though I
+can hardly hope it. You must have been engaged long
+ago, for the whole evening?’</p>
+
+<p>‘In that case you might have spared yourself the trouble
+of asking,’ said Helena, rather defiantly; but as their eyes
+met, hers wavered.</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps you have still one left,’ said he, capturing her
+programme and opening it.</p>
+
+<p>‘It looks very full,’ he said; ‘but—ah, yes! here is one,
+a waltz—two waltzes. This is extraordinary—my luck, I
+mean; don’t you think so? And may I——’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_313">[Pg 313]</span></p>
+<p>He paused, looking inquiringly at her as he held the
+pencil suspended over the card.</p>
+
+<p>‘Two waltzes!’ exclaimed Helena, innocently. ‘Oh, but
+that must be a mistake. I know when Mr. Consterdine
+came just now I told him I had not one left.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No doubt you told him what was good for him,’ said
+Sebastian, with laudable gravity. ‘At least, we will make
+it quite sure now. There: “S. M., 6,” and “S. M., 10.”
+Thank you, very much.’</p>
+
+<p>With a bow and a half-smile he resigned her to Hugo,
+who came up at that moment to offer congratulations and
+to claim his dance, while Sebastian walked away to while
+away the time until ‘Number 6’ should begin.</p>
+
+<p>As he danced only once or twice with any one but Helena,
+he had ample opportunity of observing the general features
+of the entertainment, and he soon saw that Helena’s depression
+was but a part of that obvious more or less throughout
+the whole assembly. The rooms were dazzling, the decorations
+were unutterably gorgeous, the brilliance of the lights
+amounted to an absolute glare, and became oppressive and
+terrible. On all sides there was evidence of the most lavish
+expenditure; flowers, furniture, attendants, refreshments, all
+seemed to cry in loud and blatant voices, ‘Try us; we are
+of the very best. No stint here, because expense is no
+object, absolutely none at all.’ It would have been exceedingly
+amusing, and Sebastian was by no means slow to see
+the humorous side of ambitious entertainments of that kind;
+but the amusing part of it was quite overcome and swamped
+by the great and nameless cloud and oppression that hung
+over it all. What was the reason of that cloud? Surely
+not the simple fact that the master of the house was absent.
+That alone would have been a relief rather than otherwise.</p>
+
+<p>For he came not, and came not, and poor Mrs. Spenceley
+still looked ill at ease: and at last Sebastian noticed some
+one else begin to look ill at ease too, and to glance round with
+a suspicious, watchful air now and then. That person was
+Frederick Spenceley. Something was wrong, something lay
+behind it all, thought Sebastian, as he stood in the cool hall
+after his first dance with Helena, that is to say, between ten
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_314">[Pg 314]</span>and eleven o’clock. During that dance they had quite forgotten
+to flout each other, or to do anything but enjoy
+themselves. He had said all he could to raise that nameless
+cloud from her face, and he had been startled to find
+what brilliant success had attended his efforts. Helena had
+soon smiled again, and had half confessed that she had
+kept the two dances for him, and had even blushed and
+laughed when he teased her about it. He was thinking of
+that waltz, and humming the tune to which they had danced
+as he paced about the hall, while he still seemed to feel
+Helena lightly resting in his arms, her fleet foot keeping
+pace with his; and he began to wish that he had not four
+whole dances to wait before his next one with her came.</p>
+
+<p>‘She is very lovely, and there is something very bewitching
+about her,’ he said to himself for the second time that
+evening.</p>
+
+<p>A dance was going on in the ball-room, and the hall at
+the moment was empty, save for himself. He paused before
+a huge mirror, which had been raised at one end of it, and
+in front of which was erected a fragrant pyramid of flowers
+and ferns, delicate hothouse blossoms, and feathery aromatic
+leaves. There was a blaze of light all around, and the staircase
+and part of the gallery running round the second story
+were reflected in the mirror. Sebastian stood before the
+pyramid of flowers, and gently first touched one and then
+the other, and then his eyes fell upon the reflection of his
+own face, and he was surprised to see how grave it looked;
+for he did not feel particularly grave at the moment, and
+that interview with Adrienne Blisset seemed to hang like a
+dream in the far background of his consciousness, while
+another face and form, flower-crowned and glowingly beautiful,
+advanced to the front.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly he became conscious, as it were, of some
+shadow crossing the glass, and looking higher, to where the
+staircase was reflected, he saw the figure of a man stealing
+carefully, softly, noiselessly up the stairs, keeping well to the
+wall, with averted face, as if anxious to get as quickly as
+possible out of all that obtrusive glare of light and stream
+of dancing sound.</p>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_315">[Pg 315]</span></p>
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_XVII">CHAPTER XVII.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+HOW MR. SPENCELEY MET HIS DIFFICULTIES.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Sebastian’s first thought naturally resolved itself into the
+words, ‘A thief in the night;’ some evil-disposed person
+who thought to penetrate to some of the bedrooms, in the
+confusion, and perhaps reap a harvest of neglected brooches,
+watches, or shawl-pins. In such a case, it was his duty at
+once to warn the servants, and he was in the act of turning
+to go and do so as quickly as possible, when the figure
+reached the head of the first flight of stairs, and turned
+to mount the next. As this happened, Sebastian caught
+a momentary glimpse of the face. He was long sighted,
+and not given to making mistakes in the matter of identity.
+The man who was stealing so quietly up the stairs in such
+evident fear of detection was, one would suppose, the last
+person who should need to act in so strange a manner.
+It was Mr. Spenceley himself, the master of the house.</p>
+
+<p>With great presence of mind Sebastian checked his
+movement to turn round, and neither started nor stirred,
+but stood pensively trifling with a fern leaf, as he gave himself
+time to reflect upon what had happened.</p>
+
+<p>The vague, floating rumours which he had heard, as to
+the ‘shakiness’ of Mr. Spenceley’s commercial position,
+recurred to his mind. Probably there was something in
+them. His own business and that of Mr. Spenceley lay in
+utterly different lines: he had not come across him in any
+commercial transactions; but he knew men who had, and
+who were of opinion that Spenceley was playing rather a
+dangerous game. During those troublous years some
+fortunes were made, and many were lost—lost by men who
+seemed as little likely to fail as Mr. Spenceley of Castle
+Hill. Sebastian pictured the feelings of his mother, supposing
+she were to hear any such rumour—his mother who
+was probably at that moment listening with affecting interest
+and politeness to some circumlocutory history from the
+lips of Mrs. Spenceley, <i>à propos</i> either of Fred or of Helena.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_316">[Pg 316]</span>This was the day on which Helena was to come into—not
+her whole fortune—that was only to happen at her father’s
+death, or if she married—but of so much of it as would
+make her what many people would call a rich woman. Sebastian
+thought of this, and wondered if the fortune were but</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent4">‘A fleeting show</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">For man’s illusion given.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>His thoughts turned persistently to the girl with whom
+he had so lately been dancing. It was all in her honour,
+this ghastly, hollow mockery of an entertainment, with its
+spectres and shadows flitting and stealing about. All for
+her! She was crowned with roses, which were indeed the
+fitting flower for so beautiful a rose as she was herself.
+Those great pearls round her neck, and those massive
+bracelets on her slender arm—his mind recalled each item
+of her dress, and, as it were, every line of her beauty; he
+saw her standing, as she had stood more than once that
+evening, with a crowd round her, of friends and well-wishers—for
+she was popular—who congratulated her, and brought
+her flowers and bouquets—chiefly roses—the flowers of love
+and triumph. And ever, as he pictured her thus, that
+shadowy, stealing figure seemed to lurk and crouch behind
+them, now uncovering its face a little, and then, with a
+smile of weird meaning, drawing the veil again. He
+shuddered a little, and turned hastily towards the ball-room;
+stood in the doorway and looked. Yes, there was
+Helena with Hugo; he was glad she was with Hugo;
+smiling and laughing with him, as they flew swiftly by, past
+the door, and her perfumed skirts brushed him and sent an
+odd little thrill through him.</p>
+
+<p>The ball progressed, and the evening drew drearier and
+drearier; he heard the excuses made by Mrs. Spenceley,
+and saw the care growing darker upon her brow; he heard
+the regrets of the guests, and saw the increasing uneasiness
+of the looks cast about him by Fred, with a strange sense
+that he alone could, if he chose, point the way upstairs and
+say, ‘You will find the explanation of all, if you go there
+and ask.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_317">[Pg 317]</span></p>
+<p>As the tenth dance was about to begin, he saw Fred
+make some excuse to the lady whom he was leading to the
+ball-room; heard the words, ‘Very sorry—back in a minute.’
+The young lady was put on a cushioned bench beside the
+wall, and Fred quickly departed, with a look of resolution
+on his face. Sebastian, with Helena on his arm, looked
+after Spenceley. He was going upstairs. Mallory, throughout
+all the dance, could not keep himself from wondering
+what was taking place in one of those upper rooms. What
+confession, or what revelation? Were things very bad?
+Was the crisis a very critical one?</p>
+
+<p>‘You have become perfectly silent, Mr. Mallory—not to
+say morose,’ remarked Helena. ‘And when I was dancing
+with Hugo, I saw you looking in upon us with a sort of
+glare. What is the matter?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, nothing! Miss Spenceley, when did you last see
+your father?’</p>
+
+<p>‘This morning, quite early: you know we have breakfast
+at eight, because we are business people. He gave me
+these pearls that I have on for a birthday present, and
+though I would much rather have had no presents, they
+were so beautiful, and I am so weak, that I was in ecstasies
+with them. But papa said he had very important business
+in Liverpool, and he might have to go to Manchester too.
+Still, he is very late,’ she added, as they began to dance
+again.</p>
+
+<p>The waltz was over. Every one was streaming into the
+supper-room; Helena, with Sebastian, remained in the ball-room,
+watching the people out, to see that all went, when
+voices made themselves heard: young men were calling
+out, ‘I say, Spenceley!’—‘Where’s Fred?’—‘Who’s to sit
+where?’—‘Fred, Mrs. Spenceley wants to ask you something.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Where can Fred be?’ exclaimed Helena, craning her
+neck to look round. ‘It is very strange in him to go away
+just now, when he ought to be seeing after things.’</p>
+
+<p>They were standing beside a door of the ball-room; not
+that leading into the hall, but one which opened into a
+passage leading to the billiard-room, and thence to the
+kitchen regions and offices. Almost as Helena spoke, the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_318">[Pg 318]</span>door was suddenly opened, and a young woman appeared,
+with frightened face, and widely distended eyes, who, seeing
+Helena, began, after the manner of her kind, to wring her
+hands, and exclaim, in much agitation,</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, Miss Spenceley! Where’s missis? Oh, how
+dreadful! Oh!’</p>
+
+<p>‘What is the matter?’ demanded Helena in a clear,
+decided voice.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh—master, m’! He’s——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Stop!’ said Sebastian, suddenly and sternly, as he took
+the girl’s arm, and gave it a little shake, to restore her to
+her senses. ‘Don’t make such a noise! Miss Spenceley,
+wait here a moment. Come here!’ he added to the girl—one
+of the housemaids—as he drew her into the passage,
+and closed the door. ‘Now, what is the matter? Your
+master has returned. I saw him. Is he ill?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, sir,’ she said, with an hysterical sob, ‘he’s dead!
+He’s lying on the sofa in his room, and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Dead!’ repeated Sebastian, and he knew in a moment
+what it meant. ‘Where is Mr. Fred? Is he with him?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, sir. I haven’t seen him. I thought he was
+here.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian, with a growing fear that the whole thing was
+much blacker and more dreadful than he had suspected,
+bade the young woman wait a moment, while he returned
+to Helena. He had rapidly reviewed the circumstances,
+and found there was nothing for it but to go to her. Fred
+was gone: he did not like to let the idea, ‘absconded,’
+shape itself, even in his mind; but all the same, it was
+there, like an ugly black spectre. To burst upon Mrs.
+Spenceley with such news would have been in the highest
+degree inhuman and improper. Helena alone remained to
+take this fearful burden upon her shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>He found Helena standing in the same place in which
+he had left her, and the last of the guests disappearing
+through the hall to the supper-room. Helena was composed
+and calm, but her eyes, as they met his, told him
+that she suspected a catastrophe.</p>
+
+<p>‘I want you to come with me,’ said he, drawing her arm
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_319">[Pg 319]</span>through his, and speaking in a low, gentle voice, and then
+they stood in the passage, with the servant-maid.</p>
+
+<p>‘Show me the room where your master is, and do not
+speak,’ he said to her; she was crying bitterly, in a cowed
+and helpless fashion, but was less excited, less inclined to
+shriek out her dreadful news to every one she met.
+Helena’s face grew white, but she neither trembled nor
+spoke, as they followed the girl up the backstairs to a
+landing-door, which she threw open, and then they found
+themselves standing on the gallery which formed the landing,
+and from which all the bedroom doors opened out.</p>
+
+<p>‘Which is your master’s room?’ asked Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>The maid pointed to a door, and cried more bitterly still,
+while Helena’s face grew whiter and more set every minute.</p>
+
+<p>‘Have you seen Mr. Fred at all this evening?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I saw him run upstairs, sir, and then I saw him go to
+his own room; but he’s not there now, and I’ve never seen
+him since.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Very well, you can go now; but remember, you are to
+be silent, or it will be worse for you. Do you understand?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, sir. I won’t say nothing, indeed!’ said the weeping
+young woman, going away with her muslin apron to
+her eyes.</p>
+
+<p>He turned to Helena. He felt he must not defer it any
+longer. There was pity and tenderness in his eyes and in
+his voice, as he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Now, Helena, you are brave, and you must be as brave
+as you can to-night.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Tell me what it is!’ she said; ‘but don’t keep me
+waiting any longer.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I must keep you waiting just a few moments,’ said he.
+‘I want you to sit down here, and not move, while I go to
+your father’s room—will you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Helena, seating herself with a prompt docility
+which contrasted strangely with her white face and distended
+eyes.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian left her, walked into the room, and found it all
+as he had expected. Mr. Spenceley had committed suicide.
+He had taken prussic acid, and lay dead upon the couch
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_320">[Pg 320]</span>at the foot of his bed. Sebastian, looking quickly round,
+saw a written paper lying on the floor at his feet. It was
+merely a scrap of paper, with the words,</p>
+
+<p>‘<span class="smcap">Dear Lizzie</span>,—I am a ruined man, and I can’t bear it.
+I’ve never made you very happy, and the best I can do is
+to leave you. I don’t know what will be left, but there is
+always your money of your own, and Nelly’s that I——’</p>
+
+<p>Here it broke off. It was not torn; it was as if the
+facts had rushed over the man as he wrote these words, and
+he had failed to pen another syllable. There was no proof
+that Fred had absconded, or that he knew his father’s fate.
+Sebastian knew he must put the matter in the best light;
+but he himself felt an absolute certainty of conviction on
+the matter.</p>
+
+<p>He took the paper and went out of the room, locking the
+door and putting the key in his pocket. Helena looked up
+as he came to her, but said not a word.</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena,’ he began, ‘from what has happened to-night,
+I fear your father has found that he is ruined.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is that all?’ said Helena, drawing a long breath of relief.</p>
+
+<p>‘No. That, if true, is the least part of it. Remember
+what this must have been to your father. Prosperity and
+success were his very <i>life</i>.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you mean that it has killed papa?’ asked Helena
+with unnatural calm, fixing her eyes upon his face.</p>
+
+<p>‘I wish to spare your mother, or I would not tell you
+this. It has killed him—that is, he could not bear to live
+after such a fall. My poor child, your father has destroyed
+himself.’</p>
+
+<p>‘He has—oh!’ came like a whisper from her white lips.
+Face, cheeks, brow, lips, were white as the dress she wore.
+She caught at a chair which stood near and supported herself
+upon it, looking at him with a stare of blank, utter
+horror, which he felt to be almost unbearable. For weeks
+afterwards he was haunted by the vision of the white figure
+in its cloudy dress; the roses scattered about it, all like one
+white marble figure, save the dusky hair and eyes which
+looked coal-black by contrast with her face.</p>
+
+<p>‘Think of your mother,’ said he, feeling that that spell of
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_321">[Pg 321]</span>horror must be broken, and he gently put his arm round
+her, and placed her in the chair on which she had been
+leaning. She did not speak for a moment, but at last said,</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, poor mamma! If she only need not know.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I fear she must know a great deal of it.’</p>
+
+<p>Then Helena put the question which he dreaded.</p>
+
+<p>‘But where can Fred be all this time?’</p>
+
+<p>‘He is not in the house. He may have gone away to
+see if the failure is complete—if anything remains to be
+saved,’ said Sebastian; ‘at any rate he is not here.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, yes!’ said Helena, and no suspicion like Sebastian’s
+conviction even for a moment troubled her mind. He
+gave her the paper he had found.</p>
+
+<p>‘I have read it; I thought it best,’ said he. ‘And now
+I want you to go to your own room, and I will send Mrs.
+Spenceley to you, and ask all these people to go away.
+You will allow me!’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are very good,’ said Helena, calmly.</p>
+
+<p>‘You must break just what you think fit to Mrs. Spenceley,’
+he added. ‘There is no one but you to do it, and she
+will hear it best from you. For her sake, you will keep up
+this brave, calm behaviour till the worst is over.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; and then?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Trouble yourself about nothing else to-night. I will
+see to everything until your brother comes back. I will
+stay here all night. You need not leave your room again.’</p>
+
+<p>Helena rose without speaking; looked at him with an
+indescribable expression; her lips moved, as if she would
+have spoken; but, without a word, she turned and went to
+her room. Sebastian watched until the door had closed
+after her, and that silence seemed to leave an enormous
+want in his heart. There was silence, except a murmur
+coming from the supper-room. That reminded him of his
+duty. With another earnest look at that closed door, he
+went downstairs.</p>
+
+<p>He made his way to Mrs. Spenceley, and asked her to
+go to her daughter in her room. With a deep flush of
+terror and foreboding, she went. Neither husband nor son
+was there to support her. A stranger took her to the foot
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_322">[Pg 322]</span>of the stairs and left her. Sebastian’s soul was quite possessed
+with the idea of these two women; one telling, the
+other learning, the extent of their awful calamity, so far as
+it was known. It haunted him, but he gathered himself
+together, and easily catching the attention of the startled
+company, he merely told them that Mrs. and Miss Spenceley
+wished him to express their great regret at having to leave
+their guests, in consequence of very distressing news which
+they had just received. Frederick Spenceley had had to
+leave home immediately, and he thought, as it was already
+late, the kindest thing they could do would be to leave the
+house as soon as possible.</p>
+
+<p>Amidst a wild buzz of inquiries, suggestions, and speculations,
+the guests dispersed. In an hour the house was quiet,
+and Helena had gently told her mother the whole truth as
+far as she knew it.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+DOWN IN THE WORLD.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>It was not until late in the afternoon of the following day
+that Sebastian, not forgetting his appointment with Myles
+Heywood, found it possible to return to his own home.</p>
+
+<p>That was a dreadful day, bringing in its course fresh disclosures
+of dishonesty on the part of both father and son of
+the Spenceleys, fresh shame and humiliation to the sorely
+proved Helena; fresh bursts of wild, hopeless weeping and
+meaningless questions from her poor mother. Mrs. Spenceley
+was, of course, perfectly bewildered by everything, and
+could only reiterate that she had told Spenceley, over and
+over again, that if business was so precarious, they had no
+right to be giving balls; and she knew it would turn out
+badly, she had said so all along. Then a fresh burst of
+weeping, and the inquiries:</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena, my dear, I s’pose we shall have to leave here.
+What do you think we shall be allowed to keep? Will
+everything have to be sold?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_323">[Pg 323]</span></p>
+<p>To all of which Helena, pale, composed, and gentle,
+made answers as soothing as she could.</p>
+
+<p>It was upon her head that the cruellest shame and
+humiliation naturally fell. Sebastian asked her, almost as
+soon as he met her in the morning, what friends or relations
+there were with whom he could communicate on the subject
+of her father’s death, and to whom he could resign his present
+authority.</p>
+
+<p>‘But there is Fred,’ said poor, unconscious Helena.
+‘He is sure to be back soon. He will come by one of the
+early trains from Manchester, I am sure.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I doubt it,’ said Sebastian, feeling his task a hard one.
+‘And even if he did, it is not right that your friends and
+relations should not be summoned. Don’t think I wish to
+withdraw the little assistance I can offer you, but I have no
+right to the position. It is absolutely necessary that I give
+the responsibility into some proper hands.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t know of any one except Uncle Robert, and papa
+and he were not good friends. He is mamma’s brother.
+I think he would come if we sent for him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Where does he live?’</p>
+
+<p>‘In Manchester; I will give you his address,’ said Helena.</p>
+
+<p>When she had done so, Sebastian telegraphed to Mr.
+Robert Bamford, requesting him to come over as soon as
+possible on urgent business. An answer came to the effect
+that Mr. Bamford would arrive some time in the afternoon.
+It was for his appearance that Sebastian waited. He and
+Helena were in the library. He was trying to explain to
+her the circumstances which had made it possible for her
+father to fail, and Helena was giving her best attention,
+but, with all the goodwill in the world, utterly helpless before
+the technical business terms and details. Her sad face
+with its serious, puzzled look, was in sharp contrast with
+that of the Helena Spenceley whom Sebastian had always
+hitherto known.</p>
+
+<p>‘You see,’ said she, suddenly looking up at him with a
+wan attempt at a smile, ‘you had every right to laugh at
+me when I boasted my business capacities. No one could
+be more ignorant. I see it now.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_324">[Pg 324]</span></p>
+<p>‘It was not unnatural,’ said he, gently. ‘People with a
+cheque-book and a balance at the banker’s, are apt to think
+they understand business when they don’t. But it is of no
+consequence, really. The thing has happened, and if you
+had known all the secrets of the Stock Exchange you could
+not have prevented it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, I know,’ said Helena, looking wearily round. ‘I
+wonder if Fred will come back with Uncle Robert. I daresay
+he has been to consult him. Don’t you think so?’</p>
+
+<p>‘It may be so; at least, your uncle will be able to tell
+us something about him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How I wish it was all over,’ she went on, ‘and that we
+were safely housed in, wherever we go to—some back street
+in Manchester, I dare say.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, it may not be quite so bad as that.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I never said I thought that would be bad,’ said Helena,
+leaning her elbows, as if utterly tired out, upon the table,
+and resting her head upon her hands. Sebastian felt a
+deep pity stir his heart. She had already suffered so much—she
+had still so much more, and so much worse to suffer.
+Perhaps all this pain would make her what people,
+what he himself, would call ‘more reasonable.’ But she
+was very sweet in her unreasonableness. It seemed rather
+sad that she must go through such an ordeal in order that she
+might become like other people.</p>
+
+<p>At this point a servant announced ‘Mr. Robert Bamford,’
+and Helena’s uncle arrived. Now Sebastian felt sure some
+painful truths would have to be told, and he again looked
+with a strange strength of compunction at the beautiful,
+weary, white face of Helena.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Bamford was a very plain, rough-spoken man indeed,
+who walked with a heavy step into the room, glanced at
+Sebastian from a pair of shrewd, dark eyes, and without
+waiting for an introduction, gave a stiff little nod, and said,
+‘Your servant, sir;’ and then turned to his niece with the
+greeting, ‘Well, Helena, this is a pretty business.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is very sad, uncle,’ said she, facing him, pale, and
+with dilated eyes. ‘I think we had better not talk about
+it, but see what is to be done.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_325">[Pg 325]</span></p>
+<p>‘There’s not much left to be done now that yon precious
+brother o’ yours has given us the slip.’</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>What?</i>’ said Helena, growing paler than before, and
+putting her trembling hands upon the table to support herself.
+‘Fred given you the slip—what do you mean? He
+has gone to see about papa’s affairs. He—I expected him
+to come back with you. What has he done?’</p>
+
+<p>There was no defiance in the tone, only apprehension.</p>
+
+<p>‘Done!’ ejaculated Mr. Bamford, plunging his hands
+into his pockets and almost running about the room in his
+excitement. ‘Done! Why, he’s taken everything he could
+lay his hands on in the shape of money or money’s worth,
+and he’s off—perhaps to America, but certainly to the
+devil.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you mean that Fred has acted dishonourably?’
+asked Helena, almost inaudibly, and trembling still more.</p>
+
+<p>‘Dishonourably! Why, you know nothing. Every one
+in Manchester knows it by this time. There’s been precious
+little honour wasted on the whole business, my lass. We
+know what to think when the men make away with themselves
+one way or another, and leave the women and the debts
+behind them.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But my father—it was his misfortune—he did not——’</p>
+
+<p>‘The less said about your father’s transactions, for the
+last six weeks, the better,’ said Mr. Bamford, curtly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Consider Miss Spenceley’s feelings, sir!’ interposed
+Sebastian, unable to endure seeing Helena’s despair, and
+feeling a glow almost of hatred towards Mr. Bamford, and
+what struck him as his brutality. Helena had turned away
+and covered her face with her hand, as a man might do who
+is sorely hit on some vital point—it was more a man’s gesture
+than a woman’s. Neither groan nor cry escaped her,
+but Sebastian saw that the iron had entered into her soul.
+That which she endured was the keenest moral anguish—the
+supremest of all pains. He could understand it. Her
+beauty was enhanced: the reckless, impetuous girl, with
+her ‘disorganised’ ideas, which he had laughed at before
+now, was transformed into the noble woman, who must bear
+things which only women can or do bear—the punishment
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_326">[Pg 326]</span>for the sins of their masculine shields and protectors. ‘She
+has had a very severe shock already,’ he went on, ‘and it
+cannot be necessary to pain her with——’</p>
+
+<p>‘She must know the truth, and the sooner the better,’
+said Mr. Bamford, irascibly. ‘If she is a girl of spirit, she
+will not wish to be deceived, and anyhow her whole life will
+have to be changed, and come down a peg or two, for the
+sins of her father shall be visited upon her.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are very kind, Mr. Mallory,’ said Helena, turning
+to them again and speaking calmly, though her face had,
+even in those few minutes, taken an older, worn expression,
+which shocked Sebastian. ‘I wish to know the worst at
+once. I can bear it. I did not know there had been anything
+dishonourable. Go on, uncle. I am not afraid, and
+I must know what I have to tell my mother.’</p>
+
+<p>‘By ——, the lass has a spirit of her own!’ observed
+Mr. Bamford. ‘Now that I see what she’s made of, I may
+try to explain things to her a bit.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then I will leave you,’ said Sebastian. ‘Miss Spenceley
+will tell you that I made what arrangements were
+immediately necessary. I shall take the liberty of calling
+soon,’ he added to Helena, ‘in the hope that I may be of
+some assistance to you. May I?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are very kind,’ she said, still with the same
+unmoved calm, as she gave him her hand. ‘I shall be
+glad to see you whenever you call. Perhaps, another
+time I can thank you better for your goodness; but at
+present——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Pray do not thank me; there is not the very least
+necessity,’ said he, as he left the room.</p>
+
+<p>‘Now, Uncle Robert!’ said Helena.</p>
+
+<p>‘Who is that young fellow?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Sebastian Mallory.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Young Mallory of the Oakenrod, who has been acting
+the philanthropist since he came from abroad?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Has he? Yes, it is that Mallory.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Any particular friend of yours?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ was the cold response. ‘He happened to hear
+first of my father’s death last night, and as there was no one
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_327">[Pg 327]</span>else here, and no one to do anything, he has been kind
+enough to arrange things for me since. I know very little
+of him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘H’m! ha! Well, we must get to business.’</p>
+
+<p>In a very short time Helena was made acquainted with
+what had happened, and with the bare and naked outline
+of her approaching future life. The less said of her brother
+the better, said Mr. Bamford. He believed that the sum
+with which he had absconded was about two thousand
+pounds. As for her father—he softened his tone a little,
+out of consideration for Helena—he was to blame, too, for
+not drawing in when first he began to find himself in difficulties;
+‘only that would have brought him down in the
+world, and he couldn’t bear it; so, instead of going one
+step lower, and then climbing up again when he had a
+chance, he has waited, till he had to tumble down to the
+ground, and can never get up again,’ remarked the merchant
+drily, while Helena listened.</p>
+
+<p>She showed him the scrap of paper which Sebastian had
+given her.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Mr. Bamford; ‘that money of yours is a
+myth——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad to hear it,’ said his niece, in a deep, almost
+resentful tone. ‘And if it had been there—every penny—I
+should not have kept it now, of course.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And what your mother was to have had—it’s all in the
+business; was, I mean. It has gone with the rest.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad of that too,’ observed Helena, concisely.
+‘Then no one will have the power to say that we were well
+off while other people suffered.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Your wardrobe and jewellery will be your own, of course.
+Your jewels and your mother’s must be worth a pretty
+good sum, Helena.’</p>
+
+<p>‘My jewellery will be sold, and mamma’s too.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Please yourself about your own; but if your mother is
+not your father’s most pressing creditor, I don’t know who
+is. Of course she will sell her jewels; but she will keep
+the proceeds, and you will abstain from meddling in matters
+you don’t understand.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_328">[Pg 328]</span></p>
+<p>‘I understand right and wrong, uncle, and I shall do
+what I feel to be right.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh!’ he repeated, with a kind of chuckle: ‘the lass has
+a spirit in her after all.’</p>
+
+<p>They would have to leave Thanshope. Helena must
+try to find some employment. He would give them a home
+until that was accomplished; to his sister as long as she
+chose to stay with him. If she liked she might keep house
+for him, but if she chose to also try some means of gaining
+a livelihood, he would do what he could to help her.
+More, he thought, they could not expect.</p>
+
+<p>‘Certainly not,’ said Helena, composedly. ‘We have no
+right to expect so much, and may consider ourselves fortunate
+in having you for a friend.’</p>
+
+<p>She had always asked for work, she reminded herself
+when she was alone—real work, necessary work—not the
+fads with which rich women try to deceive themselves by
+calling them work. Behold! here was every prospect of as
+much work as she liked, and yet she found nothing cheering
+in it. Only—anything to get away from this sham life of
+sham luxury, sham state, sham riches, sham everything—away
+from the world’s eyes and those of Sebastian, into obscurity
+and poverty, which, she felt, would be no shams,
+but stern realities, with front of brass and eyes of stone.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_2_XIX">CHAPTER XIX.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+IRREVOCABLE.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>‘Good-bye, Heywood, I wish you every success, and you
+carry the assurance of success in yourself. You will return
+to England a man of mark.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I trust never to return to England,’ replied Myles,
+standing up in Sebastian’s study, in the act of going. ‘I am
+afraid it will seem ungracious to you when I say I don’t care
+much about success. I want work; I don’t care whether
+it’s successful or not. There’s a verse in the Bible about
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_329">[Pg 329]</span>“What shall it profit a man if he gain the whole world and
+lose his own soul?” There may be many sorts of souls, don’t
+you think so?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, certainly. But I think time will soften these feelings
+of yours. Some time you will find yourself wishing
+to return to England.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles shook his head, with a half-smile, at once melancholy
+and sceptical. He ever wish to return to the place
+where Adrienne lived, Sebastian Mallory’s wife! They had
+left the study, and gone to the hall door.</p>
+
+<p>Straight before them, separated only by the garden and
+the dirty little river, was the broad, busy street—the beautiful
+building of the town-hall rose through the dusk before
+them. Lights twinkled; feet and wheels sped rapidly past.
+As they paused before the open door, the chimes rang out,
+clear and melodious; nine struck solemnly, and the old tune
+which haunted Myles, so interwoven was it with all the most
+sacred feelings of his life, was borne through the air in broken,
+fitful gusts of sound.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian heard it too.</p>
+
+<p>‘Take that as an omen,’ said he, earnestly. ‘The old poet
+old Martin Usteri, in his homely German town, touched
+a deeper truth when he wrote that little song of his, than
+all our present pessimistic sages put together can cram into
+their learned books. Don’t forget the tune when you are
+away.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am not likely ever to forget it,’ said Myles. ‘Good-bye,
+and thank you. I cannot say more.’</p>
+
+<p>With a pressure of the hand he was gone. Sebastian
+heard his quick step along the gravel—then he heard the
+gate open and swing to after him; and then Myles Heywood’s
+form and footsteps were lost in the general rush along
+the busy street. Sebastian was left to listen to the last
+echoes of the chimes, and to hum softly to himself—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Freut Euch des Lebens,</div>
+<div class="verse indent4">Weil noch das Lämpchen glüht!</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Pflücket die Rose,</div>
+<div class="verse indent4">Eh’ sie verblüht.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Myles was striding quickly homewards. In the hurry,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_330">[Pg 330]</span>preparation, and excitement of the last two days his mind
+had regained somewhat its vigour. It was not that he felt
+at all happier, or satisfied, or contented—not that life
+appeared much brighter to him, only <i>it had to be lived</i>. He
+set that formula before his mind, and never allowed a doubt
+upon the subject to intrude, because he dared not. He felt
+that his only safe, his only reasonable course of action, was
+to press forward sternly and as rapidly as possible; to cast
+from him his old life like a worn-out coat, and begin the
+new one.</p>
+
+<p>There was the prospect before him of life, struggle, striving,
+which he knew was worth a hundred of the lives he had
+been leading, which he knew it was his duty to accept and
+fulfil. The mere idea of it—of the difficulties to be overcome,
+and the possibilities to be attained—attracted him
+and braced him up, even while all he must leave seemed to
+grow dearer and more desirable as it was thrust farther into
+the background. There was no turning back now; a delay
+was what he most dreaded. He had grown a little grim and
+hard in his resolute pressing forward; even Mary fancied
+that he left them with a kind of exultation, and grieved the
+more, even while she felt no surprise.</p>
+
+<p>This evening he walked rapidly up the hilly street, ‘for
+the last time,’ he kept saying to himself, and hoping so too.
+How he had loved this prosaic, commonplace, dingy manufacturing
+town! What memories hung about it! Memories
+of a childhood spent amongst those he loved, of a youth and
+young manhood, which had not been without their honest,
+hearty struggles, strivings, and conquests, as well as their
+backslidings and failures; memories of a love which had
+grown upon him, stealing into his heart by such gentle, subtle
+degrees that he could by no means define them—which love
+had become the master passion of his earnest heart, with
+heaven on its side, and chaos on the other. All this he had
+lived through in grimy, smoky Thanshope, with the everlasting
+roar of machinery as a sort of chorus; within sound
+of the melodius, chiming bells. His whole surroundings
+had ever been earnest and serious as his own thoughts and
+bent of mind, and he felt that no other home would ever be
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_331">[Pg 331]</span>harmonious to him as this was. Yet he was going to leave
+it all to-morrow, and his heart beat with a fierce gladness at
+the thought.</p>
+
+<p>Occupied with such reflections as these, he found himself
+at his own door, and went into the house. Mary was in
+the kitchen. All her preparations lay neglected; she sat
+in her rocking-chair, with her hands before her, looking at
+nothing, her eyes wet with tears.</p>
+
+<p>‘What ails you, Molly?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Eh, you’re there, Myles! Nothing ails me except thinking
+o’ what Miss Blisset’s been talking about.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Blisset!’ he echoed in a gentle voice, pausing to
+look at her. ‘Has she been here?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ay, she has so! She only heard tell this morning about
+poor Ned, and she came down to say how sorry she were.
+Eh, but she is some and altered; hoo’s gone so quiet, I
+ne’er saw nowt like it. Hoo were ne’er a noisy one, but
+now——’</p>
+
+<p>Mary paused a minute.</p>
+
+<p>‘I’d a deal to tell her—all about me and Harry, and
+poor Ned, and about thy going away.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Myles, in a dull voice.</p>
+
+<p>‘Hoo fair started when hoo heard thou were going away.
+Hoo were so surprised. I told her all about it, and hoo
+said it were much the best thing, and I were to congratulate
+you. And then hoo said it were a long time since hoo had
+seen you, and, if you’d time, would you go up to-night and
+see her, for she’d something she wanted to say to you. If
+you do go,’ added Mary, ‘you’ll have to go now, or it’ll get
+too late. It’s after nine.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t think it would be anything very important,’ said
+her brother, in a measured voice. ‘And I have no time,
+either. I’ve a lot of things to do to-night.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Won’t you go?’ asked Mary, opening her eyes wide.
+‘Not go and say good-bye to her! Such friends as you’ve
+been!’</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ repeated Myles. ‘She will understand that I am
+too busy.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_332">[Pg 332]</span></p>
+<p>‘I don’t think hoo’ll understand nowt o’ t’ sort,’ said
+Mary very emphatically. ‘But go thy own gait! thou
+knows best.’</p>
+
+<p>He turned away from her, and went upstairs to nail up a
+box with some books of his own in it, and to put up some
+few things of furniture which Mary was to take away with
+her when she went to the Ashworths’ house; and as he worked
+his heart and his temples throbbed almost to bursting.</p>
+
+<p>Go to her, after what had been said! And, never to
+mention that, why was he to go to her? To hear something
+she wanted to tell him! What could that be, but that she
+was going to marry Sebastian? He was to walk up and
+hear that from her own lips, and then say good-bye to her,
+and not betray himself! After what had happened! After
+he had gone through with his bitter task, accepted favours
+from Sebastian—all in order that he might never see her
+again! No! Of course it might be ungrateful, brutal,
+uncivilised; it was nevertheless the only safe path for him
+to take—to maintain absolute silence and let her think what
+she pleased of him. What did it matter? She had Sebastian.
+He would soon be forgotten; he would take care of
+that. He knew, he was perfectly conscious all the time,
+that he was doing wrong. As he drove one nail after
+another into the box, each stroke of the hammer seemed
+to say ‘Wrong!’ And, with his eyes open, he did that
+wrong, because he was utterly miserable, and for the
+moment utterly indifferent; because he had suffered so
+much and so long that even his will felt broken, and to
+deliberately go to her and court still more suffering was
+more than he could do.</p>
+
+<p>The theory of the freedom of the will, says the latest
+philosophy, is nonsense, and worse than nonsense. If we
+seriously follow out such an idea, it leads us into a mad
+confusion—an insane chaos of impossibilities piled on
+impossibilities. We have no power to will this or that; we
+have the power of following and obeying the strongest
+motives, and acting upon them. It was in strict accordance
+with this principle that Myles behaved in this crisis of his
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_333">[Pg 333]</span>fate: he followed and obeyed the strongest motives—he
+stayed at home.</p>
+
+<p>Soon after eight the next morning he left. Later on the
+same day, Mr. Hoyle, hearing of the disappearance of
+Frederick Spenceley, was perforce reminded of the words
+of the preacher, and learnt practically that he had wrought
+in vain; that, truly, all was vanity.</p>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_334">[Pg 334]</span></p>
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="BOOK_III">BOOK III.</h2></div>
+
+<figure class="figcenter illowp100" id="book_deco_3" style="width: 9.25em;">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/book_deco.jpg" alt="">
+</figure>
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_3_I">CHAPTER I.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+THE DAWN OF NEW DAYS.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>It was August; the second August since that memorable
+one in 1862. This year, that of 1864, was in many respects
+a remarkable one in the annals of commerce, more
+especially in that branch of it known as the cotton trade.</p>
+
+<p>Strange events had been witnessed; amongst others, a
+wondering world had looked on at the great ‘scare’ which
+took place amongst the cotton lords, when the first mistaken
+rumours of peace were spread. The members of a trade
+whose greatest friend, it might have been supposed, would
+be peace, turned pale and trembled when peace was mentioned,
+and actually wished for the continuance of war;
+some of them saying that for them the alternative was war
+or ruin. Things grew somewhat more sane and better
+balanced, later; but the fact remained, that for once a
+great industry had seriously inclined her ear unto warlike
+councils, and had sought therein her profit. Despite all
+drawbacks, however, this last mighty daughter of civilisation
+was slowly arousing, and shaking off the paralysis which
+oppressed her. She stretched her huge limbs, and found
+that there was still life and vigour in them. Factories were
+being reopened on every side, and amongst those which
+were again working full time was that of Sebastian Mallory.</p>
+
+<p>He sat breakfasting one Friday morning, alone, opening
+his letters, and with the unopened newspapers beside him.
+He usually breakfasted alone now, and had grown quite
+accustomed to it. Mrs. Mallory rather avoided his society,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_335">[Pg 335]</span>and he, when he thought about the matter at all, felt the
+absence to be a relief rather than otherwise.</p>
+
+<p>Two years may or may not make a great change both in
+the character and appearance of a man. Sebastian Mallory
+was somewhat altered in the latter respect since he had
+parted from Myles Heywood one evening, which, when he
+thought of it, seemed a long time ago. His face had taken
+an older, more decided expression; his lips were more
+firmly closed; his eyes had lost much of their listlessness.
+He had found plenty of work ready to his hand, and he
+was not one of those persons whose work decreases.
+Business accumulated about him. People had discovered
+that he was useful, capable, and impartial. He did not
+know himself how great his influence was, or rather he had
+not known it until a few days before, when, to his great
+surprise, he had been asked to contest the borough in the
+Radical interest, so soon as a vacancy should occur. He
+had promised to take the matter into consideration. In a
+few days his answer was to be given. He was not wont to
+waver or vacillate; generally he could sum up the reasons
+for and against a course, and decide in the most prudent
+and reasonable way. On this occasion he had not found
+the matter so easily disposed of. ‘He would, and he
+would not.’ Many considerations urged him to accept;
+he could scarcely assign any for declining. The only one
+which would have been valid—that he felt no desire for a
+public life, and no wish to increase his present occupations—was
+absent. He had often felt a strong inclination for
+such a life; and he knew that he could manage to give
+time enough to it. The core of the matter was that his
+heart was not in it. As he read his letters this morning, he
+thought of the coming interview with his supporters, and
+had an odd sensation that he absolutely did not know what
+to say to them, and that it was a case which might appropriately
+be settled by tossing up.</p>
+
+<p>He laid two of his letters on one side, until the business
+communications were disposed of, and then he took one of
+them up. They both bore the Prussian stamp of two and
+a half groschen, and both were addressed in a German
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_336">[Pg 336]</span>handwriting. He took up the first of them, with a slight
+smile hovering about his lips, or ever he began to read.</p>
+
+<div class="blockquot">
+<p>
+‘<span class="smcap">Dear Sebastian</span>,’ it began,<br>
+</p>
+
+<p>‘What an age it is since I heard from you! I look
+out fervently every day for the postman, and he never
+comes. I suppose you are <i>busy</i>! How completely changed
+you are, you who never used to be busy. I am writing
+this at the midnight hour, because I have news for you.
+Good news, of course; if it were bad news, I should leave
+it to travel to you on its own legs. Old Biermann, the
+<i>Direktor</i>, and I have, so to speak, buried the tomahawk,
+and sworn an alliance; and he is going to give my little
+cantata, <i>Hermann u. Dorothea</i>, at the next concert but one.
+This is a great step in advance. I hardly know what has
+induced him to be so gracious; but his word is given now,
+and let him repent him never so much, he will be obliged
+to carry it out. I need not tell you, however, that I look
+upon it only as a step, and that my hopes and wishes continue
+to turn always to the opera. I am not hurrying about
+it, because I want it to be worth hearing when it is done.
+Mozart was only eighteen when his first opera (it’s true it
+was a comic one) was produced, and I am nearly twenty.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am in luck’s way, too. I have earned ten pounds by
+my own exertions, teaching, in the last six months. It is
+spread out before me in a beautiful shining row. No money
+ever looked so charming before. Please remember this,
+and make your next remittance ten pounds less than usual,
+or else I shall not feel as if I had really earned it.</p>
+
+<p>‘I cannot give you any news, for there is none; still, I
+will tell you what happened to me the other day. I was
+walking in the <i>Hofgarten</i>, when I met a lady walking alone.
+I looked up, and I thought: ‘Helena Spenceley! How
+did she come here?’ In the surprise of the moment I did
+not look at her attentively enough, but raised my cap, held
+out my hand, and was going to accost her, when she smiled
+and uttered a rather astonished ‘<i>Mein Herr</i>, you are mistaken!’
+She was German, and when she smiled I saw the
+difference; she had not Helena’s fire and spirit, and yet the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_337">[Pg 337]</span>likeness was wonderful. The incident set me thinking
+about these old days. You never mention Helena now.
+Do you never see her? Tell me when you write. I have
+never seen any one like her. I suppose you are too busy
+to think of such things. I used to wonder at your coolness
+all the time that she was suffering so, in consequence of
+that wicked father and brother of hers. I used to make
+her, in my own mind, the heroine of a hundred tragedies
+and romances, in those days. And yet—forgive me for
+saying so, I have always said things I ought not to say, to
+you—I was nothing to her but an enthusiastic boy, to whom
+she was kind, and you were a great deal—a man—I believe
+<i>the</i> man. Since I met that lady in the gardens, I have
+thought a great deal about it, and as I found a little poem
+the other day, called <i>Hélène</i>, I composed an air for it, and
+made it into a song; but I shall not sell it. You may have
+it if you like; but I shall not send it until I hear from you.</p>
+
+<p class="author">
+‘Ever your devoted<br>
+‘<span class="smcap">Hugo</span>.’<br>
+</p>
+</div>
+
+<p>Sebastian put the letter down, the smile fading from his
+face. The meeting with a strange girl, a passing likeness,
+had set Hugo’s memory working; had prompted him to
+write words which seemed striking to Sebastian. He had
+thought, more than once—often—of Helena Spenceley, but
+he had never seen her since, with disasters falling thick upon
+her young head, she, with her mother, had left Thanshope.
+They had gone to Manchester, he had heard. Once or
+twice he had asked his mother if she had not heard from
+Helena, for he remembered that Mrs. Mallory had told him
+how Helena had been a ‘kind of daughter’ to her; but she
+had composedly answered ‘No,’ and had added that she
+did not know their address, and had reason to think they
+did not wish to keep up any of their old Thanshope acquaintances,
+which, she feelingly added, was really very
+natural under the circumstances. At the time of their departure,
+business had pressed upon Sebastian, as it had continued
+to press upon him ever since. He had been smarting
+under the disappointment of his refusal by Adrienne.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_338">[Pg 338]</span>Helena and her misfortunes had touched him deeply; her
+calmness, and the real heroism with which she met her
+fate, had impressed him. He had firmly intended that he
+should not be one of the Thanshope acquaintances whom
+they dropped entirely; but, by some means, they had slipped
+out of his ken, and he had not been able to find them again.
+Yet, many a time, Helena’s beautiful face had seemed to
+start up before his eyes, at strange moments: sometimes
+when he was most busy, sometimes when he was in one of
+his rare idle moods. Sometimes a song or a strain of music
+would summon up the vision; sometimes in a busy street,
+or in a silent hour, it would hover before him. This morning,
+after reading Hugo’s letter, he saw it more strongly
+than ever; but with the strength of will which belongs to
+daylight and activity, he thrust it away, and took up his
+other letter.</p>
+
+<p>It was from his old friend, Herr Süsmeyer, who asked
+him if he was never coming to see him again, and added,
+that he expected his son home some time during the
+autumn, to take his place in the business. There were
+further domestic details, and then the remark, ‘Young Heywood,
+whom you sent here to me, is my right hand, now
+that I am somewhat laid up; but he has been invaluable
+ever since he fairly mastered the language. I should like
+to speak to you about him too. There will have to be some
+change when Julius returns.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Julius will return, will he?’ murmured Sebastian to himself.
+‘And Heywood is invaluable. He has gained the
+old man’s affections, and has not hardened his heart against
+him, or indeed against any one but me. But I know the
+reason, and can forgive him. It is an old story now. Still,
+if ever I had the chance, I should like to test once again
+his feelings, and see if he is as stiffnecked as ever.’</p>
+
+<p>He put the letters into his pocket-book, and, having
+finished breakfast, took his way to his office, pondering as
+to whether it would be possible for him to get a brief holiday
+some time during the autumn, run over to Eisendorf,
+see Herr Süsmeyer, and observe with his own eyes how
+‘young Heywood’ was getting on; then go on to where
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_339">[Pg 339]</span>Hugo was studying, and carry him off with him to—Italy,
+perhaps, or Switzerland. He began to long all at once
+that he might be able to do so, and to yearn, almost, for
+the sound of Hugo’s voice; to feel a sudden weariness of
+this grey, dismal town—this never-ending strife with starvation,
+this strained suspense, this sensation of standing on
+the brink of a precipice, which had been present with him,
+as it was with most men in his position, during all those
+troubled years. The last two of them he had fought out
+alone: to-day, for the first time, he felt the battle weary and
+monotonous—almost ignoble.</p>
+
+<p>‘Please, sir,’ said Ben, who still retained his place in the
+office, as Sebastian entered it, ‘there’s a message from Mr.
+Sutcliffe to say he’s very poorly this morning, and can’t
+come. He’s very sorry, and he hopes he’ll be better to-morrow.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ill, is he?’ said Sebastian, going into his private room.
+Mr. Sutcliffe had often been ill lately, and when he came to
+his work he walked feebly, and coughed a good deal.</p>
+
+<p>‘That’s another question that must be settled, and before
+long, too,’ reflected Mr. Mallory, a shade of care upon his
+brow, when he found himself alone. ‘I must have a serious
+talk with Sutcliffe, but how I’m to manage to make him
+have assistance, and yet take the same salary, I don’t know.
+He is so confoundedly conscientious.’</p>
+
+<p>After working doubly hard, in order to make up for Mr.
+Sutcliffe’s absence, Sebastian found himself, shortly after
+eleven o’clock, in the train on his way to Manchester,
+Tuesday and Friday being the market-days in that city:
+the days when merchants in the streets most do congregate,
+and when that impressive spectacle, High ’Change, is wont
+to be even more imposing than usual.</p>
+
+<p>It was a busy day. Sebastian, after going on ’Change and
+visiting his Manchester office, made certain business calls,
+and, in the middle of the afternoon, found himself standing
+in Mosley Street, exactly opposite the Royal Institution.</p>
+
+<p>It was a hot, close, Manchester afternoon. Scarcely a
+breath of air was stirring. The smoke pressed heavily
+down upon the thick, yellow air. Faintly the coppery sunbeams
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_340">[Pg 340]</span>tried to struggle through it, and wavered, and seemed
+to fail. There was a roar and a din in the much-frequented
+street—all about the great black, grimy-looking buildings,
+shops, offices, and warehouses. Omnibuses, carts, and lorries
+were struggling in a ‘lock’ in the middle of the street, and
+two exhausted-looking policemen were trying to restore
+order. Sebastian’s next destination was over the way; but,
+surveying the scene before him, he saw no immediate prospect
+of getting over the way, and turned round towards
+the Royal Institution, as if to consult that building as to
+what he had better do.</p>
+
+<p>Three large boards, covered with placards, caught his
+eye. ‘Exhibition of Pictures,’ in large letters, stood at the
+top of the boards, while profuse details followed in smaller
+print below.</p>
+
+<p>‘The pictures! Why not go in and have a look?’ he
+reflected, and straightway walked up to the door, paid his
+shilling, secured a catalogue, and ran up the steps.</p>
+
+<p>It was between three and four in the afternoon. If it
+had been sultry out of doors, it was much more so within.
+The rooms felt stiflingly hot, and the blaze of colour upon the
+walls was oppressive. There were not very many visitors
+present, and those who had come were going languidly
+round. The people who had secured seats upon the chairs
+or divans looked nearly asleep, and those who had not
+secured such seats were looking enviously at those who had,
+as if, with a little more provocation, they would forget conventionality
+and sit down on top of them.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian glanced critically around. Now and then a
+picture caught his eye and partially pleased it, but these
+were few and far between; and he passed rather quickly
+from one room to another, until he came to the end one of
+all, which was devoted to water-colours. The first object
+that met his eye was an empty chair, and he promptly sat
+down upon it. On examining the wall before him, he
+found that one oil-painting had been admitted amongst the
+water-colours, and that it was hung exactly opposite to him.
+He sat in rapt contemplation of it, feebly endeavouring to
+guess what it was meant to represent. A drab-coloured
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_341">[Pg 341]</span>lady crouched together, nursing one of her own feet. She
+was scantily attired, also in drab, and had a peculiar cast
+of countenance, and an imbecile smile, showing rows of
+very fine teeth, and was glancing upwards. She was
+adorned with ropes of pearls of a size and value which must
+have surprised even the author of ‘Lothair,’ could he have
+seen them. An opaque veil prevented the colour of her
+hair from being seen. She was drab; the stones of the
+palace-steps upon which she reposed were likewise drab.
+The sand of the banks, the water of the river flowing by,
+were all drab. Sebastian studied the composition, and shook
+his head, referring in despair to his catalogue. ‘Cleopatra
+by the Nile, by ——. Price, one hundred guineas.’ If a
+little green ticket stuck in the margin of the frame were to
+be believed, this work of genius was sold.</p>
+
+<p>‘Some fellows do have most awful strokes of luck,’ mused
+Sebastian. ‘Now, the man who painted this thing—I
+wonder if he knew how the chances were against his ever
+sell——’</p>
+
+<p>‘You shan’t!’</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall! I tell you I shall have that picture; it’s mine.
+I like that little pussy. Mayn’t I have that little pussy,
+Miss Spenceley?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, no, dear, I’m afraid not, unless you can persuade papa
+to buy it; because, you see, we can’t take the things away.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But I will have it! I want that little pussy for my
+own!’ And a howl followed.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, hush, Jacky, dear! What shall we do if the man
+comes to turn us out? Come here. We’ll ask papa about
+the pussy, shall we?’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian started from his chair, heat, listlessness,
+‘Cleopatra by the Nile,’ and everything else forgotten, and
+turned suddenly round. The group was behind him, close
+to him—yes, he knew that figure again instantly, even in
+its present shabbiness, compared with its former splendour.
+She was bending over an urchin of four or five summers,
+whose engaging countenance was ominously puckered up in
+readiness for another burst of infantile music. Two other
+children, a girl and a boy, both older than the would-be
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_342">[Pg 342]</span>possessor of the pussy-cat, stood by, wrangling with each
+other as to the possession of another work of art. She still
+did not turn her face in his direction, but Sebastian, with
+an eagerness and a pleasure which surprised even himself,
+exclaimed very audibly,</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Spenceley, have you forgotten me? Won’t you
+look at me?’ She started violently from her stooping
+attitude, and, leaving the recalcitrant Jacky to his fate, at
+last turned to him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory, I—I—how you surprised me!’ she
+stammered, looking at first so pale and startled that he was
+surprised.</p>
+
+<p>He was shocked too, after the first glance, at the change,
+the sad, mournful change, in her face.</p>
+
+<p>‘You do know me again,’ he said; ‘at least you might
+shake hands with me. I fear you are not pleased to renew
+our acquaintance.’</p>
+
+<p>He had taken her hand, and as his fingers touched
+hers, Helena’s paleness fled, and crimson dyed her cheeks.
+Tears rushed to her eyes; her lips opened, but she did
+not speak. His eyes were still fixed upon her face; he
+could not remove them; he did not realise that his prolonged
+gaze distressed her. He felt unaccountably glad
+to meet her, pleased, excited, light-hearted, as if he had a
+great deal to say to her and ask her. He forgot all about
+his engagements—about returning to the station, or going
+home; he wanted to talk to her, to hear her speak, to find
+out all about her.</p>
+
+<p>The colour gradually died out of her cheeks, and then
+became again apparent the change these two years had
+wrought in her. She was thin, decidedly thin, compared
+with the full if delicate beauty of past days; there were
+hollows in her cheeks, and under her great dark eyes; there
+was a painful line about her lips, and a melancholy, which
+looked as if it were settled, in her expression. She looked,
+what he had never thought she could look, patient and
+subdued—not the impulsive, fiery-hearted girl whom he
+had known and teased and quarrelled with.</p>
+
+<p>Her dress, he also saw, was sadly altered. Helena had
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_343">[Pg 343]</span>always had a weakness for splendid things: she delighted
+in a rich colour, a soft silk, a sheeny satin—in all kinds of
+luxurious, and beautiful, and fashionable things. Formerly
+people used to laugh at this weakness. Other girls, whose
+fathers had not been so rich as Mr. Spenceley, used to turn
+up their noses, and say that she was vulgarly ostentatious;
+that it was exceedingly bad taste in a girl to dress herself
+as splendidly as a dowager, and so on. In truth, it had
+been no bad taste at all. The splendour was part of her
+nature—one phase of her individuality; it belonged to her
+as much as her queenly shape and melodious voice.</p>
+
+<p>But now—there was no splendour in that dress, of poor
+material and last year’s fashion. The silk mantle had been
+handsome once—perhaps it was a relic of palmier days;
+now its shape was antiquated, and it was too good for the
+poorness of the rest of the toilette. The glove on the hand,
+which Sebastian still continued to hold, had been often
+mended. Helena looked what she used to have the
+strongest objection to—poor, shabby, and unprosperous,
+her good looks faded——</p>
+
+<p>But not gone. No. Sebastian, staring on in the same
+rude and reprehensible manner, satisfied himself that her
+beauty was only clouded over, not vanished.</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you know, I have been thinking about you a great
+deal to-day?’ he said. ‘I had a letter this morning from
+Hugo von Birkenau: he saw a German lady in the gardens
+at ——, and thought it was you. Just fancy! He made all
+sorts of inquiries about you. How fortunate that I happened
+to look in this afternoon!’</p>
+
+<p>Helena seemed to have nothing to reply. Her face was
+still downcast; she remained silent.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is nearly two years since we met,’ he urged; ‘and
+yet you do not say you are glad to see me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, I am! Very glad,’ murmured Helena.</p>
+
+<p>‘You live in Manchester still?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; mamma and I. We live in Woodford Street——’</p>
+
+<p>She named one of the southern suburbs of Manchester.</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you? That is not far away. How odd that we
+should never have met!’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_344">[Pg 344]</span></p>
+<p>‘I don’t think so. Woodford Street is not a fashionable
+locality.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is it not? I must remember the name. I asked my
+mother where you lived, but she said she did not know the
+address. But now that we have met, I am sure you will
+allow me to call, will you not?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Our house is so very small; we have so few visitors,’
+she began in some embarrassment.</p>
+
+<p>‘But, my dear Miss Spenceley, you do not seriously mean
+that you could urge that as an objection,’ he exclaimed.
+‘You are pleased to chaff me, I think, as you used to do.’</p>
+
+<p>Helena turned abruptly away; her lips set; her eyes
+fixed upon a water-colour drawing immediately before
+them.</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you mean that you really would rather I did not
+come?’ he asked earnestly, and excessively piqued at the
+idea.</p>
+
+<p>‘If you really wish to come,’ said Helena, rather proudly,
+‘of course we shall be happy to see you, but I am sure you
+will find it very inconvenient. I am engaged until after
+four o’clock, and mamma——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Until after four? I shall remember that. The evenings
+are long now, and there are trains going to Thanshope till
+midnight, you know. How is Mrs. Spenceley?’</p>
+
+<p>‘She is very well, thank you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Have you been bringing these young people to see the
+pictures?’ he inquired, for something in Helena’s manner
+forbade him to make the eager personal inquiries which
+crowded to his lips.</p>
+
+<p>Now that the first shock and surprise of meeting him
+again had passed, and she had recovered her self-possession,
+there was a certain pride and distance of bearing which
+seemed to require considerable deference on his part.
+Helena’s troubles had indeed made her into a woman; she
+had most decidedly quitted the girlish stage. She had probably,
+thought Sebastian, become a great deal more reasonable,
+and consequently a great deal less amenable to the
+influence of other persons—Miss Mereweather, for instance,
+and himself too. With regard to Miss Mereweather, it
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_345">[Pg 345]</span>might be a matter of rejoicing that Helena had forsworn her
+tenets, but with regard to himself, perhaps that was not
+altogether delightful.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Helena, calmly, as she looked at the three
+children, ‘I have. They are my pupils.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Are they good?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I fancy they are as good as their parents will allow them
+to be. It all depends upon that.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How so?’ asked Sebastian. Anything to prolong the
+conversation!</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. and Mrs. Galloway are supplied with the newest
+ideas upon all subjects, education included. The new education
+theory is, that when children are allowed their own
+way, they always do right; or if they do wrong some one
+else is to blame for it. That is why I say they are as good
+as their parents will allow them to be.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And are you generally the “some one else” who is to
+blame?’ he asked, wishing very much that she would utter
+some complaint, afford him some chance of offering sympathy
+or expressing fellow-feeling.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh no!’ she replied, quite cheerfully. ‘I only come
+in for my share, and they really are very fond of me; only
+they show it in rather a funny way. That is why I can’t see
+any one before four o’clock. I leave them then—reluctantly,
+of course,’ she added, with a smile which vexed
+Sebastian, because he could not tell whether it was feigned
+or not; ‘but still, I leave them.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Won’t you sit down in this chair,’ he said reproachfully,
+‘and tell me all about yourself?’ He moved the chair
+forward for her, for he saw that she looked tired, and indeed
+she was very tired, and Sebastian looked to her wearied
+eyes, so kind, so handsome, and so agreeable, that it was
+with difficulty she maintained her little air of dignified
+reserve: but the voice within was a powerful one: ‘What
+right has he to look at me in that gentle, reproachful way,
+as if he, and not poor mamma and I, had been neglected?
+It is impertinent, and I won’t submit to it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, thank you,’ she said aloud, looking at her watch.
+‘It is time to go. We must take a Victoria Park omnibus,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_346">[Pg 346]</span>and it will pass in three minutes. Come, children! Jacky,
+Amy, Ted! we must go.’</p>
+
+<p>They came obediently enough, their failing appearing to be
+in affection towards each other. They lavished affectionate
+epithets upon their governess, and quarrelled, as Helena
+said, ‘because I have not three hands;’ but they cast looks
+of suspicion upon each other, and took every opportunity
+of falling out.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good afternoon!’ said Helena to Sebastian, and as the
+children crowded round her and clasped her hands, she was
+not displeased to see that his face fell. She was glad that
+he should see that she was not altogether an object of pity.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am going too,’ he said. ‘I will see you into the omnibus.
+It will save you a little trouble. Come, young lady,
+take hold of my hand, or you will tear Miss Spenceley to
+pieces.’</p>
+
+<p>The little girl put her hand in his contentedly enough,
+merely informing her brothers that they were ‘nasty, selfish
+things,’ and the procession went downstairs.</p>
+
+<p>As they stood on the top of the steps, waiting for the
+omnibus, Sebastian, turning once more to Helena, said,</p>
+
+<p>‘You have not told me the number of your house. What
+is it?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Fifty-seven,’ said Helena. ‘Jacky, dear, if you pull
+Teddy’s hair again, I’ll make you sit outside the omnibus.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Fifty-seven. Best make a note of it, for fear I should
+forget it,’ he added, jotting it down, while Helena, with a
+brave assumption of indifference, looked straight before her,
+and choked back her tears.</p>
+
+<p>‘You are not engaged until four o’clock on Sundays, are
+you?’ he suddenly asked.</p>
+
+<p>‘No—but—oh, don’t come on Sunday!’ said Helena in
+her old tragic manner.</p>
+
+<p>‘I solemnly swear that I will not come on Sunday!’ he
+said. ‘And equally solemnly I swear I will make you tell
+me why I am forbidden to come on that day.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why?’ said Helena, with a kind of half-laugh, not quite
+free from an hysterical sound—‘why, the reason is simple
+enough. Because——’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_347">[Pg 347]</span></p>
+<p>The omnibus is almost more relentless in its punctuality
+than time and tide. Not another word could be exchanged.
+They ran down the steps, and went through the ignominious
+performance of hailing and catching the vehicle. Sebastian,
+with great presence of mind, did manage to clasp Helena’s
+hand once more, and to repeat the words,</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall come soon, and <i>not</i> on Sunday.’</p>
+
+<p>Then he stood in the middle of Mosley Street gazing
+after the omnibus, until an uproar caused him to look up,
+and he found himself surrounded with infuriated lorrie-drivers,
+swearing at him for getting into the way, while a hansom
+cabman had just pulled his horse up on to its very haunches,
+and was apostrophising him in a manner the reverse of
+complimentary. Newspaper boys were jeering at him, and
+an indignant policeman was ordering him to move on.</p>
+
+<p>With an amiable smile, and a murmured general apology,
+he made his way to the footpath, and then on to the station.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_3_II">CHAPTER II.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+FENCING.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Towards five o’clock on the following Tuesday afternoon,
+a hansom-cab drove rapidly up that Manchester thoroughfare
+known as Oxford Street, and the address given by the
+man who took it had been, ‘Fifty-seven Woodford Street.’</p>
+
+<p>As they spun rapidly along, he looked out wondering on
+which side of Oxford Street Woodford Street might lie;
+how far from town, and if it would turn out to be a very
+poor little street indeed. He remembered Helena’s look
+of embarrassment, as she said the house was small and
+uncomfortable. They drove on; the cab passed the Owen’s
+College, passed the ‘Church of the Holy Name,’ passed
+some other buildings, and at last turned off to the right.</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian shook his head. ‘Not the best side. Poor
+little Helena!’ Why did he always think of her as ‘little
+Helena,’ she who was taller than most women, and whose
+disdainful head, set upon her long white neck, had been
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_348">[Pg 348]</span>wont to look over the heads of a good many even of
+the men of Thanshope? Three whole days had passed
+since he had met her in the Royal Institution—three whole
+days, and part of a fourth, because she had told him not to
+come on Sunday.</p>
+
+<p>‘Why wouldn’t she let me come on Sunday?’ he had
+asked himself many times, and had assigned all kinds of
+imaginary reasons for the prohibition. The latest was,
+‘Perhaps other people, or another person, may be allowed
+to come on Sunday. I shall make her tell me—if I can.
+I wonder if I can call one of those old flashing smiles to
+her face—one of those looks, which ran over it, and made
+it more beautiful still, if that could be?’</p>
+
+<p>Lost in profound conjecture upon this subject, he forgot
+to look where they were going, until the cab had traversed
+several smallish streets, and at last pulled up suddenly before
+one of a row of moderately sized houses—houses of the
+kind which would be called ‘respectable.’ It was not a
+glaring new street: it was neatly kept, and as he jumped
+out of the hansom and looked up it and down it, he did
+not see a single barrel-organ—not even a perambulator.</p>
+
+<p>Neither of these things did he behold; but he saw Helena
+Spenceley herself, just coming up to the gate, walking rather
+wearily, and looking tired as she pushed it open.</p>
+
+<p>‘She has been walking, and I have been driving,’ he
+thought, with a strange sensation of guiltiness, as he dismissed
+the man and joined her.</p>
+
+<p>‘You see, I have kept my word,’ he observed. ‘I have
+come soon, and I have not come on Sunday.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad to see you,’ said Helena, sedately.</p>
+
+<p>They were airing themselves all this time on the top of
+the door steps, Mrs. Spenceley’s domestic, or domestics, not
+seeming to be in any violent hurry to open the front door;
+but as Sebastian was about to make some further observation,
+it was suddenly flung (as much as such a modestly
+proportioned door could be flung) wide open, by a young
+man whose appearance seemed to indicate that he belonged
+to some one of the numerous tribe of clerks.</p>
+
+<p>When he saw them he recoiled a step or two, and Sebastian,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_349">[Pg 349]</span>to his great amusement, saw that he was honoured by
+the surprised young gentleman with a scowl of peculiar
+malevolence. Clearing his brow, after a moment, of this
+unbecoming expression, he addressed himself to Helena.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good afternoon, Miss Spenceley. I hope I see you well.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Very well, thank you. Will you allow me to pass?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You see I am somewhat earlier to-day; in fact two hours
+earlier than usual. I was, if I must tell the truth, on my
+way to meet <i>you</i>,’ with great emphasis upon the personal
+pronoun, and a languishing but fascinating smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘To meet <i>me</i>?’ repeated Helena, with equal emphasis.
+‘Pray, on what errand, Mr. Jenkins?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I thought, as the evening was so beautiful, you might
+possibly not be indisposed for a—a—little walk after tea of
+course; and if so, I——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am obliged, but I am engaged this evening, and I <i>never</i>
+take walks after tea,’ said Helena, with crushing coldness.
+‘If you will kindly allow us to pass——’</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Jenkins, plunging his hand into his breast, flattened
+himself against the wall, and resumed the Giaour-like scowl
+as Sebastian followed Helena. She opened the door of a
+back room and invited him in.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am afraid you will find it rather hot,’ said she; ‘these
+little houses are so thin, you know. They let the heat in,
+and then it never seems to get out again, somehow. Take
+that chair,’ and she seated herself languidly upon another. ‘It
+is our only sitting-room,’ she added, drawing off her gloves,
+and speaking deliberately, as she looked fixedly at Sebastian,
+to see how he would take her announcement. ‘It is dining,
+and drawing-room, morning-room, boudoir, and library. At
+Castle Hill we had them separately, but here mamma lets the
+rest of her rooms to lodgers. Mr. Jenkins, who wanted me
+to go for a walk with him, was one of them.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I see,’ said Sebastian, tranquilly. ‘I also saw that I
+did not rise in his esteem from the fact that I deprived him
+of his walk.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory!’ exclaimed Helena, indignantly, as she
+lost the languid look and suddenly sat upright, ‘do you
+insult me by supposing that I <i>ever</i> take my walks abroad
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_350">[Pg 350]</span>with that horrid, presuming little man? But why should
+you not suppose so?’ she added with a little laugh.</p>
+
+<p>‘I supposed nothing,’ said Sebastian. ‘I only saw that
+he looked very much disappointed, and I could quite
+sympathise with him.’</p>
+
+<p>Here he ventured to look at Helena with some meaning
+in his glance, but was met by a direct gaze of what seemed
+to him cheerful, blank indifference—a gaze which chilled
+him; for Helena’s looks and glances had suddenly risen to
+a place of high importance in his mind. Their interview
+on Friday, especially the first few minutes of it, haunted
+him. He could not forget her agitation, nor how she had
+turned, first pale, and then red as a rose, on meeting him.
+He had wondered, and had determined to find out, what
+the agitation meant. He had thought it would be quite
+easy. The Helena whom he had known in former days
+had not been adroit in concealing her feelings, but before
+the present young lady he was obliged to own himself
+baffled. Her appearance, attitude, expression, were languid
+and weary; she looked worn, and not very happy, but her
+manner was composed, and a little hard in its ostentatious
+cheerfulness. He could not tell what was real and what
+assumed, and the desire to find out, to break down the
+reserve, to conquer in short—his besetting foible—grew very
+strong indeed.</p>
+
+<p>‘Can you drink tea at five o’clock?’ pursued Helena.
+‘We have ours at five. Teaching makes me thirsty, and
+mamma likes her tea at five. Remember, there is no dinner
+to follow after.’</p>
+
+<p>‘If you invite me to tea, I am sure I shall be delighted
+to stay.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then you are invited. Now I must go and take off
+my things. I will try to find mamma. You will excuse
+our leaving you alone for a short time.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Pray don’t mention it,’ said Sebastian, and Helena left
+the room. It was not a lofty room: the doorway was
+decidedly low, and he thought she would have to stoop to
+pass under it.</p>
+
+<p>When he was left alone, he glanced round the room. It
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_351">[Pg 351]</span>was rather small, and was over-filled with furniture. Books
+were scattered about, and in the most shady corner of the
+room there was a vase containing a carefully preserved
+nosegay, such as might be bought for a trifle at any greengrocer’s
+shop in the neighbourhood. Everything was
+exquisitely neat and orderly, and in little touches here and
+there he fancied he recognised Helena’s hand despite the
+plainness, and in some respects even poorness, of the
+furniture. On the mantelpiece he detected two little vases
+of Sevres—relics of former splendour, no doubt. There
+was no piano, he noticed that. Perhaps because it would
+have filled up the room too much, or perhaps because
+pianos were rather expensive things to buy or hire. Yet
+Helena used to sing, and had a very fresh, sweet voice.
+How well he remembered her on that evening when he
+had first seen her—in her beauty and splendour, in her
+costly dress and sparkling necklace and rings. She had
+sung, ‘Since first I saw your face.’</p>
+
+<p>That seemed a very long time ago!</p>
+
+<p>He hoped it would not be long before Helena came
+down again. He hoped Mrs. Spenceley would not sit with
+them all the evening, and he hoped they would not expect
+him to go away very early.</p>
+
+<p>Presently the door was opened, and, not Helena but her
+mother came in. Sebastian was as much struck with the
+change in her as he had been shocked with that in Helena,
+but in a different way. Mrs. Spenceley looked better,
+happier, younger, and more contented, than she had done
+since her husband had made his fortune eighteen years
+ago. And she looked so because she was so. She did
+not mind the narrow means, the small house, the two girls,
+and the constant necessity for her presence in the kitchen.
+All that was as the breath of life to her, and she thoroughly
+enjoyed it. Sebastian, with a sigh of relief, felt that here
+no condolences were needed, no delicate skirting of dangerous
+ground. He might look cheerful, and ask Mrs.
+Spenceley with confidence and success how she was. The
+nature of her answer was visibly written upon her face
+beforehand.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_352">[Pg 352]</span></p>
+<p>‘Well, Mr. Mallory, this is a pleasure! I could scarcely
+believe it when Helena said she had met you, and you were
+coming to see us. I said, “Eh, he’ll never come, not he!”
+But she said she thought you would; and she’s right, it
+seems.’</p>
+
+<p>‘She certainly is. I am very glad to see you looking so
+well, Mrs. Spenceley.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, thank you,’ said Mrs. Spenceley, lightly, flinging a
+purple satin cap-string over her shoulder. ‘I’ve nothing to
+complain of, thank God! I’ve got on much better than
+I’d any reason to expect, and I’m thankful for it. It’s hard
+work sometimes, but I’ve a broad back.’</p>
+
+<p>Which she certainly had.</p>
+
+<p>‘That is very fortunate,’ he said, with becoming solemnity.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; I’ve four gentlemen. You’d wonder where we
+find room to put them all, but the house is more capacious’
+(Sebastian conjectured that she meant spacious) ‘than it
+looks, and we’ve room for them all. Very nice gentlemen
+they are too; all in business in Manchester, you know.
+They’re quiet and well-behaved, and they pay up regularly;
+and,’ she added, dropping her voice, ‘none of your stand-off
+gents. They are all disposed to be most friendly, all except
+Mr. Harrison, and he’s engaged to his cousin, who lives in
+Northumberland. He hears from her regularly twice a
+week.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Sebastian, with an air of the deepest interest—the
+air of one thirsting for more information.</p>
+
+<p>‘But all the others, Mr. Finlay, and Mr. Smithson, and
+Mr. Jenkins—are most friendly, and quite gentlemen, every
+one of them. Indeed, Mr. Jenkins,’ she dropped her voice
+again, ‘is very much interested in Helena.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is he?’ said Sebastian, still with unfeigned interest.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, he is. He’s getting on, too. And a perfect gentleman—on
+Sundays’—Sebastian leaned eagerly forward—‘on
+Sundays they often go out into the country for the day,
+or sometimes even for the week-end; but Mr. Jenkins,
+never,’ said Mrs. Spenceley, emphatically: ‘Mr. Jenkins dines
+with <i>us</i>.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_353">[Pg 353]</span></p>
+<p>‘<i>Poor</i> Helena!’ thought Sebastian, while he said, ‘Oh,
+indeed!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena said I oughtn’t to have entered into such an
+arrangement; but I think she’s mistaken, and I think she’ll
+come to see her mistake in time.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Spenceley does not feel so much interest in Mr.
+Jenkins, perhaps, as he feels in her!’</p>
+
+<p>‘That I can’t say; but if she does, she conceals it, which
+is but natural after all.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Quite natural in such a case,’ assented Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘Here’s the tea-things,’ continued Mrs. Spenceley, cheerfully,
+producing a bunch of keys, and going to a cupboard,
+whence she drew forth, to speak metaphorically, flagons
+wherewith to stay her guest, and apples for his comfort—in
+the dry language of reality, a jar of apple-jelly, and a glass
+dish containing conserves of a deeper, more sanguinary hue.</p>
+
+<p>While Mrs. Spenceley was half-buried in the depths of the
+cupboard, Helena came into the room again. She had
+changed her dress, and attired herself in another relic of
+splendour, a black silk dress, rich and handsome, if somewhat
+old-fashioned; and she had tied an orange-coloured
+ribbon round her neck, and put on a little lace frill, and
+Sebastian felt that she looked lovely, and began to hate
+those three gentlemen who were disposed to be so very
+friendly, with a deadly hatred. Her eyes fell upon the
+figure of her mother, half in and half out of the cupboard.
+It was a very funny sight, and when she turned to Sebastian
+there was a broad smile of amusement upon her face. It
+looked as if it was the first that had been there for a very
+long time, and Sebastian felt it only right to smile as genially
+in return.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Spenceley, emerging from the cupboard, summoned
+them to the table; Sebastian felt as if it were a dream, as
+he handed Helena her chair, and took his place opposite
+her. No surroundings, however poor, could take away from
+the queenly beauty of her face and figure. She was indeed
+more queenly than she ever had been before, he thought,
+as he watched her across that simple board. The meal
+was soon over, and then Mrs. Spenceley, rising, said,</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_354">[Pg 354]</span></p>
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory, you must excuse me if I leave you. I
+must first go and see about Their teas, and then I’ve promised
+to go and sit with Mrs. Woodford, next door but one.
+She’s a great friend of mine. Her husband’s father built
+most of the houses in this street, and was a rich man, but he
+never could keep anything, never! and now she pays a rent
+for the very house her father-in-law built. This world’s
+full of ups and downs.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is indeed. Then I shall not see you again this evening?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, no. We shall most likely have a little supper together,
+and so I shall leave Helena and you to have a little
+chat. But I shall hope to see you again soon, Mr. Mallory,
+if you don’t mind coming all this way out of town.’</p>
+
+<p>He hastened to assure her that he thought it a very nice
+drive, and not at all far; and Mrs. Spenceley, disturbed by
+the sound of a ring at the bell, said,</p>
+
+<p>‘There’s Mr. Finlay! I must go. Good evening, Mr.
+Mallory.’</p>
+
+<p>She was gone, and they were alone. Helena had taken
+her work-basket to a little table near the window, and had
+begun to embroider a little strip of muslin. Sebastian
+thought the sofa, which was just on the other side of the
+little table, offered a suitable place for the purposes of confidential
+conversation, and he went and sat down upon it.</p>
+
+<p>‘Is there no one in Thanshope about whom you wish to
+inquire, Miss Spenceley?’ he began.</p>
+
+<p>‘I—oh, how rude of me! I have never asked after Mrs.
+Mallory. How is she?’</p>
+
+<p>‘She is very well, thank you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad to hear it,’ said Helena, calmly; and Sebastian
+felt rather uncomfortable, for Mrs. Mallory had not displayed
+any interest in the Spenceley family since their downfall.</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you see much of the Thanshope people?’ continued
+Helena, in the same calmly indifferent tone; not a resentful
+tone, but a politely conventional one, which was much
+more disagreeable to Sebastian than a resentful one would
+have been. It implied that Thanshope and all that therein
+lived had become a name, a memory, a thing of the past
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_355">[Pg 355]</span>to her. ‘Do you visit much?’ she added; ‘go to many
+parties?’</p>
+
+<p>‘N—no. I am very busy. I am busy all day, and I
+don’t care much for the Thanshope people. All my near
+friends, those in whom I took an interest, I have lost.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How very distressing! How has that come to pass?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Hugo von Birkenau has gone to Germany. He is
+studying music, and intends to make a profession of it. He
+has begun to give lessons already.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Hugo give lessons!’ cried Helena, looking up surprised.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I will tell you all about it another time. I see you
+don’t half believe it. But it is true. We have not quarrelled,
+I am glad to say; but he has gone. He has begun
+life for himself, and henceforth our paths are divided. There
+was another. You did not know him. I could scarcely
+call him one of my friends, but I miss him. He is one
+interest less. There was Mr. Blisset; he is dead. There
+was you—at least I hope so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I don’t think we ever were really friends. I did not
+like your opinions.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But not enemies?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well, perhaps not exactly; at least, not at last,’ said
+Helena with a sudden change in her voice. ‘But,’ she
+repeated, ‘I did not like your opinions. You shut me—I
+mean, you denied to women the right to participate in those
+larger questions which I hold they ought to be interested in as
+well as men, for the sake both of men and of themselves;
+and I never would give in to that as long as I live.’</p>
+
+<p>She did not speak vehemently, but with a decision and
+calmness unlike her old agitation of manner.</p>
+
+<p>‘I wonder how I shall ever make you understand my real
+views on that subject,’ he said despairingly.</p>
+
+<p>‘You said you had no views on the question. Perhaps,
+if you had ever tried to find out whether I had any understanding,
+you might have succeeded in discovering a tiny
+scrap somewhere very low down. But never mind, it is of
+no consequence now. I can never help forward the questions
+I take an interest in, as I once hoped to do; so you
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_356">[Pg 356]</span>need not be afraid of my going astray. I have lost the
+power.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Spenceley——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think you have forgotten one of your friends,’ suggested
+Helena, with a change in her voice, which she could not
+quite conceal.</p>
+
+<p>‘Have I? Which?’ he asked very meekly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Adrienne Blisset.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, yes! I actually had forgotten her. I never see her
+now, either.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Does she no longer live in Thanshope?’ asked Helena,
+bending over her work.</p>
+
+<p>‘She still has Stonegate, but she is scarcely ever there.
+I think she has taken a dislike to the place. And when
+she is there, I do not see her. As you say, she is lost to
+me too, for we once were friends.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian’s voice did not change. It was quite steady
+and composed. Helena still seemed interested in her work,
+as she said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I should think that must be the greatest loss of all to
+you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘In some respects it is. At first it was a great loss. Now
+I feel it less. For two years I have been learning to live
+alone. Smile scornfully to yourself if you like! You may
+not believe me, but it is true all the same.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, I can believe that you found it hard to lose Miss
+Blisset’s society. She was no ordinary young lady. If she
+had once been your friend, it must have been difficult to
+resign her. And people spoke of something more than
+friendship. I heard, often, that you and she were engaged.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Did you? I, too, have heard something of the same
+kind; but there was no truth in the report. We were never
+engaged.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! people will talk, you see!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Naturally, but I don’t think they talk so much anywhere
+as in Thanshope.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Perhaps they haven’t so much cause.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is rather too bad.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_357">[Pg 357]</span></p>
+<p>‘You mean that people are not often so rude to you. I
+can quite fancy so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You will agree with me that I have lost all my friends.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You do not seem broken-hearted,’ said Helena. ‘You
+look well and cheerful.’ She raised her eyes, and surveyed
+his face, straightly and composedly. Sebastian wished the
+look had not been so entirely self-possessed.</p>
+
+<p>‘I lead too busy a life to be broken-hearted,’ he replied.
+‘Pray don’t suppose that I spend my time in thinking how
+lonely I am.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I never supposed anything of the kind.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is simply that I once had friends, and circumstances
+removed them, and I have not been able to fill up their
+places. I have worked hard—really hard, and I think I
+have learnt some good lessons in these sad years.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Helena, looking up, with the old eager interest
+in her eyes, the old brightness upon her face. ‘You must
+indeed have learned some lessons. My greatest trouble in
+leaving Thanshope was that I lost sight of all my friends
+that I had made during the distress. I have had no
+interest like that since then. You have. And you have
+had other interests too. I saw that they had asked you to
+be the Radical candidate, when Mr. Lippincott resigned.
+There is a prospect before you! Have you given your
+answer yet?’</p>
+
+<p>‘My answer is due to-morrow. And upon my honour,
+I don’t know what it is going to be. What would you
+advise?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Mallory!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Why will you persist in saying such things? Do you
+think it is amusing?’</p>
+
+<p>‘According to you, I must have the most wonderful
+faculty of amusement that any man possessed. Please, do
+I think what amusing?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you think it amusing to ask questions of that kind?—to
+solemnly ask advice when you don’t want it? To consult
+a woman, and a young woman, upon an important step
+in life? We don’t understand these things—at least you
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_358">[Pg 358]</span>say so, and I choose to take you at your word, so far as you
+are concerned. I do not choose to be treated as you once
+treated me, when I was in earnest, and then be appealed
+to for an opinion. I have no opinion on the question.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I wish I had never opened my lips upon that question.
+You have never forgiven me, and you never will,’ said he,
+in a deep tone of mortification. ‘I too was in earnest when
+I asked you to-night what you advised. I have been vacillating,
+and considering and wondering what was best, like——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Like a woman.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Like a lonely man who has no counsellor to whom to
+apply.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How pathetic!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Will you really not give me one word of advice?
+Would you accept or not?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You do not want my advice. You—it is absurd!
+You have lots of men to advise you. What can you want
+my advice for?’</p>
+
+<p>She spoke impatiently. Stung by her tone, words, and
+manner, he leaned suddenly forward, saying,</p>
+
+<p>‘I do want your advice, Helena. I acted like a consequential
+fool towards you at one time. When your troubles
+overtook you, I was made thoroughly ashamed of myself.
+You behaved like a heroine. Tell me, should I accept or
+refuse? Give me your opinion, and, by heaven, I will
+abide by it! I can trust you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then accept! With your abilities and your responsibilities,
+you have no right to refuse.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall accept,’ was all he said, and there was silence
+for a time.</p>
+
+<p>Helena went on working, with how great, how immense
+an effort, he could not know. He sat and meditated on
+what he had done, on the fact that he had submitted his
+conscience to the guidance of a girl’s voice, and that since
+that voice had spoken, every hesitation, every doubt had
+vanished. Not a difficulty remained.</p>
+
+<p>‘You will be almost certainly elected,’ said Helena, after
+a pause. ‘Then your life will be busier than ever. How
+will you manage?’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_359">[Pg 359]</span></p>
+<p>‘That is a problem which is even now troubling me. I
+must have some help. I do not know where to turn for
+it. I am overwhelmed with business, really.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Are you? I wonder at you wasting your precious hours
+here,’ said Helena, and the moment after she had said it
+her face became crimson.</p>
+
+<p>‘You think the time wasted, and you wonder that I should
+waste it here?’ said Sebastian, and looked at her steadily.</p>
+
+<p>Helena did, at this point, show a return of her former
+sensibility. The flush remained high in her cheeks. Her
+eyes fell, and her hands trembled as she resumed her work.
+Sebastian was much too good a tactician to lessen the value
+of the sign he had wrung from her, by coming to her assistance
+with any casual remark. He remained perfectly silent,
+till Helena, apparently finding the situation disturbing,
+started up, exclaiming impatiently.</p>
+
+<p>‘How hot it is! Oh, how hot! My needle gets sticky,
+and I can’t work with a sticky needle.... When you are
+elected—and you are sure to be elected—you will, as you
+say, be very busy; but what an interesting kind of business!
+I shall often think——’</p>
+
+<p>She stopped suddenly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Never mind my life,’ said he, beginning to see where
+the power on his side, and the weakness on hers, really lay.
+‘Tell me something about your own.’</p>
+
+<p>‘About mine—my life!’ said Helena, with a laugh.
+‘That would indeed be an exciting history—too much for
+your nerves altogether, I fear.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Tell me, or I shall not know how to think of you. It
+is so annoying not to know the tenor of the life led by
+some person in whom one takes an interest. What is the
+name of the parents of your pupils?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Their name is Galloway.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What sort of people are they?’</p>
+
+<p>‘They are rich people.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is nothing to the point.’</p>
+
+<p>‘They are people with fads, and yet they are very kind to
+me. I teach their children—as much as they will allow me,
+that is. They believe in letting the children grow up happy,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_360">[Pg 360]</span>and never punishing them, which means——’ Helena
+smiled.</p>
+
+<p>‘Which means that every one else, and you particularly,
+are to grow up unhappy, and live in a state of eternal punishment,’
+said Sebastian, resentfully; ‘disgusting people!’</p>
+
+<p>‘They are not disgusting, and they have a right to bring
+up their children as they think best.’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian found that Helena would not complain. She
+evidently accepted the inevitable resolutely. She had become
+very reasonable and sensible. He wished she had
+been less so.</p>
+
+<p>‘Mrs. Spenceley looks well and cheerful,’ said he at last.
+‘That must be a comfort to you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Poor mamma! Yes, it is,’ said Helena, with sudden
+tenderness. ‘What a great deal she has had to go through,
+and how brave, and cheerful, and uncomplaining she is. She
+makes me feel ashamed of myself, and yet I cannot see
+things in the light in which she sees them.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Mr. Jenkins, for instance, on Sundays.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh!’ exclaimed Helena, and then, after a pause,
+‘No; mamma and I differ very much on the subject of
+Mr. Jenkins.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You see, I know why I may not come on Sunday,’ said
+he, rising.</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you? I thought you would not enjoy Mr. Jenkins’s
+society, but now, if you like, you may come on Sunday,
+and have the pleasure of meeting him. We are glad to see
+our friends, if they care to visit us.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Our <i>friends</i>!’ It was the turn of the eminently reasonable
+Mr. Mallory to feel most unreasonably annoyed at being
+classed, along with Mr. Jenkins, as ‘our friends.’ Helena
+had succeeded in turning the tables very completely upon
+him. It was useless to try not to feel mortified and
+snubbed. He felt both; and Helena stood, the picture of
+unconscious innocence, waiting for him to finish his good-bye.</p>
+
+<p>‘You have changed, Miss Spenceley,’ said he. ‘You
+have developed the power of being very——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Rude and unkind?’ suggested Helena. ‘Perhaps adversity
+has soured my temper. It has that effect upon many
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_361">[Pg 361]</span>natures, and I never was one who could endure thwarting
+as you may remember.’</p>
+
+<p>‘May I be allowed to come again?’ he asked, almost
+humbly.</p>
+
+<p>‘We shall be happy to see you, whenever your other engagements
+allow you to call,’ said Helena, quite coolly and
+distantly. The answer chilled him and stung him, and yet
+he asked himself, what more would he have had her say?</p>
+
+<p>‘You say you are so very busy,’ she continued remorselessly,
+‘and if you accept this invitation to stand, and if
+Mr. Lippincott resigns, which I suppose he really intends
+to do now, and the election comes on, your time will indeed
+be fully occupied.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But I am not forbidden to come when I have time?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Forbidden! Oh no! As I said, we are always glad to
+see our friends.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Good-bye,’ said he. ‘Remember you are answerable
+for the step I am going to take.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You say so, but I wonder how it would have been if we
+had never met,’ said Helena, carelessly. They shook hands,
+and Sebastian was gone, with the words still echoing after him:
+‘I wonder how it would have been, if we had never met!’</p>
+
+<p>‘How indeed?’ he muttered to himself. ‘And how is it to
+be now that we have met? I don’t know how it will end, but
+you shall look at me differently from that, Helena, or——’</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_3_III">CHAPTER III.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+IN THE RAIN.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>It was more than three weeks later. The month of August
+had almost come to its close. The scene was again the bright
+and cheerful city of Manchester, on one of its typical days.
+August was going out, as she often does in Lancashire,
+with a sullen, streaming rain, which poured on, relentlessly
+and unceasingly. Helena Spenceley had been struggling
+all the morning with her pupils, who had turned refractory,
+and, unable because of the rain to go out, had vented their
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_362">[Pg 362]</span>youthful spirits in a series of experiments upon Miss Spenceley’s
+endurance. They were not bad children; indeed
+they had in them ‘the makings’ of very good children, and
+were, as their governess had informed Sebastian, as good as
+their parents would allow them to be. They had been
+allowed to find out that everyone and everything in the
+establishment was to yield to their comfort and convenience.
+They knew their power, and used it.</p>
+
+<p>The morning’s lessons were over. Usually, at twelve
+o’clock, Helena took her pupils for a walk, but to-day that
+was impossible, so they remained indoors, and she was understood
+to be amusing them. It was a dreary kind of
+amusement. She had been feeling weary and exhausted
+all the morning, and now, the close room, the shouting
+children rushing wildly about, almost overpowered her.
+She felt herself growing each moment more numb and
+stupid. At last the bell rang for Mrs. Galloway’s lunch,
+and the dinner of Helena and the children. Pell-mell they
+rushed in, and forgot for a time, in the pleasures of the
+table, their quarrels and disputes, relating chiefly to the
+possession of certain precious objects and fetishes, over
+which they wrangled with ever fresh acrimony and avidity.</p>
+
+<p>The meal was over, and Helena returned to the schoolroom.
+The children were to remain downstairs for an
+hour with their mother. Helena took a chair to the window,
+and, resting her chin upon her hand, looked drearily
+out upon the streaming rain, the dripping trees, and the
+misty outlines of other houses in the park. Idle tears filled
+her eyes, and a lump rose in her throat. She choked both
+back, and smiled drily and drearily to herself.</p>
+
+<p>‘What a fool I was,’ she thought, ‘to expect him again!
+It was a passing fancy. He is naturally polite—that means,
+a little deceitful—and he could not have said anything rough
+or rude if he had tried. But he will never come again. It
+is not likely. I was most foolish to be so glad to see
+him. I might have known it would bring me nothing but
+pain and sorrow. I wish we had not met again, and then,
+if I had not had the pleasure, I should not have had the
+pain either. I had almost given over thinking of him, and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_363">[Pg 363]</span>now I have nothing else to think of, and he has everything
+else. Why did he come and spend that one evening, and
+brighten everything, and take me into another world, and
+force me to like him? Why did he ask my advice—as if
+he wanted it? It was too bad, and I was a fool. But I
+always was that. He is not shallow—no, it is not that. It
+is simply that his life is a full one, and mine is an empty
+one, and that what to him is a chance meeting—a passing
+act of politeness, is to me a great event—a thing to think
+about. I wish I had a great deal to do—a work, a regular
+career. Soon, if these miserable, restless feelings do not
+leave me, I must bestir myself, and find something more
+absorbing than this teaching. I have been more dissatisfied
+ever since I knew that he had the prospect of making
+himself a name and an influence. And I will do something,
+too. There must be things to be done; there must be
+some way of curing this sentimental folly—some way of
+working it out, till nothing is left of it. I will find a way,
+or I will die.’</p>
+
+<p>She started as the door opened, and Mrs. Galloway, the
+mother of her pupils, entered.</p>
+
+<p>‘Are you sitting moping, Miss Spenceley? You should
+never mope,’ said she; ‘it is a very bad habit, and leads
+to all kinds of follies.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Does it?’ said Helena.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, indeed,’ replied Mrs. Galloway, who did not look
+as if she moped much herself.</p>
+
+<p>She did not either speak or look unkindly; she was only
+devoid of tact and judgment. She held three books in her
+hands; and as she spoke she advanced to the window and
+looked out.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am afraid it is not going to clear up,’ she began,
+looking first at the rain, and then at the books.</p>
+
+<p>Helena also expressed the same opinion.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am rather in a dilemma,’ continued Mrs. Galloway.</p>
+
+<p>‘Can I be of any help to you?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I was on my way to ask you to do something for me;
+but I had no idea how very wet it was, and I do not think
+it fit for you to go.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_364">[Pg 364]</span></p>
+<p>‘Was it to go out?’ asked Helena, wondering whether it
+would not be pleasanter to brave the elements than to return
+to her task of teaching the little Galloways that day.</p>
+
+<p>‘The fact is, Mr. Galloway forgot to take the books to
+Mudie’s this morning, and we had arranged to have some
+reading aloud to-night, and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I will go and change them for you with pleasure,’ said
+Helena, almost with animation; ‘only the children——’</p>
+
+<p>‘It will do the children no harm to miss their lessons this
+afternoon; in the depressed state of the barometer, it is
+cruelty to make them study. But it is such a day——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, I don’t mind. It will do me no harm; I don’t
+take cold easily, and I can take an omnibus from Oxford
+Street, you know.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Really, since you don’t seem to mind, I think——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I will get ready now,’ said Helena.</p>
+
+<p>‘I can lend you a waterproof,’ suggested Mrs. Galloway,
+to whom it did not seem to occur that a cab would be the
+most effectual kind of waterproof.</p>
+
+<p>‘I have one, thank you; I am ready now. I will put
+the books in this strap. Have you put a list with them?’</p>
+
+<p>‘The list is quite ready. Then you will bring the books
+back here?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Helena, cheerfully, so pleased at the prospect of
+escaping the afternoon’s lessons that she would willingly have
+gone if, in addition to the rain, it had blown a hurricane.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Galloway followed her to the hall door, uttering deprecating
+observations, and Helena, unfurling her umbrella,
+stepped out into the rain.</p>
+
+<p>After a short walk through the damp, soaking avenues of
+the park, she at last emerged in Oxford Street, and stood
+waiting in the wet until an omnibus came by. It was nearly
+full, but Helena managed to squeeze herself in between two
+stout ‘Turkish merchants,’ and opposite a fat old woman
+with a bundle. Who does not know and love the classic
+atmosphere of a crowded omnibus on a wet, close day?</p>
+
+<p>The omnibus took her to Market Street, from whence she
+took another walk into Cross Street, and turned into the
+narrow lane, sacred to Mr. Mudie’s library and fancy shops.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_365">[Pg 365]</span>Her enthusiasm was beginning to glow less brightly. She
+felt very wet, very draggled, and very tired—exceedingly
+tired. She went into the library, and found herself alone
+there; the young man who came forward to serve her looked
+almost compassionately at her, and remarked what very bad
+weather it was. Helena languidly agreed with him, and
+presented her list. He gave her two heavy massive volumes
+of travels, and she took them. They would not go into the
+little strap which had held the three volume novel, and
+Helena was in that mood in which a trifling inconvenience
+makes one feel that it would be best to put an end to one’s
+existence at once.</p>
+
+<p>‘Suppose you were to take only one volume,’ suggested
+the young man.</p>
+
+<p>‘No, I’ll have both,’ said Helena, stoically, manfully
+seizing them, and going on her way.</p>
+
+<p>As she left the library some one almost knocked up
+against her, some one who was going, like herself, towards
+St. Ann’s Square.</p>
+
+<p>‘Beg your pardon. Oh, Helena—Miss Spenceley!
+What, in the name of all that is damp, brings you here on
+such a day?’ asked Sebastian, stopping suddenly and looking
+at her.</p>
+
+<p>To meet him thus, after her recent reflections, came upon
+Helena with almost a shock: but she mastered herself
+quickly, and said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I have only been to the library.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Only been to the library! Suppose you give me those
+books. I have tried to call at your house again,’ he added,
+‘but I have been so awfully busy. You would see all
+about my acceptance and Mr. Lippincott’s resignation in
+the papers.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; I did not expect you to call again,’ said Helena,
+distantly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Did you not? You speak as if you were offended.
+What have I done?’</p>
+
+<p>By this time they were in the square, near the cab-stand,
+and it was high time to decide whether they were going in
+the same direction or not.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_366">[Pg 366]</span></p>
+<p>‘Where are you going?’ asked Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>‘To the omnibus office, till a Victoria Park omnibus
+comes, and then to Mrs. Galloway’s with the books. Where
+are you going?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am going to see the pictures again,’ said Sebastian.
+‘Don’t you think you had better come and see them too?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I! Oh, I am afraid I have not time,’ said Helena,
+taken aback by the proposal. ‘It is nearly four o’clock,
+and the books——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, never mind the books. I am sure you want to see
+the pictures; and you must explain to me what I have done
+to offend you, and we can’t do that under an umbrella in
+the street.’</p>
+
+<p>He signed to an observant cabby, who drove up, and
+Sebastian politely handed Helena into the vehicle. She did
+not know why she got into the cab, unless it was because
+Sebastian looked as if he were quite determined that she
+should do so, and she did not feel able to resist.</p>
+
+<p>‘Royal Institution,’ said he, and followed her. They
+drove rapidly away.</p>
+
+<p>‘I ought not to have come; it is very absurd,’ said
+Helena, uncomfortably.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am quite sure you ought,’ he said, decidedly.</p>
+
+<p>He saw that Helena’s manner was changed. From her
+gravity and almost monosyllabic answers to his remarks he
+concluded that she was for some reason offended with him.
+He did not know that three weeks’ absence and silence had
+done more to favour his cause than three months’ assiduous
+courtship would have done.</p>
+
+<p>‘Here we are! Now for the pictures!’ he observed, as
+they stopped before the Royal Institution.</p>
+
+<p>Helena laughed nervously, and did not know why she
+laughed. They stopped to leave their umbrellas with the
+porter, and she found Sebastian unfastening her cloak.</p>
+
+<p>‘Because we shall be here a good while,’ said he, gravely.
+‘The pictures are not to be done all in a minute.’</p>
+
+<p>Helena did not resist. It was all very strange—comical
+almost. She felt as if it had been a pre-arranged meeting,
+and yet, she solemnly assured herself, that was impossible.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_367">[Pg 367]</span></p>
+<p>They went up the stairs, bestowing a very scanty meed
+of attention on the much-talked-of pictures. Sebastian
+seemed in very high spirits, thought Helena, unconscious
+that her own cheeks were burning with their old brightness,
+that the actual sight of her and her eyes had turned her
+companion’s head; that he had thought more of her than
+of his work since they had parted; that her face, and her
+eyes, and an orange-coloured ribbon, had seemed to float
+before his eyes by day and by night, haunting him in all
+his business, and intruding themselves in the most solemn of
+committee meetings or political dinners. She was conscious
+that whenever she looked at him he seemed to be
+looking at her, and, she thought, often when she was not
+looking; that there was something in his eyes and his manner
+which made her tremble strangely, and that she suddenly
+felt quite certain that whatever might have been the
+case in the past, he did not care for Adrienne Blisset now.</p>
+
+<p>On that wet afternoon there were not more than half a dozen
+persons in all the suite of rooms. They walked
+through one after another, and would probably have gone
+on for ever, had they not found that they had come to the
+last: they were stopped by a wall, and could go no farther.</p>
+
+<p>‘Sit down,’ said Sebastian, suddenly, taking her hand and
+drawing her to the settee in the middle of the room,
+which was empty, save for themselves.</p>
+
+<p>‘You know I am in the midst of electioneering?’ said he.</p>
+
+<p>‘I supposed so, from what I read in the papers.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That has been the only reason why I did not call.
+Twice I have tried to do so, but, with the best will in the
+world, I could not manage it. And poor Sutcliffe, my
+manager, is ill, so I have had double duty to do.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am sure you are busy,’ she repeated mechanically.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is thought that I shall win,’ he added. ‘The Conservatives
+seem to have got desperate. No local candidate
+would present himself, so they had down a Q.C. from the
+Junior Carlton. I don’t fancy he has much chance, though
+he is a good fellow.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, he will have no chance. You will win. I shall be
+very glad.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_368">[Pg 368]</span></p>
+<p>‘Will you really? You really meant what you said when
+you told me I had no right to refuse?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am not in the habit of saying what I don’t mean.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is true, but you were very brief in your remarks
+on that occasion. Do you think that I really can do
+good?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Helena, crushing down all the ungenerous remarks
+which occurred to her, and answering him frankly,
+according to her conviction, ‘I do. I think, with your experience
+of a different, broader life than most of our young
+manufacturers have led, and with the practical talents that
+you have too, you ought to rise to influence. You may do
+a great deal. I think you have a noble career before you,
+if you will follow it worthily. And—I—I shall always read
+with interest of your progress.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You really think this, though you so bitterly opposed me
+upon some other questions?’ he asked earnestly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I do. I have seen not the error of my ideas, for
+I still believe them to be true and just in principle, but I
+have seen that a man may be utterly against them, and may
+yet be capable of very great things. I believe this of you.
+I shall be sorry if I ever hear of your rising and lifting your
+voice against these ideas that I believe in; but I shall try
+to think that my cause is not so important as a great many
+others, and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘But, will you give me a hearing now, while I tell you
+that my views have changed, too, as much as yours?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Have they? How?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I always did believe that the woman’s cause is man’s.
+I told you that, even when we most disagreed and least
+understood each other. During these two years in which I
+have lived alone, I have learned to feel that still more
+strongly. I have felt that no friend, no <i>man</i>, could give me
+the help and sympathy that I wanted; that no man, and
+no woman, pitted each against the other, could do any good,
+but that “the <i>twain together</i> well might change the world.”
+I shall never uplift my voice against those theories of yours,
+never.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad of that, very glad. It would have hurt me
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_369">[Pg 369]</span>dreadfully; it would have seemed as if—it would have cut
+me up,’ said Helena.</p>
+
+<p>‘How careful I shall have to be, as to what I say and
+do, now.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Because of what I have said? You have a larger public
+than me to think of. You must do what is right—you must
+say all that you know of the truth.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena, will you help me to try and discover what is
+right and true? I have been wondering for a fortnight
+whether you would, and sometimes I have dared to hope
+it. Have I been too bold?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You mean——’ said Helena, with trembling lips and a
+face which had suddenly grown pale.</p>
+
+<p>‘I mean that for a year, for more, I have loved you unconsciously,
+Helena; that since I met you three weeks ago,
+I have known it to my very heart-depths. Will you help
+me? Will you be my wife?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You forget,’ said she, her face grown still paler, and its
+expression more pained; ‘you forget.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Forget what?’ he asked, surprised and chilled by the
+tone, yet unable to think that the expression in her eyes was
+one of indifference.</p>
+
+<p>‘You forget whom you are asking to be your wife.
+You——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am asking Helena Spenceley to be my wife. Who
+has a word to say against her?’ he asked, his face darkening.</p>
+
+<p>‘You must remember that I am not alone,’ said Helena.
+‘There is the past: my father, my brother; oh, it is not to
+be thought of—for you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is that a roundabout way of telling me that you do not
+love me, and will not marry me?’ he asked, taking her
+hand, and looking at her until she looked at him. ‘I would
+rather you said it straight out—I am waiting.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But I cannot say that,’ murmured Helena; ‘I do love
+you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then let the other things take care of themselves,’ said
+he pleadingly, for something in her face forbade him to
+draw her to him, or do anything more than plead.</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ said she. ‘It is not fit that a man like you, in
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_370">[Pg 370]</span>your position, should marry a girl with the—connections—that
+I have.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You mean this seriously?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am quite decided about it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then good-bye,’ said Sebastian, abruptly rising; ‘I will
+bear it as best I can.’</p>
+
+<p>He was going, but suddenly turned to her again and
+stooped over her.</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena,’ he said, and his voice was so changed that
+she looked up affrighted—‘is it that your pride is stronger
+than your love? Because, if so, yours is not real love.’</p>
+
+<p>‘My pride!’ she ejaculated.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, your pride, which is afraid lest it should be said
+that I stooped to you? That is the secret of this objection.
+You would ruin our two lives for the sake of gratifying
+your pride.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Sebastian!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena?’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is not that....’</p>
+
+<p>‘What else is it?’</p>
+
+<p>She was silent, in pain and uncertainty, till he said:</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>My</i> pride is not so great as my love. You have conquered
+me, Helena. I would go through fire and water to
+win you. Once more, will you tell me again to go?’</p>
+
+<p>His voice had sunk to a whisper. He was leaning over
+the settee, and she, with a sudden shiver at the idea his
+words conjured up, looked up to him. He stooped, by an
+involuntary, instinctive impulse, and kissed her.</p>
+
+<p>‘Must I go, or may I stay? Answer me, my darling.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do not go!’ said Helena, almost inaudibly, and Sebastian
+stayed; but he could not conceal from himself that he
+had yet much to win, much service to do, before he could
+call Helena his own.</p>
+
+<p>She loved him; she said so; she felt it, but she was
+proud: he had been right when he said so. Despite her
+love, she was half ashamed, half angry at finding herself
+conquered, and the glance was a shy and wavering one
+which he met. It was a strange fact, that though he wished
+very much that Helena would ask him to go home with her,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_371">[Pg 371]</span>though he had a couple of hours to spare, yet he dared not
+venture to hint at the invitation. All he could venture upon
+was to say to her.</p>
+
+<p>‘You will allow me to take you to Mrs. Galloway’s, as it
+is late?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, please,’ said Helena, rising.</p>
+
+<p>And they went downstairs. Sebastian gave Helena her
+umbrella, carried her cloak, opened the door for her, in a
+strange silence. She had just accepted him, and yet he
+had never felt so completely held at arm’s length before.
+Helena’s own shyness and timidity effected what the most
+cunningly laid stratagem could not have accomplished—they
+raised her lover’s fervent admiration into absolute
+worship. He called a cab, and in it they drove towards the
+Victoria Park. When they were nearly there, Sebastian, unable
+to endure the silence any longer, said.</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena, when may I come to see you? Will you not
+even look at me?’ he added, almost vehemently. ‘You
+cannot know how hardly you are treating me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Hardly!’ she repeated. ‘I—it is so strange. It is a
+most wonderful feeling.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But pleasant, I hope?’ suggested Sebastian, earnestly.</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, very!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then may I come soon to see you? To ask Mrs.
+Spenceley’s consent——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh! there is Mrs. Mallory. I am sure she will object,’
+said Helena, suddenly, and with animation.</p>
+
+<p>‘Leave her to me!’ said he, almost impatiently. ‘See,
+Helena, we are almost at the park, and you have not given
+me one look, one word, to tell me that you are really mine.
+I have not deserved to be so treated.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Forgive me!’ said she, suddenly, in a voice of tenderness.
+‘I was so unhappy this afternoon before I saw you,
+and now I am too happy for words. I am afraid of my
+happiness. Come soon to see me, and I will try to behave
+better.’</p>
+
+<p>She looked at him at last with an April face, beneath
+whose showers lay a broad and fathomless heaven of love.
+Sebastian was satisfied.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_372">[Pg 372]</span></p>
+<p>‘And may I write?’ he asked.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, do!’ returned Helena, and the cab stopped at
+Mrs. Galloway’s door. Helena and the books got out, and
+Sebastian Mallory drove away again, to the station—and a
+meeting.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_3_IV">CHAPTER IV.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+A CONQUEST.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>‘My dear Mallory, I am glad to see you here at last!
+Were you unexpectedly detained?’ asked Canon Ponsonby,
+greeting Sebastian at the door of the room in the town-hall
+in which the meeting was to be held. It began at
+half-past seven, and that time had been already past when
+Sebastian arrived.</p>
+
+<p>‘I was very unexpectedly detained,’ replied the young
+man, pressing Canon Ponsonby’s hand with a fervour which
+seemed a little extravagant to that gentleman. ‘But I am
+quite ready now, quite fit,’ he added. ‘Suppose we go to
+the platform. They seem to be getting impatient.’</p>
+
+<p>They ascended the platform, and Sebastian was surprised
+at the heartiness of the greeting he received. He had not
+known how popular he was, and in his present mood he felt
+absolutely touched by these signs of goodwill on the part of
+the ‘people.’ All things combined to-night to rouse and
+inspire him. One or two even of his warmest friends and
+supporters, and most earnest admirers, had said they feared
+Mallory’s coldness of manner might be mistaken for indifference,
+that he was a little too prone to betray some of the
+contempt which he felt for party and party feeling: and had
+a way, in the extreme philosophy of his radicalism, of saying
+things which might be mistaken by the uninitiated
+Thanshope mind for distinctly Conservative expressions.
+On this occasion, these doubting hearts were agreeably
+deceived. Sebastian’s tact came strongly into play; he
+made one of those fortunate speeches, in which the right
+was happily touched off, and in which the truth was told
+without disturbing people’s feelings. He felt himself penetrated
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_373">[Pg 373]</span>by an enthusiasm as rare, with him, as it was
+agreeable. Every now and then he seemed to lose sight
+of the sea of faces below him, and to see only one; his
+own voice seemed to die away, while Helena’s voice bade
+him do what was right, and tell the truth as far as he knew
+it. Under that influence questions which had hitherto
+seemed even a little contemptible were suddenly revealed
+as susceptible of being raised and ennobled; and the effort
+which he had at first thought of making, chiefly in compliance
+with the wishes of certain friends, and because he felt (like
+Myles Heywood) a thirst for constant work wherewith to
+fill up his life—this effort, not a very hearty or enthusiastic
+one, was now changed completely by the consciousness that
+there was not only Sebastian Mallory, indolent and indifferent
+by nature, to be consulted, but also Helena Spenceley, earnest,
+vehement, and enthusiastic, who would exult in his
+success, and be bitterly disappointed by his failure. Indeed,
+she was so calmly confident that he would win, that he felt
+he dared not lose. All this combined in his favour that
+night. There was no want of unanimity in the voice of the
+meeting. The speaker was so carried away himself that he
+carried his audience away with him. They separated in
+the highest good humour with him and themselves—full of
+confidence in their candidate, and of amiable contempt for
+his Conservative opponent.</p>
+
+<p>There followed a gathering of some of his friends, and
+supper at home. Politics, and nothing but politics, engrossed
+the conversation, and it was late when Sebastian found
+himself alone. He drew a long breath of relief, but checked
+it again immediately—as he remembered the interview which
+was to follow.</p>
+
+<p>‘Best get it over at once,’ he reflected, going to the
+drawing-room; but finding it empty, he went upstairs and
+knocked at his mother’s dressing-room door.</p>
+
+<p>‘Who’s there?’ she asked.</p>
+
+<p>‘It is I—Sebastian. May I see you for a few minutes?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Come in!’ was the answer, and Sebastian entered.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory was seated before her looking-glass, and
+her maid was brushing her hair.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_374">[Pg 374]</span></p>
+<p>‘Be quick, Emma,’ said she; ‘and sit down, Sebastian;
+I shall be ready directly.’</p>
+
+<p>He threw himself into a low chair by the hearth, and in
+two minutes was lost in a pleasant, pleasant dream.</p>
+
+<p>‘Now!’ said his mother’s voice at last, and he speedily
+awoke to reality again.</p>
+
+<p>The lady’s maid had twisted up her mistress’s hair into
+a loose knot in the gaslight. With the soft frills of her
+dressing-gown round her neck she looked a very young and
+handsome woman.</p>
+
+<p>‘What beautiful hair you have, mother!’ he exclaimed,
+struck with its gloss and abundance. ‘Why do you cover
+it up with a cap?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Is that all you have come to say?’ she inquired drily.
+‘What kind of a meeting did you have?’</p>
+
+<p>‘It appeared very unanimous and successful. Ponsonby
+said it was, and he ought to know. I wish you had been
+there. I saw a good many ladies.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Very likely; but not ladies of my opinions.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! I forgot,’ said Sebastian, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>He felt soft-hearted to-night, and hardly noticed his
+mother’s coolness.</p>
+
+<p>‘Have all those men gone?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; the last of them has departed, and I am glad of
+it. But I did not come to keep you talking about Radical
+meetings, mother. I wished particularly to see you to-night;
+I have something to tell you.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory knew in an instant the nature of the coming
+communication, and prepared herself to hear something
+disagreeable. She had not omitted to provide her son
+with many opportunities of changing his estate. She had
+had plenty of visitors at her house, and chiefly young lady
+visitors. None of them had had a hundred thousand
+pounds, but equally none of them had been quite portionless,
+and all of them had been more or less good-looking,
+and what are called ‘nice girls.’ She had seen all her efforts
+wasted; had seen Sebastian studiously polite and amiable,
+even putting himself out of the way often to attend her and
+her visitors when they wanted an escort. She had seen him
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_375">[Pg 375]</span>follow them to concerts and dances and garden-parties; she
+had seen him play the host—and nothing else—to admiration;
+and she had seen the look of relief which dawned
+upon his face when the duty could conscientiously be left,
+and he could return to his books, his plans, and his business—that
+business which seemed to have become the very
+breath of life to him, and from which no girl, however nice,
+could succeed in drawing him away.</p>
+
+<p>But some one had at last found this power—probably
+some one whom she would dislike excessively. Most probably
+he had met Adrienne Blisset again somewhere; had
+proposed to her a second time, and been accepted. Mrs.
+Mallory thought she would have preferred him to come and
+tell her that he was going to marry any one—a barmaid, a
+milliner—any one rather than ‘that girl,’ whom she hated
+with a virulence which grew with time.</p>
+
+<p>‘Indeed!’ she made answer, and left him to inflict the
+blow. It was exactly as she expected.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am going to be married, mother.’</p>
+
+<p>‘To be married?’ she repeated mechanically. She had
+long ago said that she had no power over her son, but she
+felt bitter at this proof of the truth of her words.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. I hope you will approve my choice.’</p>
+
+<p>‘If your choice is Miss Blisset, Sebastian, I shall never
+approve it, and so I tell you distinctly.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But it is not Miss Blisset, mother. She refused me two
+years ago—she would refuse me now, and she would refuse
+me through all time. Then I was a good deal cut-up about
+it. Now, I am very glad. No; it is some one whom you
+used to like very much. At least, I always understood you
+to say so.’</p>
+
+<p>It is a fact that the idea of Helena Spenceley did not once
+enter Mrs. Mallory’s mind. She had so come to believe
+that her son never could, under any circumstances, turn to
+her former favourite, that since the downfall of Helena and
+her family she had altogether dismissed them from her
+thoughts. Even now, as Sebastian paused, she did not think
+of Helena, but said, after a moment.</p>
+
+<p>‘I cannot imagine whom you mean, Sebastian, and I
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_376">[Pg 376]</span>never could guess things of that kind. Who may the lady
+be?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena Spenceley.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory actually started from her chair.</p>
+
+<p>‘<span class="smcap">Helena Spenceley!</span> What will you tell me?’</p>
+
+<p>‘You surely cannot disapprove of that. My dear mother,
+you at one time wished me to marry her. You told me so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You have the most extraordinary, perverted ideas of
+right and duty, Sebastian. Can you suppose that I ever
+wished you to marry a girl whose father committed suicide
+after behaving in a far from honourable way in his business
+affairs, and whose brother absconded with a large sum of
+money which he had stolen, and who is now—who knows
+where he is, or what he is doing, or what trouble he may
+cause his relations even yet?’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian almost smiled at the utter opposition of his
+mother’s ideas to his own. They never saw but one
+side each of the other’s nature—not because neither had
+another side to show, but because of the formation of their
+respective mental eyes. Yet, for the sake of appearances, he
+must argue the matter out.</p>
+
+<p>‘Suppose we had married at the time you wished it,’
+he suggested. ‘These things would have happened all the
+same. As it is, they are now nearly forgotten. No one
+with any feeling would wish to remind her of them. If you
+could only see her, you would forget them all, in looking at
+herself. She was always a beautiful girl, but now she is
+lovelier than ever, and more charming.’</p>
+
+<p>She was silent.</p>
+
+<p>‘Will you not say you approve of this, mother! You know
+I will not seek a wife with a fortune. If she had happened
+to have money, well and good; but I would rather have
+her without, and with the beauty and the love that Helena
+gives me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is a mockery to ask me whether I approve of it. You
+will do it whether I approve or not.’</p>
+
+<p>‘But if you will approve—if you will hold out your hand
+to Helena, and accept her as my wife, you will gratify me
+beyond measure. You know, it is really your fault. You
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_377">[Pg 377]</span>threw Helena in my way at first, and she must have made
+a much deeper impression upon me than I knew, for a few
+weeks ago, when I met her unexpectedly, I was scarcely
+master of myself. It was all over with me from that
+moment.’</p>
+
+<p>‘And suppose I do not approve?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I should be unspeakably grieved. We are alone in the
+world, almost. You are the very nearest relative a man
+can have; but you will agree,’ and he stooped and gently
+kissed her cheek.</p>
+
+<p>She started. With that kiss seemed to come suddenly to
+her a great revelation, the revelation of the love which she
+had thrust obstinately away from her. She had received
+her son as a child, and had tried to curb and control him;
+and when he acted as a man, she had enclosed herself
+within a wall of icy reserve, and had repelled every advance
+he had made. The truth rushed upon her mind now with
+overwhelming force. She was a selfish, a profoundly selfish,
+woman; but somewhere, not quite withered away within
+her, there lay the remains of a mother’s heart.</p>
+
+<p>‘I am your mother, Sebastian,’ she said, with a sudden
+tremor in her voice. ‘It is very strange that we should
+have got on so badly since you came home.... I have
+had no wish but for your prosperity and well-being, and
+yet——’</p>
+
+<p>‘I know you have. I fear I have not been all that I
+might have been to you. Forgive me!’</p>
+
+<p>He refrained, and she noticed it, from even speaking of
+the other side of the question—from saying, ‘You have
+deliberately set yourself against every plan and project of
+mine, until at last, in very self-defence, I have been obliged
+to be silent, and to keep my hopes and wishes to myself.’
+This behaviour was generous, and she knew it was. It
+appeared that Sebastian did love her, and prized her goodwill.
+The emotion she felt was not an unpleasant one.
+And then, as he certainly would marry Helena, she put her
+hand on his shoulder and said,</p>
+
+<p>‘I consent, Sebastian, though it is a trial. No; I don’t
+mean that I disapprove of Helena. I know a more lovely
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_378">[Pg 378]</span>girl could not easily be found. It is her—well, never mind!
+Are you going to be married soon?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Thank you! I thank you from my very heart!’ he exclaimed.
+‘My great fear was lest you should be displeased.
+Shall we be married soon? I do not know in the least. I
+am obliged to go abroad before the autumn, and if I can
+persuade Helena, we will be married before then; but I am
+not sure that I can. She is not by any means inclined to
+rush into my arms. She is very much changed. She used
+to be so impulsive, and to betray her feelings so easily; and
+now, I assure you, her dignity has already almost overwhelmed
+me more than once.’</p>
+
+<p>‘When you are married, or, at any rate, when you return
+from abroad, you will want the Oakenrod to yourselves,’ she
+suggested graciously.</p>
+
+<p>‘My dear mother, I hope you will stay in it exactly as
+long as you feel disposed to do so. Helena wishes very
+much to please you,’ he added, drawing a bow at a venture.</p>
+
+<p>‘Does she? When next you see her give her my—my
+love. Perhaps I had better go and call upon her.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Or I will bring her over here to spend the day with you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, perhaps that might be better. Has she given up
+any of her old notions yet?’</p>
+
+<p>‘We both find that our views on these points are considerably
+modified, so that we are quite able to meet each other
+and agree together.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad to hear it. I think it must be getting late.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is indeed. You must excuse me, mother. I seem
+to have found more than a wife to-day,’ he added, kissing
+her hands one after the other. ‘Good night.’</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Mallory drew her son’s face down, and kissed him,
+strangely moved.</p>
+
+<p>‘Good night, my son. God bless you!’</p>
+
+<p>Sebastian left her. The conquest was won. From that
+day Augusta Mallory was a happier woman than she had
+been. There was always a certain distance about the intercourse
+between her and her son and his family, but there
+was amity and concord; and later, when Helena won
+triumphs by her beauty, grace, and spirit, which no money
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_379">[Pg 379]</span>could ever have purchased for her, and when Mrs. Mallory
+heard on all sides of her beautiful and charming daughter-in-law,
+she began to think that after all Sebastian had not
+done so badly, even in a worldly wise point of view; and
+her respect for him increased accordingly.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb">
+
+<p>In the course of a week the election came off, when the
+Radical candidate headed the poll by a large majority.
+Despite the exceeding business of that week, Sebastian had
+found time to pay several visits at 57 Woodford Street, and
+there had used such arguments with Helena that she had
+consented to the early marriage he wished for. Sebastian,
+Mrs. Mallory, and Canon Ponsonby went over to Manchester
+one evening, and the next day there was a small wedding at
+a quiet church in some fields.</p>
+
+<p>Helena was given away by her uncle of the uncompromisingly
+truthful disposition. Mrs. Mallory looked calmly
+dignified. Mrs. Galloway was there, subdued by the fact
+that Helena had taken the liberty to contradict her hypothesis
+that governesses always make disastrous marriages.
+Mrs. Spenceley was there too, weeping in an obtrusive
+manner; and, when it was all over, they returned to their
+respective dwellings, except Helena and Sebastian, who went
+to the London Road station, to a compartment in the Euston
+express marked ‘engaged.’ They were on their way to
+Germany, but before they arrived at Euston Square Sebastian
+had told Helena the whole history of his earlier love for
+Adrienne, and his own misty conjectures as to how things
+stood between her and Myles Heywood—a recital which
+aroused the romantic Helena’s most compassionate and
+interested feelings—and so ended Sebastian’s courtship.</p>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_380">[Pg 380]</span></p>
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="BOOK_IV">BOOK IV.
+<br>
+QUITS.</h2></div>
+
+<figure class="figcenter illowp100" id="book_deco_2" style="width: 9.25em;">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/book_deco.jpg" alt="">
+</figure>
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_4_I">CHAPTER I.</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+‘<i>1st Friend.</i> Well, you’ve tried it: is your problem solved?
+<br>
+<i>2d Friend.</i> I have lived so long in the dark, I do not know.
+<br>
+<i>1st Friend.</i> Out, into the wind and sunshine then, and try!’
+</p></div>
+
+
+<p>What is the difference, save in size, between one manufacturing
+town and another? How will you say, reader, on
+the first view, where this town lies to which I am about to
+lead you? You shall have heard no word of the language
+of its people, seen none of its customs, only had a quick
+bird’s-eye view of it, with its long chimneys and its canopy
+of smoke, its blackened grass and dingy trees. Not to
+make the survey tedious, let me say that it is no English
+town, but a German one. Let us not linger longer than is
+needful in its streets; here is a sloping road that leads to
+the railway station; and here, after ascending the hill, we
+are within the great noisy arena.</p>
+
+<p>Amidst the crowd of hurrying passengers and phlegmatic
+officials, one figure stood perfectly still on the platform,
+waiting quietly, and looking composedly around him with
+quick, observant eyes. Whether a German, an Englishman,
+or even a Frenchman, the casual observer would have found
+it hard to say until he spoke, and then the accent would
+have betrayed the Englishman.</p>
+
+<p>He was much changed. The two years of absence, the
+better outward circumstances, the habit of authority, the
+necessity of accommodating himself to a life new and strange
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_381">[Pg 381]</span>to him, together with whatever inward thoughts might have
+had their part in moulding and shaping his mind—all these
+had had their influence. He was still Myles Heywood; but
+between him and himself of two years ago there was just
+the difference that there is between the reflective man and
+the passionate child.</p>
+
+<p>As he stood waiting, a little round, quick-looking fair-haired
+German man came up to him and began to talk to him.</p>
+
+<p>‘Now, Mr. Heywood, you have finished your business in
+the town?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, Herr Sternefeld; I am, as you may see, waiting
+for the train to Eisendorf.’</p>
+
+<p>‘How goes all there? The old man is in rather feeble
+health, I hear.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. He has not been strong this summer. He thinks
+he will be better when the cooler weather comes.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah!’ said the little German, ‘and still he keeps grinding
+away at the business?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Myles, rather indifferently; ‘or rather, I do.
+He leaves it pretty much to me at present.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, to be sure,’ said Herr Sternefeld, with a somewhat
+significant nod and smile. And there’s your train. Herr
+Süsmeyer will be glad to see you back again. <i>Au revoir!</i>’</p>
+
+<p>He bustled away, and Myles, stepping forward to take
+his place in the Eisendorf train, soon forgot him.</p>
+
+<p>From the great manufacturing town of ——feld, the
+home of turbulent spirits and birthplace of social democracy,
+to the mining and manufacturing village of Eisendorf, was
+some three quarters of an hour’s railway journey. The way
+was so thickly set with factories, houses, great collieries, and
+other evidences of manufacturing industry, that scarcely had
+these been left behind, and a strip of green grass and some
+distant hills been allowed a chance of showing themselves
+in a purer air, than they too were swamped, as it were.
+More collieries, more great buildings, cranes, hoists, and a
+canal, became dominant in the landscape, while the train
+rolled into Eisendorf.</p>
+
+<p>Myles got out of the train, and left the station. Going
+quickly in the September evening through the busy main
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_382">[Pg 382]</span>street, he presently turned aside and went down a kind of
+alley, at the end of which light and trees were visible. It
+was the way into a restauration and <i>Biergarten</i>, much frequented
+by the middle and better class of Eisendorf. Here,
+on almost every evening in the week, music was to be heard,
+and here, beneath the trees, one might sit and take one’s
+supper.</p>
+
+<p>This was apparently Myles’s intention, for he walked
+through the lighted garden, seated himself at one of the
+tables, and gave an order to a waiter, who presently returned
+bearing a dish, a table-cloth, and all the other paraphernalia
+of a supper.</p>
+
+<p>Myles did not spend a long time over this meal. The
+table was soon clear again, with the exception of the indispensable
+bottle of yellow wine, and the accompanying green
+glass. He leaned his elbows upon the table before him and
+stared dreamily forward across the garden, beyond the groups
+of merry guests—young men and girls, and whole families,
+with <i>Vater</i> and <i>Mutter</i> in full amplitude; he seemed to see
+none of them. The band in the orchestra, fifty yards away,
+were playing soft strains; the lamps twinkled with a mild,
+pleasant brightness; the trees above them looked ink-black
+by contrast. The sky beyond was like a vault of violet
+crystal, and the lamp-like stars beamed out mildly here and
+there. The breeze rustled gently now and then, but it was
+a very gentle breeze, with nothing of the storm in its
+breath. All around was the hum of laughter and talk,
+and the murmur of flirtation; now and then the clanking
+of spurs and the rattling of swords as the company was
+reinforced ever and anon by fresh specimens of the inevitable
+lieutenant; it was all very pleasant, very calm and
+peaceful. Myles, somewhat languid after a long day’s business
+in the de-oxygenised atmosphere of the offices and
+warehouses of a large town, felt, at the moment, perfectly
+neutral; neither glad nor sorry, but content, so far as he
+was anything, to sit still, with his arms on the table, taking
+an occasional drink of his pleasant, if not strong, straw-coloured
+Neckar wine, and listening to the whispers of the
+band, as one instrument after another died away in the final
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_383">[Pg 383]</span>bars of a little serenade of Haydn’s. He would have been
+content to stay there for an indefinite time, for Myles had
+arrived at that mental state in which a man finds it easiest
+and pleasantest to go on doing the same thing. Whether
+the thing were work or idlenesss was almost immaterial to
+him, when he had once begun it. It was the effort of turning
+his attention from one thing to another which brought
+mental pain and inconvenience. All day he had wrought
+hard, and asked nothing better than to continue doing so.
+So long as he could go on, he was almost at ease. But
+when the work was over—when the offices were closed, and
+men had finished their toil, and were going home to
+‘play them’—to use an idiom of his own native dialect—then
+it was that despondency seized him; then it was that
+he felt a sudden blank, an emptiness, a sense of being lost
+and unprovided for; then it was that the effort to find some
+other pastime, something else with which to fill his thoughts,
+was a dull pang which he dreaded continually. It was this
+feeling of desolation that kept him sitting up till all hours
+of the night, with book and dictionary open before him,
+studying or reading until his eyelids fell over his weary eyes,
+and he could go upstairs, certain that he would fall asleep as
+soon as he tumbled into bed. It was this which made him
+dread to awaken in the night watches, or to lie awake with
+nothing to do; this that, as soon as he opened his eyes in
+the morning, made him rise instantly and begin to do something.
+He had got an unconquerable horror of those hours
+of silent thought and meditation which had once been a joy
+and a privilege to him, as they are and must be to all
+robust, properly ripening minds.</p>
+
+<p>It was for this reason that, being tired with his work,
+soothed with eating and drinking, and pervaded by a feeling
+of quiet calm and contentment unusual with him, he felt
+reluctant to move, and sat on, his handsome bronzed face
+set in a gravity that amounted to solemnity, and a fixed
+listlessness in his dark and brilliant eyes. Soon, he knew,
+the transient pause would be over—for the contentment
+was abnormal—soon the aching sense of desolation and unrest
+would return, and he would have to awake again.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_384">[Pg 384]</span></p>
+<p>Very soon, indeed, the spell was broken. A party of
+young men, strolling through the gardens, saw him, greeted
+him, and sat down beside him. They began to talk—persisted
+in drawing his attention to this girl and that girl, and
+in asking him if he had heard this piece of gossip or the
+other.</p>
+
+<p>They were well-conditioned, kind-hearted young fellows
+enough; they had liked him, and had treated him with
+friendliness ever since his advent amongst them, and they
+continued to seek his company, in spite of his unvarying
+sedateness and gravity. Myles, in these latter days, was
+courtesy itself to all who merited courtesy; if Adrienne
+Blisset could have heard the yea, yea and nay, nay of his
+daily communication at present, she would have been quite
+unable to accuse him of being ‘scornful’ or ‘disdainful,’
+as she once had done. What she might have felt about
+the little air of proud, absent, patient indifference, who
+shall say?</p>
+
+<p>Despite absence and indifference, Myles was very well
+liked amongst the better sort of the young men of Eisendorf.
+They were of various nationalities; chiefly, however, German,
+Dutch, and English, with a sprinkling of French.
+They were all engaged in commercial pursuits, with the exception
+of one or two young professional men, and an occasional
+‘lieutenant’—that much-laughed-at, much-abused
+equivalent of the English curate. It was known—Myles
+had never attempted to make any secret of it—that he had
+left a workman’s situation in an English town, to come and
+be the overlooker at Herr Süsmeyer’s works—that since
+then he had rapidly risen to the post of manager and headman;
+that Herr Süsmeyer had greatly attached himself to
+him; and it was thought more than probable that Herr
+Süsmeyer’s son, Julius, would never abandon his favourite
+occupation of travelling in foreign lands, and that when
+Herr Süsmeyer had provided for the said Julius, he would
+most likely retire, and leave his business in the hands of
+Myles Heywood, who—so every one agreed—was quite the
+most proper person to succeed to it.</p>
+
+<p>Myles happened to know better—to know that Julius
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_385">[Pg 385]</span>Süsmeyer was even then on his way home, with every intention
+of devoting himself to the career of a merchant, but,
+at Herr Süsmeyer’s request, he had not named the fact.</p>
+
+<p>He sat, this evening, listening to the talk and jesting of
+the others for some little time, and then rose.</p>
+
+<p>‘Why are you going?’ cried one of them. ‘Why not
+stay here? The evening has only just began. It’s only
+nine o’clock. I expect we shall have some dancing in the
+<i>Saal</i> when the concert is over.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Thanks,’ said Myles, with a gleaming smile which lighted
+up his dark face; ‘dancing is not in my line, as you know.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No,’ said a young Englishman, laughing. ‘One would
+almost as soon expect to see old Michel Angelo’s Juliano
+de Medici step from his pedestal and begin to dance, as you,
+Heywood.... Now that I look at you,’ he added, thoughtfully,
+putting his head on one side, ‘there is a likeness
+actually; at least about the nose and mouth. Look here!
+If you were to put your hand across your face so——’</p>
+
+<p>‘And twist my other arm into a commanding position—thus—you
+would see a man in the attitude of Michel Angelo’s
+‘Pensiero’ Medici, and that would be all. Good night!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Odd fish, Heywood!’ murmured his countryman, shaking
+his head. ‘I wonder if he was ever less solemn than
+he is now.’</p>
+
+<p>The object of that speculation took his way out of the
+gardens and the town, walking northwards, along a road
+leading to that suburb in which lived most of the more
+wealthy and distinguished inhabitants of Eisendorf. He
+walked for half an hour or more, till he arrived at the house
+of Herr Süsmeyer, the largest and pleasantest of all these
+residences. He went up the dark garden walk, and pulled
+the bell; soon the great door was thrown open, and he was
+in the presence of his chief, a delicate, kindly-looking old
+man, with a gouty foot laid up on a stool before him, and a
+crutched stick leaning against the table which stood hard by
+his easy-chair. The table was covered with books and
+papers; a reading-lamp cast a softened light over the page
+which the old man was reading. He was quite alone; there
+was perfect rest and perfect stillness around him.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_386">[Pg 386]</span></p>
+<p>He glanced up over his spectacles, and laid down his
+book, as if well satisfied when he found who his visitor was.</p>
+
+<p>‘So late!’ said he. ‘I had hardly expected to see you
+to-night, after your long day’s work. What business in
+——feld?’</p>
+
+<p>Myles entered into details as to the business he had done,
+with an incidental disquisition upon the state of trade in
+general at that time. Then the conversation drifted off into
+other channels.</p>
+
+<p>‘Your holiday-time will soon be here,’ observed Herr
+Süsmeyer; ‘you mean to spend it in Berlin, I think you
+said?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall go to Berlin, amongst other places,’ said Myles,
+who had assumed the very attitude which the young
+Englishman had wished him to take, and who sat, his
+hand half across his face, looking out, through the open
+window, into the darkness of the garden. ‘I suppose I
+shall wander from one place to another. I do not much
+care where I go. You know it is your doing, sir, that I
+am going at all.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I wonder that you should go to Berlin, from one town
+to another. I should have thought the green woods and
+fresh air of Thüringen, or——’</p>
+
+<p>Myles shook his head.</p>
+
+<p>‘No; I don’t care about the country. It is dull.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Or to England, to see your friends?’</p>
+
+<p>The young man started.</p>
+
+<p>‘No—oh, certainly not,’ said he. ‘The last place I should
+wish to go to. No, Herr Süsmeyer; with your introductions
+and through your kindness, I shall meet with friends in
+Berlin and other places, and shall see a great deal that is
+interesting, and which I have long wished to see. I shall
+come back here refreshed and ready for work again, until
+your son——’</p>
+
+<p>‘We can talk about that when Julius arrives. Time
+enough, time enough! I hate changes,’ said Herr Süsmeyer.
+‘Meanwhile, I have had very good news to-day—excellent
+news.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Indeed!’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_387">[Pg 387]</span></p>
+<p>‘Yes; a letter from Sebastian Mallory.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! Is he coming, then?’</p>
+
+<p>‘He is coming—yes, but not alone,’ said Herr Süsmeyer,
+a smile of much satisfaction playing upon his face. He will
+bring his bride with him. What do you think of that?
+He says I must see her. But you say nothing; you did
+not know?’</p>
+
+<p>‘His bride!’ repeated Myles, in a low voice. ‘No, I did
+not know. But—when does he come?’</p>
+
+<p>‘In a few days. They are already at Cologne. They
+will travel through Düsseldorf and ——feld, and come here
+for two nights only. Then they are going on. It is their
+wedding tour. I have already given orders,’ continued the
+old man, ‘to receive them. I must make much of my friend
+Sebastian. It is as if a child of my own brought his bride
+to see me. I have ordered the guest-chambers to be prepared,
+which have not been used since the death of my
+blessed Amalie, my wife.’</p>
+
+<p>Thus the good old man prosed on, with childlike pleasure
+in the prospect of meeting ‘his’ Sebastian again, and of seeing
+his bride, so engrossed in the anticipation that he did
+not even look at his listener, who sat still, composed and
+pale, hearing distinctly all that was said, and occupied, he
+too, in picturing the scene: how Sebastian Mallory would
+lead forward his bride, who would be glad that his old
+friends were pleased to welcome her. Myles could exactly
+realise how she would go up to good old Herr Süsmeyer
+with both hands held out, and eyes shining with happiness,
+and he—perhaps he need not be there at all; but, at any
+rate, if he only kept sufficiently in the background he would
+not be observed, and he could bear his pain alone. This
+stroke had been long delayed, but it had come at last—as
+he knew it must. Those words he had heard spoken in
+the Thanshope Park had held good. Why there had been
+so long an interval he could not tell; he had often wondered,
+had many a time sought the papers through with sickening
+anxiety, and had never yet seen what he expected and
+dreaded to see. But at last all uncertainty was over. He
+could never doubt again: and now, he thought to himself,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_388">[Pg 388]</span>life would be much easier to live, for he had too much sense
+to bewail his lot when he knew what it was; it was uncertainty
+which was so wearing, and no doubt it was uncertainty
+which had caused all his mental pain and distress. Now,
+certainly, things would be better.</p>
+
+<p>Thus consoling himself, he rose to take his leave of Herr
+Süsmeyer, who shook hands with him, and thanked him for
+calling, and said.</p>
+
+<p>‘You know, you too must see Mr. Mallory. He will
+wish to see you; indeed, he says so in this letter.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, I shall see him, of course,’ said Myles.</p>
+
+<p>Then he went away—walked back to town to his lodgings;
+found his lamp burning, and his books open as he
+had left them; said to himself,</p>
+
+<p>‘Now, at last, I can study with a mind at ease,’ and
+straightway prepared to do so.</p>
+
+<p>In vain! Echoes from a life that he had tried to believe
+lived out thronged in his mind, and resounded there.
+Faces seemed to flash past him and voices to ring in his
+ears. All sorts of scenes vividly recurred to his mind:
+always he and she were together; always there was exquisite
+delight mingling with his pain, till he recalled the scene in
+which Frederick Spenceley had come scowling through the
+committee-room, in the great distress. It was after that that
+his life had become so intolerable to him. His thoughts
+wandered off to the Spenceleys in general. Of course he
+had heard of the great failure; of Mr. Spenceley’s suicide;
+of Fred’s dishonourable flight. What was the wretched
+fellow doing now? he wondered. And there had been
+others: a good, homely-looking mother, who seemed ill at
+ease under her greatness; and a daughter—he remembered
+her too—the most beautiful girl in Thanshope, so every one
+had said, and Myles also had been compelled to give her his
+meed of admiration when he saw her, day after day, working
+with Adrienne Blisset. He had often thought what a contrast
+they formed—like a beautiful crimson rose and a white
+violet: the one with her fair hair and delicate, pale face;
+the other with dusky locks and great dark eyes, the rich
+colour that came and went, the vivid life in every movement,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_389">[Pg 389]</span>the splendid attire. Yes, he remembered her—she was
+most beautiful; but to him a violet was more exquisite and
+precious than the most gorgeous rose, and it seemed other
+people shared the same opinion.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_4_II">CHAPTER II.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+ROSE OR VIOLET?</p></div>
+
+
+<p>Two days later, Myles took his way, in the evening, towards
+Herr Süsmeyer’s house. The travellers had arrived, he had
+heard, early in the forenoon. There had been a ceremonious
+<i>Mittagessen</i>, or midday dinner, at which different
+treasured friends of Herr Süsmeyer’s had been present—friends
+also of Sebastian in former days. Myles, too, had
+received a pressing invitation to be there; but, feeling that
+he would much rather descend of his own free will into the
+crater of Mount Vesuvius, and there spend the remainder of
+his natural life, than sit a long three hours (for German
+congratulatory dinners are not amongst the briefest of ceremonies)
+at Herr Süsmeyer’s table under the proposed circumstances,
+he had declined, on the plea that it was a very
+busy day at the works, and he could not possibly be spared
+before evening. At the evening meal (the <i>Abendbrod</i>), Herr
+Süsmeyer insisted that he should be present; and Myles,
+not quite sure, when it came to the point, that the last
+arrangement was not worse than the first, had perforce
+consented.</p>
+
+<p>The house was lighted up, he saw, as he approached.
+There were lights in the windows of those guest-chambers
+which had once been the pride of her life to the <i>selige
+Amalie</i> of Herr Süsmeyer. There, in that house, under that
+roof, he was to meet Adrienne again—no longer the girl
+whom he might dare to love because she was free, but as the
+wife of Sebastian Mallory, henceforth to be looked upon
+with other eyes. A rush of recollections, sweet and bitter,
+alike filled his mind for a moment, and were very strong.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_390">[Pg 390]</span></p>
+<p>But his will was still stronger. He had not endured his
+years of sorrow, trial, and probation, to emerge, at the last,
+a weaker and worse man than he had been at first. He
+was prepared to endure the pain that awaited him, <i>piene
+forte et dure</i> though it might be—to endure and perhaps, in
+the end to conquer it; to bear it, moreover, so that it and
+its cause should be known to himself alone.</p>
+
+<p>It was with a feeling of sadness, but without any of bitterness,
+that he entered the house. He felt clearly and distinctly
+that he could meet his successful rival without a
+feeling of grudging or ill-will.</p>
+
+<p>He was ushered into the large commodious room which
+was Herr Süsmeyer’s library, and in which he always sat when
+alone, or with intimate friends. Myles, going in, saw his
+old master in his gala dress of faultless black cloth and
+dazzling linen, his gouty foot laid up on the stool before
+him; his best-pleased smile upon his face, looking up to
+where Sebastian Mallory stood talking, his elbow resting on
+the top of the piano. There was no one else in the room.
+Sebastian, who was looking towards the door, changed his
+position quickly as Myles came in, and went to meet him
+with outstretched hand.</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah, Heywood, I am glad to see you again. We were
+talking about you at this instant.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles found it strangely hard at first to return the greeting,
+but he sternly beat back the grudging feeling which
+momentarily raised its head, and spoke with cordiality.
+How well Sebastian looked! How happy! How self-possessed,
+and at harmony with life and circumstances,
+naturally, thought Myles. He had everything to make him
+so. He was little changed. Perhaps there was a degree
+more of animation or abruptness in his manner; a little
+more of the active combatant, and less of the amused bystander,
+looker-on at the world’s game. That was natural
+too, thought Myles, and to be expected, while Sebastian
+was thinking he had never seen any man with manner, expression,
+almost appearance, so completely changed as this
+‘revolutionary weaver,’ as Hugo von Birkenau had once
+called him. He could scarcely realise the excessive change
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_391">[Pg 391]</span>which had taken place. All the old froward defiance appeared
+to have vanished, and instead there was</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘The reason calm, the temperate will,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Endurance, foresight, strength, and skill,’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>which were the qualities he himself most highly prized in
+man and woman. They stood patent on his ex-workman’s
+broad brow, in his steady eyes, and upon his firmly, though
+not sourly, set lips. Sebastian was divided between pleased
+surprise and self-congratulation on his own foresight; for,
+from the first, he had hoped and expected to see Myles
+turn into something of this kind.</p>
+
+<p>Occupied with these feelings, the two young men scarcely
+spoke, but left Herr Süsmeyer to do the talking, which was
+exactly what he wished. The first thing that really roused
+them to reality again was a remark of Herr Süsmeyer’s:</p>
+
+<p>‘Your dear wife (<i>Ihre liebe Frau</i>) is absent a long time,
+<i>mein Bester</i>.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh,’ said Sebastian, with a sudden flash of the eyes,
+which did not escape Myles, ‘she will not be long. I told
+her at what time you took your supper. She was resting
+when I saw her.’</p>
+
+<p>‘So!’ said Herr Süsmeyer, adding, for the hundredth
+time, ‘I trust she finds herself accommodated with all she
+wants upstairs.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Oh, everything, thank you. She says she thinks German
+hospitality is the most delightful she ever had.’</p>
+
+<p>‘German hospitality!’ thought Myles. ‘Strange! She
+passed her happiest years in Germany; she told me so.’</p>
+
+<p>While he was marvelling at this (to him) peculiar remark
+of Sebastian’s, the rustle of a silken gown became audible
+on the polished floor of the passage; <i>she</i> was coming now.</p>
+
+<p>‘There she is!’ said Sebastian, catching the sound too,
+and starting forward to open the door.</p>
+
+<p>‘I hope I’m not very late,’ said a voice—(silvery, though
+not <i>the</i> voice)—and it was just at that moment that Myles
+began to wonder if he were labouring under some wild and
+extraordinary hallucination—whether long brooding and
+the last blow had really driven him mad.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_392">[Pg 392]</span></p>
+<p>He was conscious, but in a dream-like, unreal manner,
+of rising, as Sebastian led a lady into the room—a lady who
+laughed a happy laugh. He was conscious, also dreamily,
+of seeing a figure which had been in his thoughts quite
+lately—a tall, superbly shaped, queenly figure—not the
+figure of Adrienne; of seeing a lovely face, glowing with a
+soft flush of health and happiness; of meeting eyes which,
+for darkness and fire, might match his own; of seeing a
+long, white throat, a dress of silk and lace, rings flashing on
+white hands, and a dazzling smile making the brilliant whole
+more brilliant still. Nothing like a sweet violet, indeed,
+but a rich and gorgeous rose, in the full pride of its queenly
+beauty.</p>
+
+<p>‘Helena, this is Mr. Heywood, of whom you have often
+heard me speak. Heywood, Mrs. Mallory.’</p>
+
+<p>(‘How fearfully he stared at me, dear!’ said Helena
+afterwards. ‘He is really a very remarkable-looking young
+man, and I liked him when I talked to him; but he stared
+most alarmingly at first.’)</p>
+
+<p>Myles was still dimly aware that the brilliant vision,
+which he kept expecting to see fade away like a dissolving
+view, to be followed by that of Adrienne, held out her
+hand graciously, saying something about ‘My husband has
+often told me about you,’ or words to that effect; and that he
+took the hand and bowed over it—very creditably, considering
+his state of mind. Then Sebastian placed a chair for—yes,
+his wife—it must be his wife, Myles argued within
+himself, and the conversation was taken up, and he
+listened to it in silence for a time, gradually comprehending
+that he had been labouring under a delusion, but a different
+delusion than he had imagined. By and by he became able to
+answer some remark addressed to him by Helena, and then
+she continued to talk to him, and Myles found himself
+being drawn out to show to the best advantage, saying
+clever things which he had had no idea that he could say,
+until they were elicited by the tact and sympathy of a
+woman like Helena. Still, he could not altogether get rid
+of the sensation that he was in a dream, and he continued
+to feel so for the rest of the evening.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_393">[Pg 393]</span></p>
+<p>When he was going away, Sebastian asked him if he
+could see him on the following morning.</p>
+
+<p>‘At any time you please,’ said Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then I will call at the works in the forenoon. I can
+soon say what I have to say.’</p>
+
+<p>On that understanding they parted.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_4_III">CHAPTER III.
+</h2>
+<p class="ph3">
+WHICH WINS?</p></div>
+
+
+<p>The following forenoon, while it was yet early, Myles saw
+Sebastian coming through the great yard, towards the
+office where he sat. His face wore an expression of gravity—even
+of trouble—and he frowned thoughtfully as he
+came along.</p>
+
+<p>Myles took him into his private room. He could not
+help thinking of how he had received him on that eventful
+morning when he came driving up to the office at Thanshope
+with Hugo beside him, and Myles smiled a little sadly at
+the change.</p>
+
+<p>‘You came on business, perhaps,’ suggested Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; but I had no idea myself, until about an hour ago,
+how pressing the business was. Herr Süsmeyer and I were
+talking about you last evening before you came. He tells
+me his son is on his way home, and that he intends devoting
+himself to business.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes; I believe that is true.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Under those circumstances, I presume, your position
+would be somewhat changed.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Certainly. It would naturally become more subordinate.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Will you like that?’</p>
+
+<p>Myles shrugged his shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>‘Herr Süsmeyer was talking to me about it. He gave
+me a very high character of you. He very much regrets
+your having to take a secondary position. He says he
+would be very sorry to part with you for many reasons, but
+not if you left him to your own advantage.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_394">[Pg 394]</span></p>
+<p>‘Does Herr Süsmeyer want to get rid of me?’ asked
+Myles.</p>
+
+<p>‘On the very contrary. He only wishes to see your position
+improved. I may as well come to the point. You
+would hear that I have been returned as the representative
+of Thanshope, in Parliament.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. I think the Thanshope people showed their good
+sense there, at any rate,’ said Myles, with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>‘Let us hope so. But you will easily understand that
+such a position will take me away from home a good deal,
+and make me unable to attend to my business as fully as I
+have done.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Naturally,’ said Myles, with a sudden, quick glance upwards,
+as he first saw the drift of Sebastian’s remarks. His
+face flushed, and he rose from his chair, pacing about the
+room.</p>
+
+<p>‘For some time Mr. Sutcliffe has been quite unfit for the
+post he held—I mean, as regards bodily health. I have
+wanted very much to provide him with an assistant, but did
+not know how to manage it without hurting his feelings.
+My conversation with Herr Süsmeyer decided me to ask
+you to take the post. Since then—in fact, this very morning—I
+have a telegram from Wilson with the news of poor
+Sutcliffe’s death. I cannot tell you how sorry I am. I
+liked him well. Such faithful probity, such diligence, and
+such capacity, are not found in one man in a hundred.
+But, long ago, I thought I had discovered them all in you,
+and my errand to you this morning is to ask if you will take
+Mr. Sutcliffe’s post in my business. Your energy, vigour,
+and the talents for business which Herr Süsmeyer tells me
+you have, would be invaluable to me, and without doubt the
+connection would be an advantageous one for you. What
+do you say?’</p>
+
+<p>Myles had come to a stop in his restless walk, his hands
+plunged in his pockets, his brows knit, his eyes somewhat
+downcast. He did not look elated. His first words were
+not an explicit answer to Sebastian’s question.</p>
+
+<p>‘I think you are the most generous man I ever knew,
+sir,’ he said at last, almost abruptly.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_395">[Pg 395]</span></p>
+<p>‘That is beside the question. There is no talk of generosity,
+but of a business connection, a contract entered into
+by us for our mutual advantage.’</p>
+
+<p>‘It would at least be very much to my advantage. Have
+you not considered that there are plenty of men, employers
+like yourself, who would be glad to see sons of theirs
+placed with you, and would furnish capital too, as a
+premium?’</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Mon Dieu!</i> yes, I know. I have had hints to that
+effect from more than one already. It does not suit me to
+do anything of the kind. I don’t want a young gentleman
+with capital, whom I shall have to teach. I want a business
+man, who can really take commercial care off my shoulders
+when cares of another kind are laid upon them. I am not
+a fellow to do things in a hurry. The whole matter has
+been well considered, and it is a great object with me to
+secure you. As to terms, we could come to some satisfactory
+arrangement, I doubt not. What I want to know
+now is, will you come to me, and take the place of manager
+of my business?’</p>
+
+<p>Again Myles began to pace the room, biting his lip and
+frowning desperately.</p>
+
+<p>‘You must think me strangely callous and indifferent,
+not to jump at such an offer,’ he began.</p>
+
+<p>‘No; I see you don’t want to come. I know your
+reasons. No,’ he added, as Myles started, ‘not your very
+reason, but I know that when you left Thanshope it was in
+the hope never to see it again; and that desire has not yet
+changed.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No it has never changed,’ he owned.</p>
+
+<p>‘But, if I guess rightly, there is no actual, tangible obstacle
+to your return. It is a strong private feeling of repugnance
+on your own part, arising from some cause or
+causes to me unknown. Is it not so?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, it is so.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Well; still I ask you to come. Come and try, at least.
+Fight it down, and come and revisit your city of the dead.
+Come and try whether there may not be new life hidden
+for you there.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_396">[Pg 396]</span></p>
+<p>Myles shook his head.</p>
+
+<p>‘There is not that,’ said he.</p>
+
+<p>‘Then, to put it in another light, come because I ask you,
+to oblige me. Surely all that wrath and misunderstanding
+which once existed between us is burnt out for ever now.
+I am certain we can act together in most things. And—excuse
+me, I have no wish to be impertinent—but let me
+tell you that Stonegate is always empty now; and if it were
+not, I have introduced you to my wife.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles turned abruptly away. Stonegate always empty!
+Whether empty or inhabited, he had forfeited all right to
+approach it.</p>
+
+<p>‘With the best wishes in the world for friendship, that
+would have divided us, would it not?’ continued Sebastian,
+who, when he took up the probe, was not wont to lay it
+down again, with the operation half finished, deterred by
+the anguished face or fainting mien of the patient.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ was the only answer.</p>
+
+<p>‘But it is gone. I know not what life may hold for you
+in the future; I do know that you have suffered in the
+past, and that places where one has had that kind of suffering
+are haunted, and full of ghosts; but again I urge you—come!
+I think you are leading a morbid, foolish life
+here, rendered, by the motives which prompt it, not a particularly
+healthy one, and——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Say no more, sir. I will come. I knew I should come,
+as soon as you asked me. No wish of yours could be
+other than a command to me now. It was only that I
+could not force myself to say yes. But now I say it. I
+will go whenever you like—that is, whenever Herr Süsmeyer
+will spare me.’</p>
+
+<p>‘That is spoken as I hoped you would speak,’ said
+Sebastian, heartily. ‘Let us shake hands upon it.’</p>
+
+<p>‘On my agreement to take you for my lawful master, and
+serve you faithfully and honestly,’ said Myles, with rather a
+forced smile, as he grasped Sebastian’s hand.</p>
+
+<p>‘I suppose that is the foundation of all such agreements,
+but I trust we shall be something more worthy of us both
+than mere master and servant. At least, you need not be
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_397">[Pg 397]</span>afraid of rusting. I have dozens of plans which I have
+never had time or assistants to carry out. Now, with my
+wife, and I hope you to help me too, I shall get along
+splendidly.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I am glad to hear there is plenty of work,’ said Myles.
+‘I was to have left here in a couple of days for a holiday.
+Suppose I went to Thanshope direct, instead of Berlin, and
+the other places I had thought of. That would leave the
+field clear to Herr Süsmeyer and his son, and I could get
+to work at once.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Better take the holiday first, hadn’t you?’ said Sebastian.
+‘It may be long enough before you have the chance of
+another.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Thank you; but I would much rather go straight to
+work. The holiday was none of my seeking. It was Herr
+Süsmeyer’s doing.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Very well. I will telegraph to Wilson that you will be
+there in a few days, and he must have the books ready for
+you. I will just give you an idea of how we stand at
+present, and leave you to shake down before I come back,
+eh?’ said Sebastian, with as much nonchalance as if he had
+been proposing nothing more difficult than that they should
+take a stroll together. He knew, this astute young man, the
+kind of nature he was dealing with. To have proposed coming
+to Thanshope with Myles, and there standing by him
+and smoothing out his way for him, would have been in the
+highest degree distasteful to the latter. The charge imposed
+upon him was a heavy one; it promised him arduous
+and incessant occupation for some time, at least until
+Sebastian’s return from abroad. Already the idea of Thanshope
+looked less like a grim phantom. The way became
+more practicable. He brightened visibly, to Sebastian’s
+private amusement.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. How soon will you return?’</p>
+
+<p>‘It is impossible to say. It will depend a great deal
+upon the reports you send me. This is my wedding tour,
+really, though it has had a queer beginning, and I think my
+wife has a right to complain of being dragged about to
+German manufacturing towns in order to settle business
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_398">[Pg 398]</span>matters, when I promised to take her to the Italian Lakes.
+We shall try to go on there, and to Switzerland, and make
+a regular holiday of it, before coming back to settle really
+to business. You will do the best you can.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, of course,’ said Myles. ‘I hope and think that my
+reports will allow you to take a pretty long holiday.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then I can go,’ said Sebastian. ‘We leave to-morrow
+morning. Suppose you come up to Herr Süsmeyer’s to
+supper to-night, as you did last night, and we will take an
+hour afterwards for business—yes? And now I must be
+off.’</p>
+
+<p>These rapidly made arrangements were all faithfully
+carried out. In less than a week Myles, armed with
+Sebastian’s explanations and instructions, was on his way to
+Thanshope.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_4_IV">CHAPTER IV.
+</h2>
+</div>
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent32">‘Yet, ere the phantoms flee,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Which that house, and heath, and garden, made dear to thee erewhile,</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">Thy remembrance, and repentance, and deep musings are not free</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">From the music of two voices, and the light of one sweet smile.’</div></div></div>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>It would be difficult to overrate the completeness of the
+change which had supervened, in both the outer and inner
+life of Myles Heywood, between the time when he had left
+his native town, and now, when he returned to it.</p>
+
+<p>He was very busy, very quiet, and very lonely. Sebastian
+had acted with the soundest wisdom in leaving his new
+manager to take his place alone, and alone to fight down
+the obstacles which he encountered, alone to strike back
+the ill-will, the jealousy, and the insubordination—all of
+which things raised their heads and gaped upon him with
+their mouths on his first assumption of his new office.</p>
+
+<p>Myles had accepted the post calmly, but he had known
+perfectly well that he assumed no light task. It would have
+been comparatively easy, if there had not been the envy
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_399">[Pg 399]</span>and prejudices of old friends to be overcome. Thanks to
+the first-rate management of Mr. Sutcliffe, and to Sebastian’s
+own ubiquitous eye, the whole machine was in complete
+working order; but this, perhaps, only left all the more
+room for smaller spites and jealousies to make themselves
+felt. There was, first of all, Wilson, the faithful old cashier
+who had once been Myles’s superior: he was a first-rate
+accountant and bookkeeper, but no manager or man of
+business, and utterly devoid of the faculty of arranging or
+regulating things. None knew it better than himself, yet
+it was something of a trial to his feelings to see the young
+fellow, whom he had known from the time when he had
+begun life as a ‘half-time’ of eleven, placed over him. In
+justice to both the men, it must be said that this little
+jealousy soon wore off. Myles won Wilson’s heart by his
+manner of treating him with scrupulous respect in the
+presence of third persons, and without pretensions of any
+kind when alone with him. Wilson, too, was an intelligent
+man, who knew a clever man of business when
+he met him. Myles very soon proved his perfect capacity
+for his post, and after that Wilson’s soreness was at
+an end. He backed up ‘Mr. Heywood’ on every possible
+occasion, and suffered no appeal from the said Mr. Heywood’s
+behests.</p>
+
+<p>Myles found it a somewhat more difficult matter to dispose
+of others, old comrades of his own, who were working away
+in the same old places, no higher than they ever had been;
+and who, unable to rise themselves, were lost in astonishment
+that he should be put over their heads. Some of them were
+strongly inclined to be provokingly familiar; first jocosely,
+and then maliciously, insubordinate; utterly unconscious of
+the mental gulf between him and them. But the stronger
+brain and will of the man who had risen beyond them was able
+to check these manifestations of feeling. One or two sharp
+examples, and a most unequivocal demonstration that no
+nonsense would be endured, reduced them to their natural
+places. Ever afterwards he had the name amongst them
+of having become hard, inconsiderate, and a fine gentleman.
+He knew it and regretted it, but accepted it as inevitable,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_400">[Pg 400]</span>remembering the time when he had resented the fact that
+the law did not compel all men to live on the same level.</p>
+
+<p>The new manager’s eyes appeared to be ubiquitous—nothing
+escaped them; but good work and good conduct
+were as keenly noted by him as bad, and he let the approval
+be as distinctly felt as the displeasure. There was, moreover,
+another thing which soon began to tell more than all the
+others put together: he was utterly unconscious of deserving
+ill-will; he was so evidently bent upon work, hard work,
+and nothing but work, and not upon hectoring it over those
+who had become his subordinates, that distrust gradually
+subsided. Sneers and scoffs had no effect whatever upon
+him; they were ignored in a manner so complete as to recoil
+with disconcerting effect upon their originators. That
+grave absorbed face, those eyes which noted everything,
+that ready presence of mind, that seemingly unwearying,
+untiring strength, that utter disregard of the amount of work
+which fell upon his own shoulders, soon began to tell upon
+individuals, and, through them, upon the mass.</p>
+
+<p>Myles wrote Sebastian regular accounts of his business
+transactions, hoping they met with his approval. He never
+named any disputes with the work-people, leaving his master
+to infer that he was, as the latter had said, ‘shaking down’
+to his new work.</p>
+
+<p>Outside that work his life was rather colourless. Mary
+and Harry no longer lived at Thanshope. Harry had found
+work in a manufacturing village some five miles distant; he
+lived in a cottage on the borders of an open moor, where
+the air was pure, free, and bracing. He had grown, physically,
+much stronger in consequence of the change, and
+thought that his hearing, if not actually better, did not become
+worse so rapidly as when he lived in the town.
+Occasionally, on a Sunday, Myles would go over to see them,
+and nurse his sister’s little boy on his knee, feeling a passion
+of tenderness which he could not express for the little
+round-faced thing, with its large, solemn, dark eyes—like
+his own, Mary said, with affectionate pride. He would walk
+with Harry over the moors, and gratify him by shouting
+descriptions of his foreign life into his failing ears. But,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_401">[Pg 401]</span>except for this one day in the week, they were lost to him;
+their incessant toil, and his own, preventing further intercourse.</p>
+
+<p>Very often his dead brother occupied a place in his mind.
+Poor Ned! What a life he could have given him now!
+He could have had him to live with him, and bought him
+books and pictures, and given him music, and made his
+existence a poetry to him. But it was too late: Edmund
+slept his quiet sleep, killed off by the want and the sorrow
+which had been too much for them all, at the time of the
+great distress.</p>
+
+<p>One face was missing—that of Hoyle, his old enemy.
+Myles made some casual inquiries about him one day, and
+heard that he had left Thanshope about a year ago. He
+never knew the part the man had played between him and
+Adrienne.</p>
+
+<p>The young men who had once been friends of his (it
+seemed as if it must be hundreds of years ago), and to
+whose debating society he had once belonged, received him
+with a mixture of timidity and admiration. Many of them
+had advocated—perhaps still did so—the Proudhonistic
+theory—‘all property is a crime.’ At one time Myles had
+believed and ardently advocated the same delusion. He
+had lived faster and grown faster than these old friends of
+his, and now they were divided between embarrassment at
+his open support of one of the most flagrant property-holders
+of the district, and admiration of his cleverness, which had
+swept such gains into his own lap. Myles felt little sympathy
+with them, and had the uncomfortable sensation that
+while they were shy of discussing things before his face,
+they were very voluble, and chiefly about himself, behind his
+back.</p>
+
+<p>He found his most congenial associate in Mr. Lyttleton,
+the Factory Inspector of Thanshope and some surrounding
+towns, who lived in Thanshope—a middle-aged, highly educated
+man, who was attracted, the first time he saw him, by the
+keen yet sombre countenance of Mr. Mallory’s new manager;
+and who, when he learnt the outlines of Myles’s history, became
+still more interested in him, asked him to his house,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_402">[Pg 402]</span>and there introduced him to some young professional men,
+of a higher class, taken all in all, than those he had known
+in Eisendorf. The benefit was mutual, and Myles’s circle of
+acquaintances, if not of intimates, thus gradually extended.
+Almost everywhere he pleased, but everywhere there was the
+constant wonder why Heywood was so reserved, so almost
+melancholy in manner, and so sparing in speech; ‘much
+more like a Spanish grandee,’ observed a young doctor to
+Mr. Lyttleton, ‘than a man who has risen from the ranks
+of the working-men. I can’t make the fellow out.’</p>
+
+<p>Very few people could make the fellow out, though
+many seemed to find a decided pleasure in trying to do
+so.</p>
+
+<p>Thus time passed until Sebastian and his wife came
+home, and then Myles found that ‘master and servant’ was
+indeed far from expressing the relation which Mallory wished
+to exist between them. Sebastian’s regard, once won, was
+dealt out with no niggard hand. He had got Myles to
+yield to his will; now it seemed he wished for more than
+respect—regard. The best part of Myles’s nature responded
+to the call; his liking warmed each day, till it grew to an
+affection, reserved and reticent indeed in outward show,
+but inwardly glowing as warmly as Sebastian himself could
+desire. The former ill-will had burnt itself out. Master
+and man were on a footing of perfect amity and accord.
+The more Myles heard of Sebastian’s plans, thoughts, and
+schemes, the better he liked them, and the wiser he felt
+them to be. He could appreciate them now; three years
+ago he could only have scoffed at them. He entered
+heartily into them all; he worked unremittingly till Sebastian
+declared he was afraid of his energy, and refused rest,
+saying he neither required nor desired it. Whatever his
+own private and personal hopes, thoughts, or wishes (if he
+had any), he kept them strictly and entirely to himself.
+Helena was very kind to him, and they were very good
+friends; she, woman like, always thinking of that background
+in his life, that hinted love-story, of which Sebastian
+had given her some glimpses. Occasionally she and her
+husband would speak of it.</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_403">[Pg 403]</span></p>
+<p>‘Sebastian, you know him best, and what he is capable
+of. Do you think he is in love with that girl yet?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think, most reverend matron, that he is in love with
+that girl—who, by-the-by, is rather older than yourself—yet.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then why doesn’t he find her out and propose to her?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I have not asked him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘He cannot think she is too good for him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I should not be surprised if he did.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Absurd!’</p>
+
+<p>‘Pray take it upon yourself to tell him so. No doubt
+you will succeed in convincing him.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You are ridiculous, sir.’</p>
+
+<p>When he, Myles, had by any chance a leisure hour, he
+would go—even after the nights had grown dark, and frosts
+of winter had set in—up the dreary length of Blake Street
+to the wicket of the empty Stonegate, and, leaning upon that
+support, would stand gazing at the emptiness and the desolation
+of it. No one lived there. A woman came some
+few times in the week, and spent the day there, lighting
+fires and throwing open shutters and windows; but that
+was all. It had always, at the best of times, been a dreary-looking,
+sad, cold place, but now it was forlorn in its mournfulness.
+If it had not been so utterly lonely, Myles would
+not have gone there. No one he knew ever came past.
+He had his watch-post to himself, and probably found some
+kind of mournful, unsatisfactory joy in his vigils. Always it
+remained the same—empty, closed, desolate—always void
+of her presence—always without sign or indication that it
+would ever again be gladdened by it. Her name had never
+been mentioned, either by him or his friends. He was
+absolutely ignorant of where she was, or how; of what she
+was doing, whether she were happy or sad; of every fact
+and circumstance connected with her.</p>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter"><p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_404">[Pg 404]</span></p>
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_4_V">CHAPTER V.
+</h2>
+</div>
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Du, du, liegst mir im Herzen;</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Du, du, liegst mir im Sinn;</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Du, du, machst mir viel Schmerzen—</div>
+<div class="verse indent4">Weiss’ nicht wie gut ich Dir bin!’</div></div></div>
+</div>
+
+
+
+<p>The spell—the long silence—was broken at last. One
+evening towards the end of April, when he had been seven
+months in Thanshope, he first had any news of Adrienne.
+The Mallorys were in London, and had been there since
+the opening of Parliament in the beginning of February.
+Myles had had all the work and responsibility at home
+laid upon his shoulders. His work for the day was over,
+and, the evening being fine and the air pleasant, he turned
+out for his usual stroll up Blake Street. As he came nearer
+to the house, he saw a man standing in the garden, and as
+he approached still nearer, he recognised the man; he was
+Brandon, Mr. Blisset’s old servant and factotum.</p>
+
+<p>The windows in the front of the house were all open, and
+glittering in the rays of an April sunset—mild and cool.
+Brandon was standing, looking meditatively towards that
+sunset, and towards the moors to which it formed a flaming
+background. His hands were in his pockets, and he was
+softly whistling a tune.</p>
+
+<p>Myles paused, and the man turned round. There was a
+mutual recognition. Brandon had been three days in the
+town, and had heard all the gossip there was—all about
+Myles’s changed position; and while he looked pleased to
+see an old acquaintance, he touched his cap as to a superior.
+Myles, wishing him good evening, rested his elbow on the
+gate, and said.</p>
+
+<p>‘Are you living in Thanshope?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No, sir. I only came here for a few days on business.’</p>
+
+<p>Myles was gratified that he could at once satisfy the deep
+yearning that lay at his heart—to ask after Adrienne—and
+at the same time do what was natural and to be expected;
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_405">[Pg 405]</span>for who, if not her uncle’s old servant, should know anything
+about her? He therefore inquired.</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you ever hear anything of Miss Blisset now, since
+Mr. Blisset’s death?’</p>
+
+<p>Brandon looked surprised.</p>
+
+<p>‘Hear of her, sir! I’m in her service.’</p>
+
+<p>‘In her service?’ repeated Myles mechanically.</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, when my late master died, Miss Blisset was good
+enough to say that she particularly wished me to remain
+with her, unless I had other views, which I had not. I
+have served her and her family for thirty years, and I hope
+never to serve any other.’</p>
+
+<p>‘I had no idea you had remained with her. I am glad
+to hear it. She must require a person to—an old servant,
+who will be like a friend to her as well.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Blisset was so kind as to say, when she asked me
+to remain, that she looked upon me as a friend. My wife
+and I are the only servants she has.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Ah! How is Miss Blisset—or rather, how was she when
+you left her?’</p>
+
+<p>‘She was quite well, sir, thank you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Does she live in England?’</p>
+
+<p>‘At present she is living in London, and we have been at
+Florence and Dresden.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Indeed! Does she mean to stay in London?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I think she will stay until autumn. Then she is going
+abroad with some friends. I am not sure where, but I think
+to Italy. Most likely she will take either my wife or me
+with her, and leave the other behind.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Then she does not think of coming to Thanshope at
+all?’</p>
+
+<p>‘No. Her lease of this house expires directly, and she
+is not going to renew it. She has seen Mr. Mallory in
+London, and made arrangements to give it up. I have come
+to see about storing the furniture.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes. When shall you be returning?’</p>
+
+<p>‘In about three days, sir, I expect.’</p>
+
+<p>‘The house will then be empty.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_406">[Pg 406]</span></p>
+<p>There was a pause. Myles’s heart was beating. Brandon
+was looking at him inquiringly, as if he awaited some further
+word or some message to be delivered to his mistress. But
+Myles dared not send any message. He could not forget
+how he had ignored her own message to him, though head
+and heart alike cried out that he was wrong. In ordinary
+concerns he was clear-headed and practical enough: where
+his love for Adrienne stepped in, his nature seemed changed;
+he became timid, nervous, and lost all self-confidence. To
+have sent a mere conventional phrase of compliments or
+kind regards, would, it seemed to him, have been deliberate,
+insolent bravado—after what had passed. If he could
+have seen her, if she would have spoken to him, he might
+have confessed his fault and begged her pardon; but there
+was no word, no message that he could send through even
+the most trusted of old servants—through any third person.</p>
+
+<p>After a few more words with Brandon, he wished him
+good night and moved on, leaving that worthy man to think
+how ill-mannered he was. ‘And he used to sit and look
+at my young lady in a way that any one must have noticed,’
+thought Brandon, rather indignantly.</p>
+
+<p>Myles walked homewards, deciding in his own mind that
+he would not go near Blake Street again until after Brandon
+should be gone. He pictured Adrienne in London, with
+plenty of friends, visiting the Mallorys, happy—the man
+had given no sort of hint that she was not happy. Suppose
+he happened to be in London, to be in the same room with
+her, to pass her in the street! He had forfeited the right
+to claim her acquaintance; he did not think he would have
+the courage to address her. He had made a great mess, a
+horrible mistake, when he repulsed that advance of hers;
+for that it had been an advance there could be now no
+doubt, since there had never been anything between her
+and Sebastian Mallory. What a shock, what offence, that
+behaviour of his must have caused her! The dead silence
+which had supervened on her part showed how she must
+have taken it.</p>
+
+<p>His heart ached a good deal as he walked towards his
+home. What profited him all this solitary, lonely prosperity?
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_407">[Pg 407]</span>If he could have exchanged it all for one more of those
+evenings at Stonegate in the old days—for one more of
+those glances from Adrienne, which used to intoxicate him
+with their half-frank, half-timid expression—he would have
+flung all he had to the winds, and begun life again to-morrow,
+if he could have seen her once again betrayed into such a
+look, such a tone, as that with which she had said, ‘Oh,
+Myles!’ one Sunday afternoon. But that would never be.
+She too had found that Thanshope was not the place for her.
+She would never come to Stonegate again. When next he
+saw it, it would be empty, dismantled, a shell. He wondered—and
+immediately felt eager that it should be so—whether
+Sebastian Mallory would let <i>him</i> have Stonegate. There
+was no other place in which he cared to live. A fear seized
+him, lest it might already have been promised to some one
+else. He hastened his steps, and as soon as he got in
+wrote to Sebastian, and dropped the letter with his own
+hand into the letter-box. He had written urgently. If
+Mr. Mallory had not already disposed of Stonegate, might
+he, Myles Heywood, become its tenant, at whatever rent
+Mr. Mallory pleased, even to the half of his income? Repairs
+and everything of that kind (he mixed up business
+and sentiment in a hurried jumble) were to be his concern,
+and his alone. And might he have an answer soon? He
+did not care whether the reasons of his eagerness were
+guessed or not by Sebastian.</p>
+
+<p>By return of post he had an answer:</p>
+
+<div class="blockquot">
+<p>‘<span class="smcap">Dear Heywood</span>—I am glad to find there is something
+you seem to care much about, outside business. Since Miss
+Blisset is leaving Stonegate, I could have no other tenant so
+desirable as you, and I assure you applications have not
+flowed in with the rapidity you seem to think. You are
+at liberty to take possession as soon as she vacates, which
+I suppose will be in a few days from now. It is not a
+residence which I should have exactly chosen out from
+amongst all others, but <i>chacun à son goût</i>.—Yours truly,</p>
+
+<p class="author">
+‘S. M.’<br>
+</p>
+</div>
+
+<p>Myles carried this note about with him in his breast-pocket,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_408">[Pg 408]</span>as if it had been a magic talisman. He studiously
+adhered to his resolution not to go near Blake Street till the
+three days of which Brandon had spoken should have elapsed,
+but the shadow of the deserted house ‘haunted him like a
+passion’—a longing, intense and increasing, concentrated
+his thoughts upon that ‘house, and heath, and garden,’ the
+‘phantoms’ of which had been ‘so dear to him erewhile.’</p>
+
+<p>Not until the fourth evening after this interview with
+Brandon did he again take his way along the familiar street.</p>
+
+<p>It was even such an evening as that earlier one. The
+air was mild, the sun, now declining, had been bright—all
+nature smiled. It was growing dusk as he drew near the
+house. Why was his heart so low? Why had he such a
+great sensation of loneliness—of being cast adrift? Why
+did sad words of a sad song ring in his ears, and seem to
+be borne in whispers to him with each breath of wind—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent6">‘Away! away! to thy sad and silent home!</div>
+<div class="verse indent8">Pour bitter tears on its desolated hearth!</div>
+<div class="verse indent6">Watch the dim shades, as like ghosts they go and come,</div>
+<div class="verse indent8">And complicate strange webs of melancholy mirth.’</div></div>
+
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘The leaves of wasted autumn woods shall fall about thine head,</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">The blooms of dewy spring shall gleam beneath thy feet,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">But thy soul or this world must fade in the frost that binds the dead,</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">Ere midnight’s frown and morning’s smile, ere thou and peace may meet.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>He felt the idea dreadfully prophetic; he felt as if that
+were the fate he had selected for himself, as he at last
+rested his arms upon the homely wicket of that lonesome
+abode, and looked towards the front of the house.</p>
+
+<p>He was prepared for closed shutters, melancholy wisps of
+straw and scraps of paper, doors bolted and barred—such
+as mark, with a brand not to be mistaken, the deserted
+house. What he beheld was an open door and an open
+window—the window to the right hand; he could see that
+the hall was stripped of its fittings, that the windows were
+curtainless, but the house was not empty—as yet, its hearth
+was not ‘desolated.’</p>
+
+<p>What is that moving within the room? A figure; perhaps
+one of ‘the dim shades, as like ghosts they go and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_409">[Pg 409]</span>come.’ So dull are our senses, when night is falling, that
+even he did not recognise whose form it was; it was not
+to a sight, but to a sound, that his nerves suddenly thrilled,
+and his senses became tense and alert.</p>
+
+<p>As he stood, a chord was struck upon a piano within—another.
+A slight shiver shook him, but still he was not
+convinced until a voice floated out—the softly melodious
+voice which he knew in every fibre of his heart, not loudly,
+but with a subdued intensity of feeling which made him
+also absolutely tremble. For the song she sang brought
+hopes, doubts, fears—and again, wild and tremulous, chaotic
+hopes, crowding into his mind. It was the homely old
+German <i>Volkslied</i>—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Du, du, liegst mir im Herzen.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>To every word his heart throbbed, as she apostrophised,
+with the abandon of one who believes herself unheard and
+unlistened to, that absent one—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Thou, love, shrined in my heart,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Thou, love, shrined in my mind!’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>and sang how he ‘caused her much pain, and knew not how
+much he was loved.’ A pause after that, till she went on
+to the second verse—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘So, love, e’en as I love thee,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">So, so, by thee I’d be loved.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>‘For,’ said the song, ‘I must ever be drawn most tenderly
+towards thee.’</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">(‘Die, die, zärtlichsten Triebe</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Fühle ich ewig auf Dich.’)</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Towards thee—towards whom? Her voice vibrated,
+almost failed, as she went on with a sad, pondering accent,
+to the wonder expressed in the third verse, as to whether
+<i>he</i>, that absent one of the careless spirit, might be trusted,
+as he might trust to her; and the notes swelled out again—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Weiss’ nicht wie gut ich Dir bin.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Myles’s head had sunk down upon his arms. The
+wonder, the mystery, the wild hope, that came surging over
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_410">[Pg 410]</span>his heart almost unmanned him, and still the voice floated
+out, as she sang the last verse of the song. <i>Could</i> it be?
+Might he dare to hope that, as she chose <i>that</i> hour, that
+place, that song in which to express her feeling, that it <i>was</i>
+he—for she was singing now—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘My love, when in the distance</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">In dreams thy face I see,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">My heart, with fond insistance,</div>
+<div class="verse indent2">Turns evermore to thee.’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Whose face? Her voice had faltered with the energy of
+her own feeling, on the last lines—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Dann, dann, wünsch ich so gerne,</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Dass uns die Liebe vereint!’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>She sang the last cadences again, as if she could not leave
+them, as if weary of waiting and separation—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Ja, ja, ja, ja!</div>
+<div class="verse indent0">Dass uns die Liebe vereint!’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>With a heart full of the wildest, most chaotic doubt,
+wonder, surmise, Myles stood, his head raised again, his
+dark eyes burning, as their wont was when he was agitated,
+upon the open window. The dusk was too deep now for
+him to see anything in the room.</p>
+
+<p>His brain, his heart, all of him, were thrilling with the
+aspiration conveyed in the last untranslatable words of the
+song—the passionate, simple, primitive—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
+<div class="stanza"><div class="verse indent0">‘Dass uns die Liebe vereint!’</div></div>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>He saw nothing, heard nothing, until a footstep paused,
+as if arrested in surprise, beside him—a figure interposed
+itself between his eyes and the window at which he was
+gazing.</p>
+
+<p>‘<i>Adrienne!</i>’</p>
+
+<p>The name fell, like a sigh, without his will or wish,
+almost without his knowledge, from his lips. He scarcely
+knew himself, or where he was, or anything, except that she
+stood there, and had paused, stopped, was looking at him.
+It was light enough to see that she had recognised him on
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_411">[Pg 411]</span>coming close to him, and that, when their eyes met, she
+was trembling.</p>
+
+<p>When she looked into his face, her own turned paler, and
+a startled ‘Oh!’ fell from her lips.</p>
+
+<p>For a moment they both stood silent thus. Then Myles,
+seeing that she still trembled and looked startled, remembered
+suddenly where he was, and how it all was. He
+bared his head and stood before her, saying, in a low voice,</p>
+
+<p>‘Pardon me! I forgot! I will not intrude. I did not
+know you were here.’</p>
+
+<p>He had turned to go, was absolutely moving, when she
+herself opened the wicket wide, and said, in an indescribable
+tone,</p>
+
+<p>‘Will you leave me without one word, as before?’</p>
+
+<p>The tremulous appeal was a command. He entered the
+garden, looking at her, as if awaiting a direction from her.
+But at last he said,</p>
+
+<p>‘It was that which made me fear to look at you. I can
+scarcely believe you will speak to me. Do you mean,’ he
+added, with a sudden appeal in his voice—‘do you mean
+that I may come in, and—talk to you?’</p>
+
+<p>For all answer Adrienne held out her right hand, and
+closed the wicket with the other, so that they stood together
+within the garden.</p>
+
+<p>Myles took that hand, but he could not at first speak.</p>
+
+<p>‘Miss Blisset, I behaved unpardonably—like a ruffian—two
+years ago. I do not deserve your forgiveness.’</p>
+
+<p>They had been moving towards the house, and they now
+stood in the almost dismantled drawing-room, by the open
+piano.</p>
+
+<p>‘At first,’ said Adrienne, in a voice which still trembled,
+‘I thought I never could forgive you. It was cruel on
+your part——’</p>
+
+<p>‘It was brutal—unpardonable.’</p>
+
+<p>‘No; you were mad with grief—I knew it afterwards—and
+you could not know what it was I had to say to you.’</p>
+
+<p>‘What was it?’ he asked, below his breath.</p>
+
+<p>‘It was to say good-bye, and something more—to say
+that I feared I had been unkind! I had seemed to desert
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_412">[Pg 412]</span>you—in your trouble, but that it had never been so in reality,
+for I had thought of you constantly; and,’ she added
+steadily, ‘to tell you, too, that I had heard something—that
+some report had been set going about you and me——’</p>
+
+<p>‘You heard <i>that</i>! It was to spare you that—it was because
+I was almost mad at the thought——’</p>
+
+<p>‘It was to tell you that I prized your friendship beyond
+all those slanders, and that nothing could ever shake it. I
+did wish to tell you that; but after you were gone, after you
+had left me in that manner, Myles, I dared not write.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Fool that I was! But I have been paying the price of
+my folly for two years without ceasing. Till seven months
+ago I believed you were going to marry Sebastian Mallory.
+You may suppose I was anxious for nothing so much as to
+be silent—to hear nothing of you.’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne made no answer, till Myles said,</p>
+
+<p>‘And now you are going to leave Thanshope?’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes, for ever.’</p>
+
+<p>‘You have come to say good-bye to the old place?’</p>
+
+<p>‘I never meant to come. Brandon found some difficulties
+about the arrangements I wished him to make, and telegraphed
+for me. I came this afternoon, and am leaving
+again to-morrow morning.’</p>
+
+<p>Adrienne had lost her self-command as he gained more
+of his. Her voice shook uncontrollably, as she leaned her
+elbow on the top of the piano.</p>
+
+<p>‘I shall always feel happy that I have been able to see
+you, to tell you that, whether you forgave me or not, I
+have repented, and do repent, my churlishness, and to thank
+you for your—your <i>unspeakable</i> kindness to a rough, stupid,
+clumsy fellow like me,’ said he. ‘Your great goodness and
+your gentle influence will go with me through my life; and—may
+you never know a sorrow or a care as long as you live!’</p>
+
+<p>The aspiration appeared useless, for Adrienne had buried
+her face in her hands, and was weeping with a quiet sorrow
+that had something of despair in it.</p>
+
+<p>‘But before I go,’ he added, ‘will you answer me a
+question? Perhaps I have no right to ask it, but I must,
+I have been listening to your singing; I heard every word.’</p>
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_413">[Pg 413]</span></p>
+<p>‘Yes,’ was the almost inaudible answer.</p>
+
+<p>‘Tell me if you had some one in your mind when you
+sang that song.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Yes,’ said Adrienne, still scarce above her breath.</p>
+
+<p>‘You had!’ he exclaimed, and forgot the solemn farewell,
+the almost benediction, he had just bestowed upon her,
+while he hurried his words out desperately. ‘Oh, Adrienne!
+forgive me if I am too presumptuous; but have mercy!
+Tell me, when you sang ‘Du, du, liegst mir im Herzen’....
+But I am too bold—I——’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do not look at me so strangely!’ she began, raising her
+tear-stained face. ‘Tell me——Ah!’ she suddenly exclaimed,
+as with one movement they clasped each other, ‘it
+is you, Myles—it was always you; but you were so dreadfully
+proud.’</p>
+
+<p>‘Do you mean,’ he asked, after a long pause, ‘that if I
+had come to you that night—if I had forgotten myself, and
+told you, as I felt sure I should, that I loved you, and that
+no “friendship” could be anything but a wretched mockery
+to me—do you mean that <i>then</i> you would have taken me,
+ruined and wretched, and without one bright thought or one
+hope for the future?’</p>
+
+<p>‘If you had come then, and told me all that, you need
+not have gone away without hope, and I should have spent
+a different two years than I have done. But it is all right
+now,’ she added. ‘The probation is over, my love, and you
+have borne it bravely.’</p>
+
+<p>‘If you think so, it must be so; but at the time, I assure
+you, I felt anything but brave. <i>Now</i> I feel—I feel at rest,’
+said Myles.</p>
+
+<p>There was silence. The darkness gathered. The air
+blew softly in at the window, and bore with it the faint
+sound of an old tune, in broken, melodious chimes.</p>
+
+
+<p class="ph3">THE END.</p>
+
+
+<p><i>J. D. &amp; CO</i></p>
+
+
+<p class="ph4"><i>Printed by</i> <span class="smcap">R. &amp; R. Clark</span>, <i>Edinburgh</i>.</p>
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop"><div class="chapter">
+
+
+
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="BENTLEYS_FAVOURITE_NOVELS"><i>BENTLEY’S FAVOURITE NOVELS.</i>
+</h2>
+<p class="center">
+Each work can be had separately, price 6s., of all Booksellers in
+Town or Country.</p></div>
+
+
+<p>By Mrs. HENRY WOOD.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>East Lynne.</i> (150th Thousand.)<br>
+<i>The Channings.</i> (40th Thous.)<br>
+<i>Mrs. Halliburton’s Troubles.</i><br>
+<i>Anne Hereford.</i><br>
+<i>Bessy Rane.</i><br>
+<i>Court Netherleigh.</i><br>
+<i>Dene Hollow.</i><br>
+<i>Edina.</i><br>
+<i>Elster’s Folly.</i><br>
+<i>George Canterbury’s Will.</i><br>
+<i>Johnny Ludlow.</i> (1st Series.)<br>
+<i>Johnny Ludlow.</i> (2d Series.)<br>
+<i>Johnny Ludlow.</i> (3d Series.)<br>
+<i>Lady Adelaide.</i><br>
+<i>Life’s Secret, A.</i><br>
+<i>Lord Oakburn’s Daughters.</i><br>
+<i>Master of Greylands.</i><br>
+<i>Mildred Arkell.</i><br>
+<i>Orville College.</i><br>
+<i>Oswald Cray.</i><br>
+<i>Parkwater.</i><br>
+<i>Pomeroy Abbey.</i><br>
+<i>Red Court Farm.</i><br>
+<i>Roland Yorke.</i><br>
+<span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">(A Sequel to ‘The Channings.’)</span><br>
+<i>Shadow of Ashlydyat.</i><br>
+<i>St. Martin’s Eve.</i><br>
+<span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">(A Sequel to ‘Mildred Arkell.’)</span><br>
+<i>Trevlyn Hold.</i><br>
+<i>Verner’s Pride.</i><br>
+<i>Within the Maze.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By FRANCES M. PEARD.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Near Neighbours.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By HAWLEY SMART.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Breezie Langton.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By Mrs. ALEXANDER.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Look before you Leap.</i><br>
+<i>Her Dearest Foe.</i><br>
+<i>The Admiral’s Ward.</i><br>
+<i>The Executor.</i><br>
+<i>The Freres.</i><br>
+<i>The Wooing o’t.</i><br>
+<i>Which shall it be?</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By Mrs. ANNIE EDWARDES.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Ought We to Visit Her?</i><br>
+<i>A Girton Girl.</i><br>
+<i>Leah: a Woman of Fashion.</i><br>
+<i>A Ball-Room Repentance.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By Mrs. RIDDELL.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>George Geith of Fen Court.</i><br>
+<i>Berna Boyle.</i><br>
+<i>Susan Drummond.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By Mrs. PARR.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Adam and Eve.</i><br>
+<i>Dorothy Fox.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>ANONYMOUS.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>The Last of the Cavaliers.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By J. SHERIDAN LE FANU.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Uncle Silas.</i><br>
+<i>The House by the Churchyard.</i><br>
+<i>In a Glass Darkly.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By MARCUS CLARKE.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>For the Term of his Natural Life.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By Baroness TAUTPHŒUS.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>The Initials.</i><br>
+<i>Quits!</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By MARIE CORELLI.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Vendetta.</i><br>
+<i>A Romance of Two Worlds.</i> <span class="allsmcap">P.T.O.</span><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By RHODA BROUGHTON.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Dr. Cupid.</i><br>
+<i>Cometh up as a Flower.</i><br>
+<i>Good-bye, Sweetheart!</i><br>
+<i>Joan.</i><br>
+<i>Nancy.</i><br>
+<i>Not Wisely, but too Well.</i><br>
+<i>Red as a Rose is She.</i><br>
+<i>Second Thoughts.</i><br>
+<i>Belinda.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By ROSA N. CAREY.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Wee Wifie.</i><br>
+<i>Barbara Heathcote’s Trial.</i><br>
+<i>Nellie’s Memories.</i><br>
+<i>Not like Other Girls.</i><br>
+<i>Robert Ord’s Atonement.</i><br>
+<i>Wooed and Married.</i><br>
+<i>Uncle Max.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By JESSIE FOTHERGILL.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>The ‘First Violin.’</i><br>
+<i>Borderland.</i><br>
+<i>Healey.</i><br>
+<i>Kith and Kin.</i><br>
+<i>Probation.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By HELEN MATHERS.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Comin’ thro’ the Rye.</i><br>
+<i>Sam’s Sweetheart.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By ANTHONY TROLLOPE.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>The Three Clerks.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By Mrs. NOTLEY.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Olive Varcoe.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By F. MONTGOMERY.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Misunderstood.</i><br>
+<i>Seaforth.</i><br>
+<i>Thrown Together.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By JANE AUSTEN.</p>
+
+<p>(The only Complete Edition, besides
+the Steventon Edition, 63s.)</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Emma.</i><br>
+<i>Lady Susan</i>, and <i>The Watsons</i>.<br>
+<i>Mansfield Park.</i><br>
+<i>Northanger Abbey</i>, and <i>Persuasion</i>.<br>
+<i>Pride and Prejudice.</i><br>
+<i>Sense and Sensibility.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By Lady G. FULLERTON.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Ellen Middleton.</i><br>
+<i>Ladybird.</i><br>
+<i>Too Strange not to be True.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By W. CLARK RUSSELL.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>An Ocean Free Lance.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By CHARLES READE.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>A Perilous Secret.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By Hon. LEWIS WINGFIELD.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Lady Grizel.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+
+<p><i>BENTLEY’S FOREIGN FAVOURITE NOVELS.</i></p>
+
+<p>By HECTOR MALOT.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>No Relations.</i> [With numerous Illustrations.]<br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By Mrs. AUGUSTUS CRAVEN.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>A Sister’s Story.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+<p>By E. WERNER.</p>
+
+<p>
+<i>Success: and how he won it.</i><br>
+<i>Under a Charm.</i><br>
+<i>No Surrender.</i><br>
+</p>
+
+
+<p class="ph3">
+LONDON<br>
+RICHARD BENTLEY &amp; SON, NEW BURLINGTON ST.<br>
+Publishers in Ordinary to Her Majesty the Queen.<br>
+</p>
+
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+<div class="tnote">
+<h2 class="nobreak" id="Transcribers_note">Transcriber’s note</h2>
+
+
+<p>Minor punctuation errors have been changed without notice.
+Spelling of surnames names were standardized</p>
+
+<p>Other spelling was retained as in the original except for the following
+changes:</p>
+
+
+<table class="autotable">
+<tr>
+<td class="tdl">Page <a href="#Page_113">113</a>: “Another murmer indicative”</td>
+<td class="tdl">“Another murmur indicative”</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td class="tdl">Page <a href="#Page_138">138</a>: “exclaimed Alkibiades”</td>
+<td class="tdl">“exclaimed Alcibiades”</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td class="tdl">Page <a href="#Page_140">140</a>: “nor was he reasurred”</td>
+<td class="tdl">“nor was he reassured”</td>
+</tr>
+</table>
+
+
+</div>
+</div>
+
+<div style='text-align:center'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 76077 ***</div>
+</body>
+</html>
+
diff --git a/76077-h/images/a004_frontispiece.jpg b/76077-h/images/a004_frontispiece.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..2c861ab
--- /dev/null
+++ b/76077-h/images/a004_frontispiece.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/76077-h/images/book_deco.jpg b/76077-h/images/book_deco.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c324ae7
--- /dev/null
+++ b/76077-h/images/book_deco.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/76077-h/images/cover.jpg b/76077-h/images/cover.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..525bc8b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/76077-h/images/cover.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/76077-h/images/title_decor.jpg b/76077-h/images/title_decor.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..1420f1a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/76077-h/images/title_decor.jpg
Binary files differ